Skip to main content

Full text of "The real history of the Rosicrucians founded on their own manifestoes, and on facts and documents collected from the writings of initiated brethren"

See other formats


<o 

00 
0) 
CO 
0) 


(0 


CO 


rftmtj 


Presented  to  the 

LIBRARY  of  the 

UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO 

by 
Willard  G.  Oxtoby 


THE 

REAL  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


THE 

REAL     HISTORY 


OF   THE 


ROSICRUCIANS 

FOUNDED  ON  THEIR  OWN  MANIFESTOES, 

AND  ON  FACTS  AND  DOCUMENTS  COLLECTED  FROM  THE 

WRITINGS  OF  INITIATED  BRETHREN. 


BY 


ARTHUR  EDWARD  WAITE, 

AUTHOK  OF  "THE  MYSTERIES  OK  MAGIC:  A  DIGEST  OF  THE  WRITINGS 
OF  KLII'HAS  LEVI,"  ETC. 


WITH    ILLUSTRATIONS. 


LONDON: 

GEORGE  REDWAY,  YORK  STREET,  COVENT  GARDEN. 

1887. 

LIBRARY 
•    COLLEGE 

•TO 


ANALYSIS  OF  CONTENTS. 


Preface — Influence  of  the  Sec^eil^ocieti^s^f^^antTlSAss.qciations 
connected  with  the^Jsosicruoian  FraternYC^-MJniversa!!.  ignor- 
ance concerning  jt-^— Extent  of  the  Rosicrucian  literart^re — 
Pretensions  of  thisiTIistory  pfj>.\  f.  %  ••"«••>•  •  •  v\  • 

"'        n         "'    "  /? 

\  fc^TRODUCTION.  ,><  fe  /  / 

'  '      ^  -  j"t    *  *  S"'  *    ^f  "       "• 

Derivations  of  the  name  RosiiJrucian-^Derivahon  from'thelsupposed 
founder,  Christian  Rosencreutz — Derivation  from  Rbs  and  Cnix 
—History  of  the  term  ftos  in  Alchemy— Derivation  from  Rosa 
and  Crux — On  the  Rose  in  Symbolism,  the  Cross  in  Symbolism, 
and  on  the  significance  of  their  union,  with  special  reference  to 
the  Romance  of  the  Rose  and  the  Paradise  of  the  Divine 
Comedy 


CHAPTER  THE  FIRST. 

On  the  state  of  Mystical  Philosophy  in  Germany  at  the  close  of  the 
Sixteenth  Century — Perpetuation  of  Neo-Platonic  traditions 
— Revolution  in  Religion,  Science,  and  Philosophy — Paracelsus 
and  his  successors — Rise  of  the  Spiritual  Alchemists  .  .  27 


CHAPTER  THE  SECOND. 

The  Prophecy  of  Paracelsus  and  the  Universal  Reformation  of  the 

whole  Wide  World 34 


CHAPTER  THE  THIRD. 

The  Famu  Fraternitatis  of  the  Meritorious  Order  of  the  Rosy  Cross, 
addressed  to  the  learned  in  general  and  the  Governors  of 
Europe 64 


vi  ANALYSIS  OF  CONTENTS. 


CHAPTER  THE  FOURTH. 

The  Confession  of  the   Rosicrucian  Fraternity,  addressed  to  the 

learned  of  Europe .  85 

CHAPTER  THE  FIFTH. 

The  Chymical  Marriage  of  Christian  Rosencreutz     ...  99 

CHAPTER  THE  SIXTH. 

On  the  Connection  of  the  Rosicrucian  Claims  with  those  of  Alchemy 
and  Magic — Fanaticism  and  Follies  of  the  Rosicrucian  Mani- 
festoes— Discrepancies  between  the  Universal  Reformation  and 
the  Fama  Fraternitatis — Religious  Opinions  of  the  Society — 
Scientific  and  Philosophical  Pretensions— Doctrine  of  the  Ma- 
crocosmos  and  of  the  Microcosmos — Theory  of  Elementals — 
Doctrine  of  Signatures — Physical  Transmutations — The  Great 
Elixir .197 

CHAPTER  THE  SEVENTH. 

On  the  Antiquity  of  the  Rosicrucian  Fraternity — Absence  of  his- 
torical traces  before  the  seventeenth  century — Researches  of 
Semler — The  Militia  Crucifera  Evangelica — Absurd  pretensions 
of  Mr  Hargrave  Jennings — The  Templars  and  the  Rosi- 
crucians 210 

CHAPTER  THE  EIGHTH. 

Theories  as  to  the  authorship  of  the  Rosicrucian  Manifestoes — The 
story  of  Christian  Rosencreutz  not  historically  true — Claims  of 
Taulerus,  Joachim  Junge,  and  ^Egidius  Guttmann — Case  of 
Johann  Valentin  Andreas— Sketch  of  his  Life — Predilection  for 
Secret  Societies — Digest  of  the  Evidence  adduced  to  prove  that 
Andreas  wrote  the  Rosicrucian  Manifestoes — Examination  of 
this  Evidence — Futility  and  Repulsiveness  of  Professor  Buhle's 
hypothesis — Facts  of  the  Case — A  tenable  hypothesis — Charac- 
ter of  the  Rosicrucian  Mystery  ..-.,..  217 

CHAPTER  THE  NINTH. 

Progress  of  Rosicrucianism  in  Germany — Andreas  Libavius — His 
hostile  criticism — Echo  of  the  God-illuminated  Brotherhood 
R.  C. — The  Open  Letter  or  Report  of  Julianus  de  Campis — 
Fama  Remissa  ad  Fratres  Rosete  Crucis  —  Confessio  Recepta 
—Vicious  attack  by  Johann  Valentin  Alberti— Other  pamphlets 
of  the  Period  .  246 


ANALYSIS  OF  CONTENTS.  vii 


CHAPTER  THE  TENTH. 

Rosicrucian  Apologists  :  Michael  Maier — His  importance  in  the 
controversy — Publication  of  Silentium  Post  Clamores,  Symbola 
Aurese  Mensse,  and  Themis  Aurea — Curious  Colloquy  and  Echo 
Colloquii  on  the  Rosicrucian  Society  —  Was  Michael  Maier 
the  founder  of  a  pseudo-Rosicrucian  Society  ? — Reappearance 
of  the  Order --Laws  of  the  Brotherhood  as  published  by 
Sincerus  Renatus 268 

CHAPTER  THE  ELEVENTH. 

Rosicrucian  Apologists  :  Robert  Fludd — Grandeur  of  the  Kentish 
Mystic — Genealogy  and  life— Bibliographical  matter — Fludd's 
Defence  of  the  Rosicrucians — Analysis  of  this  publication — 
Hostile  criticism  of  Mersenne  —  Fludd's  Rejoinder  —  Epistle 
from  the  Rosicrucian  Society  to  a  German  Neophyte — Cosmi- 
cal  philosophy  of  Robert  Fludd 283 

CHAPTER  THE  TWELFTH. 

Rosicrucian  Apologists  :  Thomas  Vaughan — The  mystery  which  sur- 
rounds him — List  of  his  Writings — His  translation  of  the  Fame 
and  Confession — His  opinion  concerning  the  Order,  of  which  he 
was  not  a  member 308 

CHAPTER  THE  THIRTEENTH. 

Rosicrucian  Apologists  :  John  Hey  don — Autobiography — Talbot's 
Life  of  Hey  don — Bibliography — "  The  Rosie  Cross  Uncovered" 
—The  Rosicrucians  in  England — "True  narrative  of  a  Gentle- 
man R.  C. " — John  Heydon  encounters  the  spirit  Euterpe — 
Voyage  to  the  Land  of  the  Rosicrucians 315 

CHAPTER  THE  FOURTEENTH. 

Rosicrucianism  in  France — Gabriel  Naude's  "Information  on  the 
truth  of  the  Rosicrucians" — Strange  manifesto  placarded  on 
the  walls  of  Paris— "The  Unknown  and  Novel  Cabala  of  the 
Brethren  of  the  Rose  Cross" — "Frightful  Compacts  between 
the  devils  and  the  so-called  illuminati " 387 

CHAPTER  THE  FIFTEENTH. 

Connection  between  the  Rosicrucians  and  Freemasons — Futility  of 
Professor  Buhle's  hypothesis — The  Rose-Cross  degree  in  Free- 
masonry—Its modern  origin 402 


Vlll 


ANAL  YS1S  OF  CONTENTS. 


CHAPTER  THE  SIXTEENTH. 

Modern  Rosicrucian  Societies  —  Migration  of  true  Rosicrui 

eastward — Copy  of  the  admission  of  Sigismund  Bacstrom  into 
the  Rosicrucian  Brotherhood — The  English  Rosicrucian  Society 
— Its  Laws  and  Objects — Harmless  nature  of  .the  association — 
Incompetency  of  its  members — The  Rosicrucians  in  Literature 
and  Legend 


PAGE 


408 


Conclusion 


431 


Additional  Notes 

Appendix  of  Additional  Documents — Preface  to  the  Fama  Frater- 
nitatis — Curious  Apologue — Rosicrucian  Prayer  to  God    . 


434 


PREFACE. 

~T)ENEATH  the  broad  tide  of  human  history  there  flow 
-•— ^  the  stealthy  undercurrents  of  the  secret  societies, 
which  frequently  determine  in  the  depths  the  changes  that 
take  place  upon  the  surface.  These  societies  have  existed 
in  all  ages  and  among  all  nations,  and  tradition  has  invari- 
ably ascribed  to  them  the  possession  of  important  know- 
ledge in  the  religious  scientific  or  political  order  according 
to  the  various  character  of  their  pretensions.  The  mystery 
which  encompasses  them  has  invested  them  with  a  magical 
glamour  and  charm  that  to  some  extent  will  account  for 
the  extravagant  growth  of  legend  about  the  Ancient 
Mysteries,  the  Templars,  the  Freemasons,  and  the  Rosi- 
crucians,  above  all,  who  were  the  most  singular  in  the 
nature  of  their  ostensible  claims  and  in  the  uncertainty 
which  envelopes  them. 

"  A  halo  of  poetic  splendour,"  says  Heckethorn,1  "  sur- 
rounds the  Order  of  the  Rosicrucians ;  the  magic  lights  of 
fancy  play  round  their  graceful  day-dreams,  while  the 
mystery  in  which  they  shrouded  themselves  lends  additional 
attraction  to  their  history.  But  their  brilliancy  was  that 
of  a  meteor.  It  just  flashed  across  the  realms  of  imagina- 
tion and  intellect,  and  vanished  for  ever;  not,  however, 
without  leaving  behind  some  permanent  and  lovely  traces 
of  its  hasty  passage.  .  .  .  Poetry  and  romance  are  deeply 

1  "  Secret  Societies  of  all  Ages  and  Countries." 
A 


2  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

indebted  to  the  Kosicrucians  for  many  a  fascinating  crea- 
tion. The  literature  of  every  European  country  contains 
hundreds  of  pleasing  fictions,  whose  machinery  has  been 
borrowed  from  their  system  of  philosophy,  though  that 
itself  has  passed  away." 

The  facts  arid  documents  concerning  the  Fraternity  of 
the  Rose  Cross,  or  of  the  Golden  and  Rosy  Cross,  as  it  is 
called  by  Sigmund  Richter,1  are  absolutely  unknown  to 
English  readers.  Even  well-informed  people  will  learn 
with  astonishment  the  extent  and  variety  of  the  Rosi- 
crucian  literature  which  hitherto  has  lain  buried  in  rare 
pamphlets,  written  in  the  old  German  tongue,  and  in  the 
Latin  commentaries  of  the  later  alchemists.  The  stray 
gleams  of  casual  information  which  may  be  gleaned  from 
popular  encyclopaedias  cannot  be  said  to  convey  any  real 
knowledge,  while  the  essay  of  Thomas  De  Quincey  on  the 
"  Rosicrucians  and  Freemasons,"  though  valuable  as  the 
work  of  a  sovereign  prince  of  English  prose  composition, 
is  a  mere  transcript  from  an  exploded  German  savant, 
whose  facts  are  tortured  in  the  interests  of  a  somewhat 
arbitrary  hypothesis.  The  only  writer  in  this  country  who 
claims  to  have  treated  the  subject  seriously  and  at  length 
is  Hargrave  Jennings,  who,  in  "The  Rosicrucians,  their 
Rites  and  Mysteries,"  &c.,  comes  forward  as  the  historian 
of  the  Order.  This  book,  however,  so  far  from  affording 
any  information  on  the  questions  it  professes  to  deal  with, 
"keeps  guard  over"2  the  secrets  of  the  Fraternity,  and  is 

1  "DieWarhaffteund  vollkommene,  BereitungdesPhilosophischen 
Steins,    der  Bruderschafft  aus  dem   Orden  des  Gulden-und-  Rosen 
Creutzes."     1710. 

2  ' '  No  student  of  occult  philosophy  need  fear  that  we  shall  most 
carefully  keep  guard — standing  sentry  (so  to  speak)  over  those  other 
and  more  recondite  systems  which  are  connected  with  our  subject." 


PREFACE.  3 

simply  a  mass  of  ill-digested  erudition  concerning  Phallicism 
and  Fire- Worship,  the  Round  Towers  of  Ireland  and  Serpent 
Symbolism,  offered  with  a  charlatanic  assumption  of  secret 
knowledge  as  an  exposition  of  Rosicrucian  philosophy.1 

The  profound  interest  now  manifested  in  all  branches  of 
mysticism,  the  tendency,  in  particular,  of  many  cultured 
minds  towards  those  metaphysical  conceptions  which  are  at 
the  base  of  the  alchemical  system,  the  very  general  suspicion 
that  other  secrets  than  that  of  manufacturing  gold  are  to  be 
found  in  the  Pandora's  Box  of  Hermetic  and  Rosicrucian 
allegories,2  make  it  evident  that  the  time  has  come  to 
collect  the  mass  of  material  which  exists  for  the  elucidation 
of  this  curious  problem  of  European  history,  and  to  depict 
the  mysterious  Brotherhood  as  they  are  revealed  in  their 
own  manifestos  and  in  the  writings  of  those  men  who  were 
directly  or  indirectly  in  connection  with  them.  Such  a 
publication  will  take  the  subject  out  of  the  hands  of  un- 
qualified writers,  and  of  the  self-constituted  pontiffs  of  dark 
ness  and  mystery  who  trade  upon  the  ignorance  and  curiosity 
of  their  readers. 

As  the  result  of  conscientious  researches,  I  have  succeeded 

1  In  reviewing  an  enlarged  edition  of  this  work,  published  in  1879, 
the  Westminster  Review  remarks  :    "In  the  ' Rosicrucians '  we  have 
come  across  perhaps  the  most  absurd  book  that  it  has  ever  been  our 
fortune  to  review.  ...  It  affords  a  great  deal  of  disjointed  informa- 
tion on  very  many  subjects,  .  .  .  but  the  one  subject  on  which  we 
have  vainly  sought  information  in  its  pages  is  the  '  History  of  the 
Rosicrucians.'  .  .  .  The  whole  book  is  an  absurd  jumble  of  passages 
and  illustrations,  for  most  of  which  no  authority  is,  or  could  be, 
given.      And  through  the  whole  runs  a  very  unwholesome  under- 
current."—W.  R.  N.  S.,  vol.  Ivi.  p.  256. 

2  On  this  point  see    "A  Suggestive  Inquiry  into  the  Hermetic 
Mystery  and  Alchemy,"  published  anonymously  in  the  year  1850 
in  London,  and  Hitchock's  "  Remarks  on  Alchemy,"  also  anonymous 

New  York,  1865. 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

in  discovering  several  tracts  and  manuscripts  in  the  Library 
of  the  British  Museum,  whose  existence,  so  far  as  I  am 
aware,  has  been  unknown  to  previous  investigators,  while 
others,  including  different  copies  and  accounts  of  the 
"  Universal  Eeformation,"  as  well  as  original  editions  of  the 
"  Chymical  Marriage  of  Christian  Eosy  Cross,"  which  are 
not  in  the  Library  Catalogue,  though  less  generally  obscure, 
I  have  met  with  in  a  long  series  of  German  pamphlets 
belonging  to  the  first  quarter  of  the  seventeenth  century. 
These,  with  all  other  important  and  available  facts  and 
documents,  I  have  carefully  collected  and  now  publish  them 
in  the  present  volume,  either  summarised  or  in  extenso 
according  to  their  value,  and  I  offer  for  the  first  time  in 
the  literature  of  the  subject  the  Eosicrucians  represented 
by  themselves.  I  claim  that  I  have  performed  my  task  in 
a  sympathetic  but  impartial  manner,  purged  from  the  bias 
of  any  particular  theory,  and  above  all  uncontaminated  by 
the  pretension  to  superior  knowledge,  which  claimants  have 
never  been  able  to  substantiate. 


INTRODUCTION. 

"  In  cruce  sub  sphera  venit  sapientia  vera." — Hermetic  Axiom. 

' '  La  rose'qui  a  e'te  de  tout  temps  1'embleme  de  la  beaute",  de  la 
vie,  de  1'amour  et  du  plaisir,  exprimait  mystiquement  toutes  les  pro- 
testations manifestoes  &  la  renaissance.  .  .  .  Reimir  la  rose,  &  la 
croix,  tel  dtait  le  probleme  pos6  par  la  Haute  Initiation." — Eliphas 
Levi. 

r  I  iHEEE  derivations  are  offered  of  the  name  Eosicru- 
cian.  The  first,  which  is  certainly  the  most  obvious, 
deduces  it  from  the  ostensible  founder  of  the  order,  Chris- 
tian Eosenkreuze.  I  shall  show,  however,  that  the  history 
of  this  personage  is  evidently  mythical  or  allegorical,  and 
therefore  this  explanation  merely  ^akes  the  inquiry  a  step 
backward  to  the  question,  What  is  the  etymology  of 
Eosenkreuze  1  The  second  derivation  proposed  is  from  the 
Latin  words  Eos,  dew,  and  Crux,  cross.  This  has  been 
countenanced  by  Mosheim,  who  is  followed  by  Eee's  En- 
cyclopaedia, and  other  publications.  The  argument  in  its 
favour  may  be  fairly  represented  by  the  following  quota- 
tion : — "  Of  all  natural  bodies,  dew  was  deemed  the  most 
powerful  dissolvent  of  gold;  and  the  cross,  in  chemical 
language,  was  equivalent  to  light  •  because  the  figure  of  a 
cross  exhibits  at  the  same  time  the  three  letters  of  which 
the  word  lux,  or  light,  is  compounded.  Now,  lux  is  called 
.  .  .  the  seed  or  menstruum  of  the  red  dragon,  or,  in  other 
words,  that  gross  and  corporeal  light,  which,  when  properly 


6  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

digested  and  modified,  produces  gold.  Hence  it  follows,  if 
this  etymology  be  admitted,  that  a  Eosy crucian  philosopher 
is  one  who  by  the  intervention  and  assistance  of  the  dew, 
seeks  for  light,  or,  in  other  words,  the  substance  called  the 
Philosopher's  Stone."  * 

This  opinion  exaggerates  the  importance  attributed  to 
the  dew  of  the  alchemists.  The  universal  dissolvent  has 
figured  under  various  names,  of  which  ros  is  by  no  means 
most  general;  the  comprehensive  "  Lexicon  Alchymise"  does 
not  mention  it.  According  to  Gaston  le  Doux,  in  his 
"  Dictionnaire  Hermetique,"  Dew,  simply  so  called,  signifies 
Mercury ;  Dew  of  the  Philosophers  is  the  matter  of  the 
stone  when  under  the  manipulation  of  the  artist,  and  chiefly 
during  its  circulations  in  the  philosophical  egg.  The  White 
and  Celestial  Dew  of  the  Wise  is  the  philosophical  stone 
perfected  to  the  White.  Mosheim  derived  his  opinion  from 
Peter  Gassendi, 2  and  from  a  writer  in  Eusebius  Eenandot's 
"Conferences  Publiques,"  3  who  confesses  that  he  knew  no- 
thing whatsoever  of  the  Rosicrucians  till  the  task  of  speaking 
on  the  subject  was  imposed  on  him  by  the  Bureau  d'Ad- 
dresse.  He  says  : — "  Dew,  the  most  powerful  dissolvent  of 
gold  which  is  to  be  found  among  natural  and  non-corrosive 
substances,  is  nothing  else  but  light  coagulated  and  rendered 
corporeal  ;  when  it  is  artistically  concocted  and  digested  in 
its  own  vessel  during  a  suitable  period  it  is  the  true  men- 
struum of  the  Red  Dragon,  i.e.,  of  gold,  the  true  matter  of 
the  Philosophers.  The  society  desiring  to  bequeath  to 
posterity  the  ineffaceable  sign  of  this  secret,  caused  them  to 
adopt  the  name  Freres  de  la  Eozee  Cuite."  The  mystic  triad 

1  Mosheim,  Book  iv.,  sect.  1. 

2  "Examen  Philosophise  Fluddanse,"  sect.  15,  op.  iii.,  261. 

3  "Conferences  du  Bureau  d'Addresse,"  vol.  v.,  p.  509. 


INTRODUCTION.  7 

of  the  Society,  F.  R.  C.,  has  been  accordingly  interpreted 
Fratres  Boris  Cocti,  the  Brotherhood  of  the  Concocted  or 
Exalted  Dew,  but  the  explanation  has  little  probability  in 
itself. 

"  Several  chemists,"  says  Pernetz,  in  his  "  Dictionnaire 
Mytho-Herme"tique,"  "  have  regarded  the  dew  of  May  and 
September  as  the  matter  of  the  Magnum  Opus,  influenced 
doubtless  by  the  opinion  of  various  authors  that  dew  was 
the  reservoir  of  the  universal  spirit  of  Nature.  .  .  .  But 
when  we  seriously  study  the  texts  of  the  true  philosophers, 
wherein  they  make  reference  to  dew,  we  are  soon  convinced 
that  they  only  speak  of  it  by  a  similitude,  and  that  theirs  is 
metallic,  that  is,  it  is  the  mercurial  water  sublimated  into 
vapour  within  the  vase,  and  precipitated  at  the  bottom  in 
the  form  of  fine  rain.  Thus  when  they  write  of  the  dew 
of  the  month  of  May,  they  are  referring  to  that  of  their 
philosophic  Spring,  which  is  governed  by  the  gemini  of  the 
alchemical  Zodiack,  which  differs  from  the  ordinary  astrono- 
mical Zodiack.  Philalethes  has  positively  said  that  their 
dew  is  their  mercurial  water  rising  from  putrefaction." 

The  third  derivation  is  that  which  was  generally  adopted, 
even  from  the  beginning,  by  writers  directly  or  indirectly 
connected  with  the  Rosicrucians.  It  deduces  the  term  in 
question  from  the  words  rosa,  rose,  and  crux.  This  is  sanc- 
tioned by  various  editions  of  the  society's  authoritative 
documents,  which  characterise  it  as  the  Broederschafft  des 
Roosen  Creutzes,  that  is,  the  Rose-Crucians,  or  Fratres 
Rosatce  Crucis,  according  to  the  "  Confessio  Recepta,"  terms 
quite  excluding  the  conception  of  dew,  which  in  German  is 
Thau,  while  in  Latin  the  Brothers  of  the  Dewy  Cross  would 
be  Fratres  Roratce  Crucis.  This  derivation  is  also  supported 
by  the  supposed  symbol  of  the  Order,  whose  "  emblem, 


8  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

monogram,    or  jewel,"  says  Godfrey   Higgins,  "is  a  Red 
Eose  on  a  Cross,  thus  :— 


When  it  can  be  done  it  is  surmounted  with  a  glory  and 
placed  on  a  calvary.  When  it  is  worn  appended  and 
made  of  cornelian,  garnet,  ruby,  or  red  glass,  the  calvary 
and  glory  are  generally  omitted." l 

Mr  Hargrave  Jennings,  who  borrows  the  whole  of  this 
passage  2  without  acknowledgment  of  any  kind,  also  tells 
us  that  "the  jewel  of  the  Rosicrucians  is  formed  of  a 
transparent  red  stone  with  a  red  cross  on  one  side  and  a 
red  rose  on  the  other — thus  it  is  a  crucified  rose." 

All  derivations,  however,  are  to  some  extent  doubtful 
and  tentative.  The  official  proclamations  of  the  Society 
are  contained  in  the  "  Fama  Fraternitatis,"  and  in  the  "  Con- 
fessio  Fraternitatis,"  which,  in  their  original  editions,  appear 
to  describe  it  simply  as  the  Fraternitas  de  E.  C.,  while  the 
initials  of  its  founder  are  given  as  C.  E.  "  The  Chemical 
Nuptials  of  Christian  Eosen  Kreuze,"  published  anonymously 
at  Strasbourg  in  1616,  and  undeniably  connected  with  the 
order,  seem  to  identify  it  as  the  Brotherhood  of  the  Eose- 
Cross,  and  its  founder  as  Father  Eosycross.  These  designa- 
tions at  any  rate  were  immediately  adopted  in  Germany, 
and  they  appear  in  the  subsequent  editions  of  both  inani- 

1  Anacalypsis,  ii.,  p.  243. 

2  "The  Rosicrucians,"  &c.,  p.  281.     Ed.  1870. 


INTRODUCTION.  9 

festos,  though  as  early  as  1618  I  find  Michael  Maier,  the 
alchemist,  expressing  a  different  opinion  on  this  point  in 
his  "  Themis  Aurea,  hoc  est,  De  Legibus  Fraternitatis  R.  C. 
Tractatus."  "No  long  time  elapsed,  when  the  Society  first 
became  known  by  that  which  was  written,  before  an 
interpreter  came  forward  who  conjectured  those  letters 
to  signify  the  Rose  Cross,  in  which  opinion  the  matter 
remains  till  this  present,  notwithstanding  that  the  Brothers 
in  subsequent  writings  do  affirm  it  to  be  erroneously  so 
denominated,  and  testify  that  the  letters  R.  C.  denote  the 
name  of  their  first  inaugurates1  If  the  mind  of  one  man 
could  search  that  of  another  and  behold  formed  therein 
the  idea  or  sensible  and  intelligible  form,  there  would  be 
no  necessity  for  speech  or  writing  among  men.  But  this 
being  denied  to  us  while  we  subsist  in  this  corporeal 
nature,  though  doubtless  granted  to  pure  intelligences, 
we  explain  our  rational  conceptions  one  to  another  by  the 
symbols  of  language  and  writing.  Therefore  letters  are  of 
high  efficacy  when  they  embrace  a  whole  society  and 
maintain  order  therein,  nor  is  an  opportunity  afforded  to 
the  curious  to  draw  omens  from  integral  names,  nor  from 
families  situations,  nor  from  places  persons,  nor  from 
persons  the  secrets  of  affairs." 

Proposing  his  own  definitions,  he  says  : — "  I  am  no  augur 
nor  prophet,  notwithstanding  that  once  I  partook  of  the 
laurel,  and  reposed  a  few  brief  hours  in  the  shadow  of 
Parnassus ;  nevertheless,  if  I  err  not,  I  have  unfolded  the 
significance  of  the  characters  R.  C.  in  the  enigmas  of  the 
sixth  book  of  the  Symbols  of  the  Golden  Table.  R  signifies 
Pegasus,  and  C,  if  the  sense  not  the  sound  be  considered, 

1  The  "  Fama  Fraternitatis  "  makes  use  of  the  initials  C.  R.,  after- 
wards of  R.  C. ,  C.  R.  C. ,  &c. ,  to  designate  their  founder. 


io  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCTANS. 

lilium.  Let  the  KNOWLEDGE  OF  THE  ARCANA  be  the  key 
to  thee.  Lo,  I  give  thee  the  Arcanum  !  d.  wmml.  zii.  w. 
sgqqhka.  x.  Open  if  thou  canst.  ...  Is  not  this  the  hoof 
of  the  Eed  Lion  or  the  drops  of  the  Hippocrene  fountain  1 " 
Beneath  this  barbarous  jargon  we  discern,  however,  an 
analogy  with  the  Rose  symbolism.  Classical  tradition  in- 
forms us  that  the  Red  Rose  sprang  from  the  blood  of 
Adonis,  but  Pegasus  was  a  winged  horse  which  sprang 
from  the  blood  of  Medusa,  and  the  fountain  of  Hippocrene 
was  produced  by  a  stroke  of  the  hoof  of  Pegasus. 

In  England  the  pseudonymous  author  of  the  "  Summum 
Bonum,"  who  is  supposed  to  be  Robert  Fludd,  gives  a  purely 
religious  explanation  of  the  Rose  Cross  symbol,  asserting 
it  to  mean  "the  Cross  sprinkled  with  the  rosy  blood  of 
Christ."1  The  general  concensus  of  opinion  is  preferable 
to  fanciful  interpretations,  and  we  may  therefore  safely 
take  the  words  Rosa  and  Crux  as  explanatory  of  the  name 
Rosicrucian,  and  by  Fratres  E.  C.  we  may  understand 
Fratres  Rosece  Crucis,  despite  the  silence  of  the  manifestos 
and  the  protests  of  individual  alchemists. 

The  next  question  which  occurs  is  the  significance  of  this 

• 

curious  emblem — a  Red  Rose  affixed  to  a  red,  or,  according 
to  some  authors,  a  golden  cross.  This  question  cannot 
be  definitely  answered.  The  characteristic  sign  of  a  secret 
society  will  be  naturally  as  mysterious  as  itself  in  the  special 
meaning  which  the  society  may  attach  to  it,  but  some  intelli- 
gence concerning  it  can  perhaps  be  gleaned  from  its  analy- 
sis with  universal  symbolism.  Now,  the  Rose  and  the 
Cross,  in  their  separate  significance,  are  emblems  of  the 
most  palmary  importance  and  the  highest  antiquity. 

1  Elsewhere  he  interprets  the  letters  F.R.C.  to  mean  Faith, 
Religion,  and  Charity.  See  Renandot,  "  Conferences  Publiques,"  v., 
p.  509, 


INTRODUCTION.  n 

There  is  a  Silver  Eose,  called  Tamara  Pua,  in  the  Paradise 
of  the  Brahmans.  "This  Paradise  is  a  garden  in  heaven, 
to  which  celestial  spirits  are  first  admitted  on  their  ascent 
from  the  terrestrial  sphere.  The  Eose  contains  the  images 
of  two  women,  as  bright  and  fair  as  a  pearl ;  but  these 
two  are  only  one,  though  appearing  as  if  distinct  according 
to  the  medium,  celestial  or  terrestrial,  through  which  they 
are  viewed.  In  the  first  aspect  she  is  called  the  Lady  of 
the  Mouth,  in  the  other,  the  Lady  of  the  Tongue,  or  the 
Spirit  of  Tongues.  In  the  centre  of  this  Silver  Eose,  God 
has  his  permanent  residence." 

A  correspondence  will  be  readily  recognised  between  this 
divine  woman  or  virgin — two  and  yet  one,  who  seems  to 
typify  the  Logos,  the  Spirit  of  Wisdom,  and  the  Spirit  of 
Truth — and  the  two-edged  sword  of  the  Spirit  in  the 
Apocalypse,  the  Sapientia  quce  ex  ore  Altissimii  prodiit,  as 
it  is  called  in  the  sublime  Advent  antiphon  of  the  Latin 
Church.  The  mystical  Eose  in  the  centre  of  the  allegorical 
garden  is  continually  met  with  in  legend.  Buddha  is 
said  to  have  been  crucified  for  robbing  a  garden  of  a 
flower,1  and  after  a  common  fashion  of  mythology,  the 
divine  Avatar  of  the  Indians  is  henceforth  identified  with 
the  object  for  which  he  suffered,  and  he  becomes  himself 
"  a  flower,  a  Eose,  a  Padma,  Lotus,  or  Lily."  Thus  he  is 
the  Eose  crucified,  and  we  must  look  to  the  far  East  for 
the  origin  of  the  Eosicrucian  emblem.  According  to 
Godfrey  Higgins,  this  is  "  the  Eose  of  Isuren,  of  Tamul, 
and  of  Sharon,  crucified  for  the  salvation  of  men — 
crucified,"  he  continues,  "  in  the  heavens  at  the  vernal 
equinox."  In  this  connection  we  may  remember  the 

1  The  same  story  is  told  of  Indra,  who  was  crucified  by  the 
keepers  of  the  Hindoo  Paradise  for  having  robbed  it. 


12 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Gnostic  legend  that  Christ  was  crucified  in  the  Empyrean ; 
and  as  Nazareth,  according  to  St  Jerome,  signified  the 
flower,  and  was  situated  in  Carmel,  "  the  vineyard  or  garden 
of  God,"  Jesus  of  Nazareth,  by  a  common  extension  of  the 
symbolism,  is  sometimes  identified  as  this  crucified  flower.1 

In  classical  fable,  the  garden  of  Midas,  the  King  of  the 
Phrygians,  was  situated  at  the  foot  of  Mount  Bermion,  and 
was  glorified  by  the  presence  of  roses  with  sixty  petals,  which 
exhaled  an  extraordinary  fragrance.  Now,  the  rose  was 
sacred  to  Dionysius,  or  Bacchus,  and  Bacchus  endowed 
Midas  with  the  power  of  transmuting  everything  into  gold ; 
so  here  is  a  direct  connection  between  the  Rose  and  Alchemy. 

In  the  Metamorphoses  of  Apuleius,  Lucius  is  restored  to 
his  human  shape  by  devouring  a  chaplet  of  roses.  Every- 
where the  same  typology  meets  us.  The  Peruvian  Eve 
sinned  by  plucking  roses,  which  are  also  called  Frute  del 
Arbor.2  A  messenger  from  heaven  announces  to  the 
Mexican  Eve  that  she  will  bear  a  Son  who  shall  bruise  the 
serpent's  head ;  he  presents  her  with  a  Rose,  and  this  gift 
was  followed  by  an  Age  of  Roses,  as  in  India  there  was  the 
Age  of  the  Lotus. 

There  are  occasional  allusions  to  the  Rose  in  the  Hebrew 
Scriptures,  but  it  is  used  as  a  poetic  image  rather  than  an 
arcane  symbol,  and  as  such  it  has  been  always  in  high 

favour  with  poets.3 

* 

1  Professor  Max  Mliller  considers  the  word  pbSov  to  be  Aryan, 
and  originally  to  have  meant  simply  a  sprig  or  flower. 

-  "Mexican  Antiquities,"  vol.  vi.,  p.  120. 

3  In  Persia  it  is  connected  with  the  nightingale.  "  Tradition 
says  that  the  bird  utters  a  plaintive  cry  whenever  the  flower  is 
gathered,  and  that  it  will  hover  round  the  plant  in  the  spring-time, 
till,  overpowered  with  its  fragrance,  it  falls  senseless  to  the  ground. 
The  Rose  is  supposed  to  burst  forth  from  its  bud  at  the  opening 
song  of  the  nightingale.  You  may  place  a  handful  of  fragrant  herbs 


INTRODUCTION.  13 

In  the  west  it  appears  for  the  first  time  in  allegorical  litera- 
ture as  the  central  figure  in  the  "four-square  garden  "  of  the 
ancient  "  Romance  of  the  Rose."  The  first  part  of  this  poem 
was  written  by  Guillaume  de  Lorris  before  the  year  1260,  and 
it  was  completed  by  Jean  de  Meung,  whose  death  occurred 
in  the  year  1316,  according  to  the  general  opinion.  This 
extraordinary  work,  once  of  universal  popularity,  is  supposed 
by  some  of  its  commentators  to  admit  of  an  alchemical  inter- 
pretation, and  openly  professes  the  principles  of  the  Magnum 
Opus.1  The  garden,  or  vergier,  which  contains  the  Rose,  is 
richly  sculptured  on  its  outer  walls  with  symbolical  figures  of 
Hatred,  Treason,  Meanness,  Covetousness,  Avarice,  Envy, 
Sadness,  Age,  Hypocrisy,  Poverty — all  the  vices  and  miseries 
of  mortality.  Idleness  opens  the  gate  to  him,  Merriment 
greets  him  and  draws  him  into  the  dance,  and  then  he 
beholds  the  God  of  Love,  accompanied  by  Dous-Regars,  a 
youth  who  carries  his  bows  and  arrows,  by  Beauty,  Wealth, 
Bounty,  Frankness,  Courtesy,  &c.  The  lover,  while  he  is 
contemplating  the  loveliness  of  the  Rose, 

Qui  est  si  vermeille  et  si  fine  .   .   . 
Des  follies  i  ot  quatre  paire, 
Que  Nature  par  grand  mestire 
I  ot  assises  tire  k  tire. 


and  flowers  before  the  nightingale,"  say  the  Persian  poets.  "  Yet  he 
wishes  not,  in  his  constant  and4faithful  heart,  for  more  than  the  sweet 
breath  of  his  beloved  Rose." — Friend,  "Flowers  and  Flower  Lore." 
There  is  a  Persian  Feast  of  Roses,  which  lasts  the  whole  time  the 
flower  is  in  bloom. 

1  See  in  particular  the  verses  16914  to  16997,  and  the  speech  of 
Genius. 

"Jean  de  Meung,"  says  Langlet  du  Fresnoy  in  his  "Histoire  de 
la  Philosophie  Herme'tique,"  flourished  at  the  Court  and  at  Paris  in 
the  pontificate  of  John  XXII. ,  and  according  to  the  fashion  of  the 
times  was  addicted  to  the  curious  sciences,  and  in  particular  to 
Hermetic  Philosophy.  He  composed  two  treatises  called  "  Nature's 
Remonstrances  to  the  Alchemist,"  and  "The  Alchemist's  Answer 
to  Nature. " 


14  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Le  coe  ot  droite  comnie  jons, 
Et  par  dessus  siet  li  boutons, 
Si  qu  'il  ne  dine  ne  ne  pent. 
L'  odor  de  lui  entor  s'  espent ; 
La  soatisme  qui  en  ist, 
Toute  la  place  replenist,1 

is  pierced  by  the  shafts  of  the  deity,  but.  he  does  not  in 
spite  of  his  sufferings  abandon  his  project,  which  is  to 
possess  the  Eose,  and  after  imprisonment  and  various 
adventures, 

La  conclusion  du  Rommant 
Est  que  vous  voyez  cy  1'Amant 
Qui  prent  la  Rose  a  son  plaisir, 
En  qui  estoit  tout  son  desir. 

It  will  require  no  acquaintance  with  the  methods  of  the 
symbolists  to  discern  the  significance  of  this  allegory  :— 

La  Rose  c'est  d' Amour  le  guerdon  gracieux* 

But  a  little  later  the  same  emblem  reappears  in  the  sublime 
poem  of  Dante.  The  Paradise  of  the  Divina  Commedia 


1  Amongs  the  knoppes  I  chese  one 
So  faire,  that  of  the  remnant  none 
Ne  preise  I  halfe  so  well  as  it, 
Whan  I  avise  in  my  wit, 
For  it  so  well  was  enlumined 
With  colour  red,  as  well  fined 
As  nature  could  it  make  faire, 
And  it  hath  leaves  well  foure  paire, 
That  kinde  hath  set  through  his  knowing 
About  the  red  roses  springing, 
The  stalke  was  as  rishe  right, 
And  thereon  stood  the  knoppe  upright. 
That  it  lie  bowed  upon  no  side, 
The  swote  smell  sprung  so  wide, 
That  it  died  all  the  place  about. 

CHAUCER,  "  The  Romaunt  of  the 
2  Baif— "Sonnet  to  Charles  IX." 


Rose." 


INTRODUCTION.  15 

consists,  says  Eliphas  Levi,  of  "  a  series  of  Kabbalistic  circles 
divided  by  a  Cross,  like  EzekiePs  pantacle ;  a  Rose  blossoms 
in  the  centre  of  this  Cross,  and  it  is  for  the  first  time  that 
we  find  the  symbol  of  the  Rosicrucians  publicly  and  almost 
categorically  revealed." 

The  passage  referred  to,  so  far  as  regards  the  Rose,  is  as 
follows  : — 

"  There  is  in  heaven  a  light,  whose  goodly  shine 
Makes  the  Creator  visible  to  all 
Created,  that  in  seeing  him  alone 
Have  peace  ;  and  in  a  circle  spreads  so  far, 
That  the  circumference  were  too  loose  a  zone 
To  girdle  in  the  sun.     All  is  one  beam, 
Reflected  from  the  summit  of  the  first, 
That  moves,  which  being  hence  and  vigour  takes. 
And  as  some  cliff,  that  from  the  bottom  eyes 
His  image  mirror'd  in  the  crystal  flood, 
As  if  to  admire  his  brave  apparelling 
Of  verdure  and  of  flowers  ;  so,  round  about, 
Eyeing  the  light,  on  more  than  million  thrones, 
Stood,  eminent,  whatever  from  our  earth 
Has  to  the  skies  return'd.     How  wide  the  leaves 
Extended  to  their  utmost,  of  this  ROSE, 
Whose  lowest  step  embosoms  such  a  space 
Of  ample  radiance  !     Yet,  nor  amplitude 
Nor  height  impeded,  but  my  view  with  ease 
Took  in  the  full  dimension  of  that  joy. 
Near  or  remote,  what  then  avails,  where  God 
Immediate  rules,1  and  Nature,  awed,  suspends 
Her  sway  ?    Into  the  yellow  of  the  Rose 
Perennial,  which,  in  bright  expansiveness, 
Lays  forth  its  gradual  blooming,  redolent 
Of  praises  to  the  never-wintering  sun.  .   .  . 
Beatrice  led  me.  . 


1  Compare  the  Oriental  legend,  previously  cited,  of  that  Silver 
Rose  in  which  God  has  His  permanent  residence.  It  is  an  extra- 
ordinary instance  of  identity  in  the  celestial  symbolism  of  East  and 

West. 


1 6  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

In  fashion  as  a  snow-white  Rose  lay  then 

Before  my  view  the  saintly  multitude, 

Which  in  his  own  blood  Christ  espoused.     Meanwhile 

That  other  host  that  soar  aloft  to  gaze 

And  celebrate  His  glory  whom  they  love, 

Hovered  around,  and  like  a  troop  of  bees 

Amid  the  venial  sweets  alighting  now, 

Now  clustering  where  their  fragrant  labour  glows, 

Flew  downward  to  the  mighty  flower  ;  a  rose 

From  the  redundant  petals  streaming  back 

Unto  the  steadfast  dwelling  of  their  joy. 

Faces  had  they  of  flame,  and  wings  of  gold  : 

The  rest  was  whiter  than  the  driven  snow. 

And  as  they  flitted  down  into  the  flower, 

From  range  to  range  fanning  their  plumy  loins, 

Whispered  the  peace  and  ardour  which  they  won 

From  that  soft  winnowing.     Shadow  none,  the  vast 

Interposition  of  such  numerous  flights 

Cast  from  above,  upon  the  flower,  or  view 

Obstructed  aught.     For  through  the  Universe 

Wherever  merited,  Celestial  Light 

Glides  freely,  and  no  obstacle  prevents. 

GARY'S  DANTE,  "The  Paradise,"  xxx.,  xxxi. 

"Not  without  astonishment  will  it  be  discovered,"  con- 
tinues L6vi,  "  that  the  Roman  de  la  Rose  and  the  Divine 
Comedy  are  two  opposite  forms  of  the  same  work- 
initiation  into  intellectual  independence,  satire  on  all  con- 
temporary institutions  and  allegorical  formulations  of  the 
great  secrets  of  the  Eosicrucian  Society.  These  important 
manifestations  of  occultism  coincide  with  the  epoch  of  the 
downfall  of  the  Templars,  since  Jean  de  Meung  or  Clopinel, 
contemporary  of  Dante's  old  age,  nourished  during  his 
most  brilliant  years  at  the  Court  of  Philippe  le  Bel.  The 
'  Eomance  of  the  Eose '  is  the  epic  of  ancient  France.  It 
is  a  profound  work  in  a  trivial  guise,  as  learned  an  exposi- 
tion of  the  mysteries  of  occultism  as  that  of  Apuleius.  The 
Eose  of  Flam  el,  of  Jean  de  Meung,  and  of  Dante,  blossomed 
on  the  same  rose-tree." 


INTRODUCTION.  17 

This  is  ingenious  and  interesting,  but  it  assumes  the 
point  in  question,  namely,  the  antiquity  of  the  Eosicrucian 
Fraternity,  which,  it  is  needless  to  say,  cannot  be  proved 
by  the  mere  existence  of  their  symbols  in  the  mystical 
poetry  of  a  remote  period.  In  the  Paradise  of  Dante  we 
find,  however,  the  emblem  whose  history  we  are  tracing, 
placed,  and  assuredly  not  without  reason,  in  the  supreme, 
central  heaven  amidst  the  intolerable  manifestation  of  the 
Uncreated  Light,  the  Shecinah  of  Rabbinical  theosophy,1 
the  chosen  habitation  of  God — "a  sacred  Rose  and  FJower 
of  Light,  brighter  than  a  million  suns,  immaculate,  inac- 
cessible, vast,  fiery  with  magnificence,  and  surrounding 
God  as  if  with  a  million  veils.  This  symbolic  Rose  is  as 
common  a  hierogram  throughout  the  vast  temples  and 
palaces  of  the  Ancient  East  as  it  is  in  the  immense  ruins 
of  Central  America." 2 

From  the  time  of  the  Guelphs  and  the  Ghibellines  a  common 
device  in  heraldry  is  the  Rose-Emblem.  It  figures  on  our 
English  coins ;  it  is  used  as  a  royal  badge  in  the  Civil  War 
between  the  houses  of  York  and  Lancaster,  it  is  associated 
above  all  with  the  great  mediaeval  cultus  of  the  Mother  of 
God,  being  our  Lady's  flower  par  excellence,  as  the  lily  is 
characteristic  of  St  Joseph.  "  As  an  emblem  of  the  Virgin, 
the  Rose,  both  white  and  red,  appears  at  a  very  early 
period ;  it  was  especially  so  recognised  by  St  Dominic,  when 
he  instituted  the  devotion  of  the  rosary,  with  direct  refer- 
ence to  St  Mary.  The  prayers  appear  to  have  been 
symbolised  as  roses."3  In  Scandinavia  the  same  flower 
was  sacred  to  the  goddess  Holda,  who  is  called  "  Fran 

1  See  Additional  Notes,  No.  1. 

-  "  The  Book  of  God,"  part  iii.,  p.  511. 

3  Hilderic  Friend,  "  Flowers  and  Flower-Lore." 

B 


i8 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Rosa,"  and  "  it  was  partly  transferred,  as  were  other 
emblems  of  Holda,  Freyja,  and  Venus,  to  the  Madonna, 
who  is  frequently  called  by  the  Germans,  Marien-Rbschen 
.  .  .  But  there  has  been  a  tendency  to  associate  the  White 
Rose  with  the  Virgin  Mary,  that  being  chiefly  chosen  for 
her  feast-days,  while  the  more  earthly  feelings  associated 
with  the  *  Frau  Rosa,'  are  still  represented  in  the  super- 
stitions connected  with  the  Red  Rose." 

In  Germany  it  appears  as  the  symbol  of  silence.  It  was 
sculptured  on  the  ceiling  of  the  banquet  hall  to  warn  the 
guests  against  the  repetition  of  what  was  heard  beneath  it. 
"  The  White  Rose  was  especially  sacred  to  silence.  It  was 
carved  in  the  centre  of  the  Refectory  of  the  ancients  for  the 
same  reason,"  and  the  expression  Sub  Bosa,  which  was  equi- 
valent among  the  Romans  to  an  inviolable  pledge,  originated 
in  the  ancient  dedication  of  the  flower  to  Aphrodite,  and 
its  reconsecration  by  Cupid  to  Harpocrates,  the  tutelary 
deity  of  Silence,  to  induce  him  to  conceal  the  amours  of 
the  goddess  of  love. 

In  mediaeval  alchemy  Rosa  signifies  Tartarum,  and  in 
the  twelfth  Clavis  of  Basil  Valentine  there  is  a  vase  or 
yoni  with  a  pointed  lingam  rising  from  its  centre,  and 
having  on  each  side  a  sprig  surmounted  by  a  Rose.  Above 
is  the  well-known  emblem 


which  symbolises  the  accomplishment  of  the  Magnum  Opus, 
while  through  an  open  window  the  sun  and  moon  shed 
down  their  benign  influence  and  concur  in  the  consumma- 
tion of  the  ineffable  act. 1 

1  See  Additional  Notes,  No.  2. 


INTRODUCTION.  19 

The  same  Rose-symbol  is  to  be  found  in  the  hieroglyphics 
of  Nicholas  Flamel — 

The  mystic  Rose 

Of  Hermic  lore,  which  issues  bright  and  fair, 
Strange  virtues  circling  with  the  sap  therein, 
Beneath  the  Universal  Spirit's  breath, 
From  the  Mercurial  Stone. 

Finally,  in  1598,  Henry  Khunrath,  a  supreme  alchemical 
adept,  published  his  "  Amphitheatrum  SapientisB  ./Eternse," 
containing  nine  singular  pantacles,  of  which  the  fifth  is  a  Rose 
of  Light,  in  whose  centre  there  is  a  human  form  extending 
its  arms  in  the  form  of  a  cross,  and  thus  reversing  the 
order. 

The  Cross  is  a  hierogram  of,  if  possible,  still  higher 
antiquity  than  the  floral  emblem.  It  is  at  any  rate  more 
universal  and  contains  a  loftier  and  more  arcane  signifi- 
cance. Its  earliest  form  is  the  Crux  Ansata, 


which,  according  to  some  authorities,  signified  hidden 
wisdom,  and  the  life  of  the  world  to  come  ;  according  to 
others,  it  is  the  lingam ;  as  the  hieroglyphic  sign  of  Venus 
it  is  an  ancient  allegorical  figure,  and  represents  the  metal 
copper  in  alchemical  typology.  The  Crux  Ansata  and  the 
Tau 


T 


are  met  with  on  most  Egyptian  monuments.  In  the  latter 
form  it  was  an  emblem  of  the  creative  and  generative 
energy,  and,  according  to  Payne  Knight,  was,  even  in  pre- 
Christian  times,  a  sign  of  salvation. 


20 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


The  Cross,  "  the  symbol  of  symbols,"  was  used  also  by 
the  Chaldseans  ;  by  the  Phoenicians,  who  placed  it  on  their 
coins  ;  by  the  Mexicans,  who  paid  honour  to  it  and  repre- 
sented their  God  of  the  Air,  nailed  and  immolated  thereon  ; 
by  the  Peruvians,  who,  in  a  sacred  chamber  of  their  palace, 
kept  and  venerated  a  splendid  specimen  carved  from  a 
single  piece  of  fine  jasper  or  marble ;  and  by  the  British 
Druids.  It  was  emblazoned  on  the  banners  of  Egypt,  and 
in  that  country,  as  in  China,  was  used  to  indicate  "  a  land 
of  corn  and  plenty."  When  divided  into  four  equal  seg- 
ments it  symbolised  the  primeval  abode  of  man,  the  tradi- 
tional Paradise  of  Eden.  It  entered  into  the  monograms  of 
Osiris,  of  Jupiter  A  mmon,  and  of  Saturn  ;  the  Christians 
subsequently  adopted  it,  and  the  Labarum  of  Constantine 
is  identical  with  the  device  of  Osiris.  It  is  equally  common 
in  India,  and,  according  to  Colonel  Wilford,  is  exactly  the 
Cross  of  the  Manichees,  with  leaves,  flowers,  and  fruits 
springing  from  it.  It  is  called  the  divine  tree,  the  tree  of 
the  gods,  the  tree  of  life  and  knowledge,  and  is  productive 
of  all  things  good  and  desirable. l 

According  to  Godfrey  Higgins  we  must  go  to  the 
Buddhists  for  the  origin  of  the  Cross,  "  and  to  the  Lama 
of  Thibet,  who  takes  his  name  from  the  Cross,  called 
in  his  language  Lamh."  The  Jamba,  or  cosmic  tree,  which 
Wilford  calls  the  tree  of  life  and  knowledge,  figures  in 
their  maps  of  the  "  world  as  a  cross  84  joganas  (answering 
to  the  84  years  of  the  .life  of  Him  who  was  exalted  upon 
the  Cross),  or  423  miles  high,  including  the  three  steps 
of  the  Calvary,  with  which,  after  the  orthodox  Catholic 

1  "  Asiatic  Researches,"  x.  124.  The  pre-Christian  cross  is  not  in- 
frequently associated  with  a  tree  or  trees.  Balfour,  ' '  Cyclop,  of 
India,"  i.,  p.  891. 


INTRODUCTION.  21 

fashion,  it  was  invariably  represented.  The  neophyte  of 
the  Indian  Initiations  was  sanctified  by  the  sign  of  a  Cross, 
which  was  marked  on  every  part  of  his  body.  After  his 
perfect  regeneration  it  was  again  set  upon  his  forehead  "]" 
and  inverted  J_  upon  his  breast.1 

The  paschal  lamb  of  the  Jewish  passover  was  roasted  on 
a  cross-shaped  wooden  spit,  and  with  this  sign  Ezekiel 
ordered  the  people  to  be  marked  who  were  to  be  spared  by 
the  destroyer.  Thus  it  figures  as  a  symbol  of  salvation, 
but  classical  mythology  attributes  its  invention  to  Ixion, 
who  was  its  first  victim.  As  an  instrument  of  suffering 
and  death,  it  is  not,  however,  to  be  found  on  ancient  monu- 
ments. It  had  no  orthodox  shape  among  the  Romans  when 
applied  to  this  purpose,  and  the  victims  were  either  tied  or 
nailed,  "  being  usually  left  to  perish  by  thirst  and  hunger."  2 

In  the  Christendom  of  both  the  East  and  West  this  divine 
symbol  has  a  history  too  generally  known  to  need  recapitu- 
lation here.  On  this  point  the  student  may  consult  the 
"  Dictionary  of  Christian  Antiquities,"  where  a  mass  of 
information  is  collected. 

The  following  interesting  passage  will  show  the  connec- 
tion which  exists  between  the  Cross  and  alchemy.  "In 
common  chemistry,"  says  Pernetz,  "  crosses  form  characters 
which  indicate  the  crucible,  vinegar,  and  distilled  vinegar. 
But  as  regards  hermetic  science,  the  Cross  is  ...  the  symbol 
of  the  four  elements.  And  as  the  philosophical  stone  is 
composed  of  the  most  pure  substance  of  the  grosser 
elements  .  .  .  ,  they  have  said,  In  cruce  solus,  salvation  is  in 
the  Cross ;  by  comparison  with  the  salvation  of  our  souls 
purchased  by  the  blood  of  Jesus  Christ  who  hung  on  the 

1  "  History  of  Initiations." 

~  Higgins'  "  Anacalypsis,"  i.,  pp.  500,  503. 


22 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


tree  of  the  Cross.  Some  of  them  have  even  pushed  their 
audacity  further,  and  fear  not  to  employ  the  terms  of  the 
New  Testament  to  form  their  allegories  and  enigmas. 
Jean  de  Eoquetaillade,  known  under  the  name  of  Jean  de 
Eupe  Scissa,  and  Arnaud  de  Villeneuve,  say  in  their  works 
on  the  composition  of  the  Stone  of  the  Philosophers  : — It  is 
needful  that  the  Son  of  Man  be  lifted  up  on  the  Cross 
before  being  glorified  j  to  signify  the  volatilisation  of  the 
fixed  and  igneous  part  of  the  matter."  * 

I  have  briefly  traced  the  typological  history  of  the  Eose 
and  Cross.  It  is  obvious,  as  I  have  already  remarked,  that 
the  antiquity  of  these  emblems  is  no  proof  of  the  antiquity 
of  a  society  which  we  find  to  be  using  them  at  a  period 
subsequent  to  the  Eenaissance.  It  does  not  even  suppose 
that  society's  initiation  into  the  hieratic  secrets  which  the 
elder  world  may  have  summarised  in  those  particular 
symbols.  In  the  case  which  is  in  question,  such  a  know- 
ledge would  invole  the  antiquity  of  the  Eosicrucians, 
because  it  is  only  at  a  time  long  subsequent  to  their  first 
public  appearance  that  the  past  has  been  sufficiently  dis- 
entombed to  uncover  the  significance  of  its  symbols  to 
uninitiated  students.  Can  a  correspondence  be  established 
between  the  meaning  of  the  Eose  and  the  Cross  as  they  are 
used  by  the  ancient  hierogrammatists,  and  that  of  the 
Eose-Cross  as  it  is  used  by  the  Eosicrucian  Fraternity  1 
This  is  the  point  to  be  ascertained.  If  a  connection  there 
be,  then  in  some  way,  we  may  not  know  what,  the  secret 
has  been  handed  down  from  generation  to  generation,  and 
the  mysterious  brotherhood  which  manifested  its  existence 
spontaneously  at  the  beginning  of  the  seventeenth  century, 
is  affiliated  with  the  hierophants  of  Egypt  and  India,  who, 
1  "Dictionnaire  Mytho-Herm^tique. " 


INTRODUCTION.  23 

almost  in  the  night  of  time,  devised  their  allegories  and 
emblems  for  the  blind  veneration  of  the  vulgar  and  as 
lights  to  those  who  knew. 

In  the  fifth  book  of  the  "  Histoire  de  la  Magie,"  Eliphas 
Le>i  provides  the  following  commentary  on  the  Rosicrucian 
symbol : — 

"  The  Rose,  which  from  time  immemorial  has  been 
the  symbol  of  beauty  and  life,  of  love  and  pleasure, 
expressed  in  a  mystical  manner  all  the  protestations  of 
the  Renaissance.  It  was  the  flesh  revolting  against  the 
oppression  of  the  spirit,  it  was  Nature  declaring  herself  to 
be,  like  grace,  the  daughter  of  God,  it  was  love  refusing 
to  be  stifled  by  the  celibate,  it  was  life  desiring  to  be  no 
longer  barren,  it  was  humanity  aspiring  to  a  natural  religion, 
full  of  love  and  reason,  founded  on  the  revelation  of  the 
harmonies  of  existence  of  which  the  Rose  was  for  initiates 
the  living  and  blooming  symbol.  The  Rose,  in  fact,  is  a 
pantacle ;  its  form  is  circular,  the  leaves  of  the  corolla  are 
heart-shaped,  and  are  supported  harmoniously  by  one 
another;  its  colour  presents  the  most  delicate  shades  of 
primitive  hues;  its  calyx  is  purple  and  gold.  .  .  .  The 
conquest  of  the  Rose  was  the  problem  offered  by  initiation 
to  science,  while  religion  toiled  to  prepare  and  establish 
the  universal,  exclusive,  and  definitive  triumph  of  the 
Cross. 

"  The  reunion  of  the  Rose  and  the  Cross,  such  was  the 
problem  proposed  by  supreme  initiation,  and,  in  effect, 
occult  philosophy,  being  the  universal  synthesis,  should 
take  into  account  all  the  phenomena  of  Being." 

This  extremely  suggestive  explanation  has  the  character- 
istic ingenuity  of  the  hierophants  of  theosophical  science, 
but  it  has  no  application  whatsoever  to  the  ostensible  or 


24  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

ascertainable  aims  of  the  Rosicrucian  adepts.     It  is  the 
product  of  intellectual  subtlety  and  the  poetic  gift  of  dis- 
cerning curious  analogies  ;  it  is  quite  beside  the  purpose  of 
serious  historical  inquiry,  and  my  object  in  quoting  it  here 
is  to  show  by  the  mere  fact  of  its  existence  that  the  whole 
question  of  the  significance  of  the  Crucified  Rose,  in  its 
connection  with  the  society,  is  one  of  pure  conjecture,  that 
no  Rosicrucian  manifestos  and  no  acknowledged  Brother 
have  ever  given  any  explanation  concerning  it,  and  that  no 
presumption  is  afforded  by  the  fact  of  its  adoption  for  the 
antiquity  of  the  society  or  for  its  connection  with  universal 
symbolism. 

The  researches  of  various  writers,  all  more  or  less  com- 
petent, have  definitely  established  the  Crux  Ansata  as 
typical  of  the  male  and  female  generative  organs  in  the 
act  of  union,  the  Egyptian  Tau,  with  its  variants  as  typical 
of  the  masculine  potency,  and  the  Rose  as  the  feminine 
emblem.  Then  by  a  natural  typological  evolution  the 
Cross  came  to  signify  the  divine  creative  energy  which 
fecundated  the  obscure  matrix  of  the  primeval  substance 
and  caused  it  to  bring  forth  the  universe.  The  simple 
union  of  the  Rose  and  the  Cross  suggests  the  same  meaning 
as  the  Crux  Ansata,  but  the  crucified  Buddhistic  Rose  may 
be  a  symbol  of  the  asceticism  which  destroys  natural 
desire.  There  is  little  correspondence,  in  either  case,  with 
known  Rosicrucian  tenets,  and,  therefore,  the  device  of  the 
Rose-Cross  is  separated  from  ancient  symbolism,  and  is 
either  a  purely  arbitrary  arid  thus  unexplainable  sign,  or 
its  significance  is  to  be  sought  elsewhere. 

Now,  I  purpose  to  show  that  the  Rosicrucians  were 
united  with  a  movement,  which,  originating  in  Germany, 
was  destined  to  revolutionise  the  world  of  thought  and  to 


INTRODUCTION.  25 

transform  the  face  of  Europe  ;  that  the  symbols  of  the 
Rose  and  the  Cross  were  prominently  and  curiously  con- 
nected with  this  movement,  and  that  the  subsequent  choice 
of  these  emblems  by  the  secret  society  in  question,  followed 
naturally  from  the  fact  of  this  connection,  and  is  easily 
explainable  thereby.  To  accomplish  this  task  satisfactorily, 
I  must  first  lay  before  my  readers  the  facts  and  documents 
which  I  have  collected  concerning  the  Fraternity. 


HISTOKY  OF  THE  KOSICRUCIANS. 


CHAPTER  I. 

ON  THE  STATE  OF  MYSTICAL  PHILOSOPHY  IN  GERMANY 
AT  THE  CLOSE  OF  THE  SIXTEENTH  CENTURY. 

THE  traditions  of  the  Neo-Platonic  philosophy,  with  its 
elaborate  theurgical  system,  were  to  some  extent  perpe- 
tuated through  the  whole  period  of  the  Middle  Ages,  for 
beside  the  orthodox  theology  of  the  great  Latin  Church, 
and  amidst  the  clamour  of  scholastic  philosophy,  we  find 
the  secret  theosophy  of  the  magician,  the  Kabbalist,  and 
the  alchemical  adept  borrowing,  directly  or  indirectly,  from 
this  prolific  fountain  of  exalted  mysticism.  The  traces  of 
its  influence  are  discoverable  in  Augustine,  in  Albertus 
Magnus,  in  St  Thomas,  the  angel  of  the  schools,  and  in 
other  shining  lights  of  western  Christendom,  while  the 
metaphysical  principles  of  Johannes  Scotus  Erigena,  even 
so  early  as  the  close  of  the  ninth  century,  were  an  actual 
revival  of  this  philosophy.  He  translated  the  extraordinary 
works  of  Pseudo-Dionysius  on  the  celestial  hierarchies,  the 
divine  names,  &c.,  which  were  an  application  of  Platonism 
to  Christianity,1  "  and  proved  a  rich  mine  to  the  mystics." 

1  Tenneman's  "  Manual  of  the  History  of  Philosophy,"  ed.  Bohn, 
p.  207. 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

translation  was  largely  circulated  and  held  in  the 
highest  repute,  more  especially  in  Germany,  where  the 
Areopagite  was  appealed  to  as  an  authority  by  Eckhart  at 
the  beginning  of  the  fourteenth  century.  At  this  time 
Germany  was  a  stronghold  of  mysticism,  which,  according 
to  Ueberweg,1  was  at  first  chiefly  developed  in  sermons  by 
monks  of  the  Dominican  Order;  its  aim  was  to  advance 
Christianity  by  edifying  speculation,  and  to  render  it  com- 
prehensible by  the  transcendent  use  of  the  reason.  "  The 
author  and  perfecter  of  this  entire  development  was  Master 
Eckhart,"  who  taught  that  the  creature  apart  from  the 
Absolute,  that  is,  from  God,  was  nothing,  that  "  time,  space, 
and  the  plurality  which  depends  on  them,"  are  also  nothing 
in  themselves,  and  that  "  the  duty  of  man  as  a  moral  being 
is  to  rise  beyond  this  nothingness  of  the  creature,  and  by 
direct  intuition  to  place  himself  in  immediate  union  with 
the  Absolute." 2 

Eckhart  was  followed  by  Tauler,  a  great  light  of  German 
mysticism,  and  one  profoundly  versed  in  the  mysteries  of 
the  spiritual  and  interior  life.  A  century  later,  with  the 
revival  of  Platonism,  came  the  Cardinal  Nicolas  Cusanus, 
"a  man  of  rare  sagacity,  and  an  able  mathematician,  who 
arranged  and  republished  the  Pythagorean  ideas,  to  which 
he  was  much  inclined,  in  a  very  original  manner,  by  the 
aid  of  his  mathematical  knowledge."  This  representative 
of  the  mysticism  of  Eckhart  provided  Giordano  Bruno 
with  the  fundamental  principles  of  his  sublime  and  poetical 
conceptions.  Bruno  "  renewed  the  theory  of  numbers,  and 
gave  a  detailed  explanation  of  the  decadal  system.  With 
him,  God  is  the  great  unity  which  is  developed  in  the 

1  "Hist,  of  Phil.  Trans.,"  Morris,  i.,  p.  468. 

2  Ibid.,  p.  469.  »  Tenneman,  p.  257. 


MYSTICAL  PHILOSOPHY  IN  GERMANY.       29 

world   and   in   humanity,    as   unity   is   developed   in   the 
indefinite  series  of  numbers." 1 

The  death  of  Giordano  Bruno  in  the  year  1 600  brings  us 
to  a  period  of  palmary  importance  and   interest  in   the 
history  of  religion,  science,  and  philosophy.     The  revival 
of  learning  had  for  some  two  centuries  been  illuminating 
and   enlarging   the   intellectual   horizon   of  Europe;    the 
Eeformation  was  slowly  removing  in  several  countries  those 
checks  which  had  hindered  freedom  of  inquiry  on  most 
speculative  subjects  ;  that  which  had  been  practised  in  the 
privacy  of  the  study  might  be  displayed  almost  on  the 
house  top,  that  which  had  been  whispered  at  the  Sabbath 
of  the  Sorcerers  could  be  canvassed  with  impunity  in  the 
market  place.     The  spirit  of  the  age  which  had  dethroned 
the  crucifix,  burnt  candles  before  the  busts  of  Plato  and 
Plotinus.     The  revolution  in  theology  was  followed  by  a 
general  revolt  against  the  old  philosophical  authorities,  the 
seeds  of  which  revolt  must  be  looked  for  at  the  time  when 
Aristotle  and  the  Peripatetic  successors  were  enthroned  upon 
the  ashes  of  the  scholiasts,  who  pretending  to  follow  Aris- 
totle, had  perverted  and  disfigured  his  doctrines.     As  the 
birthplace  of  the  Reformation,  Germany  enjoyed  a  greater 
share  of  intellectual  unrestraint  than  any  other  country  of 
Europe,  and  it  was  a  chaos  of  conflicting  opinions  on  all 
debateable  topics.      The  old  lines  were  loosened,  the  old 
tests  failing,  the  chain  of  tradition  was  breaking  at  every 
point,  a  spirit  of  restless  feverish  inquiry  was  abroad,  and 
daily  new  facts  were  exploding  old  methods.     Copernicus 
had  revolutionised  astronomy  by  his  discovery  of  the  true 
solar  system,  Galileo  already  had  invented  the  thermometer, 
and  was  on  the  threshold  of  a  glorious  future  -}  a  century 
1  Cousin,  "Course  of  the  Hist,  of  Mod.  Phil.,"  ii.,  p.  48. 


30  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

previously  Columbus  had  opened  the  still  illimitable  vistas 
of  the  western  world  ;  great  minds  were  appearing  in  every 
country ;  amidst  a  thousand  blunders,  the  independent 
study  of  the  Bible  was  pursued  with  delight  and  enthusiasm, 
and  in  every  city  the  hearts  of  an  emancipated  people  were 
glowing  with  hope  and  expectation  at  the  promise  of  the 
future. 

Now,  in  an  age  of  progress,  of  doubt,  and  of  great  in- 
tellectual activity,  it  is  singular  to  remark  the  almost  in- 
variable prevalence  of  mysticism  in  one  or  other  of  its  mani- 
fold phases,  and  the  close  of  the  sixteenth  century  beheld 
spreading  over  the  whole  of  Germany  and  passing  thence 
into  Denmark,  France,  England,  and  Italy,  a  mighty  school 
of  mysticism  in  the  great  multitude  of  magicians,  alchemists, 
&c.,  who  directly  or  indirectly  were  followers  of  the 
renowned  Paracelsus. 

The  sublime  drunkard  of  Hohenheim,  the  contemporary 
of  Agrippa,  but  grander  in  his  aspirations,  vaster  in  his 
capacities,  and,  if  possible,  still  more  unfortunate  than  the 
brilliant  pupil  of  Trithemius,  was  the  intellectual  product 
of  the  great  school  of  Kabbalism  represented  by  Reuchlin 
and  Picus  de  Mirandola.  He  united  to  his  theoretical 
knowledge  of  theosophical  mysteries  an  unrivalled  practical 
acquaintance  with  every  form  of  magic,  and  was  as  much 
an  innovator  in  occult  science  as  a  reformer  in  medicine. 
For  all  orthodox  alchemists,  magicians,  and  professors  of 
hidden  knowledge,  Paracelsus  is  a  grand  hierophant  second 
only  to  the  traditional  Hermes.  His  brief  and  turbulent 
career  closed  tragically  in  the  year  1541,  but  the  works 
which  he  left  secured  him  a  vast  posthumous  audience,  and 
the  audacity  of  his  speculations  were  undoubtedly  instru- 
mental in  the  emancipation  of  the  German  mind  from  the 
influence  of  traditional  authority. 


MYSTICAL  PHILOSOPHY  IN  GERMANY.       31 

At  the  close  of  the  sixteenth  century,  then,  we  find  the 
disciples  of  Parcelsus  seeking,  after  the  principles  of  their 
master  and  by  the  light  of  experimental  research  : — 1 .  The 
secret  of  the  transmutation  of  metals,  or  of  the  magnum  opus, 
and  applying  to  chemistry  the  usages  of  Kabbalism  and 
ancient  astrology.1  2.  The  universal  medicine,  which  in- 
cluded the  Catholicon,  or  Elixir  of  Life  and  the  Panacea,  the 
first  insuring  to  its  possessor  the  prolongation  or  perpetuity 
of  existence,  the  second  restoring  strength  and  health  to  de- 
bilitated or  diseased  organisms.  3.  The  Philosophic  Stone,2 
the  great  and  universal  synthesis  which  conferred  upon  the 
adept  a  sublimer  knowledge  than  that  of  transmutation  or  of 
the  Great  Elixir,  but  on  which  both  of  these  were  de- 
pendent.3 "  This  stone,"  says  a  modern  writer,  who  fairly 
interprets  the  more  exalted  and  spiritual  side  of  Hermetic 
traditions,  "  is  the  foundation  of  absolute  philosophy  ;  it  is 
the  supreme  and  immoveable  reason.  ...  To  find  the 
Philosophic  Stone  is  to  have  discovered  the  Absolute,"  4 

1  "If  thou  comprehendest  not  the  practices  of  Kabbalists  and  the 
primeval  astrologers,  God  has  not  made  thee  for  the  spagiric,  nor  has 
nature  elected  thee  for  the  operation  of  Vulcan." — Paracelsus,  "  De 
Tinctura  Phy sicorum. " 

2"  There  is  a  great  difference  between  the  Stone  of  the  Philoso- 
phers and  the  Philosophic^  Stone.  The  first  is  the  Subject  of  Phil- 
osophy, considered  in  the  state  of  its  first  Preparation,  in  which  it  is 
truly  a  stone,  since  it  is  solid,  hard,  heavy,  brittle,  frangible.  .  .  . 
The  Philosophic^  Stone  is  the  same  Stone  of  the  Philosophers,  when 
by  the  secret  magistery  it  is  exalted  to  the  perfection  of  the  third 
order,  transmuting  all  imperfect  metals  into  pure  gold  or  silver,  accord- 
ing to  the  nature  of  the  ferment  adjoined  to  it.'' — "  The  Hermetical 
Triumph. " 

3  The  base  metals  are  transmuted  into  perfect  gold  by  the  pos- 
sessor of  the  Philosophick  Stone,  and  the  Elixir  of  Life,  according 
to  Bernard  TreVisau,  is  the  resolution  of  the  same  stone  into  mercurial 
water,  which  is  also  the  aurum  potabile  of  the  wise. 

4  Eliphas  Levi,  "  Dogme  et  Rituel  de  la  Haute  Magie ; " 
"Mysteries  of  Magic,"  pp.  199,  201. 


32  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

that  is,  the  true  raison  d'etre  of  all  existences.  Thus  the 
initiate  aspired  to  that  infallible  knowledge  and  wisdom 
which  is  afforded  by  divine  illumination,  his  search  for 
which  is  sometimes  spoken  of  as  the  search  for  the  quad- 
rature of  the  circle,  that  is,  for  the  extent  or  area  of  all 
sciences  human  and  divine. 

Among  the  concourse  of  inquirers,  and  the  clamour  of  sup- 
posed and  pretended  discoverers,  there  rose  gradually  into 
deserved  prominence  an  advanced  school  of  illuminati,  who, 
employing  the  terminology  of  the  turba  philosophorum,  under 
the  pretence  of  alchemical  pursuits  appear  to  have  concealed 
a  more  exalted  aim.  The  chief  representative  of  this  sect 
at  the  end  of  the  sixteenth  century  was  Henry  Khunrath, 
and  the  work  in  which  its  principles  are  most  adequately 
expressed  is  the  "  Amphitheatrum  Sapientise  TEternse." 
The  student  is  directed  by  these  writers  from  the  pursuit  of 
material  gold  to  the  discovery  of  incorruptible  and  purely 
spiritual  treasures,  and  they  pretend  to  provide  a  mystical 
key  or  Introitus  apertus  to  the  "  closed  Palace  of  the  King," 
in  which  these  treasures  are  contained.  Physical  transmu- 
tation, the  one  and  supreme  end  of  the  practical  alchemist, 
sinks  into  complete  insignificance ;  nevertheless,  it  is  per- 
formed by  the  adept  and  is  a  landmark  in  his  sublime  pro- 
gress. Eejecting  the  material  theory  even  for  this  inferior 
process,  they  declare  its  attainment  impossible  for  the  un- 
spiritual  man,  and  just  as  the  alchemical  nomenclabure  is 
made  use  of  in  a  transfigured  sense,  so  the  terminology  of 
metaphysics  appears  to  be  pressed  into  the  service  of  a  con- 
ception far  transcending  the  notions  commonly  conveyed  by 
the  words  wisdom,  spirituality,  &c. 

The  result  of  this  singular  division  in  the  camp  of  the 
alchemists  was  the  inevitable  mental  confusion  of  that  great 


MYSTICAL  PHILOSOPHY  IN  GERMANY.       33 

crowd  of  inquirers  into  the  secrets  of  nature  who  formed 
the  audience  of  professional  adepts.  Every  year  books  and 
pamphlets  were  issued  from  the  German  press,  and  pur- 
ported to  contain  the  secret  of  the  Magnum  Opus,  expressed 
for  the  first  time  in  plain,  unmistakeable  terms,  but  no  writer 
proved  more  intelligible  than  his  predecessors ;  the  student, 
surrounded  by  authors  whose  search  had  been  crowned 
with  complete  and  unexampled  success,  could  himself  make 
no  progress,  new  methods,  though  warranted  infallible, 
were  as  barren  as  the  old  in  their  operation,  and  the  uni- 
versal interest  in  the  subject  was  an  incentive  to  innumer- 
able impostors,  who  reaped  large  profits  from  the  publica- 
tion of  worthless  speculations  and  lying  recipes.  At  such 
a  juncture  the  isolated  investigator  naturally  sought  the 
assistance  which  is  afforded  by  association ;  meetings  of 
men  like-minded  took  place  for  the  discussion  of  different 
questions  concerning  the  secret  sciences ;  doctrines  and  prac- 
tices were  compared;  men  travelled  far  and  wide  to  exchange 
opinions  with  distant  workers  in  the  same  fields  of  experi- 
mental research,  and  the  spirit  of  the  time  seemed  ripe  for 
the  establishment  of  a  society  for  the  advancement  of  eso- 
teric science  and  the  study  of  natural  laws.  It  was  at  this 
interesting  period  that  the  Rosicrucian  Fraternity  made 
public  for  the  first  time  the  fact  of  its  existence,  and 
attracted  universal  attention  by  its  extraordinary  history, 
and  bv  the  nature  of  its  claims. 


CHAPTER  II. 

THE  PROPHECY  OF  PARACELSUS,  AND  THE  UNIVERSAL 
REFORMATION  OF  THE  WHOLE  WIDE  WORLD. 

PARACELSUS,  in  the  eighth  chapter  of  his  "  Treatise  on 
Metals,"  gave  utterance  to  the  following  prognostication  :— 
Quod  utilius  Deus  patefieri  sinet,  quod  autem  majoris  momenti 
est,  vulgo  adhuc  latet  usque  ad  Elice  Artistce  adventum,  quando 
is  venerit.  "God  will  permit  a  discovery  of  the  highest 
importance  to  be  made,  it  must  be  hidden  till  the  advent  of 
the  artist  Elias."  In  the  first  chapter  of  the  same  work,  he 
says : — Hoc  item  verum  est  nihil  est  absconditum  quod  non  sit 
retegendum;  ideo,post  me  veniet  cujus  magnate  nundum  mvit  qui 
multa  revelabit.  "  And  it  is  true,  there  is  nothing  concealed 
which  shall  not  be  discovered  \  for  which  cause  a  mar- 
vellous being  shall  come  after  me,  who  as  yet  lives  not,  and 
who  shall  reveal  many  things."  These  passages  have  been 
claimed  as  referring  to  the  founder  of  the  Rosicrucian 
order,  and  as  prophecies  of  this  character  are  usually  the 
outcome  of  a  general  desire  rather  than  of  an  individual 
inspiration,  they  are  interesting  evidence  that  then  as  now 
many  thoughtful  people  were  looking  for  another  saviour  of 
society.  At  the  beginning  of  the  seventeenth  century  "a 
great  and  general  reformation,"  says  Buhle,  —a  reformation 
far  more  radical  and  more  directed  to  the  moral  improve- 
ment of  mankind  than  that  accomplished  by  Luther, — "  was 
believed  to  be  impending  over  the  human  race,  as  a  neces- 


THE  PROPHECY  OF  PARACELSUS.  35 

sury  forerunner  to  the  day  of  judgment."  The  comet  of 
1572  was  declared  by  Paracelsus  to  be  "  the  sign  and  har- 
binger of  the  approaching  revolution,"  and  it  will  be  readily 
believed  that  his  innumerable  disciples  would  welcome  a 
secret  society  whose  vast  claims  were  founded  on  the  philo- 
sophy of  the  master  whom  they  also  venerated,  as  a  supreme 
factor  in  the  approaching  reformation.  Paracelsus,  how- 
ever, had  recorded  a  still  more  precise  prediction,  namely, 
that  "soon  after  the  decease  of  the  Emperor  Rudolph, 
there  would  be  found  three  treasures  that  had  never 
been  revealed  before  that  time."  It  is  claimed  that 
these  treasures  were  the  three  works  which  I  proceed  to 
lay  before  my  readers  in  this  and  in  the  two  succeeding 
chapters. 

Somewhere  about  the  year  1614  a  pamphlet  was  pub- 
lished anonymously  in  German,  called  "Die  Reformation 
der  Ganzen  Weiten  Welt,"  which,  according  to  De  Quincey, 
contained  a  distinct  proposition  to  inaugurate  a  secret 
society,  having  for  its  object  the  general  welfare  of  man- 
kind. This  description  is  simply  untrue ;  the  "  Universal 
Reformation "  is  an  amusing  and  satirical  account  of  an 
abortive  attempt  made  by  the  god  Apollo  to  derive  assistance 
towards  the  improvement  of  the  age  from  the  wise  men  of 
antiquity  and  modern  times.  It  is  a  fairly  literal  translation 
of  Advertisement  77  of  Boccalini's  "  Ragguagli  di  Parnasso, 
Centuria  Prima ;  "  its  internal  connection  with  Rosicrucian- 
ism  is  not  clear,  but  it  has  been  generally  reprinted  with  the 
society's  manifestos,  alchemical  interpretations  have  been 
placed  on  it,  and  it  is  cited  by  various  authors  as  the  first 
publication  of  the  Fraternity.  I  have  determined  to  include 
it  in  this  collection  of  authoritative  documents,  and  have 
made  use  for  this  purpose  oi  three  versions  already  existing 


36  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

in  English.  The  literal  translation  from  the  Italian,  made 
by  Henry  Earl  of  Monmouth,1  has  been  taken  as  the  base. 
I  have  compared  it  with  the  original,  and  with  the  later 
versions  which  appeared  in  1704  2  and  1706, 3  and,  where 
possible,  I  have  abridged  it  by  the  elision  of  unnecessary 
and  embarrassing  prolixities. 

It  is  needless  to  say  that  the  unfortunate  Trajano 
Boccalini  had  no  connection  himself  with  the  Rosicrucian 
Brotherhood.  The  first  "  Centuria  "  appeared  in  1612  at 
Venice,  and  he  met  his  tragical  and  violent  death  in  the 
following  year. 

A  Universal  Reformation  of  the  Whole  Wide  World,  by  order 
of  the  God  Apollo,  is  published  by  the  Seven  Sages  of  Greece 
and  some  other  Litterati. 

The  Emperor  Justinian,  that  famed  compiler  of  the 
Digests  and  Code,  the  other  day  presented  to  Apollo,  for 
the  royal  approbation,  a  new  law  against  self-murder. 
Apollo  was  mightily  astonished,  and  fetching  a  deep  sigh, 
he  said,  "  Is  the  good  government  of  mankind,  Justinian, 
then  fallen  into  so  great  disorder  that  men  do  voluntarily 
kill  themselves  ?  And  whereas  I  have  hitherto  given  pen- 
sions to  an  infinite  number  of  moral  philosophers,  only  that 

1  "  I.  Ragguagli  di  Parnasso  :  or,  Advertisements  from  Parnassus 
in  Two  Centuries,  with  the  Politick  Touchstone.     Put  into  English 
by  the  Eight  Honourable  Henry  Earl  of  Monmouth."     Fol.     1656. 

2  "  Advertisements  from  Parnassus.    Written  originally  in  Italian 
by  the  famous  Trajano  Boccalini.     Newly  done  into  English,  and 
adapted  to  the  Present  Times."    3  vols.  8vo.     1704.     A  poor  and 
paraphrastic  rendering. 

3  "  Advices  from  Parnassus,  in  Two  Centuries,  with  the  Politick 
Touchstone  and  an  Appendix  to  it.     Written  by  Trajano  Boccalini. 
Translated  by  several  hands."   London.    Fol.    ]706.   The  best  as  re- 
gards style,  but  less  literal  than  the  version  by  the  Earl  of  Monmouth. 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  37 

by  their  words  and  writings  they  may  make  men  less  ap- 
prehensive of  death,  are  things  now  reduced  to  such  calamity 
that  even  they  will  now  live  no  longer,  who  could  not  for- 
merly frame  themselves  to  be  content  to  die  ?  And  am  I 
amongst  all  the  disorders  of  my  Litterati  all  this  while 
supinely  asleep  T'  To  this  Justinian  answered,  that  the 
law  was  necessary,  and  that  many  cases  of  violent  deaths 
having  happened  by  many  men  having  desperately  made 
themselves  away,  worse  was  to  be  feared  if  some  oppor- 
tune remedy  were  not  found  out  against  so  great  a  disorder. 
Apollo  then  began  diligently  to  inform  himself,  and 
found  that  the  world  was  so  impaired,  that  many  valued  not 
their  lives  nor  estate,  so  they  might  be  out  of  it.  The  dis- 
orders necessitated  his  Majesty  to  provide  against  them 
with  all  possible  speed,  and  he  absolutely  resolved  to  institute 
a  society  of  the  men  most  famous  in  his  dominions  for  wis- 
dom and  good  life.  But  in  the  entrance  into  so  weighty  a 
business  he  met  with  insuperable  difficulties,  for  amongst 
so  many  philosophers,  and  the  almost  infinite  number  of 
vertuosi,  he  could  not  find  so  much  as  one  who  was  endowed 
with  half  the  requisite  qualifications  to  reform  his  fellow- 
creatures,  his  Majesty  knowing  well  that  men  are  better 
improved  by  the  exemplary  life  of  their  reformers  than  by 
the  best  rules  that  can  be  given.  In  this  penury  of  fitting 
personages,  Apollo  gave  the  charge  of  the  Universal  Refor- 
mation to  the  Seven  Wise  Men  of  Greece,  who  are  of  great 
repute  in  Parnassus,  and  are  conceived  by  all  men  to  have 
found  the  receipt  of  washing  blackmoors  white,  which 
antiquity  laboured  after  in  vain.  The  Grecians  were  re- 
joiced at  this  news  for  the  honour  which  Apollo  had  done 
their  nation,  but  the  Latins  were  grieved,  thinking  them- 
selves thereby  much  injured.  Wherefore  Apollo,  well  know- 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

ing  that  prejudice  against  reformers  hinders  the  fruit  that  is 
to  be  hoped  by  reformation,  and  being  naturally  given  to 
appease  his  subjects'  imbittered  minds  more  by  giving  them 
satisfaction  then  by  that  legislative  power  with  which  men 
are  not  pleased  withal,  because  they  are  bound  to  obey  it,  that 
he  might  satisfie  the  Romans,  joined  in  commission  with'the 
Seven  Sages  of  Greece,  Marcus  and  Annseus  Seneca,  and  in 
favour  to  the  modern  Italian  philosophers,  he  made  Jacopo 
Mazzoni  da  Cesena  Secretary  of  the  Congregation,  and 
honoured  him  with  a  vote  in  their  consultations. 

On  the  fourteenth  of  the  last  month  the  seven  wise  men, 
with  the  aforesaid  addition,  accompanied  by  a  train  of  the 
choicest  vertuosi  of  this  State,  went  to  the  Delfick  Palace, 
the  place  appropriated  for  the  Reformation.  The  Litterati 
were  well  pleased  to  see  the  great  number  of  pedants,  who, 
baskets  in  hands,  went  gathering  up  the  sentences  and 
apothegms  which  fell  from  those  wise  men  as  they  went 
along.  The  day  after  the  solemn  entrance  they  assembled 
for  the  first  time,  and 'tis  said  thatThales  the  Milesian,  the 
first  of  the  Grecian  sages,  spake  thus  : — 

"  The  business,  most  wise  philosophers,  about  which  we 
are  met,  is  the  greatest  that  can  be  treated  on  by  human 
understanding ;  and  though  there  be  nothing  harder  then 
to  set  bones  that  have  been  long  broken,  wounds  that  are 
fistuled,  and  incurable  cancers,  yet  difficulties  which  are 
able  to  affright  others  ought  not  to  make  us  despair,  for  the 
impossibility  will  increase  our  glory,  and  I  do  assure  you 
that  I  have  already  found  out  the  true  antydote  against  the 
poyson  of  these  present  corruptions.  I  am  sure  we  do  all 
believe  that  nothing  hath  more  corrupted  this  age  then  hid- 
den hatreds,  feigned  love,  impiety,  and  the  perfidiousness  of 
double-dealers  under  the  specious  cloke  of  simplicity,  love 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  39 

to  religion,  and  charity.  Apply  yourselves  to  these  evils, 
gentlemen ;  make  use  of  fire  and  razor,  lay  corrosive  plas- 
ters to  these  wounds  which  I  discover  unto  you,  and  man- 
kind, which  by  reason  of  their  vices,  that  lead  them  the  high- 
way to  death,  may  be  said  to  be  given  over  by  physitians, 
will  soon  be  made  whole,  become  sincere  and  plain  in  their 
proceedings,  true  in  what  they  say,  and  such  in  their 
sanctity  of  life  as  they  were  in  former  times.  The  true  and 
immediate  cure,  then,  for  these  present  evils  consists  in 
necessitating  men  to  live  with  candour  of  mind  and  purity 
of  heart,  which  cannot  be  better  effected  then  by  making 
that  little  window  in  men's  breasts  which  his  Majesty  hath 
often  promised  to  his  most  faithful  vertuosi ;  for  when  those 
who  use  such  art  in  their  proceedings  shall  be  forced  to  speak 
and  act,  having  a  window  whereby  one  may  see  into  their 
hearts,  they  will  learn  the  excellent  virtue  of  being,  and  not 
appearing  to  be;  they  will  conform  deeds  to  words,  and  their 
tongues  to  sincerity  of  heart ;  all  men  will  banish  lies  and 
falsehood,  and  the  diabolical  spirit  of  hypocrisy  will 
abandon  many  who  are  now  possest  with  so  foul  a  fiend." 

The  opinion  of  Thales  was  so  well  approved  by  the  whole 
Congregation  that  it  was  unanimously  voted  just,  and 
Secretary  Mazzoni  was  commanded  to  give  Apollo  a  sudden 
account  thereof,  who  perfectly  approved  the  opinion,  and 
commanded  that  they  should  begin  that  very  day  to  make 
windows  in  the  breasts  of  mankind.  But  at  the  very  in- 
stant that  the  surgeons  took  their  instruments  in  hand, 
Homer,  Virgil,  Plato,  Aristotle,  Averroes,  and  other  eminent 
Litterati  went  to  Apollo,  and  said  his  Majesty  must  needs 
know  that  the  prime  means  whereby  men  do  govern  the 
world  with  facility  is  the  reputation  of  those  who  com- 
mand, and  they  hoped  his  Majesty  would  be  tender  of  the 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

credit  which  the  reverend  Philosophical  Synod  and  the 
honourable  Colledg  of  Vertuosi  had  universally  obtained  for 
sanctity  of  life  and  manners.  If  his  Majesty  should  unex- 
pectedly open  every  man's  breast,  the  philosophers  who 
formerly  were  most  highly  esteemed  ran  evident  hazard  of 
being  shamed,  and  that  he  might,  peradventure,  find  fowlest 
faults  in  those  whom  he  had  held  to  be  immaculate.  There- 
fore, before  a  business  of  such  importance  should  be  taken 
in  hand,  they  entreated  that  he  would  afford  his  vertuosi  a 
competent  time  to  wash  and  cleanse  their  souls.  Apollo 
was  greatly  pleased  by  the  advice  of  so  famous  poets  and 
philosophers,  and,  by  a  publick  edict,  prorogued  the  day  of 
incision  for  eight  days,  during  which  everyone  did  so  attend 
the  cleansing  of  their  souls  from  all  fallacies,  hidden  vice, 
hatred,  and  counterfeit  love,  that  there  was  no  more  honey 
of  roses,  succory,  cassia,  scena,  scamony,  nor  laxative 
syrups  to  be  found  in  any  grocer's  or  apothecary's  shop  in 
all  Parnassus ;  and  the  more  curious  did  observe  that  in  the 
parts  where  the  Platonicks,  Peripateticks,  and  Moral  Philo- 
sophers did  live,  there  was  then  such  a  stink  as  if  all  the 
privies  of  the  country  had  been  emptied,  whereas  the 
quarters  of  Latin  and  Italian  poets  smelt  only  of  cabbadg- 
porrage. 

The  time  allotted  for  the  general  purging  was  already 
past,  when,  the  day  before  the  operation  was  to  begin, 
Hippocrates,  Gralen,  Cornelius,  Celsus,  and  other  the  most 
skilful  Physitians  of  this  State,  went  to  Apollo,  and  said  :— 
"  Is  it  possible,  Sire,  you  that  are  the  Lord  of  the  Liberal 
Sciences,  that  this  Microcosmos  must  be  deformed,  which 
is  so  nobly  and  miraculously  framed,  for  the  advantage  of 
a  few  ignorant  people  ?  For  not  only  the  wiser  sort  of 
men,  but  even  those  of  an  indifferent  capacity,  who  have 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  41 

conversed  but  four  dales  with  any  quack-salver,  know  how 
to  penetrate  even  into  the  inmost  bowels." 

This  memorandum  of  the  physitians  wrought  so  much 
with  Apollo  that  he  changed  his  former  resolution,  and 
by  Ausonius  Gallus  bad  the  philosophers  of  the  Reforma- 
tion proceed  in  delivering  their  opinions. 

Then  Solon  thus  began : — "  In  my  opinion,  gentlemen, 
that  which  hath  put  the  present  age  into  so  great  confusion 
is  the  cruel  hatred  and  spiteful  envy  which  is  seen  to  reign 
generally  amongst  men.  All  hope  then  for  these  present 
evils  is  from  the  infusion  of  charity,  reciprocal  affection, 
and  that  sanctified  love  of  our  neighbour  which  is  God's 
chiefest  commandment  to  mankind.  We  ought,  therefore, 
to  employ  all  our  skill  in  removing  the  occasions  of  those 
hatreds  which  reign  in  men's  hearts,  which,  if  we  be  able 
to  effect,  men  will  agree  like  other  animals,  who,  by  instinct, 
love  their  own  species,  and  will,  consequently,  drive  away 
all  hatred  and  rancor  of  mind.  I  have  been  long  thinking, 
my  friends,  what  the  true  spring's  head  may  be  of  all 
human  hatred,  and  am  still  more  established  in  my  old 
opinion  that  it  proceeds  from  the  disparity  of  means,  from 
the  hellish  custom  of  meum  and  tuum,  which,  if  it  were 
introduced  among  the  beasts,  even  they  would  consume 
and  waste  themselves  with  the  same  hatred  wherewith  we 
so  much  disquiet  ourselves,  whereas  the  equality  in  which 
they  live,  and  their  having  nothing  of  their  own,  are  the 
blessings  which  preserve  that  peace  among  them  which  we 
have  cause  to  envy.  Men  are  likewise  creatures,  but 
rational ;  this  world  was  created  by  Almighty  God,  that 
mankind  might  live  thereon  in  peace,  not  that  the  avari- 
tious  should  divide  it  amongst  themselves,  and  should  turn 
what  was  common  into  that  meum  and  tuum  which  hath 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

put  us  all  into  such  confusion.  So  it  clearly  appears,  that 
the  depravation  of  men's  souls  by  avarice,  ambition,  and 
tyranny,  hath  occasioned  the  present  inequality,  and  if  it 
be  true,  as  we  all  confess  it  is,  that  the  world  is  an  inheri- 
tance left  to  mankind  by  one  father  and  mother,  from 
whom  we  are  all  descended  like  brethren,  what  justice  is 
it  that  men  should  not  all  have  a  brother's  share  ?  What 
greater  disproportion  can  be  imagined  then  that  this  world 
should  be  such  that  some  possess  more  than  they  can 
govern,  and  others  have  not  so  much  as  they  could  govern  1 
But  that  which  doth  infinitely  aggravate  this  disorder  is, 
that  usually  vertuous  men  are  beggars,  whereas  wicked  and 
ignorant  people  are  wealthy.  From  the  root  of  this 
inequality  it  then  ariseth,  that  the  rich  are  injurious  to  the 
poor,  and  that  the  poor  envy  the  rich. 

"Now,  gentlemen,  that  I  have  discovered  the  malady  unto 
you,  it  is  easie  to  apply  the  medicine.  To  reform  the  age 
no  better  course  can  be  taken  then  to  divide  the  world 
anew,  allotting  an  equal  part  to  everyone,  and,  that  we 
may  fall  no  more  upon  the  like  disorders,  I  advise,  that, 
for  the  future,  all  buying  and  selling  be  forbidden,  to  the 
end  that  there  may  be  established  that  parity  of  goods,  the 
mother  of  publick  peace,  which  my  self  and  other  law- 
makers have  formerly  so  much  laboured  to  procure." 

Solon's  opinion  suffered  a  long  debate,  and  though  it 
was  not  only  thought  good  but  necessary  by  Bias,  Periander, 
and  Pittacus,  it  was  gainsaid  by  all  the  rest,  and  Seneca's 
opinion  prevailed,  who  with  substantial  reasons  convinced 
the  assembly,  that  if  they  should  come  to  a  new  division  of 
the  world,  one  great  disorder  would  necessarily  follow ;  that 
too  much  would  fall  to  the  share  of  fools,  and  too  little  to 
gallant  men  ;  and  that  plague,  famine,  and  war  were  not 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  43 

God's  severest  scourges,  for  the  affliction  of  mankind  would 
be  to  enrich  villains. 

Solon's  opinion  being  laid  aside,  Chilo  argued  as  follows : 
— "  Which  of  you,  most  wise  philosophers,  doth  not  know 
that  the  immoderate  thirst  after  gold  hath  now  adaies  filled 
the  world  with  all  the  mischiefs  which  we  see  and  feel. 
What  wickedness,  how  execrable  soever  it  be,  will  men  not 
willingly  commit,  if  thereby  they  may  accumulate  riches  ? 
Conclude,  therefore,  unanimously  with  me,  that  no  better 
way  can  be  found  out,  whereby  to  extirpate  all  the  vices 
with  which  our  age  is  opprest,  then  for  ever  to  banish  out 
of  the  world  the  two  infamous  mettals,  gold  and  silver,  for 
so  the  occasion  of  our  present  disorders  being  removed,  the 
evils  will  necessarily  cease." 

Though  Chile's  opinion  had  a  very  specious  appearance, 
it  would  not  bear  the  test,  for  it  was  said,  that  men  took  so 
much  pains  to  get  gold  and  silver  because  they  are  the 
measure  and  counterpoise  of  all  things,  and  that  it  was 
requisite  for  man  to  have  some  mettals,  or  other  thing  of 
price,  by  which  he  might  purchase  what  was  fitting  for 
him,  that  if  there  were  no  such  thing  as  gold  or  silver,  he 
would  make  use  of  something  instead  of  them,  which, 
rising  in  value,  would  be  equally  coveted,  as  was  plainly 
seen  in  the  Indies,  where  cockle-shells  were  made  use  of 
instead  of  money,  and  more  vallued  than  either  gold  or 
silver.  Cleobulus,  particularly,  being  very  hot  in  refuting 
this  opinion,  said,  with  much  perturbation  of  mind  : — "  My 
Masters,  banish  iron  out  of  the  world,  for  that  is  the  mettal 
which  hath  put  us  into  the  present  condition.  Gold  and 
silver  serve  the  purpose  ordained  by  God,  whereas  iron, 
which  Nature  produced  for  the  making  of  plow-shears, 
spades,  and  mattocks,  is  by  the  mallice  and  mischief  of 


42 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 


put  us  all  into  such  confusion.  So  it  clearly  appears,  that 
the  depravation  of  men's  souls  by  avarice,  ambition,  and 
tyranny,  hath  occasioned  the  present  inequality,  and  if  it 
be  true,  as  we  all  confess  it  is,  that  the  world  is  an  inheri- 
tance left  to  mankind  by  one  father  and  mother,  from 
whom  we  are  all  descended  like  brethren,  what  justice  is 
it  that  men  should  not  all  have  a  brother's  share  ?  What 
greater  disproportion  can  be  imagined  then  that  this  world 
should  be  such  that  some  possess  more  than  they  can 
govern,  and  others  have  not  so  much  as  they  could  govern  1 
But  that  which  doth  infinitely  aggravate  this  disorder  is, 
that  usually  vertuous  men  are  beggars,  whereas  wicked  and 
ignorant  people  are  wealthy.  From  the  root  of  this 
inequality  it  then  ariseth,  that  the  rich  are  injurious  to  the 
poor,  and  that  the  poor  envy  the  rich. 

"Now,  gentlemen,  that  I  have  discovered  the  malady  unto 
you,  it  is  easie  to  apply  the  medicine.  To  reform  the  age 
no  better  course  can  be  taken  then  to  divide  the  world 
anew,  allotting  an  equal  part  to  everyone,  and,  that  we 
may  fall  no  more  upon  the  like  disorders,  I  advise,  that, 
for  the  future,  all  buying  and  selling  be  forbidden,  to  the 
end  that  there  may  be  established  that  parity  of  goods,  the 
mother  of  publick  peace,  which  my  self  and  other  law- 
makers have  formerly  so  much  laboured  to  procure." 

Solon's  opinion  suffered  a  long  debate,  and  though  it 
was  not  only  thought  good  but  necessary  by  Bias,  Periander, 
and  Pittacus,  it  was  gainsaid  by  all  the  rest,  and  Seneca's 
opinion  prevailed,  who  with  substantial  reasons  convinced 
the  assembly,  that  if  they  should  come  to  a  new  division  of 
the  world,  one  great  disorder  would  necessarily  follow ;  that 
too  much  would  fall  to  the  share  of  fools,  and  too  little  to 
gallant  men  ;  and  that  plague,  famine,  and  war  were  not 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  43 

God's  severest  scourges,  for  the  affliction  of  mankind  would 
be  to  enrich  villains. 

Solon's  opinion  being  laid  aside,  Chilo  argued  as  follows : 
— "  Which  of  you,  most  wise  philosophers,  doth  not  know 
that  the  immoderate  thirst  after  gold  hath  now  adaies  filled 
the  world  with  all  the  mischiefs  which  we  see  and  feel. 
What  wickedness,  how  execrable  soever  it  be,  will  men  not 
willingly  commit,  if  thereby  they  may  accumulate  riches  1 
Conclude,  therefore,  unanimously  with  me,  that  no  better 
way  can  be  found  out,  whereby  to  extirpate  all  the  vices 
with  which  our  age  is  opprest,  then  for  ever  to  banish  out 
of  the  world  the  two  infamous  mettals,  gold  and  silver,  for 
so  the  occasion  of  our  present  disorders  being  removed,  the 
evils  will  necessarily  cease." 

Though  Chile's  opinion  had  a  very  specious  appearance, 
it  would  not  bear  the  test,  for  it  was  said,  that  men  took  so 
much  pains  to  get  gold  and  silver  because  they  are  the 
measure  and  counterpoise  of  all  things,  and  that  it  was 
requisite  for  man  to  have  some  mettals,  or  other  thing  of 
price,  by  which  he  might  purchase  what  was  fitting  for 
him,  that  if  there  were  no  such  thing  as  gold  or  silver,  he 
would  make  use  of  something  instead  of  them,  which, 
rising  in  value,  would  be  equally  coveted,  as  was  plainly 
seen  in  the  Indies,  where  cockle-shells  were  made  use  of 
instead  of  money,  and  more  vallued  than  either  gold  or 
silver.  Cleobulus,  particularly,  being  very  hot  in  refuting 
this  opinion,  said,  with  much  perturbation  of  mind  : — "  My 
Masters,  banish  iron  out  of  the  world,  for  that  is  the  mettal 
which  hath  put  us  into  the  present  condition.  Gold  and 
silver  serve  the  purpose  ordained  by  God,  whereas  iron, 
which  Nature  produced  for  the  making  of  plow-shears, 
spades,  and  mattocks,  is  by  the  mallice  and  mischief  of 


HISTORY  C 


ROSICRUCIANS. 


This  is  a  truth  very  well  known  to  princes ;  and  though  it 
be  clearly  seen  that  they  do  not  observe  it,  he  is  a  fool 
that  believes  they  do  not  out  of  carelessness.  I,  who  have 
long  studied  a  point  of  so  great  weight,  am  perswaded  that 
ignorant  and  raw  men,  and  men  of  no  merit,  are  preferred 
before  learned  and  deserving  persons,  not  out  of  any  fault 
in  the  prince,  but  (I  blush  to  say  it)  through  default  of  the 
vertuosi.  I  acknowledge  that  princes  stand  in  need  of 
learned  officers  and  men  of  experienced  valor,  but  they 
likewise  need  faithful  servants.  If  deserving  men  and  men 
of  valor  were  loyal  in  proportion  to  their  capacity,  we 
should  not  complain  of  the  present  disorders  in  seeing  un- 
deserving dwarfs  become  great  giants  in  four  daies'  space, 
ignorance  seated  in  the  chair  of  vertue,  and  folly  in  valor's 
tribunal.  'Tis  common  to  all  men  to  overrate  their  own 
worth,  but  the  vertuosi  do  presume  so  much  upon  their 
own  good  parts  that  they  rather  pretend  to  add  to  the 
prince's  reputation  by  accepting  preferments  then  to  receive 
credit  themselves  by  accepting  his  munificence.  I  have 
known  many  so  foolishly  enamoured  of  their  own  works 
that  they  have  thought  it  a  greater  happiness  for  a  prince 
to  have  an  occasion  of  honouring  them  then  good  luck  for 
the  other  to  meet  with  so  liberal  a  prince.  Such  men,  ac- 
knowledging all  favours  conferred  upon  them  as  debts  paid 
to  their  deserts,  prove  so  ungrateful  to  their  benefactors  in 
their  necessity  that  they  are  abhorred  as  perfidious,  and  are 
causes  of  this  grievance,  that  princes  seek  fidelity  instead  of 
more  shining  accomplishments,  that  they  may  be  secure  of 
gratitude  when  they  stand  in  need  of  it." 

Periander  having  finished  his  discourse,  Bias  spake 
thus: — " Most  wise  philosophers,  all  of  you  sufficiently 
know  that  the  reason  of  the  world's  depravity  is  only  be- 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  47 

cause  mankind  hath  so  shamefully  abandoned  those  holy 
laws  which  God  gave  them  to  observe  when  he  bestowed 
the  whole  world  upon  them  for  a  habitation ;  nor  did  he 
place  the  French  in  France,  the  Spaniards  in  Spain,  the 
Dutch  in  Germany,  and  bound  up  the  fowl  fiend  in  hell  for 
any  other  reason  but  the  advantage  of  that  general  peace 
which  he  desired  might  be  observed  throughout  the  whole 
world.  But  avarice  and  ambition  (spurs  .which  have 
alwaies  egged  on  men  to  greatest  wickedness),  causing 
nations  to  pass  into  other  men's  countries,  have  caused 
these  evils  which  we  endeavour  to  amend.  If  it  be  true, 
as  we  all  confess  it  is,  that  God  hath  done  nothing  in  vain, 
wherefore,  think  you,  hath  His  Divine  Majesty  placed  the 
inaccessible  Pyrenean  mountains  between  the  Spaniards 
and  Italians,  the  rocky  Alpes  between  the  Italians  and 
Germans,  the  dreadful  English  Channel  between  the  French 
and  English,  the  Mediterranean  Sea  between  Africa  and 
Europe  ?  Why  hath  he  made  the  infinite  spacious  rivers 
of  Euphrates,  Indus,  Ganges,  and  the  rest,  save  only  that 
people  might  be  content  to  live  in  their  own  countries  by 
reason  of  the  difficulties  of  fords  and  passages  ?  And  the 
Divine  Wisdom,  knowing  that  the  harmony  of  universal 
peace  would  be  out  of  tune,  and  that  the  world  would  be 
filled  with  incurable  diseases,  if  men  should  exceed  their 
allotted  bounds,  added  the  multitude  and  variety  of  lan- 
guages to  all  the  fore-mentioned  impediments,  without 
which  all  men  would  speak  the  same  tongue,  as  all 
creatures  of  the  same  species  sing,  bark,  or  bray  after 
one  and  the  same  manner.  'Tis  then  man's  boldness  in 
bearing  through  mountains,  passing  over  the  broadest  and 
most  rapid  rivers,  arid  even  manifestly  and  rashly  hazard- 
ing himself  and  all  his  substance  by  crossing  the  largest 


48 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


seas  in  a  little  wooden  vessel,  which  caused  the  ancient 
Romans,  not  to  mention  any  other  nations,  to  mine  other 
men's  affairs  and  discompose  their  own,  not  being  satisfied 
with  their  dominion  over  the  whole  of  Italy.  The  true 
remedy,  then,  for  so  great  disorder  is,  first  to  force  every 
nation  to  return  to  their  own  countreys,  and  then,  to  pre- 
vent the  like  confusion  in  future,  I  am  of  opinion  that  all 
bridges  built  for  the  more  commodious  passing  of  rivers 
should  be  absolutely  broken  down,  that  the  ways  over  the 
mountains  should  be  quite  destroyed,  and  the  mountains 
made  more  inaccessible  by  man's  industry  then  originally 
by  nature ;  and  I  would  have  all  navigation  forbidden  upon 
severest  penalty,  not  allowing  so  much  a£  the  least  boats  to 
pass  over  rivers." 

Bias  his  opinion  was  regarded  with  unusual  attention, 
but  after  being  well  examined  by  the  best  wits  of  the 
Assembly,  it  was  found  not  to  be  good,  for  all  those  philoso- 
phers knew  that  the  greatest  enmities  between  nation  and 
nation  are  not  national,  but  occasioned  by  cunning  princes, 
who  are  great  masters  in  the  proverb,  Divide  et  impera,  and 
that  that  perfection  of  manners  being  found  in  all  nations 
joyned  together  which  was  not  to  be  had  in  any  particular 
one,  travel  is  necessary  to  acquire  the  complete  wisdom 
which  adorned  the  Great  Ulysses.  Now,  this  is  a  benefit 
entirely  owing  to  navigation,  which  is  very  necessary  to  man- 
kind, were  it  onely  for  that  God,  having  created  this  world 
of  an  almost  incomprehensible  greatness,  having  filled  it 
with  pretious  things,  and  endowed  every  province  with 
somewhat  of  particular  navigation,  'tis  by  that  wonderful 
art  reduced  to  so  small  an  extent  that  the  aromatics  of 
Molucca,  though  above  fifteen  thousand  miles  from  Italy, 
seem  to  the  Italians  to  grow  in  their  own  gardens. 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  49 

Thus  the  opinion  of  Bias  was  laid  aside,  when  Cleobulus, 
rising  up,  and  with  a  low  bow,  seeming  to  crave  leave  to  speak, 
said  thus  : — "  I  clearly  perceive,  most  wise  gentlemen,  that 
the  reformation  of  the  present  age,  a  business  of  itself  very 
easie,  becomes  by  the  diversity  and  extravagancy  of  our 
opinions  rather  impossible  then  difficult.  And  to  speak 
with  the  freedom  which  becomes  this  place  and  the  weight 
of  the  business  which  we  have  in  hand,  it  grieves  my  heart 
to  find,  even  amongst  us,  that  common  defect  of  ambitious 
and  slight  wits,  who,  getting  up  into  publike  pulpits,  labor 
more  to  display  their  ingenuity  by  their  new  and  curious 
conceits,  then  to  profit  their  auditors  by  useful  precepts 
and  sound  doctrines.  To  raise  man  out  of  the  foul  mire 
whereinto  he  has  fallen,  to  what  purpose  is  that  dangerous 
operation  of  making  little  windows  in  their  breasts,  which 
Thales  advised  1  And  why  should  we  undertake  the  labor- 
ious business  of  dividing  the  world  into  equal  partitions 
according  to  Solon's  proposition  1  Or  the  course  mentioned 
by  Chilo,  of  banishing  gold  and  silver  out  of  the  world  1 
Or  that  of  Pittacus,  of  forcing  men  to  walk  in  the  way  of 
merit  and  vertue  1  Or,  lastly,  that  of  Bias,  that  mountains 
should  be  raised  higher  and  made  more  difficult  then 
Nature  hath  made  them,  and  that  the  miracle  of  navigation 
should  be  extirpated,  the  greatest  proof  of  human  ingenuity 
that  was  ever  given  1  What  are  these  but  chimseras  and 
sophistical  fancies  1  The  chief  consideration  which  re- 
formers ought  to  have  is,  that  the  remedy  proposed  be 
practicable,  that  it  may  work  its  effect  soon  and  secretly, 
and  that  it  may  be  chearfully  received  by  those  who  are  to 
be  reformed,  for,  otherwise,  we  shall  rather  deform  the  world 
then  improve  it.  There  is  great  reason  for  tnis  assertion, 
for  that  Physitian  deserves  to  be  blamed,  who  should 

D 


50  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


ordain  a  medecine  for  his  impatient  which  is  impossible  to 
be  used,  and  which  would  afflict  him  more  then  his  disease. 
Therefore  is  it  the  requisite  duty  of  reformers  to  provide  a 
sure  remedy  before  they  take  notice  of  the  wound  ;  it  is  not 
onely  foolishness  but  impiety  to  defame  men  by  publishing 
their  vices,  and  to  shew  the  world  that  their  maladies  are 
grown  to  such  a  height  that  they  are  past  cure.  Therefore 
the  Great  Tacitus,  who  always  speaks  to  the  purpose  if  he  be 
rightly  understood,  doth  in  this  particular  advise  men. 
Omittere  potius  prcevalida  et  adulta  vitia,  quam  hoc  assequi,  ut 
palam  fieret,  quibus  flagittiis  impares  essemus. 1  Those  who 
would  fell  an  old  oak  are  ill-advised  if  they  begin  with 
lopping  the  top  boughs  ;  our  true  method,  gentlemen,  is  to 
lay  the  axe  to  the  root,  as  I  do  now,  in  affirming  that  the 
reformation  of  the  present  age  consists  wholly  in  these  few 
words — KEWARD  THE  GOOD  AND  PUNISH  THE  BAD." 

Here  Cleobulus  held  his  peace,  whose  opinion  Thales 
Milesius  did  with  such  violence  oppose  as  showed  how 
dangerous  a  thing  it  is  to  offend,  though  by  speaking  the 
truth,  those  who  have  the  repute  to  be  good  and  wise,  for 
he  with  a  fiery  countenance  broke  forth  into  these  words  :— 
"  Myself,  and  these  gentlemen,  most  wise  Cleobulus,  whose 
opinions  you  have  been  pleased  to  reject  as  sophistical  and 
meer  chimeras,,  did  expect  from  your  rare  wisdom  that  you 
had  brought  some  new  and  miraculous  Bezoar  from  the 
Indies  for  cure  of  these  present  evils,  whereas  you  have  pro- 
pounded that  for  the  easiest  remedy  which  is  the  hardest 
and  most  impossible  that  could  ever  be  fancied  by  the 
prime  pretenders  to  high  mysteries,  Caius  Plinius  and 
Albertus  Magnus.  There  is  not  any  of  us,  my  Cleobulus, 
that  did  not  know,  before  you  were  pleased  to  put  us  in 
1  Tacitus,  Lib.  3,  Ann. 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  51 

mind   of  it,  that  the   reformation   of  the  world  depends 
wholly  upon  rewarding  such  as  are  good  and  punishing  the 
wicked.     But  give  me  leave  to  ask  you,  who  are  those  that 
in  this  our  age  are  perfectly  good,  and  who  exactly  ill  ?     I 
would  also  know  whether  your  eye  can  discern  that  which 
could  never  yet  be  found  out  by  any  man  living,  how  to  know 
true  goodness  from  that  which  is  counterfeit.      Do  not  you 
know  that  modern  hypocrites  are  arrived  at  that  height  of 
cunning  that,  in  this  our  unhappy  age,  those  are  accounted 
to  be  cunningest  in  their  wickedness  who  seem  most  exactly 
good,  and  that  really  perfect  men,  who  live  in  sincerity  and 
singleness  of  soul,  with  an   undisguised   and   unartificial 
goodness,  are  thought  to  be  scandalous  and  silly  ?      Every 
one  by  natural  instinct  loves  those  that  are  good  and  hates 
those  that  are  wicked,  but  princes  do  it  both  out  of  instinct 
and  interest,  and  when  hypocrites  or  other  cunning  cheaters 
are   listened   unto   by    great  men,    while   good   men   are 
suppressed  and  undervalued,  it  is  not  by  the  princes'  own 
election  but  through  the  abuse  of  others.     True  vertue  is 
known  onely  and  rewarded  by  God,  by  whom  also  vices  are 
discovered  and  punished.     He  onely  penetrates  into   the 
depths  of  men's  hearts,  and  we,  by  means  of  the  window  I 
proposed,   might   also   have   looked  therein  had   not   the 
enemy  of  mankind  sown  tares  in  the  field  where  I  sowed 
the  grain  of  good  advice.      But  new  laws,  how  good  and 
wholesome  soever,  have  alwaies  been  and  ever  will  be  with- 
stood by  those  vitious  people  who  are  thereby  punished." 

The  reasoning  of  Thales  gave  mighty  satisfaction  to  the 
Assembly,  and  all  of  them  turned  their  eyes  upon  Perian- 
der,  who,  thinking  himself  thereby  desired  to  speak  his 
opinion,  began  thus  : — "  The  variety  of  opinions  which  I 
have  heard  confirms  me  in  my  former  tenet,  that  four  parts 


. 


52  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

of  five  who  are  sick  perish  because  the  physitians  know  not 
their  disease ;  such  errors  are  indeed  excusable,  because 
men  are  easily  deceived  in  matters  of  mere  conjecture,  but 
that  we,  who  are  judged  by  Apollo  to  be  the  salt  of  the 
earth,  should  not  know  the  evil  under  which  the  present  age 
labours,  redounds  much  to  our  shame,  since  the  malady 
which  we  ought  to  cure  lies  not  hidden  in  the  veins,  but  is  so 
manifestly  known  to  all  men  that  it  self  cries  aloud  for  help. 
And  yet,  by  all  the  reasons  T  have  heard  alledged,  methinks 
you  go  about  to  mend  the  arm  when  it  is  the  heart  that 
is  fistula'd.  Gentlemen,  since  it  is  Apollo's  pleasure  that 
we  should  do  so,  since  our  reputation  stands  upon  it,  and 
charity  to  our  so  afflicted  age  requires  it  at  our  hands,  let 
us,  I  beseech  you,  take  from  our  faces  the  mask  of  respect, 
which  hath  been  hitherto  worn  by  us  all,  and  let  us  speak 
freely.  The  fatal  error  then  which  has  so  long  confirmed 
mankind  in  their  unhappiness  is  this,  that  while  the  vices 
of  the  great  have  brought  the  world  into  confusion,  a  re- 
formation of  private  men's  faults  has  been  thought  sufficient 
to  retrieve  it.  But  the  falshood,  avarice,  pride  and 
hypocrisie  of  private  men  are  not  the  vices  (though  I  con- 
fess them  to  be  hanious  evils,  which  have  so  much  depraved 
our  age,  for  fitting  punishments  being  by  the  law  provided 
for  every  fault  and  foul  action,  man  is  so  obedient  to  the 
laws  and  so  apprehensive  of  justice  that  a  few  ministers 
thereof  make  millions  of  men  tremble,  and  men  live  in  such 
peace  that  the  rich  cannot,  without  much  danger  to  them- 
selves, oppress  the  poor,  and  every  one  may  walk  safely 
both  by  day  and  night  with  gold  in  their  hand,  not  onely 
in  the  streets  but  even  in  the  highways.  But  the  world's 
most  dangerous  infirmities  are  discovered  when  publique 
peace  is  disturbed,  and  we  must  all  of  us  confess  that  the 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  53 

ambition,  avarice,  and  diabolical  engagement  which  the 
swords  of  some  powerful  princes  have  usurped  over  the 
states  of  those  less  powerful  is  the  great  scandal  of  the 
present  times.  'Tis  this,  gentlemen,  which  hath  filled  the 
world  with  hatred  and  suspicion,  and  hath  defiled  it  with  so 
much  blood,  that  men,  who  were  created  by  God  with  humane 
hearts  and  civil  inclinations,  are  become  ravenous  wilde 
beasts,  tearing  one  another  in  pieces  with  all  sorts  of  in- 
humanity. The  ambition  of  these  men  hath  changed 
publike  peace  into  most  cruel  war,  vertue  into  vice,  the  love 
which  we  ought  to  bear  our  neighbours  into  such  intestine 
hatred,  that,  though  lyons  appear  lyons  to  their  own  species, 
yet  the  Scotch  to  the  English,  the  Italians  to  the  Germans, 
the  French  to  the  Spaniards,  and  every  nation  to  another, 
appear  not  men  and  brethren  but  creatures  of  another  kind, 
so  that  justice  being  oppressed  by  the  inexplicable  ambi- 
tion of  potent  men,  our  race,  which  was  born,  brought  up, 
and  did  live  long  under  the  government  of  wholesome  laws, 
waxing  now  cruel  to  itself,  lives  with  the  instinct  of  beasts, 
ready  to  oppress  the-  weaker.  Theft  which  is  undoubtedly 
base,  is  so  persecuted  by  the  laws  that  the  stealing  of  an 
egg  is  a  capital  fault,  yet  powerful  men  are  so  blinded  with 
ambition  as  to  rob  another  man  perfidiously  of  his  whole 
state,  which  is  not  thought  to  be  an  execrable  mischief  but 
an  noble  occupation,  and  onely  fit  for  kings.  Tacitus,  the 
master  of  policy,  that  he  may  win  the  good  will  of  princes, 
is  not  ashamed  to  say,  In  summa  Fortuna  id  ceguis  quod 
vallidius,  et  sua  retinere  privatce  domus,  de  alienis  certare, 
regiam  laudem  esse. l  If  it  be  true,  as  all  politicians  agree, 
that  people  are  the  prince's  apes,  how  can  those  who  obey 
live  vertuously  quiet  when  their  commanders  do  so  abound 
1  Tacitus,  Lib.  V.  Ann. 


.• 


54  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS, 

in  vice.  To  bereave  a  powerful  prince  of  a  kingdome  is  a 
weighty  business  which  is  not  to  be  done  by  one  man 
alone.  To  effect  so  foul  an  intent  they  muster  a  multitude 
of  men,  who,  that  they  may  not  fear  the  shame  of  stealing 
their  neighbours'  goods,  of  murthering  men,  and  of  firing 
cities,  change  the  name  of  base  thief  into  that  of  gallant 
souldier  and  valliant  commander.  And  that  which  aggra- 
vates this  evil  is  that  even  good  princes  are  forced  to  run 
upon  the  same  rocks  to  defend  their  own  estates  from  the 
ravenousness  of  these  harpyes,  and  to  regain  what  they  have 
lost,  and  to  revenge  themselves  of  those  that  have  injured 
them,  have  in  reprizal  got  possession  of  their  dominions,  till, 
lured  on  by  gain,  they  betake  themselves  to  the  same  shame- 
ful trade.  Thus  the  method  of  plundering  others  of  their 
kingdomes  is  become  a  reputable  art,  and  humane  wit, 
made  to  admire  and  contemplate  the  miracles  of  Heaven 
and  the  wonders  of  the  earth,  is  wholly  turned  to  invent 
stratagems  and  to  plot  treasons,  while  the  hands,  which  were 
made  to  cultivate  the  earth  that  feeds  us,  are  employed  in 
the  exercise  of  arms  that  we  may  kill. one  another.  This 
is  the  wound  which  hath  brought  our  age  to  its  last  gasp, 
and  the  true  way  to  remedy  it  is  for  princes  who  use  such 
dealings  to  amend  themselves,  and  to  be  content  with  their 
own  fortunes,  for,  certainly,  it  appears  very  strange  that  there 
should  be  any  king  who  cannot  satisfie  his  ambition  with  the 
absolute  command  over  twenty  millions  of  men.  Princes, 
as  you  all  know,  were  ordained  by  God  on  earth  for  the 
good  of  mankind  ;  therefore,  it  would  do  well  not  onely  to 
Lridle  their  ambitious  lust  after  the  possessions  of  others, 
but  I  think  it  necessary  that  the  peculiar  engagement  which 
some  men  pretend  their  swords  have  over  all  estates,  be 
cut  up  by  the  root,  and  I  advise  above  all  things  that  the 


THEiUNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  55 

greatness  of  principalities  be  limited,  it  being  impossible 
that  overgrown  kingdoms  should  be  governed  with  that 
exact  care  and  justice  which  is  requisite  to  the  people's 
good,  and  which  princes  are  bound  to  observe.  There  never 
was  a  vast  monarchy  which  was  not  in  a  short  time  lost  by 
the  negligence  of  its  governors." 

Here  Periander  ended,  whom  Solon  thus  opposed  : — "  The 
true  cause,  Periander,  of  our  present  mischiefs  which  you 
have  mentioned  with  such  liberty  of  speech  was  not  omitted 
by  us  out  of  ignorance,  but  out  of  prudence.  The  dis- 
orders you  speak  of  began  when  the  world  was  first 
peopled,  and  you  know  that  the  most  skilful  physitian 
cannot  restore  sight  to  one  born  blind.  I  mention  this 
because  it  is  much  the  same  thing  to  cure  an  infirm  eye  as 
to  reform  antiquated  errors.  For  as  the  skilful  physitian 
betakes  himself  to  his  cauters  the  first  day  he  sees  the  dis- 
tempered eye  water,  but  is  forced  to  leave  that  patient  in 
deserved  blindness  who  neglected  to  seek  a  cure  till  his 
sight  was  quite  lost,  so  reformers  should  oppose  abuses  with 
severe  remedies  the  very  first  hour  that  they  commence,  for 
when  vice  and  corruption  have  got  deep  rooting,  it  is  wiselier 
done  to  tolerate  the  evil,  then  to  go  about  to  remedy  it  out 
of  time,  with  danger  to  occasion  worse  inconveniences,  it 
being  more  dangerous  to  cut  an  old  wen  then  it  is  mis- 
becoming to  let  it  stand.  Moreover,  we  are  here  to  call 
to  mind  the  disorders  of  private  men,  and  to  use  modesty 
in  so  doing,  but  to  be  silent  in  what  concerns  princes,  for 
they  having  no  superiours  in  this  world  it  belongs  onely  to 
God  to  reform  them,  He  having  given  them  the  prerogative 
to  command,  us  the  glory  to  obey.  Subjects,  therefore, 
should  correct  the  faults  of  their  rulers  onely  by  their  own 
godly  living,  for  the  hearts  of  princes  being  in  the  hands 


56  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


of  the  Almighty,  when  people  deserve  ill  from  His  Divine 
Majestic  he  raiseth  up  Pharoahs  against  them,  and,  on  the 
contrary,  makes  princes  tender-hearted,  when  people  by 
their  fidelity  and  obedience  deserve  God's  assistance." 

What  Solon  said  was  much  commended  by  all  the 
hearers,  and  then  Cato  began  thus : — "  Your  opinions, 
most  wise  Grecians,  are  much  to  be  admired,  and  have 
abundantly  justified  the  profound  esteem  which  all  the 
Litterati  have  of  you ;  the  vices,  corruptions,  and  ulcerated 
wounds  under  which  the  age  languishes  could  not  be  better 
discovered  and  pointed  out.  Nor  are  your  opinions,  which 
are  full  of  humane  knowledge,  gain-said  here  for  that 
they  are  not  excellent,  but  for  that  the  malady  is  so  habitu- 
ated in  the  veins,  and  is  even  so  grounded  in  the  bones, 
that  the  constitution  of  mankind  is  worn  out,  and  their 
vital  vertue  yields  to  the  strength  of  the  distemper ;  in 
short,  the  patient  spits  nothing  but  blood  and  putrefaction, 
and  the  hair  falls  from  his  head.  The  physitian,  gentlemen, 
hath  a  hard  part  to  play  when  the  sick  man's  maladies  .are 
many,  and  one  so  far  differing  from  another  that  cooling 
medicines,  and  such  as  are  good  for  a  hot  liver,  are  nought 
for  the  stomach,  and  weaken  it  too  much.  Truly  this  is 
just  our  case,  for  the  maladies  which  molest  our  age  equal 
the  stars  of  heaven,  and  are  more  various  than  the  flowers 
of  the  field.  I,  therefore,  think  this  cure  desperate,  and 
that  the  patient  is  totally  incapable  of  humane  help.  We 
must  have  recourse  to  prayers  and  to  other  divine  helps, 
which  in  like  case  are  usually  implored  from  God ;  this  is 
the  true  north-star,  which,  in  the  greatest  difficulties,  leads 
men  into  the  harbour  of  perfection,  for  Pauci  prudent  ia, 
honesta  ab  deterioribus,  utilia  ab  noxiis  discernunt;  plures  aliorum 
evcntis  docentur.1  If  we  approve  this  consideration,  we  shall 
1  Tac.,  Lib.  iv.,  Ann. 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  57 

find  that  when  the  world  was  formerly  sunk  into  the  same 
disorders,  it  was  God's  care  that  did  help  it  by  sending  a 
universal  deluge  to  raze  mankind,  full  of  abominable  and 
incorrigible  vice,  from  off  the  world.  And,  gentlemen, 
when  a  man  sees  the  walls  of  his  house  all  gaping  and 
ruinous,  and  its  foundations  so  weakened  that,  in  all 
appearance,  it  is  ready  to  fall,  certainly  it  is  more  wisely 
done  to  pull  down  the  house  and  build  it  anew,  then  to 
lose  money  and  time  in  piecing  and  patching  it.  There- 
fore, since  man's  life  is  so  foully  depraved  with  vice  that 
it  is  past  all  human  power  to  restore  it  to  its  former  health, 
I  do  with  all  my  heart  beseech  the  Divine  Majestic,  and 
counsel  you  to  do  the  like,  that  He  will  again  open  the 
cataracts  of  Heaven,  and  pour  down  upon  the  earth  another 
deluge,  with  this  restriction,  that  a  new  Ark  may  be  made, 
wherein  all  boys  not  above  twelve  years  of  age  may  be 
saved,  and  that  all  the  female  sex,  of  whatsoever  age,  be  so 
wholly  consumed,  that  nothing  but  their  unhappy  memory 
may  remain.  And  I  beseech  the  same  Divine  Majestic 
that  as  He  hath  granted  the  singular  benefit  to  bees,  fishes, 
beetles,1  and  other  animals,  to  procreate4' with  out  the  female 
sex,  so  He  will  think  men  worthy  of  the  like  favour.  I 
have  learnt  for  certain  that  as  long  as  there  shall  be  any 
women  in  the  world  men  will  be  wicked." 

It  is  not  to  be  believed  how  much  Gate's  discourse  dis- 
pleased the  whole  Assembly,  who  did  all  so  abhor  the  harsh 
conceit  of  a  deluge,  that,  casting  themselves  upon  the 
ground,  with  their  hands  held  up  to  heaven,  they  humbly 
beseeched  Almighty  God  that  He  would  preserve  the 
excellent  female  sex,  that  He  would  keep  mankind  from 
any  more  deluges,  or  that  He  would  send  them  on  the 
1  See  Additional  Note,  No.  3. 


58  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 


earth  onely  to  extirpate  those  discomposed  and  wilde  wits, 
those  untunable  and  bloodthirsty  souls,  those  heterodox 
and  phantastick  brains,  who,  being  of  a  depraved  judgment, 
are  nothing-but  mad  men,  whose  ambition  was  boundless, 
and  pride  without  end,  and  that  when  mankind  should, 
through  their  demerits,  become  unworthy  of  any  mercy 
from  the  Almighty,  He  would  be  pleased  to  punish  them 
with  the  scourges  of  plague,  sword,  and  famine,  rather  than 
to  deliver  mankind  unto  the  good  will  and  pleasure  of  those 
insolent  and  wicked  rulers,  who,  being  composed  of  nothing 
but  blind  zeal  and  diabolical  folly,  would  pull  the  world  in 
pieces  if  they  could  compass  the  bestial  caprices  they  hourly 
hatch  in  their  heads. 

Cato's  opinion  had  this  unlucky  end,  when  Seneca  thus 
began  : — "  Rough  dealing  is  not  so  greatly  requisite  in 
Deformation  as  would  seem  by  many  of  your  discourses, 
especially  when  disorders  have  grown  to  so  great  a  height; 
on  the  contrary,  they  ought,  like  wounds  which  are  subject 
to  convulsions,  to  be  drest  with  a  light  hand.  It  is  a 
scandal  to  the  physitian  that  the  patient  should  die  with 
his  prescriptions  ir!  his  body,  since  all  men  will  conclude 
that  the  medecine  hath  done  him  more  harm  then  his 
malady.  It  is  a  rash  advice  to  go  from  one  extreme  to 
another,  passing  by  the  due  medium ;  man's  nature  is  not 
capable  of  violent  mutations.,  and  if  it  be  true  that  the 
world  hath  been  falling  many  thousand  years  into  the  pre- 
sent infirmities,  he  is  a  very  fool  who  thinks  to  restore  it 
to  health  in  a  few  days.  Moreover,  in  reformation  the 
conditions  of  those  who  do  reform,  and  the  qualities  of 
those  that  are  to  be  reformed,  ought  to  be  exactly  con- 
sidered. We  that  are  the  reformers  are  philosophers  and 
men  of  learning,  and  if  those  to  be  reformed  be  onely 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  59 

stationers,  printers,  such  as  sell  paper,  pens,  and  ink,  or 
other  such  things  appertaining  to  learning,  we  may  very 
well  correct  their  errors,  but  if  we  offer  to  rectify  the  faults 
6f  other  trades,  we  shall  commit  worse  errors,  and  become 
more  ridiculous  then  the  shoemaker  who  would  judge  of 
colours,  and  durst  censure  Apelles  his  pictures.  This,  I 
must  say,  is  a  defect  frequent  in  us  Litterati,  who,  for  four 
cujus  that  we  have  in  our  heads,  pretend  to  know  all  things, 
and  are  not  aware  that  when  we  first  swerve  from  our  books 
we  run  riot,  and  say  a  thousand  things  from  the  purpose. 
I  say  this,  gentlemen,  because  nothing  more  obviates  refor- 
mations then  to  walk  therein  in  the  dark,  which  happens 
when  reformers  are  not  well  acquainted  with  the  vices 
of  those  with  whom  they  have  to  deal.  The  reason  is 
apparent,  for  nothing  makes  men  more  obstinate  in  their 
errors  then  when  they  find  their  reformers  ill-informed  of 
their  defects.  Now,  which  of  us  is  acquainted  with  the 
falsehood  of  notaries,  the  prevarications  of  advocates,  the 
simony  of  judges,  the  tricks  of  attorneys,  the  cheats  of 
apothecaries,  the  filching  of  tailors,  the  roguery  of  butchers, 
and  the  cheating  tricks  of  a  thousand  other  artificers  1  And 
yet  all  these  excesses  must  be  by  us  corrected,  which  are  so 
far  from  our  profession  that  we  shall  appear  like  so  many 
blind  fellows  fumbling  to  stop  a  leaky  cask  which  spills  the 
wine  on  every  side.  This,  gentlemen,  is  enough  to  con- 
vince you  that  reformation  is  only  likely  to  proceed  well 
when  mariners  discourse  of  navigation,  souldiers  of  war, 
shepherds  of  sheep,  and  herdsmen  of  bullocks.  It  is  mani- 
fest presumption  in  us  to  pretend  to  know  all  things, 
and  meer  malice  to  believe  that  in  every  occupation  there 
are  not  three  or  four  honest  men.  My  opinion,  therefore, 
is,  that  we  ought  to  send  for  a  few  of  each  profession  of 


60  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


known  probity  and  worth,  and  that  every  one  should  cor- 
rect his  own  trade  ;  by  this  means,  we  shall  publish  to  the 
world  a  reformation  worthy  of  ourselves  and  of  the  present 
exigencies." 

Pittachus  and  Chilo  extolled  this  speech  to  the  skies,  and 
seeing  the  other  philosophers  of  a  contrary  sentiment,  pro- 
tested before  God  and  the  world  that  they  believed  it  was 
impossible  to  find  out  a  better  means  for  the  reformation 
of  mankind,  yet  did  the  rest  of  their  companions  abhor  it 
more  than  Cato's  proposition,  and  with  great  indignation 
told  Seneca  they  much  wondered  that  he,  by  taking  more 
reformers  into  their  number,  should  so  far  dishonour 
Apollo,  who  had  thought  them  not  only  sufficient  but 
excellently  fit  for  that  business.  It  was  not  wisely  advised 
to  begin  the  general  reformation  by  publishing  their  own 
weakness,  for  all  resolutions  which  detract  from  the  credit 
of  the  publishers  want  that  reputation  which  is  the  very 
soul  of  business.  It  was  strange  a  man  who  was  the  very 
prime  sage  of  Latin  writers  should  be  so  lavish  of  authority, 
which  should  be  guarded  more  jealously  then  women's 
honor,  since  the  wisest  men  did  all  agree  that  twenty 
pound  of  blood  taken  from  the  life-vain  was  well  imployed 
to  gain  but  one  ounce  of  jurisdiction. 

The  whole  Assembly  were  mightily  afflicted  when,  by  the 
reputation  of  Seneca's  opinion,  they  found  smal  hopes  of 
effecting  the  reformation,  for  they  relyed  little  on  Mazzoni, 
who  was  but  a  novice ;  which  though  Mazzoni  did  by  many 
signs  perceive,  yet,  no  whit  discouraged,  he  spoke  thus  : — 
"  It  was  not  for  any  merit  of  mine,  most  wise  philosophers, 
that  I  was  admitted  by  Apollo  into  this  reverend  congrega- 
tion, but  out  of  his  Majestie's  special  favour;  and  I  very 
well  know  that  it  better  becomes  me  to  use  my  ears  than 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  61 

my  tongue,  and  certainly  I  should  not  dare  to  open  my 
mouth  upon  any  other  occasion ;  but  reformation  being  the 
business  in  hand,  and  I  lately  coming  where  nothing  is 
spoken  of  but  reformation  and  reformers,  I  desire  that 
every  one  may  hold  their  peace,  and  that  I  alone  may  be 
heard  to  speak  in  a  business  which  I  am  so  verst  in  that  I 
may  boast  myself  to  be  the  onely  Euclid  of  this  mathe- 
matick.  Give  me  leave,  I  beseech  you,  to  say  that  you., 
in  relating  your  opinions,  seem  to  me  to  be  like  those  in- 
discrete physitians  who  lose  time  in  consulting  and  disput- 
ing without  having  seen  the  sick  party,  or  heard  from  his 
own  mouth  the  account  of  his  disease.  Our  business, 
gentlemen,  is  to  cure  the  present  age  of  the  foul  infirmities 
under  which  she  labours ;  we  have  all  laboured  to  find  out 
the  reasons  of  the  maladies  and  its  proper  remedys,  but 
none  of  us  hath  been  so  wise  as  to  visit  the  sick  party.  I 
therefore  advise  that  we  send  for  the  present  Age  to  come 
hither  and  be  examined,  that  we  interrogate  it  of  its  sick- 
ness, and  that  we  see  the  ill-affected  parts  naked,  for  this 
will  make  the  cure  easie,  which  you  now  think  desperate." 
The  whole  Assembly  was  so  pleased  at  Mazzoni's  motion, 
that  the  reformers  immediately  commanded  the  Age  to  be 
sent  for,  who  was  presently  brought  in  a  chair  to  the 
Delphick  Palace  by  the  four  Seasons  of  the  year.  He  was 
a  man  full  of  years,  but  of  so  great  and  strong  a  complexion 
that  he  seemed  likely  to  live  yet  many  ages,  onely  he  was 
short  breathed,  and  his  voyce  was  very  weak,  at  which  the 
philosophers,  much  wondering,  asked  him  what  was  the 
reason  that  he,  whose  ruddy  face  was  a  sign  of  much 
natural  heat  and  vigor,  and  of  a  good  stomach,  was  never- 
theless so  feeble  1  And  they  told  him  that  a  hundred  years 
before  his  face  was  so  yellow  that  he  seemed  to  have  the 


62  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


jaundice,  yet  he  spoke  freely,  and  seemed  to  be  stronger 
then  he  was  now,  and  since  they  had  sent  for  him  to  cure 
his  infirmity,  he  should  speak  freely  of  his  griefs. 

The  Age  answered  thus:— "Soon  after  I  was  born, 
gentlemen,  I  fell  into  these  maladies  under  which  I  now 
labour.  My  face  is  fresh  and  ruddy  because  people  have 
petered  it  and  coloured  it  with  lakes;  my  sickness  re- 
sembles the  ebbing  and  flowing  of  the  sea,  which  alwaies 
contains  the  same  water,  though  it  rises  and  fals,  with  this 
variation  notwithstanding,  that  when  my  looks  are  out- 
wardly good,  my  malady  is  more  grievous  inwardly  (as 
at  this  present),  but  when  my  face  looks  ill,  I  am  best 
within.  As  for  the  infirmities  which  torment  me,  do 
but  take  off  this  gay  jacket,  wherewith  some  good  people 
have  covered  a  rotten  carcass,  and  view  me  naked  as  I  was 
made  by  Nature." 

At  these  words  the  philosophers  stript  him  in  a  trice, 
and  found  that  this  miserable  wretch  was  covered  all  over 
four  inches  thick  with  a  scurf  of  appearances.  They  caused 
ten  razors  to  be  forthwith  brought  unto  them,  and  fell  to 
shaving  it  off  with  great  diligence,  but  they  found  it  so  far 
eaten  into  his  very  bones  that  in  all  the  huge  colossus  there 
was  not  one  inch  ©f  good  live  flesh,  at  which,  being  struck 
with  horror  and  despair,  they  put  on  the  patient's  cloaths 
again,  and  dismist  him.  Then,  convinced  that  the  disease 
was  incurable,  they  shut  themselves  up  together,  and 
abandoning  the  case  of  publike  affairs,  they  resolved  to 
provide  for  the  safety  of  their  own  reputations.  Mazzoni 
writ  what  the  rest  of  the  reformers  dictated,  a  Manifesto, 
wherein  they  witnessed  to  the  world  the  great  care  Apollo 
ever  had  of  the  virtuous  lives  of  his  Litterati,  and  of  the 
welfare  of  all  mankind,  also  what  pains  the  Reformers  had 


THE  UNIVERSAL  REFORMATION.  63 

taken  in  compiling  the  General  Keformation.  Then, 
coming  to  particulars,  they  fixt  the  prices  of  sprats,  cab- 
biges,  and  pumpkins.  The  Assembly  had  already  under- 
written the  Reformation  when  Thales  put  them  in  mind 
that  certain  higlers,  who  sold  pease  and  black-cherryes, 
vinted  such  small  measures  that  it  was  a  shame  not  to  take 
order  therein.  The  Assembly  thankt  Thales  for  his  adver- 
tisement, and  added  to  their  reformation  that  the  measures 
should  be  made  greater.  Then  the  palace  gates  were 
thrown  open,  and  the  General  Reformation  was  read,  in  the 
place  appointed  for  such  purposes,  to  the  people  assembled 
in  great  numbers  in  the  market-place,  and  was  so  generally 
applauded  by  every  one  that  all  Parnassus  rang  with  shouts 
of  joy,  for  the  rabble  are  satisfied  with  trifles,  while  men  of 
judgment  know  that  vitia  erunt  donee  homines J — as  long  as 
there  be  men  there  will  be  vices — that  men  live  on  earth 
not  indeed  well,  but  as  little  ill  as  they  may,  and  that  the 
height  of  human  wisdom  lies  in  the  discretion  to  be  content 
with  leaving  the  world  as  they  found  it. 

1  Tac.,  Lib.  iv.,  Hist. 


CHAPTEE  III. 


THE  FAMA  FRATERNITATIS  OF  THE  MERITORIOUS  ORDER  OF 
THE  ROSY  CROSS,  ADDRESSED  TO  THE  LEARNED  IN 
GENERAL,  AND  THE  GOVERNORS  OF  EUROPE. 

THE  original  edition  of  the  "  Universal  Eeformation  "  con- 
tained the  manifesto  bearing  the  above  title,  but  which  the 
notary  Haselmeyer  declares  to  have  existed  in  manuscript 
as  early  as  the  year  1610,  as  would  also  appear  from  a 
passage  in  the  Cassel  edition  of  1614,  the  earKest  which  I 
have  been  able  to  trace.  It  was  reprinted  with  the  "  Con- 
fessio  Fraternitatis "  and  the  "  Allgemeine  Eeformation 
der  Ganzen  Welt"  at  Franckfurt-on-the-Mayne  in  1615. 
A  Dutch  translation  was  also  published  in  this  year,  and 
by  1617  there  had  been  four  Franckfurt  editions,  the  last 
omitting  the  "Universal  Eeformation,"  which,  though  it 
received  an  elaborate  alchemical  elucidation  by  Brotoffer,1 
seems  gradually  to  have  dropped  out  of  notice.  "  Other 
editions,"  says  Buhle,  "followed  in  the  years  immediately 
succeeding,  but  these  it  is  unnecessary  to  notice.  In  the 
title-page  of  the  third  Franckfurt  edition  stands — First 
printed  at  Cassel  in  the  year  1616.  But  the  four  first  words 
apply  to  the  original  edition,  the  four  last  to  this.2 

"  Elucidarius  Major,  oder  Ekleuchterunge  iiber  die  Reformation 
der  ganzen  Weiten  Welt  .  .  .  Durch  Radtichs  Brotofferr."     1617. 
2  De  Quincey,  "  Rosicrucians  and  Freemasons." 


FA  MA  FRATERNITATIS.  65 

Fama  Fraternitatis  ;  or,  a  Discovery  of  the  Fraternity  of  the 
most  Laudable  Order  of  the  Rosy  Cross. 

Seeing  the  only  wise  and  merciful  God  in  these  latter 
days  hath  poured  out  so  richly  His  mercy  and  goodness  to 
mankind,  whereby  we  do  attain  more  and  more  to  the  per- 
fect knowledge  of  His  Son  Jesus  Christ  and  of  Nature,  that 
justly  we  may  boast  of  the  happy  time  wherein  there  is  not 
only  discovered  unto  us  the  half  part  of  the  world,  which 
was  heretofore  unknown  and  hidden,  but  He  hath  also  made 
manifest  unto  us  many  wonderful  and  never-heretofore  seen 
works  and  creatures  of  Nature,  and,  moreover,  hath  raised 
men,  indued  with  great  wisdom,  which  might  partly  renew 
and  reduce  all  arts  (in  this  our  spotted  and  imperfect  age) 
to  perfection,  so  that  finally  man  might  thereby  understand 
his  own  nobleness  and  worth,  and  why  he  is  called  Micro- 
cosmus,  and  how  far  his  knowledge  extendeth  in  Nature. 

Although  the  rude  world  herewith  will  be  but  little 
pleased,  but  rather  smile  and  scoff  thereat ;  also  the  pride 
and  covetousness  of  the  learned  is  so  great,  it  will  not  suffer 
them  to  agree  together ;  but  were  they  united,  they  might, 
out  of  all  those  things  which  in  this  our  age  God  doth  so 
richly  bestow  on  us,  collect  Librum  Naturce,  or,  a  Perfect 
Method  of  all  Arts.  But  such  is  their  opposition  that  they 
still  keep,  and  are  loth  to  leave,  the  old  course,  esteeming 
Porphyry,  Aristotle,  and  Galen,  yea,  and  that  which  hath 
but  a  meer  show  of  learning,  more  than  the  clear  and  mani- 
fested Light  and  Truth.  Those,  if  they  were  now  living, 
with  much  joy  would  leave  their  erroneous  doctrines ;  but 
here  is  too  great  weakness  for  such  a  great  work.  And 
although  in  Theologie,  Physic,  and  the  Mathematic,  the 
truth  doth  oppose  it  itself,  nevertheless,  the  old  Enemy,  by 

E 


. 


66  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

his  subtilty  and  craft,  doth  shew  himself  in  hindering  every 
good  purpose  by  his  instruments  and  contentious  wavering 
people. 

To  such  an  intention  of  a  general  reformation,  the  most 
godly  and  highly-illuminated  Father,  our  Brother,  C.  E.  C., 
a  German,  the  chief  and  original  of  our  Fraternity,  hath 
much  and  long  time  laboured,  who,  by  reason  of  his  poverty 
(although  descended  of  noble  parents),  in  the  fifth  year  of 
his  age  was  placed  in  a  cloyster,  where  he  had  learned  in- 
differently the  Greek  and  Latin  tongues,  and  (upon  his 
earnest  desire  and  request),  being  yet  in  his  growing  years, 
was  associated  to  a  Brother,  P.  A.  L.,  who  had  determined 
to  go  to  the  Holy  Land.  Although  this  Brother  dyed  in 
Ciprus,  and  so  never  came  to  Jerusalem,  yet  our  Brother 
C.  E.  C.  did  not  return,  but  shipped  himself  over,  and  went 
to  Damasco,  minding  from  thence  to  go  to  Jerusalem.  But 
by  reason  of  the  feebleness  of  his  body  he  remained  still 
there,  and  by  his  skill  in  physic  he  obtained  much  favour 
with  the  Turks,  and  in  the  meantime  he  became  acquainted 
with  the  Wise  Men  of  Damcar  in  Arabia,  and  beheld  what 
great  wonders  they  wrought,  and  how  Nature  was  discovered 
unto  them. 

Hereby  was  that  high  and  noble  spirit  of  Brother  C.  E.  C. 
so  stired  up,  that  Jerusalem  was  not  so  much  now  in  his 
mind  as  Damasco ; 1  also  he  could  not  bridle  his  desires 
any  longer,  but  made  a  bargain  with  the  Arabians  that 
they  should  carry  him  for  a  certain  sum  of  money  to  Damcar. 

1  Damascus  and  the  unknown  city  denominated  Damcar  are  con- 
tinually confused  in  the  German  editions.  Brother  C.  R.  C.  evi- 
dently did  not  project  a  journey  to  Damascus,  which  he  had  already 
reached  ;  nevertheless  this  is  the  name  appearing  in  this  place,  and 
I  have  decided  on  retaining  it  for  reasons  which  will  subsequently 
be  made  evident. 


FAMA  FRATERNITATIS.  67 

He  was  but  of  the  age  of  sixteen  years  when  he  came 
thither,  yet  of  a  strong  Dutch  constitution.  There  the 
Wise  Men  received  him  not  as  a  stranger  (as  he  himself 
witnesseth),  but  as  one  whom  they  had  long  expected ; 
they  called  him  by  his  name,  and  shewed  him  other  secrets 
out  of  his  cloyster,  whereat  he  could  not  but  mightily 
wonder. 

He  learned  there  better  the  Arabian  tongue,  so  that  the 
year  following  he  translated  the  book  M  into  good  Latin, 
which  he  afterwards  brought  with  him.  This  is  the  place 
where  he  did  learn  his  Physick  and  his  Mathematics,  whereof 
the  world  hath  much  cause  to  rejoice,  if  there  were  more 
love  and  less  envy. 

After  three  years  he  returned  again  with  good  consent, 
shipped  himself  over  Sinm  Arablcus  into  Egypt,  where  he 
remained  not  long,  but  only  took  better  notice  there  of  the 
plants  and  creatures.  He  sailed  over  the  whole  Medi- 
terranean Sea  for  to  come  unto  Fez,  where  the  Arabians 
had  directed  him. 

It  is  a  great  shame  unto  us  that  wise  men,  so  far 
remote  the  one  from  the  other,  should  not  only  be  of 
one  opinion,  hating  all  contentious  writings,  but  also  be  so 
willing  and  ready,  under  the  seal  of  secresy,  to  impart  their 
secrets  to  others.  Every  year  the  Arabians  and  Africans 
do  send  one  to  another,  inquiring  one  of  another  out  of 
their  arts,  if  happily  they  had  found  out  some  better 
things,  or  if  experience  had  weakened  their  reasons. 
Yearly  there  came  something  to  light  whereby  the  Mathe- 
matics, Physic,  and  Magic  (for  in  those  are  they  of  Fez 
most  skilful)  were  amended.  There  is  now-a-days  no  want 
of  learned  men  in  Germany,  Magicians,  Cabalists,  Physi- 
cians, and  Philosophers,  were  there  but  more  love  and 


68  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

kindness  among  them,  or  that  the  most  part  of  them  would 
not  keep  their  secrets  close  only  to  themselves. 

At  Fez  he  did  get  acquaintance  with  those  which  are 
commonly  called  the  Elementary  inhabitants,  who  revealed 
unto  him  many  of  their  secrets,  as  we  Germans  likewise 
might  gather  together  many  things  if  there  were  the  like 
unity  and  desire  of  searching  out  secrets  amongst  us. 

Of  these  of  Fez  he  often  did  confess,  that  their  Magia 
was  not  altogether  pure,  and  also  that  their  Cabala  was 
defiled  with  their  Eeligion;  but,  notwithstanding,  he 
knew  how  to  make  good  use  of  the  same,  and  found  still 
more  better  grounds  for  his  faith,  altogether  agreeable 
with  the  harmony  of  the  whole  world,  and  wonderfully 
impressed  in  all  periods  of  time.  Thence  proceedeth  that 
fair  Concord,  that  as  in  every  several  kernel  is  contained  a 
whole  good  tree  or  fruit,  so  likewise  is  included  in  the 
little  body  of  man,  the  whole  great  world,  whose  religion, 
policy,  health,  members,  nature,  language,  words,  and 
works,  are  agreeing,  sympathizing,  and  in  equal  tune  and 
melody  with  God,  Heaven,  and  Earth ;  and  that  which  is 
disagreeing  with  them  is  error,  falsehood,  and  of  the  devil, 
who  alone  is  the  first,  middle,  and  last  cause  of  strife, 
blindness,  and  darkness  in  the  world.  Also,  might  one 
examine  all  and  several  persons  upon  the  earth,  he  should 
find  that  which  is  good  and  right  is  always  agreeing  with 
itself,  but  all  the  rest  is  spotted  with  a  thousand  erroneous 
conceits. 

After  two  years  Brother  K.  C.  departed  the  city  Fez, 
and  sailed  with  many  costly  things  into  Spain,  hoping 
well,  as  he  himself  had  so  well  and  profitably  spent  his 
time  in  his  travel,  that  the  learned  in  Europe  would  highly 
re  Joyce  with  him,  and  begin  to  rule  and  order  all  their 


FAMA  FRATERNITATIS.  69 

studies  according  to  those  sure  and  sound  foundations. 
He  therefore  conferred  with  the  learned  in  Spain,  shewing 
unto  them  the  errors  of  our  arts,  and  how  they  might  be 
corrected,  and  from  whence  they  should  gather  the  true 
Inditia  of  the  times  to  come,  and  wherein  they  ought  to 
agree  with  those  things  that  are  past ;  also  how  the  faults 
of  the  Church  and  the  whole  Philosophia  Moralis  were  to 
be  amended.  He  shewed  them  new  growths,  new  fruits, 
and  beasts,  which  did  concord  with  old  philosophy,  and 
prescribed  them  new  Axiomata,  whereby  all  things  might 
fully  be  restored.  But  it  was  to  them  a  laughing  matter, 
and  being  a  new  thing  unto  them,  they  feared  that  their 
great  name  would  be  lessened  if  they  should  now  again 
begin  to  learn,  and  acknowledge  their  many  years'  errors, 
to  which  they  were  accustomed,  and  wherewith  they  had 
gained  them  enough.  Who  so  loveth  unquietness,  let  him 
be  reformed  (they  said).  The  same  song  was  also  sung  to 
him  by  other  nations,  the  which  moved  him  the  more 
because  it  happened  to  him  contrary  to  his  expectation, 
being  then  ready  bountifully  to  impart  all  his  arts  and 
secrets  to  the  learned,  if  they  would  have  but  undertaken 
to  write  the  true  and  infallible  Axiomata,  out  of  all 
faculties,  sciences,  and  arts,  and  whole  nature,  as  that 
which  he  knew  would  direct  them,  like  a  globe  or  circle,  to 
the  onely  middle  point  and  centrum,  and  (as  it  is  usual 
among  the  Arabians)  it  should  onely  serve  to  the  wise 
and  learned  for  a  rule,  that  also  there  might  be  a  society 
in  Europe  which  might  have  gold,  silver,  and  precious 
stones,  sufficient  for  to  bestow  them  on  kings  for  their 
necessary  uses  and  lawful  purposes,  with  which  [society] 
such  as  be  governors  might  be  brought  up  for  to  learn  all 
that  which  God  hath  suffered  man  to ''[know,  and  thereby 


70  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

to  be  enabled  in  all  times  of  need  to  give  their  counsel  unto 
those  that  seek  it,  like  the  Heathen  Oracles. 

Verily  we  must  confess  that  the  world  in  those  days 
was  already  big  with  those  great  commotions,  labouring  to 
be  delivered  of  them,  and  did  bring  forth  painful,  worthy 
men,  who  brake  with  all  force  through  darkness  and  bar- 
barism, and  left  us  who  succeeded  to  follow  them.  As- 
suredly they  have  been  the  uppermost  point  in  Trygono  igneo, 
whose  flame  now  should  be  more  and  more  brighter,  and 
shall  undoubtedly  give  to  the  world  the  last  light. 

Such  a  one  likewise  hath  Theophrastus  been  in  vocation  and 
callings,  although  he  was  none  of  our  Fraternity,  yet,  never- 
theless hath  he  diligently  read  over  the  Book  M,  whereby 
his  sharp  ingenium  was  exalted ;  but  this  man  was  also 
hindered  in  his  course  by  the  multitude  of  the  learned  and 
wise-seeming  men,  that  he  was  never  able  peaceably  to 
confer  with  others  of  the  knowledge  and  understanding  he 
had  of  Nature.  And  therefore  in  his  writings  he  rather 
mocked  these  busie  bodies,  and  doth  not  shew  them  alto- 
gether what  he  was ;  yet,  nevertheless,  there  is  found  with 
him  well  grounded  the  afore-named  Harmonia,  which  with- 
out doubt  he  had  imparted  to  the  learned,  if  he  had  not 
found  them  rather  worthy  of  subtil  vexation  then  to  be  in- 
structed in  greater  arts  and  sciences.  He  thus  with  a  free 
and  careless  life  lost  his  time,  and  left  unto  the  world  their 
foolish  pleasures. 

But  that  we  do  not  forget  our  loving  Father,  Brother 
C.  R.,  he  after  many  painful  travels,  and  his  fruitless  true 
instructions,  returned  again  into  Germany,  the  which  he 
heartily  loved,  by  reason  of  the  alterations  which  were 
shortly  to  come,  and  of  the  strange  and  dangerous  conten- 
tions. There,  although  he  could  have  bragged  with  his  art, 


FAMA  FRATERNITATIS.  1\ 

but  specially  of  the  transmutations  of  metals,  yet  did  he 
esteem  more  Heaven,  and  men,  the  citizens  thereof,  than 
all  vain  glory  and  pomp. 

Nevertheless,  he  builded  a  fitting  and  neat  habitation,  in 
the  which  he  ruminated  his  voyage  and  philosophy,  and  re- 
duced them  together  in  a  true  memorial.  Tn  this  house  he 
spent  a  great  time  in  the  mathematics,  and  made  many  fine 
instruments,  ex  omnibus  hujus  artis  partibus,  whereof  there  is 
but  little  remaining  to  us.  as  hereafter  you  shall  understand. 

After  five  years  came  again  into  his  mind  the  wished  for 
Eeformation ;  and  in  regard  [of  it]  he  doubted  of  the  ayd 
and  help  of  others,  although  he  himself  was  painful,  lusty, 
and  unwearisom  ;  howsoever  he  undertook,  with  some  few 
adjoyned  with  him,  to  attempt  the  same.  Wherefore  he 
desired  to  that  end  to  have  out  of  his  first  cloyster  (to  the 
which  he  bare  a  great  affection)  three  of  his  brethren,  Brother 
G-.  V.,  Brother  I.  A.,  and  Brother  I.  0.,  who  had  some  more 
knowledge  of  the  arts  than  at  that  time  many  others  had. 
He  did  bind  those  three  unto  himself,  to  be  faithful,  dili- 
gent, and  secret,  as  also  to  commit  carefully  to  writing  all 
that  which  he  should  direct  and  instruct  them  in,  to  the 
end  that  those  which  were  to  come,  and  through  especial 
revelation  should  be  received  into  this  Fraternity,  might  not 
be  deceived  of  the  least  sillable  and  word. 

After  this  manner  began  the  Fraternity  of  the  Eosie 
Cross — first,  by  four  persons  onely,  and  by  them  was  made 
the  magical  language  and  writing,  with  a  large  dictionary, 
which  we  yet  dayly  use  to  God's  praise  and  glory,  and  do 
finde  great  wisdom  therein.  They  made  also  the  first  part 
of  the  Book  M,  but  in  respect  that  that  labour  was  too  heavy, 
and  the  unspeakable  concourse  of  the  sick  hindred  them, 
and  also  whilst  his  new  building  (called  Sancti  Spiritm)  was 


72  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

now  finished,  they  concluded  to  draw  and  receive  yet  others 
more  into  their  Fraternity.  To  this  end  was  chosen 
Brother  R.  C.,  his  deceased  father's  brother's  son;  Brother 
B.,  a  skilful  painter ;  G.  G.,  and  P.  D.,  their  secretary,  all 
Germains  except  I.  A.,  so  in  all  they  were  eight  in  number, 
all  batchelors  and  of  vowed  virginity,  by  whom  was  collected 
a  book  or  volumn  of  all  that  which  man  can  desire,  wish,  or 
hope  for. 

Although  we  do  now  freely  confess  that  the  world  is  much 
amended  within  an  hundred  years,  yet  we  are  assured  that 
our  Axiomata  shall  immovably  remain  unto  the  world's  end, 
and  also  the  world  in  her  highest  and  last  age  shall  not 
attain  to  see  anything  else;  for  our  ROTA  takes  her  beginning 
from  that  day  when  God  spake  Fiat  and  shall  end  when  he 
shall  speak  Pereat ;  yet  God's  clock  striketh  every  minute, 
where  ours  scarce  striketh  perfect  hours.  We  also  stedfastly 
beleeve,  that  if  our  Brethren  and  Fathers  had  lived  in  this 
our  present  and  clear  light,  they  would  more  roughly  have 
handled  the  Pope,  Mahomet,  scribes,  artists,  and  sophisters, 
and  showed  themselves  more  helpful,  not  simply  with  sighs 
and  wishing  of  their  end  and  consummation. 

When  now  these  eight  Brethren  had  disposed  and 
ordered  all  things  in  such  manner,  as  there  was  not  now 
need  of  any  great  labour,  and  also  that  every  one  was 
sufficiently  instructed  and  able  perfectly  to  discourse  of 
secret  and  manifest  philosophy,  they  would  not  remain  any 
longer  together,  but,  as  in  the  beginning  they  had  agreed, 
they  separated  themselves  into  several  countries,  because 
that  not  only  their  Axiomata  might  in  secret  be  more  pro- 
foundly examined  by  the  learned,  but  that  they  themselves, 
if  in  some  country  or  other  they  observed  anything,  or  per- 
ceived some  error,  might  inform  one  another  of  it. 


FA  MA  FRATERN1TATIS.  73 

Their  agreement  was  this  :-- 

First,  That  none  of  them  should  profess  any  other  thing 
then  to  cure  the  sick,  and  that  gratis. 

Second,  None  of  the  posterity  should  be  constrained  to 
wear  one  certain  kind  of  habit,  but  therein  to  follow  the 
custom  of  the  country. 

Third,  That  every  year,  upon  the  day  C.,  they  should 
meet  together  at  the  house  Sancti  Spiritus,  or  write  the 
cause  of  his  absence. 

Fourth,  Every  Brother  should  look  about  for  a  worthy 
person  who,  after  his  decease,  might  succeed  him. 

Fifth,  The  word  E.  C.  should  be  their  seal,  mark,  and 
character. 

Sixth,  The  Fraternity  should  remain  secret  one  hundred 
years. 

These  six  articles  they  bound  themselves  one  to  another 
to  keep ;  five  of  the  Brethren  departed,  onely  the  Brethren 
B.  and  D.  remained  with  the  Father,  Brother  E.  C.,  a 
whole  year.  When  these  likewise  departed,  then  remained 
by  him  his  cousen  and  Brother  I.  0.,  so  that  he  hath  all 
the  days  of  his  life  with  him  two  of  his  Brethren.  And 
although  that  as  yet  the  Church  was  not  cleansed,  never- 
theless, we  know  that  they  did  think  of  her,  and  what  with 
longing  desire  they  looked  for.  Every  year  they  assembled 
together  with  joy,  and  made  a  full  resolution  of  that  which 
they  had  done.  There  must  certainly  have  been  great 
pleasure  to  hear  truly  and  without  invention  related  and 
rehearsed  all  the  wonders  which  God  hath  poured  out  here 
and  there  throughout  the  world.  Every  one  may  hold  it 
out  for  certain,  that  such  persons  as  were  sent,  and  joyned 
together  by  God  and  the  Heavens,  and  chosen  out  of  the 
wisest  of  men  as  have  lived  in  many  ages,  did  live  together 


. 


74  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

above  all  others  in  highest  unity,  greatest  secresy,  and  most 
kindness  one  towards  another. 

After  such  a  most  laudable  sort  they  did  spend  their 
lives,  but  although  they  were  free  from  all  diseases  and 
pain,  yet,  notwithstanding,  they  could  not  live  and  pass 
their  time  appointed  of  God.  The  first  of  this  Fraternity 
which  dyed,  and  that  in  England,  was  I.  0.,  as  Brother  C. 
long  before  had  foretold  him ;  he  was  very  expert,  and  well 
learned  in  Cabala,  as  his  Book  called  H  witnesseth.  In 
England  he  is  much  spoken  of,  and  chiefly  because  he  cured 
a  young  Earl  of  Norfolk  of  the  leprosie.  They  had  con- 
cluded, that,  as  much  as  possibly  could  be,  their  burial  place 
should  be  kept  secret,  as  at  this  day  it  is  not  known  unto 
us  what  is  become  of  some  of  them,  yet  every  one's  place 
was  supplied  with  a  fit  successor.  But  this  we  will  con- 
fesse  publickly  by  these  presents,  to  the  honour  of  God,  that 
what  secret  soever  we  have  learned  out  of  the  book  M, 
although  before  our  eyes  we  behold  the  image  and  pattern 
of  all  the  world,  yet  are  there  not  shewn  unto  us  our  mis- 
fortunes, nor  hour  of  death,  the  which  only  is  known  to 
God  Himself,  who  thereby  would  have  us  keep  in  a  con- 
tinual readiness.  But  hereof  more  in  our  Confession,  where 
we  do  set  down  thirty-seven  reasons  wherefore  we  now  do 
make  known  our  Fraternity,  and  proffer  such  high  mysteries 
freely,  without  constraint  and  reward.  Also  we  do  pro- 
mise more  gold  then  both  the  Indies  bring  to  the  King  of 
Spain,  for  Europe  is  with  child,  and  will  bring  forth  a 
strong  child,  who  shall  stand  in  need  of  a  great  godfather's 
gift. 

After  the  death  of  I.  0.,  Brother  E.  C.  rested  not,  but, 
as  soon  as  he  could,  called  the  rest  together,  and  then,  as 
we  suppose,  his  grave  was  made,  although  hitherto  we  (who 


FA  MA  FRATERNITATIS.  75 

were  the  latest)  did  not  know  when  our  loving  Father  R.  C. 
died,  and  had  no  more  but  the  bare  names  of  the  beginners, 
and  all  their  successors  to  us.  Yet  there  came  into  our 
memory  a  secret,  which,  through  dark  and  hidden  words 
and  speeches  of  the  hundred  years,  Brother  A.,  the  successor 
of  D.  (who  was  of  the  last  and  second  row  of  succession, 
and  had  lived  amongst  many  of  us),  did  impart  unto  us  of 
the  third  row  and  succession ;  otherwise  we  must  confess, 
that  after  the  death  of  the  said  A.,  none  of  us  had  in  any 
manner  known  anything  of  Brother  C.  R.,  and  of  his  first 
fellow-brethren,  then  that  which  was  extant  of  them  in  our 
philosophical  BIBLIOTHECA,  amongst  which  our  AXIOMATA 
was  held  for  the  chiefest,  ROTA  MUNDI  for  the  most  artifi- 
cial, and  PROTHEUS  for  the  most  profitable.  Likewise,  we 
do  not  certainly  know  if  these  of  the  second  row  have  been 
of  like  wisdom  as  the  first,  and  if  they  were  admitted  to  all 
things. 

It  shall  be  declared  hereafter  to  the  gentle  reader  not 
onely  what  we  have  heard  of  the  burial  of  Brother  R.  C. ,  but 
also  it  shall  be  made  manifest  publicly,  by  the  foresight, 
sufferance,  and  commandment  of  God,  whom  we  most  faith- 
fully obey,  that  if  we  shall  be  answered  discreetly  and 
Christian-like,  we  will  not  be  ashamed  to  set  forth  publickly 
in  print  our  names  and  surnames,  our  meetings,  or  anything 
else  that  may  be  required  at  our  hands. 

JSTow,  the  true  and  fundamental  relation  of  the  finding 
out  of  the  high-illuminated  man  of  God,  Fra :  C.  E.  C.,  is 
this : — After  that  A.  in  Gallia  Narbonensi  was  deceased, 
there  succeeded  in  his  place  our  loving  Brother  N.  ]ST.  This 
man,  after  he  had  repaired  unto  us  to  take  the  solemn  oath 
of  fidelity  and  secresy,  informed  us  bona  fide,  that  A.  had 
comforted  him  in  telling  him,  that  this  Fraternity  should 


76  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

ere  long  not  remain  so  hidden,  but  should  be  to  all  the 
whole  German  nation  helpful,  needful,  and  commendable, 
of  the  which  he  was  not  in  anywise  in  his  estate  ashamed. 
The  year  following,  after  he  had  performed  his  school 
right,  and  was  minded  now  to  travel,  being  for  that  pur- 
pose sufficiently  provided  with  Fortunatus'  purse,  he  thought 
(he  being  a  good  architect)  to  alter  something  of  his  build- 
ing, and  to  make  it  more  fit.  In  such  renewing,  he  lighted 
upon  the  Memorial  Table,  which  was  cast  of  brasse,  and 
containeth  all  the  names  of  the  Brethren,  with  some  few 
other  things.  This  he  would  transfer  into  another  more 
fitting  vault,  for  where  or  when  Brother  R.  C.  died,  or  in 
what  country  he  was  buried,  was  by  our  predecessors  con- 
cealed and  unknown  unto  us.  In  this  table  stuck  a  great  naile 
somewhat  strong,  so  that  when  it  was  with  force  drawn  out 
it  took  with  it  an  indifferent  big  stone  out  of  the  thin  wall 
or  plaistering  of  the  hidden  door,  and  so  unlooked  for 
uncovered  the  door,  whereat  we  did  with  joy  and  longing 
throw  down  the  rest  of  the  wall  and  cleared  the  door,  upon 
which  was  written  in  great  letters— 

Post  CXX  Annos  Patebo, 

with  the  year  of  the  Lord  under  it.  Therefore  we  gave  God 
thanks,  and  let  it  rest  that  same  night,  because  first  we 
would  overlook  our  Rota — but  we  refer  ourselves  again  to 
the  Confession,  for  what  we  here  publish  is  done  for  the 
help  of  those  that  are  worthy,  but  to  the  unworthy,  God 
willing,  it  will  be  small  profit.  For  like  as  our  door  was 
after  so  many  years  wonderfully  discovered,  also  there  shall 
be  opened  a  door  to  Europe  (when  the  wall  is  removed), 
which  already  doth  begin  to  appear,  and  with  great  desire 
is  expected  of  many. 


FAMA  FRATERNITATIS.  77 

In  the  morning  following  we  opened  the  door,  and  there 
appeared  to  our  sight  a  vault  of  seven  sides  and  seven 
corners,  every  side  five  foot  broad,  and  the  height  of  eight 
foot.  Although  the  sun  never  shined  in  this  vault,  never- 
theless, it  was  enlightened  with  another  sun,  which  had 
learned  this  from  the  sun,  and  was  situated  in  the  upper 
part  in  the  center  of  the  sieling.  In  the  midst,  instead  of 
a  tomb-stone,  was  a  round  altar,  covered  with  a  plate  of 
brass,  and  thereon  this  engraven  : — 

A.  C.  R  C.     Hoc  universi  compendium  unius  mihi 

sepulchrum  fed. 
Round  about  the  first  circle  or  brim  stood, 

Jesus  mihi  omnia. 

In  the  middle  were  four  figures,  inclosed  in  circles,  whose 
circumscription  was, 

1.  Nequaquam  Vacuum. 

2.  Legis  Jugum. 

3.  Libertas  Evangelii. 

4.  Dei  Gloria  Intacta. 

This  is  all  clear  and  bright,  as  also  the  seventh  side  and  the 
two  heptagons.  So  we  kneeled  down  altogether,  and  gave 
thanks  to  the  sole  wise,  sole  mighty,  and  sole  eternal  God, 
who  hath  taught  us  more  than  all  men's  wits  could  have 
found  out,  praised  be  His  holy  name.  This  vault  we  parted 
in  three  parts,  the  upper  part  or  sieling,  the  wall  or  side, 
the  ground  or  floor.  Of  the  upper  part  you  shall  under- 
stand no  more  at  this  time  but  that  it  was  divided  accord- 
ing to  the  seven  sides  in  the  triangle  which  was  in  the  bright 
center ;  but  what  therein  is  contained  you  (that  are  desirous 
of  our  Society)  shall,  God  willing,  behold  the  same  with 
your  own  eyes.  Every  side  or  wall  is  parted  into  ten 
squares,  every  one  with  their  several  figures  and  sentences, 


78  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

as  they  are  truly  shewed  and  set  forth  concentratum  here  in 
our  book.  The  bottom  again  is  parted  in  the  triangle,  but 
because  therein  is  described  the  power  and  rule  of  the  In- 
ferior Governors,  we  leave  to  manifest  the  same,  for  fear  of 
the  abuse  by  the  evil  and  ungodly  world.  But  those  that  are 
provided  and  stored  with  the  Heavenly  Antidote,  do  without 
fear  or  hurt,  tread  on  and  bruise  the  head  of  the  old  and  evil 
serpent,  which  this  our  age  is  well  fitted  for.  Every  side  or 
wall  had  a  door  for  a  chest,  wherein  there  lay  divers  things, 
especially  all  our  books,  which  otherwise  we  had,  besides 
the  Vocabulario  of  Theophrastus  Paracelsus  of  Hohenheim, 
and  these  which  daily  unfalsifieth  we  do  participate.  Here- 
in also  we  found  his  Itinerarium  and  Vita,  whence  this 
relation  for  the  most  part  is  taken.  In  another  chest  were 
looking-glasses  of  divers  virtues,  as  also  in  other  places  were 
little  bells,  burning  lamps,  and  chiefly  wonderful  artificial 
songs — generally  all  was  done  to  that  end,  that  if  it  should 
happen,  after  many  hundred  years,  the  Fraternity  should  come 
to  nothing,  they  might  by  this  onely  vault  be  restored  again. 
Now,  as  we  had  not  yet  seen  the  dead  body  of  our  care- 
ful and  wise  Father,  we  therefore  removed  the  altar  aside  ; 
then  we  lifted  up  a  strong  plate  of  brass,  and  found  a  fair 
and  worthy  body,  whole  and  unconsumed,  as  the  same  is 
here  lively  counterfeited,1  with  all  the  ornaments  and 
attires.  In  his  hand  he  held  a  parchment  called  T, 2  the 

1  The  illustration  which  is  here  referred  to  is,  singularly  enough, 
not  reproduced  in  the  text  of  the  translation,  and  it  is  also  absent 
from  the  Dutch  version  of  1617.  As  there  are  no  other  editions  of 
the  "  Fama  Fraternitatis  "  in  the  Library  of  the  British  Museum, 
I  also  am  unable  to  gratify  the  curiosity  of  my  readers  by  a  copy  of 
the  original  engraving. 

-  In  the  English  translation  the  letter  I  has  been  substituted  by  a 
typographical  error,  or  by  an  error  of  transcription  for  the  T  which 
is  found  in  all  the  German  editions. 


FAMA  FRATERNITATIS.  79 

which  next  unto  the  Bible  is  our  greatest  treasure,  which 
ought  not  to  be  delivered  to  the  censure  of  the  world.  At 
the  end  of  this  book  standeth  this  following  Elogium. 

Granum  pectori  Jesu  insitum. 

C.  E.  C.  ex  nobili  atque  splendida  Germanise  R.  C.  familia 
oriundus,  vir  sui  seculi  divinis  revelationibus,  subtilissimis 
imaginationibus,  indefessis  laboribus  ad  coelestia  atque 
humana  mysteria  ;  arcanave  admissus  postquam  suam  (quam 
Arabico  at  Africano  itineribus  collejerat)  plus  quam  regiam, 
atque  imperatoriam  Gazam  suo  seculo  nondum  convenien- 
tem,  posteritati  eruendam  custodivisset  et  jam  suarum 
Artium,  ut  et  nominis,  fides  ac  conjunctissimos  heredes 
instituisset,  mundum  minutum  omnibus  motibus  magno 
illi  respondentem  fabricasset  hocque  tandem  preteritarum, 
prsesentium,  etfuturarum,  rerum  compendio  extracto,  cente- 
nario  major,  non  morbo  (quern  ipse  nunquam  corpore  ex- 
pertus  erat,  nunquam  alios  infestare  sinebat)  ullo  pellente 
sed  Spiritis  Dei  evocante,  illuminatam  animam  (inter 
Fratrum  amplexus  et  ultima  oscula)  fidelissimo  Creatori 
Deo  reddidisset,  Pater  delictissimus,  Frater  suavissimus, 
praeceptor  fidelissimus,  amicus  integerimus,  a  suis  ad  120 
annos  hie  absconditus  est. 

Underneath  they  had  subscribed  themselves, 

1.  Fra.  I.  A.     Fra.  C.  H.  electione  Fraternitatis  cajjut. 

2.  Fra.  G.  V.  M.  P.  C. 

3.  Fra.  F.  R.  C.,  Junior  hares  S.  Spiritus. 

4.  Fra.  F.  B.  M.  P.  A.,  Pictor  et  Architectus. 

5.  Fra.  G.  G.  M.  P.  I.,  Cabalista. 

Secundi  Circuli. 

1.  Fra.  P.  A.     Successor,  Fra.  I.  0.,  Mathematics s. 

2.  Fra.  A.     Successor,  Fra.  P.  D. 


, 


8o  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

3.  Fra.  R.  Successor  Patris  C.  R,  C.,  cum  Christo 
trium/phantis. 

At  the  end  was  written, 

Ex  Deo  nascimur,  in  Jesu  morimur,  per  Spiritual  Sanctum 
reviviscimus. 

At  that  time  was  already  dead,  Brother  1.  0.  and 
Brother  D.,  but  their  burial  place  where  is  it  to  be  found  1 
We  doubt  not  but  our  Fra.  Senior  hath  the  same,  and  some 
especial  thing  layd  in  earth,  and  perhaps  likewise  hidden. 
We  also  hope  that  this  our  example  will  stir  up  others 
more  diligently  to  enquire  after  their  names  (which  we 
have  therefore  published),  and  to  search  for  the  place  of 
their  burial ;  the  most  part  of  them,  by  reason  of  their 
practice  and  physick,  are  yet  known  and  praised  among 
very  old  folks ;  so  might  perhaps  our  GAZA  be  enlarged, 
or,  at  least,  be  better  cleared. 

Concerning  Minutum  Mundum,  we  found  it  kept  in 
another  little  altar,  truly  more  finer  then  can  be  imagined 
by  any  understanding  man,  but  we  will  leave  him  un- 
described  untill  we  shall  be  truly  answered  upon  this  our 
true-hearted  FAMA.  So  we  have  covered  it  again  with  the 
plates,  and  set  the  altar  thereon,  shut  the  door  and  made 
it  sure  with  all  our  seals.  Moreover,  by  instruction,  and 
command  of  our  ROTA,  there  are  come  to  sight  some  books, 
among  which  is  contained  M  (which  were  made  instead  of 
household  care  by  the  praiseworthy  M.  P.).  Finally,  we 
departed  the  one  from  the  other,  and  left  the  natural  heirs 
in  possession  of  our  jewels.  And  so  we  do  expect  the 
answer  and  judgment  of  the  learned  and  unlearned. 

Howbeit  we  know  after  a  time  there  will  now  be  a 
general  reformation,  both  of  divine  and  humane  things, 
according  to  our  desire  and  the  expectation  of  others  ;  for 


FAMA  FRATERNITATIS.  81 

it  is  fitting,  that  before  the  rising  of  the  Sun  there  should 
appear  and  break  forth  Aurora,  or  some  clearness,  or  divine 
light  in  the  sky.  And  so,  in  the  meantime,  some  few, 
which  shall  give  their  names,  may  joyn  together,  thereby  to 
increase  the  number  and  respect  of  our  Fraternity,  and 
make  a  happy  and  wished  for  beginning  of  our  PHILOSO- 
PHICAL CANONS,  prescribed  to  us  by  our  Brother  E.  C., 
and  be  partakers  with  us  of  our  treasures  (which  never  can 
fail  or  be  wasted)  in  all  humility  and  love,  to  be  eased  of 
this  world's  labours,  and  not  walk  so  blindly  in  the  know- 
ledge of  the  wonderful  works  of  God. 

But  that  also  every  Christian  may  know  of  what  Religion 
and  belief  we  are,  we  confess  to  have  the  knowledge  of 
Jesus  Christ  (as  the  same  now  in  these  last  days,  and 
chiefly  in  Germany,  most  clear  and  pure  is  professed,  and 
is  now  adays  cleansed  and  voyd  of  all  swerving  people, 
hereticks,  and  false  prophets),  in  certain  and  noted  countries 
maintained,  defended,  and  propagated.     Also  we  use  two 
Sacraments,  as  they  are  instituted  with  all  Formes  and 
Ceremonies  of  the  first  and  renewed  Church.     In  Politia  we 
acknowledge^the  Eoman  Empire  and  Quartam  Monarchiam 
for  our  Christian  head,  albeit  we  know  what  alterations 
be  at  hand,  and  would  fain  impart  the  same  with  all  our 
hearts  to  other  godly  learned  men,  notwithstanding  our 
handwriting  which  is  in  our  hands,  no  man  (except  God 
alone)  can  make  it  common,  nor  any  unworthy  person  is 
able  to  bereave  us  of  it.     But  we  shall  help  with  secret  aid 
this  so  good  a  cause,  as  God  shall  permit  or  hinder  us. 
For  our  God  is  not  blinde,  as  the  heathen's  Fortuna,  but 
is  the  Churches'  ornament  and  the  honour  of  the  Temple. 
Our  Philosophy  also  is  not  a  new  invention,  but  as  Adam 

F 


, 


82  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

after  his  fall  hath  received  it,  and  as  Moses  and  Solomon 
used  it,  also  it  ought  not  much  to  be  doubted  of,  or  con- 
tradicted by  other  opinions,  or  meanings ;  but  seeing  the 
truth  is  peaceable,  brief,  and  always  like  herself  in  all 
things,  and  especially  accorded  by  with  Jesus  in  omni  parte 
and  all  members,  and  as  He  is  the  true  image  of  the 
Father,  so  is  she  His  image,  so  it  shal  not  be  said,  This 
is  true  according  to  Philosophy,  but  true  according  to 
Theologie ;  and  wherein  Plato,  Aristotle,  Pythagoras,  and 
others  did  hit  the  mark,  and  wherein  Enoch,  Abraham, 
Moses,  Solomon,  did  excel,  but  especially  wherewith  that 
wonderful  book  the  Bible  agreeth.  All  that  same  con- 
curreth  together,  and  maketh  a  sphere  or  globe  whose  total 
parts  are  equidistant  from  the  center,  as  hereof  more  at 
large  and  more  plain  shal  be  spoken  of  in  Christianly 
Conference  (in  den  Boecke  des  Levens). 

But  now  concerning,  and  chiefly  in  this  our  age,  the 
ungodly  and  accursed  gold-making,  which  hath  gotten  so 
much  the  upper  hand,  whereby  under  colour  of  it,  many 
runagates  and  roguish  people  do  use  great  villainies,  and 
cozen  and  abuse  the  credit  which  is  given  them  ;  yea,  now 
adays  men  of  discretion  do  hold  the  transmutation  of 
metals  to  be  the  highest  point  and  fastigium  in  philosophy. 
This  is  all  their  intent  and  desire,  and  that  God  would  be 
most  esteemed  by  them  and  honoured  which  could  make 
great  store  of  gold,  the  which  with  unpremeditate  prayers 
they  hope  to  obtain  of  the  alknowing  God  and  searcher  of 
all  hearts  ;  but  we  by  these  presents  publickly  testifie,  that 
the  true  philosophers  are  far  of  another  minde,  esteeming 
little  the  making  of  gold,  which  is  but  a  paragon,  for 
besides  that  they  have  a  thousand  better  things.  We  say 


FA  MA  FRATERNITATIS.  83 

with  our  loving  Father  0.  E.  C.,  Phy.  aurium  nisi  quantum 
aurum,  for  unto  him  the  whole  nature  is  detected;  he 
doth  not  rejoice  that  he  can  make  gold,  and  that,  as 
saith  Christ,  the  devils  are  obedient  unto  him,  but  is 
glad  that  he  seeth  the  Heavens  open,  the  angels  of  God 
ascending  and  descending,  and  his  name  written  in  the 
book  of  life. 

Also  we  do  testifie  that,  under  the  name  of  Chymia,  many 
books  and  pictures  are  set  forth  in  Contumeliam  glorias  Dei, 
as  we  wil  name  them  in  their  due  season,  and  wil  give  to 
the  pure-hearted  a  catalogue  or  register  of  them.  We  pray 
all  learned  men  to  take  heed  of  these  kinde  of*  books,  for 
the  Enemy  never  resteth,  but  soweth  his  weeds  til  a 
stronger  one  doth  root  them  out. 

So,  according  to  the  wil  and  meaning  of  Fra.  C.  R.  C., 
we  his  brethren  request  again  all  the  learned  in  Europe  who 
shal  read  (sent  forth  in  five  languages)  this  our  Fama  and 
Confesb-io,  that  it  would  please  them  with  good  deliberation 
to  ponder  this  our  offer,  and  to  examine  most  nearly  and 
sharply  their  arts,  and  behold  the  present  time  with  all 
diligence,  and  to  declare  their  minde,  either  communicate 
consilio,  or  singulatim  by  print.  And  although  at  this  time 
we  make  no  mention  either  of  our  names  or  meetings,  yet 
nevertheless  every  one's  opinion  shal  assuredly  come  to  our 
hands,  in  what  language  so  ever  it  be,  nor  any  body  shal 
fail,  whoso  gives  but  his  name,  to  speak  with  some  of  us, 
either  by  word  of  mouth,  or  else,  if  there  be  some  lett, 
in  writing.  And  this  we  say  for  a  truth,  that  whosoever 
shal  earnestly,  and  from  his  heart,  bear  affection  unto  us,  it 
shal  be  beneficial  to  him  in  goods,  body,  and  soul ;  but 
he  that  is  false-hearted,  or  onely  greedy  of  riches,  the  same 


. 


84  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

first  of  all  shal  not  be  able  in  any  manner  of  wise  to  hurt 
us,  but  bring  himself  to  utter  ruine  and  destruction.  Also 
our  building,  although  one  hundred  thousand  people  had 
very  near  seen  and  beheld  the  same,  shal  for  ever  remain 
untouched,  undestroyed,  and  hidden  to  the  wicked  world. 
Sub  umbra  alarum  tuarum,  Jehova. 


CHAPTER  IV. 

THE  CONFESSION   OF  THE   ROSICRUCIAN  FRATERNITY, 
ADDRESSED   TO   THE   LEARNED   OF  EUROPE. 

THE  translation  of  this  manifesto  which  follows  the 
Fama  in  the  edition  accredited  by  the  great  name  of 
Eugenius  Philalethes  is  prolix  and  careless  :  being  made 
not  from  the  Latin  original  but  from  the  later  German  ver- 
sion. As  a  relic  of  English  Eosicrucian  literature  I  have 
wished  to  preserve  it,  and  having  subjected  it  to  a  search- 
ing revision  throughout,  it  now  represents  the  original  with 
sufficient  fidelity  for  all  practical  purposes.  The  "  Confessio 
Fraternitatis  "  appeared  in  the  year  1615  in  a  Latin  work 
entitled  "  Secretions  Philosophise  Consideratio  Brevio  a 
Philippo  a  Gabella,  Philosophise  studioso,  conscripta ;  et 
nunc  primum  una  cum  Confessione  Fraternitatis  R  C.,"  in 
lucem  edita,  Cassellis,  excudebat  G.  Wesselius,  a  1615. 
Quarto."  It  was  prefaced  by  the  following  advertisement : — 
"  Here,  gentle  reader,  you  shall  finde  incorporated  in  our 
Confession  thirty-seven  reasons  of  our  purpose  and  inten- 
tion, the  which  according  to  thy  pleasure  thou  mayst  seek 
out  and  compare  together,  considering  within  thyself  if  they 
be  sufficient  to  allure  thee.  Verily,  it  requires  no  small 
pains  to  induce  any  one  to  believe  what  doth  not  yet  appear, 
but  when  it  shall  be  revealed  in  the  full  blaze  of  day,  I 
suppose  we  should  be  ashamed  of  such  questionings.  And 
as  we  do  now  securely  call  the  Pope  Antichrist,  which  was 


. 


86  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

formerly  a  capital  offence  in  every  place,  so  we  know 
certainly  that  what  we  here  keep  secret  we  shall  in  the  future 
thunder  forth  with  uplifted  voice,  the  which,  reader,  with 
us  desire  with  all  thy  heart  that  it  may  happen  most 
speedily.  "  FRATRES  R.  C." 

Confessio  Fraternitatis  R.  C.  ad  Eruditos  Europce. 

CHAPTER    I. 

Whatsoever  you  have  heard,  0  mortals,  concerning  our 
Fraternity  by  the  trumpet  sound  of  the  Fama  R.  C. ,  do  not 
either  believe  it  hastily,  or  wilfully  suspect  it.  It  is  Jehovah 
who,  seeing  how  the  world  is  falling  to  decay,  and  near  to 
its  end,  doth  hasten  it  again  to  its  beginning,  inverting  the 
course  of  Nature,  and  so  what  heretofore  hath  been  sought 
with  great  pains  and  dayly  labor  He  doth  lay  open  now  to 
those  thinking  of  no  such  thing,  offering  it  to  the  willing  and 
thrusting  it  on  the  reluctant,  that  it  may  become  to  the  good 
that  which  will  smooth  the  troubles  of  human  life  and  break 
the  violence  of  unexpected  blows  of  Fortune,  but  to  the  un- 
godly that  which  will  augment  their  sins  and  their  punish- 
ments. 

Although  we  believe  ourselves  to  have  sufficiently  un- 
folded to  you  in  the  Fama  the  nature  of  our  order,  wherein 
we  follow  the  will  of  our  most  excellent  father,  nor  can  by 
any  be  suspected  of  heresy,  nor  of  any  attempt  against  the 
commonwealth,  we  hereby  do  condemn  the  East  and  the 
"West  (meaning  the  Pope  and  Mahomet)  for  their  blasphemies 
against  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  offer  to  the  chief  head 
of  the  Roman  Empire  our  prayers,  secrets,  and  great  trea- 
sures of  gold.  Yet  we  have  thought  good  for  the  sake  of 


CONFESSION  OF  ROSICRUCIAN  FRATERNITY.    87 

the  learned  to  add  somewhat  more  to  this,  and  make  a  better 
explanation,  if  there  be  anything  too  deep,  hidden,  and  set 
down  over  dark,  in  the  Fama,  or  for  certain  reasons  alto- 
gether omitted,  whereby  we  hope  the  learned  will  be  more 
addicted  unto  us,  and  easier  to  approve  our  counsel. 
\ 

CHAPTER  II. 

Concerning  the  amendment  of  philosophy,  we  have  (as 
much  as  at  this  present  is  needful)  declared  that  the  same 
is  altogether  weak  and  faulty  ;  nay,  whilst  many  (I  know 
not  how)  alledge  that  she  is  sound  and  strong,  to  us  it  is 
certain  that  she  fetches  her  last  breath. 

But  as  commonly  even  in  the  same  place  where  there 
breaketh  forth  a  new  disease,  nature  discovereth  a  remedy 
against  the  same,  so  amidst  so  many  infirmities  of  philosophy 
there  do  appear  the  right  means,  and  unto  our  Fatherland 
sufficiently  offered,  whereby  she  may  become  sound  again, 
and  new  or  renovated  may  appear  to  a  renovated  world. 

No  other  philosophy  we  have  then  that  which  is  the  head 
of  all  the  faculties,  sciences,  and  arts,  the  which  (if  we  be- 
hold our  age)  containeth  much  of  Theology  and  Medicine, 
but  little  of  Jurisprudence;  which  searcheth  heaven  and 
earth  with  exquisite  analysis,  or,  to  speak  briefly  thereof, 
which  doth  sufficiently  manifest  the  Microsmus  man,  whereof 
if  some  of  the  more  orderly  in  the  number  of  the  learned 
shall  respond  to  our  fraternal  invitation,  they  shall  find 
among  us  far  other  and  greater  wonders  then  those  they 
heretofore  did  believe,  marvel  at,  and  profess. 

CHAPTER  III. 

Wherefore,  to  declare  briefly  our  meaning  hereof,  it  be- 
comes us  to  labor  carefully  that  the  surprise  of  our  chal- 


88  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

lenge  may  be  taken  from  you,  to  shew  plainly  that  such 
secrets  are  not  lightly  esteemed  by  us,  and  not  to  spread  an 
opinion  abroad  among  the  vulgar  that  the  story  concerning 
them  is  a  foolish  thing.  For  it  is  not  absurd  to  suppose 
many  are  overwhelmed  with  the  conflict  of  thought  which  is 
occasioned  by  our  unhoped  graciousness,  unto  whom  (as  yet) 
be  unknown  the  wonders  of  the  sixth  age,  or  who,  by  reason 
of  the  course  of  the  world,  esteem  the  things  to  come  like 
unto  the  present,  and,  hindered  by  the  obstacles  of  their 
age,  live  no  otherwise  in  the  world  then  as  men  blind,  who, 
in  the  light  of  noon,  discern  nothing  onely  by  feeling. 

CHAPTER  IV. 

Now  concerning  the  first  part,  we  hold^that  the  medita- 
tions of  our  Christian  father  on  all  subjects  which  from  the 
creation  of  the  world  have  been  invented,  brought  forth, 
and  propagated  by  human  ingenuity,  through  God's  revela- 
tion, or  through  the  service  of  Angels  or  spirits,  or  through 
the  sagacity  of  understanding,  or  through  the  experience  of 
long  observation,  are  so  great,  that  if 'all7 books  should 
perish,  and  by  God's  almighty  sufferance  all  writings  and 
all  learning  should  be  lost,  yet  posterity  will  be  able  thereby 
to  lay  a  new  foundation  of  sciences,  and  to  erect  a  new 
citadel  of  truth ;  the  which  perhaps  would  not  be  so  hard 
to  do  as  if  one  should  begin  to  pull  down  and  ^destroy  the 
•  old,  ruinous  building,  then  enlarge  the  fore-court,  after- 
wards bring  light  into  the  private  chambers,  and  then 
change  the  doors,  staples,  and  other  things  according  to  our 
intention. 

Therefore,  it  must  not  be  expected  that  new  comers  shall 
attain  at  once  all  our  weighty  secrets.  They  must  proceed 


CONFESSION  OF  ROSICRUCIAN  FRATERNITY.    89 

step  by  step  from  the  smaller  to  the  greater,  and  must  not 
be  retarded  by  difficulties. 

Wherefore  should  we  not  freely  acquiesce  in  the  onely 
truth  then  seek  through  so  many  windings  and  labyrinths, 
if  onely  it  had  pleased  God  to  lighten  unto  us  the  sixth 
Candelabrum  ]  Were  it  not  sufficient  for  us  to  fear  neither 
hunger,  poverty,  diseases,  nor  age  ?  Were  it  not  an  ex- 
cellent thing  to  live  always  so  as  if  you  had  lived  from  the 
beginning  of  the  world,  and  should  still  live  to  the  end 
thereof  1  So  to  live  in  one  place  that  neither  the  people 
which  dwel  beyond  the  Ganges  could  hide  anything,  nor 
those  which  live  in  Peru  might  be  able  to  keep  secret  their 
counsels  from  thee  1  So  to  read  in  one  onely  book  as  to 
discern,  understand,  and  remember  whatsoever  in  all  other 
books  (which  heretofore  have  been,  are  now,  and  hereafter 
shal  come  out)  hath  been,  is,  and  shal  be  learned  out  of 
them  1  So  to  sing  or  to  play  that  instead  of  stony  rocks 
you  could  draw  pearls,  instead  of  wild  beasts  spirits,  and 
instead  of  Pluto  you  could  soften  the  mighty  princes  of  the 
world  1  O  mortals,  diverse  is  the  counsel  of  God  and  your 
convenience,  Who  hath  decreed  at  this  time  to  encrease  and 
enlarge  the  number  of  our  Fraternity,  the  which  we  with 
such  joy  have  undertaken,  as  we  have  heretofore  obtained 
this  great  treasure  without  our  merits,  yea,  without  any 
hope  or  expectation ;  the  same  we  purpose  with  such  fidelity 
to  put  in  practice,  that  neither  compassion  nor  pity  for  our 
own  children  (which  some  of  us  in  the  Fraternity  have) 
shal  move  us,  since  we  know  that  these  unhoped  for  good 
things  cannot  be  inherited,  nor  be  conferred  promiscuously. 


90  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

CHAPTER  V. 

If  there  be  any  body  now  which  on  the  other  side  wil 
complain  of  our  discretion,  that  we  offer  our  treasures  so 
freely  and  indiscriminately,  and  do  not  rather  regard  more 
the  godly,  wise,  or  princely  persons  then  the  common  people, 
with  him  we  are  in  no  wise  angry  (for  the  accusation  is  not 
without  moment),  but  withall  we  affirm  that  we  have  by  no 
means  made  common  property  of  our  arcana,  albeit  they 
resound  in  five  languages  within  the  ears  of  the  vulgar, 
both  because,  as  we  well  know,  they  will  not  move  gross 
wits,  and  because  the  worth  of  those  who  shal  be  accepted 
into  our  Fraternity  will  not  be  measured  by  their  curiosity, 
but  by  the  rule  and  pattern  of  our  revelations.  A  thousand 
times  the  unworthy  may  clamour,  a  thousand  times  may 
present  themselves,  yet  God  hath  commanded  our  ears  that 
they  should  hear  none  of  them,  and  hath  so  compassed  us 
about  with  His  clouds  that  unto  us,  His  servants,  no 
violence  can  be  done ;  wherefore  now  no  longer  are  we 
beheld  by  human  eyes,  unless  they  have  received  strength 
borrowed  from  the  eagle. 

For  the  rest,  it  hath  been  necessary  that  the  Fama  should 
be  set  forth  in  everyone's  mother  tongue,  lest  those  should 
not  be  defrauded  of  the  knowledge  thereof,  whom  (although 
they  be  unlearned)  God  hath  not  excluded  from  the  happi- 
ness of  this  Fraternity,  which  is  divided  into  degrees ;  as 
those  -which  dwell  in  Damcar,  who  have  a  far  different 
politick  order  from  the  other  Arabians ;  for  there  do  govern 
onely  understanding  men,  who,  by  the  king's  permission, 
make  particular  laws,  according  unto  which  example  the 
government  shall  also  be  instituted  in  Europe  (according  to 
the  description  set  down  by  our  Christianly  Father),  when 


CONFESSION  OF  ROSICRUCIAN  FRA  TERNITY.     91 

that  shal  come  to  pass  which  must  precede,  when  our 
Trumpet  shall  resound  with  full  voice  and  with  no  prevari- 
cations of  meaning,  when,  namely,  those  things  of  which  a 
few  now  whisper  and  darken  with  enigmas,  shall  openly  fill 
the  earth,  even  as  after  many  secret  chafings  of  pious  people 
against  the  pope's  tyranny,  and  after  timid  reproof,  he  with 
great  violence  and  by  a  great  onset  was  cast  down  from  his 
seat  and  abundantly  trodden  under  foot,  whose  final  fall  is 
reserved  for  an  age  when  he  shall  be  torn  in  pieces  with 
nails,  and  a  final  groan  shall  end  his  ass's  braying,  the 
which,  as  we  know,  is  already  manifest  to  many  learned 
men  in  Germany,  as  their  tokens  and  secret  congratulations 
bear  witness. 

CHAPTER    VI. 

We  could  here  relate  and  declare  what  all  the  time  from 
the  year  1378  (when  our  Christian  father  was  born)  till  now 
hath  happened,  what  alterations  he  hath  seen  in  the  world 
these  one  hundred  and  six  years  of  his  life,  what  he  left 
after  his  happy  death  to  be  attempted  by  our  Fathers  and 
by  us,  but  brevity,  which  we  do  observe,  will  not  per- 
mit at  this  present  to  make  rehearsal  of  it ;  it  is  enough  for 
those  which  do  not  despise  our  declaration  to  have  touched 
upon  it,  thereby  to  prepare  the  way  for  their  more  close 
union  and  association  with  us.  Truly,  to  whom  it  is  per- 
mitted to  behold,  read,  and  thenceforward  teach  himself 
those  great  characters  which  the  Lord  God  hath  inscribed 
upon  the  world's  mechanism,  and  which  He  repeats  through 
the  mutations  of  Empires,  such  an  one  is  already  ours,  though 
as  yet  unknown  to  himself ;  and  as  we  know  he  will  not 
neglect  our  invitation,  so,  in  like  manner,  we  abjure  all 
deceit,  for  we  promise  that  no  man's  uprightness  and  hopes 


. 


92  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

shall  deceive  him  who  shall  make  himself  known  to  us  under 
the  seal  of  secresy  and  desire  our  familiarity.  But  to  the 
false  and  to  impostors,  and  to  those  who  seek  other  things 
then  wisdom,  we  witness  by  these  presents  pub  likely,  we 
cannot  be  betrayed  unto  them  to  our  hurt,  nor  be  known  to 
them  without  the  will  of  God,  but  they  shall  certainly  be 
partakers  of  that  terrible  commination  spoken  of  in  our 
Fama,  and  their  impious  designs  shall  fall  back  upon  their 
own  heads,  while  our  treasures  shall  remain  untouched,  till 
the  Lion  shall  arise  and  exact  them  as  his  right,  receive  and 
imploy  them  for  the  establishment. of  his  kingdom. 

CHAPTER  VII. 

One  thing  should  here,  O  mortals,  be  established  by  us, 
that  God  hath  decreed  to  the  world  before  her  end,  which 
presently  thereupon  shall  ensue,  an  influx  of  truth,  light, 
and  grandeur,  such  as  he  commanded  should  accompany 
Adam  from  Paradise  and  sweeten  the  misery  of  man  : 
Wherefore  there  shall  cease  all  falshood,  darkness,  and 
bondage,  which  little  by  little,  with  the  great  globe's  re- 
volution, hath  crept  into  the  arts,  works,  and  governments 
of  men,  darkening  the  greater  part  of  them.  Thence  hath 
proceeded  that  innumerable  diversity  of  persuasions,  falsities, 
and  heresies,  which  makes  choice  difficult  to  the  wisest  men, 
seeing  on  the  one  part  they  were  hindered  by  the  reputa- 
tion of  philosophers  and  on  the  other  by  the  facts  of  experi- 
ence, which  if  (as  we  trust)  it  can  be  once  removed,  and  in- 
stead thereof  a  single  and  self-same  rule  be  instituted,  then 
there  will  indeed  remain  thanks  unto  them  which  have 
taken  pains  therein,  but  the  sum  of  the  so  great  work  shall 
be  attributed  to  the  blessedness  of  our  age. 


CONFESSION  OF  ROSICRUCIAN  FRATERNITY.    93 

As  we  now  confess  that  many  high  intelligences  by  their 
writings  will  be  a  great  furtherance  unto  this  Eeformation 
which  is  to  come,  so  do  we  by  no  means  arrogate  to  our- 
selves this  glory,  as  if  such  a  work  were  onely  imposed  on 
us,  but  we  testify  with  our  Saviour  Christ,  that  sooner  shall 
the  stones  rise  up  and  offer  their  service,  then  there  shall  be 
any  want  of  executors  of  God's  counsel. 

CHAPTER  VIII. 

God,  indeed,  hath  already  sent  messengers  which  should 
testine  His  will,  to  wit,  some  new  stars  which  have  ap- 
peared in  Serpentarius  and  Cygnus,  the  which  powerful 
signs  of  a  great  Council  shew  forth  how  for  all  things  which 
human  ingenuity  discovers,  God  calls  upon  His  hidden 
knowledge,  as  likewise  the  Book  of  Nature,  though  it  stands 
open  truly  for  all  eyes,  can  be  read  or  understood  by  only 
a  very  few. 

As  in  the  human  head  there  are  two  organs  of  hearing, 
two  of  sight,  and  two  of  smell,  but  onely  one  of  speech,  and 
it  were  but  vain  to  expect  speech  from  the  ears,  or  hearing 
from  the  eyes,  so  there  have  been  ages  which  have  seen, 
others  which  have  heard,  others  again  that  have  smelt  and 
tasted.  Now,  there  remains  that  in  a  short  and  swiftly 
approaching  time  honour  should  be  likewise  given  to  the 
tongue,  that  what  formerly  saw,  heard,  and  smelt  shall 
finally  speak,  after  the  world  shall  have  slept  away  the 
intoxication  of  her  poisoned  and  stupefying  chalice,  and 
with  an  open  heart,  bare  head,  and  naked  feet  shall  merrily 
and  joyfully  go  forth  to  meet  the  sun  rising  in  the  morning. 


94  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 


CHAPTER  IX. 

These  characters  and  letters,  as  God  hath  here  and  there 
incorporated  them  in  the  Sacred  Scriptures,  so  hath  He 
imprinted  them  most  manifestly  on  the  wonderful  work  of 
creation,  on  the  heavens,  the  earth,  and  on  all  beasts,  so 
that  as  the  mathematician  predicts  eclipses,  so  we  prognos- 
ticate the  obscurations  of  the  church,  and  how  long  they 
shall  last.  From  these  letters  we  have  borrowed  our 
magick  writing,  and  thence  have  made  for  ourselves  a  new 
language,  in  which  the  nature  of  things  is  expressed,  so 
that  it  is  no  wonder  that  we  are  not  so  eloquent  in  other 
tongues,  least  of  all  in  this  Latin,  which  we  know  to  be  by 
no  means  in  agreement  with  that  of  Adam  and  of  Enoch, 
but  to  have  been  contaminated  by  the  confusion  of  Babel. l 

CHAPTER  x, 

But  this  also  must  by  no  means  be  omitted,  that,  while 
there  are  yet  some  eagle's  feathers  in  our  way,  the  which 
do  hinder  our  purpose,  we  do  exhort  to  the  sole,  onely, 
assiduous,  and  continual  study  of  the  Sacred  Scriptures, 
for  he  that  taketh  all  his  pleasures  therein  shall  know  that 
he  hath  prepared  for  himself  an  excellent  way  to  come  into 
our  Fraternity,  for  this  is  the  whole  sum  of  our  Laws,  that 
as  there  is  not  a  character  in  that  great  miracle  of  the  world 
which  has  not  a  claim  on  the  memory,  so  those  are  nearest 
and  likest  unto  us  who  do  make  the  Bible  the  rule  of  their 
life,  the  end  of  all  their  studies,  and  the  compendium  of 
the  universal  world,  from  whom  we  require  not  that  it 
should  be  continually  in  their  mouth,  but  that  they  should 

1  The  original  reads  Babylonis  confusione,  ' '  by  the  confusion  of 
Babylon." 


CONFESSION  OF  ROSICRUCIAN  FRATERNITY.    95 

appropriately  apply  its  true  interpretation  to  all  ages  of  the 
world,  for  it  is  not  our  custom  so  to  debase  the  divine 
oracle,  that  while  there  are  innumerable  expounders  of  the 
same,  some  adhere  to  the  opinions  of  their  party,  some 
make  sport  of  Scripture  as  if  it  were  a  tablet  of  wax  to  be 
indifferently  made  use  of  by  theologians,  philosophers, 
doctors,  and  mathematicians.  Be  it  ours  rather  to  bear 
witness,  that  from  the  beginning  of  the  world  there  hath 
not  been  given  to  man  a  more  excellent,  admirable,  and 
wholesome  book  then  the  Holy  Bible ;  Blessed  is  he  who 
possesses  it,  more  blessed  is  he  who  reads  it,  most  blessed 
of  all  is  he  who  truly  understandeth  it,  while  he  is  most 
like  to  God  who  both  understands  and  obeys  it. 

CHAPTER  XI. 

Now,  whatsoever  hath  been  said  in  the  Fama,  through 
hatred  of  impostors,  against  the  transmutation  of  metals 
and  the  supreme  medicine  of  the  world,  we  desire  to  be  so 
understood,  that  this  so  great  gift  of  God  we  do  in  no 
manner  set  at  naught,  but  as  it  bringeth  not  always  with 
it  the  knowledge  of  Nature,  while  this  knowledge  bringeth 
forth  both  that  and  an  infinite  number  of  other  natural 
miracles,  it  is  right  that  we  be  rather  earnest  to  attain  to 
the  knowledge  of  philosophy,  nor  tempt  excellent  wits  to 
the  tincture  of  metals  sooner  then  to  the  observation  of 
Nature.  He  must  needs  be  insatiable  to  whom  neither 
poverty,  diseases,  nor  danger  can  any  longer  reach,  who,  as 
one  raised  above  all  men,  hath  rule  over  that  which  doth 
anguish,  afflict,  and  pain  others,  yet  will  give  himself  again 
to  idle  things,  will  build,  make  wars,  and  domineer,  be- 
cause he  hath  of  gold  sufficient,  and  of  silver  an  inexhaust- 


. 


96  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

ible  fountain.  God  judgeth  far  otherwise,  who  exalteth 
the  lowly,  and  casteth  the  proud  into  obscurity  ;  to  the 
silent  he  sendeth  his  angels  to  hold  speech  with  them,  but 
the  babblers  he  driveth  into  the  wilderness,  which  is  the 
judgment  due  to  the  Eoman  impostor  who  now  poureth 
his  blasphemies  with  open  mouth  against  Christ,  nor  yet 
in  the  full  light,  by  which  Germany  hath  detected  his  caves 
and  subterranean  passages,  will  abstain  from  lying,  that 
thereby  he  may  fulfil  the  measure  of  his  sin,  and  be  found 
worthy  of  the  axe.  Therefore,  one  day  it  will  come  to 
pass,  that  the  mouth  of  this  viper  shall  be  stopped,  and  his 
triple  crown  shall  be  brought  to  nought,  of  which  things 
more  fully  when  we  shall  have  met  together. 

CHAPTER  XII. 

For  conclusion  of  our  Confession  we  must  earnestly  ad- 
monish you,  that  you  cast  away,  if  not  all,  yet  most  of  the 
worthless  books  of  pseudo  chymists,  to  whom  it  is  a  jest  to 
apply  the  Most  Holy  Trinity  to  vain  things,  or  to  deceive 
men  with  monstrous  symbols  and  enigmas,  or  to  profit  by 
the  curiosity  of  the  credulous ;  our  age  doth  produce  many 
such,  one  of  the  greatest  being  a  stage-player,  a  man  with 
sufficient  ingenuity  for  imposition ;  such  doth  the  enemy  of 
human  welfare  mingle  among  the  good  seed,  thereby  to 
make  the  truth  more  difficult  to  be  believed,  which  in  her- 
self is  simple  and  naked,  while  falshood  is  proud,  haughty, 
and  coloured  with  a  lustre  of  seeming  godly  and  humane 
wisdom.  Ye  that  are  wise  eschew  such  books,  and  have 
recourse  to  us,  who  seek  not  your  moneys,  but  offer  unto 
you  most  willingly  our  great  treasures.  We  hunt  not  after 
your  goods  with  invented  lying  tinctures,  but  desire  to 
make  you  partakers  of  our  goods.  We  do  not  reject  par- 


CONFESSION  OF  ROSICRUCIAN  FRA7ERNITY.    97 

ables,  but  invite  you  to  the  clear  and  simple  explanation  of 
all  secrets  ;  we  seek  not  to  be  received  of  you,  but  call  you 
unto  our  more  then  kingly  houses  and  palaces,  by  no  motion 
of  our  own,  but  (lest  you  be  ignorant  of  it)  as  forced  thereto 
by  the  Spirit  of  God,  commanded  by  the  testament  of  our 
most  excellent  Father,  and  impelled  by  the  occasion  of  this 
present  time. 

CHAPTER  XIII. 

What  think  you,  therefore,  0  Mortals,  seeing  that  we 
sincerely  confess  Christ,  execrate  the  pope,  addict  ourselves 
to  the  true  philosophy,  lead  a  worthy  life,  and  dayly  call, 
intreat,  and  invite  many  more  unto  our  Fraternity,  unto 
whom  the  same  Light  of  God  likewise  appeareth1?  Con- 
sider you  not  that,  having  pondered  the  gifts  which  are  in 
you,  having  measured  your  understanding  in  the  Word  of 
God,  and  having  weighed  the  imperfection  and  inconsist- 
encies of  all  the  arts,  you  may  at  length  in  the  future  deli- 
berate with  us  upon  their  remedy,  co-operate  in  the  work 
of  God,  and  be  serviceable  to  the  constitution  of  your  time  ? 
On  which  work  these  profits  will  follow,  that  all  those  goods 
which  Nature  hath  dispersed  in  every  part  of  the  earth 
shall  at  one  time  and  altogether  be  given  to  you,  tanquam 
in  centra  soils  et  lurice.  Then  shall  you  be  able  to  expel  from 
the  world  all  those  things  which  darken  human  knowledge 
and  hinder  action,  such  as  the  vain  (astronomical)  epicycles 
and  eccentric  circles. 

CHAPTER  XIV. 

You,  however,  for  whom  it  is  enough  to  be  serviceable 
out  of  curiosity  to  any  ordinance,  or  who  are  dazzled  by 
the  glistering  of  gold,  or  who,  though  now  upright,  might 


98  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

be  led  away  by  such  unexpected  great  riches  into  an  effemin- 
ate, idle,  luxurious,  and  pompous  life,  do  not  disturb  our 
sacred  silence  by  your  clamour,  but  think,  that  although 
there  be  a  medicine  which  might  fully  cure  all  diseases,  yet 
those  whom  God  wishes  to  try  or  to  chastise  shall  not  be 
abetted  by  such  an  opportunity,  so  that  if  we  were  able  to 
enrich  and  instruct  the  whole  world,  and  liberate  it  from 
innumerable  hardships,  yet  shall  we  never  be  manifested 
unto  any  man  unless  God  should  favour  it,  yea,  it  shall  be 
so  far  from  him  who  thinks  to  be  partaker  of  our  riches 
against  the  will  of  God  that  he  shall  sooner  lose  his  life  in 
seeking  us,  then  attain  happiness  by  finding  us. 

FRATERNITAS  E.  C. 


CHAPTER  V. 

THE  CHYMICAL  MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ. 

THE  whole  Rosicrucian  controversy  centres  in  this  publica- 
tion, which  Buhle  describes  as  "a  comic  romance  of  extra- 
ordinary talent."  It  was  first  published  at  Strasbourg  in 
the  year  1616,  but,  as  will  be  seen  in  the  seventh  chapter, 
it  is  supposed  to  have  existed  in  manuscript  as  early  as 
1601-2,  thus  antedating  by  a  long  period  the  other  Rosi- 
crucian books.  Two  editions  of  the  German  original  are 
preserved  in  the  Library  of  the  British  Museum,  both  bear- 
ing the  date  1616.1  It  was  translated  into  English  for  the 
first  time  in  1690,  under  the  title  of  "The  Hermetic 
Romance:  or  The  Chymical  Wedding.  Written  in  High 
Dutch  by  Christian  Rosencreutz.  Translated  by  E.  Fox- 
croft,  late  Fellow  of  King's  Colledge  in  Cambridge. 
Licensed  and  entered  according  to  Order.  Printed  by  A. 
Sowle,  at  the  Crooked  Billet  in  Holloway-Lane,  Shoreditch ; 
and  Sold  at  the  Three-Keys  in  Nags-Head-Court,  Grace- 
church-street."  It  is  this  translation  in  substance,  that 
is,  compressed  by  the  omission  of  all  irrelevant  matter  and 
dispensable  prolixities,  which  I  now  offer  to  the  rreader. 

1  "  Chymische  Hochzeit :  Christian!  Rosencreutz.  Anno  1459. 
Erstlick  Gedrucktzor  Strasbourg.  Anno  M.DC.XVI."  The  second 
edition  was  printed  by  Conrad  Echer. 


TOO  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

The  Chymical  Marriage  of  Christian  Bosencreutz.     Anno  1459. 

Arcana  publicata  vilescunt,  et  gratiam  prophanata  amittunt. 
Ergo :  ne  Margaritas  objice  porcis,  sen  Asino  substernere  rosas. 

THE  FIRST  BOOK. 
The  First  Day. 

On  an  evening  before  Easter-day,  I  sate  at  a  table,  and 
having  in  my  humble  prayer  conversed  with  my  Creator  and 
considered  many  great  mysteries  (whereof  the  Father  of 
Lights  had  shewn  me  not  a  few),  and  being  now  ready  to 
prepare  in  my  heart,  together  with  my  dear  Paschal  Lamb, 
a  small,  unleavened,  undefiled  cake,  all  on  a  sudden  ariseth  so 
horrible  a  tempest,  that  I  imagined  no  other  but  that,  through 
its  mighty  force,  the  hill  whereon  my  little  house  was 
founded  would  fly  all  in  pieces.  But  inasmuch  as  this,  and 
the  like,  from  the  devil  (who  had  done  me  many  a  spight) 
was  no  new  thing  to  me,  I  took  courage,  and  persisted  in 
my  meditation  till  somebody  touched  me  on  the  back, 
whereupon  I  was  so  hugely  terrified  that  I  durst  hardly  look 
about  me,  yet  I  shewed  myself  as  cheerful  as  humane  frailty 
would  permit.  Now  the  same  thing  still  twitching  me 
several  times  by  the  coat,  I  glanced  back  and  behold  it  was 
Praeconissa  a  fair  and  glorious  lady,  whose  garments  were  all  skye- 
colour,  and  curiously  bespangled  with  golden  stars.  In  her 
right  hand  she  bare  a  trumpet  of  beaten  gold,  whereon  a 
Name  was  ingraven  which  I  could  well  read  but  am  forbidden 
as  yet  to  reveal.  In  her  left  hand  she  had  a  great  bundle  of 
letters  in  all  languages,  which  she  (as  I  afterwards  under- 
stood) was  to  carry  into  all  countries.  She  had  also  large 
and  beautiful  wings,  full  of  eyes  throughout,  wherewith  she 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.  101 

could  mount  aloft,  and  flye  swifter  than  any  eagle.  As  soon 
as  I  turned  about,  she  looked  through  her  letters,  and  at 
length  drew  out  a  small  one,  which,  with  great  reverence, 
she  laid  upon  the  table,  and,  without  one  word,  departed 
from  me.  But  in  her  mounting  upward,  she  gave  so 
mighty  a  blast  on  her  gallant  trumpet  that  the  whole  hill 
echoed  thereof,  and  for  a  full  quarter  of  an  hour  afterward 
I  could  hardly  hear  my  own  words. 

In  so  unlooked  for  an  adventure  I  was  at  a  loss  how  to 
advise  myself,  and,  therefore,  fell  upon  my  knees,  and  be- 
sought my  Creator  to  permit  nothing  contrary  to  my  eternal 
happiness  to  befall  me,  whereupon,  with  fear  and  trembling, 
I  went  to  the  letter,  which  was  now  so  heavy  as  almost  to  Epistoia. 
outweigh  gold.  As  I  was  diligently  viewing  it,  I  found  a 
little  Seal,  whereupon  was  ingraven  a  curious  Cross,  with  sit 

this  inscription  IN  Hoc  SIGNO    y^  VINCES. 

As  soon  as  I  espied  this  sign  I  was  comforted,  not  being 
ignorant  that  it  was  little  acceptable,  and  much  less  useful, 
to  the  devil.  Whereupon  I  tenderly  opened  the  letter,  and 
within  it,  in  an  azure  field,  in  golden  letters,  found  the 
following  verses  written  : — 

"  This  day,  this  day,  this,  this 

The  Royal  Wedding  is. 
Art  thou  thereto  by  birth  inclined, 
And  unto  joy  of  God  design'd? 
Then  may'st  thou  to  the  mountain  tend 
Whereon  three  stately  Temples  stand, 
And  there  see  all  from  end  to  end. 

Keep  watch  and  ward, 

Thyself  regard  ; 

Unless  with  diligence  thou  bathe, 
The  Wedding  can't  thee  harmless  save  : 
He'll  damage  have  that  here  delays  ; 
Let  him  beware  too  light  that  weighs." 


102 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


hospitibus 


Underneath  stood  Sponsus  and  Sponsa. 

D«  Nuptiis.  As  soon  as  I  read  this  letter,  I  was  like  to  have  fainted 
away,  all  my  hair  stood  on  end,  and  cold  sweat  trickled 
down  my  whole  body.  For  although  I  well  perceived  that 
this  was  the  appointed  wedding  whereof  seven  years  before 
I  was  acquainted  in  a  bodily  vision,  and  which  I  had  with 
great  earnestness  attended,  and  which,  lastly,  by  the  account 
and  calculation  of  the  plannets,  I  found  so  to  be,  yet  could 
i  never  fore-see  that  it  must  happen  under  so  grievous 
an(^  Peril°us  conditions.  For  whereas  I  before  imagined 
that  to  be  a  well-come  guest,  I  needed  onely  to  appear  at 
the  wedding,  I  was  now  directed  to  Divine  Providence,  of 
which  until  this  time  I  was  never  certain.  I  also  found, 
the  more  I  examined  myself,  that  in  my  head  there  was 
onely  gross  misunderstanding,  and  blindness  in  mysterious 
things,  so  that  I  was  not  able  to  comprehend  even  those 
things  which  lay  under  my  feet,  and  which  I  daily  con- 
versed  with,  much  less  that  I  should  be  born  to  the  search- 
ing  out  and  understanding  of  the  secrets  of  Nature,  since, 

3,  4.  Naturae  in  my  opinion,  Nature  might  everywhere  find  a  more  ver- 

S6Cl*6ttl» 

tuous  disciple,  to  whom  to  intrust  her  precious,  though 
temporary  and  changeable  treasures.  I  found  also  that  my 
bodily  behaviour,  outward  conversation,  and  brotherly  love 

J 

toward  my  neighbour  was  not  duly  purged  and  cleansed. 
Moreover,  the  tickling  of  the  flesh  manifested  itself,  whose 
affection  was  bent  only  to  pomp,  bravery,  and  worldly 
pride,  not  to  the  good  ef  mankind  ;  and  I  was  always  con- 
triving how  by  this  art  I  might  in  a  short  time  abundantly 
increase  my  advantage,  rear  stately  palaces,  make  myself 
an  everlasting  name,  and  other  the  like  carnal  designs. 
But  the  obscure  words  concerning  the  three  Temples  did 
particularly  afflict  me,  which  I  was  not  able  to  make  out  by 


i.  Eiectio 

incerta. 


2.  inscitia 

Ignorantia 


raentis. 


5>6- 


affectio. 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.   103 

any  after-speculation.  Thus  sticking  between  hope  and 
fear,  examining  myself  again  and  again,  and  finding  only 
my  own  frailty  and  impotency,  and  exceedingly  amazed  at 
the  fore-mentioned  threatening,  at  length  I  betook  myself 
to  my  usual  course.  After  I  had  finished  my  most  fervent 
prayer,  I  laid  me  down  in  my  bed,  that  so  perchance  my 
good  angel  by  the  Divine  permission  might  appear,  and  (as 
it  had  formerly  happened)  instruct  me  in  this  affair,  which, 
to  the  praise  of  God,  did  now  likewise  fall  out.  For  I  was 
yet  scarce  asleep  when  me-thought  I,  together  with  a  num- 
berless  multitude  of  men,  lay  fettered  with  great  chains  in  S( 
a  dark  dungeon,  wherein  we  swarmed  like  bees  one  over  Turris 
another,  and  thus  rendered  each  other's  affliction  more 
grievous.  But  although  neither  I,  nor  any  of  the  rest, 
could  see  one  jot,  yet  I  continually  heard  one  heaving  him- 
self above  the  other,  when  his  chains  or  fetters  were  become 
ever  so  little  lighter.  Now  as  I  with  the  rest  had  con- 
tinued a  good  while  in  this  affliction,  and  each  was  still 
reproaching  the  other  with  his  blindness  and  captivity,  at 
length  we  heard  many  trumpets  sounding  together,  and 
kettle-drums  beating  so  artificially  thereto,  that  it  rejoyced 
us  even  in  our  calamity. 

During  this  noise  the  cover  of  the  dungeon  was  lifted  up, 
and  a  little  light  let  down  unto  us.  Then  first  might  truly  niustratio. 
have  been  discerned  the  bustle  we  kept,  for  all  went  pesle- 
mesle,  and  he  who  perchance  had  too  much  heaved  up  him- 
self was  forced  down  again  under  the  others'  feet.  In 
brief,  each  one  strove  to  be  uppermost,  neither  did  I  linger, 
but,  with  my  weighty  fetters,  slipt  from  under  the  rest,  and 
then  heaved  myself  upon  a  Stone ;  howbeit,  I  was  several 
times  caught  at  by  others,  from  whom,  as  well  as  I  might, 
I  guarded  myself  with  hands  and  feet.  We  imagined  that 


104  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCTANS. 

we  should  all  be  set  at  liberty,  which  yet  fell  out  quite 
otherwise,  for  after  the  nobles  who  looked  upon  us  through 
the  hole  had  recreated  themselves  with  our  struggling,  a 
Magister  certain  hoary-headed  man  called  to  us  to  be  quiet,  and, 
having  obtained  it,  began  thus  to  say  on : 


careens. 


If  wretched  mortals  would  forbear 

Themselves  to  so  uphold, 
Then  sure  on  them  much  good  confer 

My  righteous  Mother  would  : 
But  since  the  same  will  not  insue, 
They  must  in  care  and  sorrow  rue, 
Vide  S.  And  still  in  prison  lie. 

sS^'de  7  Howbeit,  my  dear  Mother  will 

Fragmentis  Their  follies  over-see, 

Her  choicest  goods  permitting  still 

Too  much  in  Light  to  be. 
Wherefore,  in  honour  of  the  feast 

We  this  day  solemnize, 
That  so  her  grace  may  be  increast, 

A  good  deed  she'll  devise  ; 
For  now  a  cord  shall  be  let  down, 
And  whosoe'er  can  hang  thereon 

Shall  freely  be  releast. 

He  had  scarce  done  speaking  when  an  Antient  Matron 
commanded  her  servants  to  let  down  the  cord  seven  times 
into  the  dungeon,  and  draw  up  whomsoever  could  hang  upon 
it.  Good  God  !  that  I  could  sufficiently  describe  the  hurry 
that  arose  amongst  us  ;  every  one  strove  to  reach  the  cord, 
and  only  hindred  each  other.  After  seven  minutes  a  little 
bell  rang,  whereupon  at  the  first  pull  the  servants  drew  up 

Prima  four.  At  that  time  I  could  not  come  near  the  cord,  having 
to  my  huge  misfortune  betaken  myself  to  the  stone  at  the 
wall,  whereas  the  cord  descended  in  the  middle.  The  cord 

secunda.  was  let  down  the  second  time,  but  divers, because  their  chains 
were  too  heavy,  and  their  hands  too  tender,  could  not  keep 
hold  on  it,  and  brought  down  others  who  else  might  have 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.  105 

held  on  fast  enough.  Nay,  many  were  forcibly  pulled  off 
by  those  who  could  not  themselves  get  at  it,  so  envious  were 
we  even  in  this  misery.  But  they  of  all  most  moved  my 
compassion  whose  weight  was  so  heavy  that  they  tore  their 
hands  from  their  bodies  and  yet  could  not  get  up.  Thus  it 
came  to  pass  that  at  these  five  times  very  few  were  drawn 
up,  for,  as  soon  as  the  sign  was  given,  the  servants  were  so 
nimble  at  the  draught  that  the  most  part  tumbled  one  upon 
another.  Whereupon,  the  greatest  part,  and  even  myself, 
despaired  of  redemption,  and  called  upon  God  to  have  pitty 
on  us,  and  deliver  us  out  of  this  obscurity,  who  also  heard 
some  of  us,  for  when  the  cord  came  down  the  sixth  time,  sexta. 
some  hung  themselves  fast  upon  it,  and  whilst  it  swung  from 
one  side  to  the  other,  it  came  to  me,  which  I  suddenly 
catching,  got  uppermost,  and  so  beyond  all  hope  came  out ; 
whereat  I  exceedingly  rejoyced,  perceiving  not  the  wound 
which  in  the  drawing  up  I  received  on  my  head  by  a  sharp  Vuinus 
stone,  till  I,  with  the  rest  of  the  released  (as  was  always  cSta°tis. 
before  done)  was  fain  to  help  at  the  seventh  and  last  pull,  at  septima. 
which,  through  straining,  the  blood  ran  down  my  cloathes. 
This,  nevertheless,  through  joy  I  regarded  not. 

When  the  last  draught,  whereon  the  most  of  all  hung, 
was  finished,  the  Matron  caused  the  cord  to  be  laid  away, 
and  willed  her  aged  son  to  declare  her  resolution  to  the  rest  Magistrse 
of  the  prisoners,  who  thus  spoke  unto  them. 

Ye  children  dear 

All  present  here, 

What  is  but  now  compleat  and  done 
Was  long  before  resolved  on  ; 
Whate'er  my  mother  of  great  grace 
To  each  on  both  sides  here  hath  shown  ; 
May  never  discontent  misplace  ! 
The  joyful  time  is  drawing  on 


io6 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Magistra 
recens  et 
evectos. 

Secretarus 


Cur  non 

omnes 

evecti. 


Gratitude 

auctoris 

evecti. 


Nummus 
aureus. 


0 


Deus  Lux 
solis,  vel 
Deo  laus 
semper. 


When  every  one  shall  equal  be — 
None  wealthy,  none  in  penury. 
Whoe'er  receiveth  great  commands 
Hath  work  enough  to  fill  his  hands 
Whoe'er  with  much  hath  trusted  been, 
'Tis  well  if  he  may  save  his  skin  ; 
Wherefore,  your  lamentations  cease, 
What  is't  to  waite  for  some  few  dayes  ? 

The  cover  was  now  again  put  to  and  locked,  the  trumpets 
and  kettle-drums  began  afresh,  yet  the  bitter  lamentation 
of  the  prisoners  was  heard  above  all,  and  soon  caused  my 
eyes  to  run  over.  Presently  the  Antient  Matron,  together 
with  her  son,  sate  down,  and  commanded  the  Eedeemed 
should  be  told.  As  soon  as  she  had  written  down  their 
number  in  a  gold-yellow  tablet,  she  demanded  everyone's 
name ;  this  was  also  written  down  by  a  little  page.  Having 
viewed  us  all,  she  sighed,  and  said  to  her  son — "  Ah,  how 
hartily  am  I  grieved  for  the  poor  men  in  the  dungeon  !  I 
would  to  God  I  durst  release  them  all."  Whereunto  her 
son  replied — "  Mother,  it  is  thus  ordained  by  God,  against 
Whom  we  may  not  contend.  In  case  we  all  of  us  were  lords, 
and  were  seated  at  table,  who  would  there  be  to  bring  up 
the  service  ! "  At  this  his  mother  held  her  peace,  but  soon 
after  she  said — "  Well,  let  these  be  freed  from  their  fetters," 
which  was  presently  done,  and  I,  though  among  the  last, 
could  not  refrain,  but  bowed  myself  before  the  Antient 
Matron,  thanking  God  that  through  her  had  graciously 
vouchsafed  to  bring  me  out  of  darkness  into  light.  The 
rest  did  likewise  to  the  satisfaction  of  the  matron.  Lastly, 
to  every  one  was  given  a  piece  of  gold  for  a  remembrance, 
and  to  spend  by  the  way.  On  the  one  side  thereof  was 
stamped  the  rising  sun ;  on  the  other  these  three  letters 
D  L  S  ;  therewith  all  had  license  to  depart  to  his  own 
business,  with  this  intimation,  that  we  to  the  glory  of  God 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.  107 

should  benefit  our  neighbours,  and  reserve  in  silence  what  we  had 

been  intrusted  with,  which  we  promised  to  do,  and  departed  one  Mandatum 

Taciturni- 

from  another.     Because  of  the  wounds  the  fetters  had  caused  tatis- 
me,  I  could  not  well  go  forward,  which  the  matron  presently 
espying,  calling  me  again  to  her  side,  said  to  me  —  "  My  son,  Discessus 

eiutoris. 

let  not  this  defect  afflict  thee,  but  call  to  mind  thy  infirmi- 
ties, and  thank  God  who  hath  permitted  thee,  even  in  this 
world,  to  come  into  so  high  a  light.  Keep  these  wounds 
for  my  sake."  vuinus  ex 

Whereupon  the  trumpets  began  again  to  sound,  which  so 
affrighted  me  that  I  awoke,  and  perceived  that  it  was  onely 


a  dream,  which  yet  was  so  impressed  on  my  imagination 
that  I  was  perpetually  troubled  about  it,  and  methought  I 
was  still  sensible  of  the  wounds  on  my  feet.     By  all  these 
things  I  well  understood  that  God  had  vouchsafed  me  to  be  solatium. 
present  at  this  mysterious  and  hidden  Wedding,  wherefore 
with  childlike  confidence  I  returned  thanks  to  His  Divine 
Majesty,  and  besought  Him  that  He  would  preserve  me  in  Precatio. 
His  fear,  daily  fill  my  heart  with  wisdom  and  understand- 
ing. and  graciously  conduct  me  to  the  desired  end.    There- 
upon I  prepared  myself  for  the  way,  put  on  my  white  Prseparatio 

iid  itcr 

linnen  coat,  girded  my  loyns,  with  a  blood-red  ribbon 
bound  cross-  ways  over  my  shoulder.  In  my  hat  I  stuck 
four  red  roses,  that  I  might  the  sooner  by  this  token  be 
taken  notice  of  amongst  the  throng.  For  food  I  took 
bread,  salt,  and  water,  which  by  the  counsel  of  an  under- 
standing person  I  had  at  certain  times  used,  not  without 
profit,  in  the  like  occurrences.  Before  I  parted  from  my 
cottage,  I  first,  in  this  my  wedding  garment,  fell  down  upon 
my  knees,  and  besought  God  to  vouchsafe  me  a  good  issue. 
I  made  a  vow  that  if  anything  should  by  His  Grace  be  re-  votum. 
vealed  to  me,  I  would  imploy  it  neither  to  my  own  honour 


io8  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


nor  authority  in  the  world,  but  to  the  spreading  of  His 
name,  and  the  service  of  my  neighbour.  With  this  vow  I 
departed  out  of  my  cell  with  joy. 

The  Second  Day. 

I  was  hardly  got  out  of  my  cell  into  a  forrest  when  me- 
thought  the  whole  heaven  and  all  the  elements  had 
trimmed  themselves  against  this  wedding.  Even  the  birds 

ob  nuptias.  chanted  more  pleasantly  then  before,  and  the  young  fawns 
skipped  so  merrily  that  they  rejoiced  my  old  heart,  and 
moved  me  also  to  sing  with  such  a  loud  voice  throughout 

perSyivam.  the  whole  forrest,  that  it  resounded  from  all  parts,  the 
hills  repeating  my  last  words,  until  at  length  I  espyed  a 

incampam.    curious  green  heath,  whither  I  betook  myself  out  of  the 

3  cedri.  forrest.  Upon  this  heath  stood  three  tall  cedars,  which 
afforded  an  excellent  shade,  whereat  I  greatly  rejoyced,  for, 
although  I  had  not  gone  far,  my  earnest  longing  made  me 
faint.  As  soon  as  I  came  somewhat  nigh,  I  espyed  a  tablet 


i.  '  fastened  to  one  of  them,  on  which  the  following  words  were 

written  in  curious  letters  : — 

God  save  thee,  Stranger  !  If  thou  hast  heard  anything 
concerning  the  nuptials  of  the  King,  consider  these  words. 
By  us  doth  the  Bridegroom  offer  thee  a  choice  between 
foure  ways,  all  of  which,  if  thou  dost  not  sink  down  in  the 
way,  can  bring  thee  to  his  royal  court.  The  first  is  short 
but  dangerous,  and  one  which  will  lead  thee  into  rocky 
places,  through  which  it  will  be  scarcely  possible  to  pass. 
The  second  is  longer,  and  takes  thee  circuitously ;  it  is 
plain  and  easy,  if  by  the  help  of  the  Magnet,  thou  turnest 
neither  to  left  nor  right.  The  third  is  that  truly  royal 
way  which  through  various  pleasures  and  pageants  of  our 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.  109 

King,  affords  thee  a  joyful  journey;  but  this  so  far  has 
scarcely  been  allotted  to  one  in  a  thousand.  By  the  fourth  4. 
shall  no  man  reach  the  place,  because  it  is  a  consuming  way, 
practicable  onely  for  incorruptible  bodys.  Choose  now 
which  thou  wilt  of  the  three,  and  persevere  constantly 
therein,  for  know  whichsoever  thou  shalt  enter,  that  is  the 
one  destined  for  thee  by  immutable  Fate,  nor  canst  thou  go 
back  therein  save  at  great  peril  to  life.  These  are  the 
things  which  we  would  have  thee  know,  but,  ho,  beware  ! 
thou  knowest  not  with  how  much  danger  thou  dost  commit 
thyself  to  this  way,  for  if  thou  knowest  thyself  by  the 
smallest  fault  to  be  obnoxious  to  the  laws  of  our  King,  I 
beseech  thee,  while  it  is  still  possible,  to  return  swiftly  to 
thy  house  by  the  way  which  thou  earnest. 

As  soon  as  I  had  read  this  writing  all  my  joy  vanished, 
and  I,  who  before  sang  merrily,  began  inwardly  to  lament. 
For  although  I  saw  all  three  ways  before  me,  and  it  was  via  authoris 
vouchsafed  me  to  make  choice  of  one,  yet  it  troubled  me  e 
that  in  case  I  went  the  stony  and  rocky  way,  I  might  get  a 
deadly   fall ;    or,   taking   the   long   one,   I   might  wander 
through  bye- ways   and  be  detained  in  the  great  journey. 
Neither  durst  I  hope  that  I,  amongst  thousands,  should  be 
the  one  who  should  choose  the  Royal  way.     I  saw  likewise 
the  fourth  before  me,  but  so  invironed  with  fire  and  exhala- 
tion that  I  durst  not  draw  near  it,  and,  therefore,  again 
and  again  considered  whether  I  should  turn  back  or  take 
one  of  the  ways  before  me.     I  well  weighed  my  own  un- 
worthiness,  and  though  the  dream,  that  I  was  delivered  out 
of  the  tower,  still  comforted  me,  yet  I  durst  not  confidently 
rely  upon  it.     I  was  so  perplexed  that,  for  great  weariness, 
hunger  and  thirst  seized  me,  whereupon  I  drew  out  my 
bread,  cut  a  slice  of  it,  which  a  snow-white  dove,  of  whom 


110 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Columba 
alba  arbori 
mercurial! 
insidens. 


Corvus 
niger. 


Versus 
Meridiem. 


Autor  in 
cidit  in 
2  viam 
incogitanter 


Compassus. 


Diyersorium 
Occasus. 

0 


I  was  not  aware,  sitting  upon  the  tree,  espyed  and  there- 
with came  down,  betaking  herself  very  familiarly  to  me,  to 
whom  I  willingly  imparted  my  food,  which  she  received, 
and  with  her  prettiness  did  again  a  little  refresh  me.  But 
as  soon  as  her  enemy,  a  most  black  Raven,  perceived  it,  he 
straight  darted  down  upon  the  dove,  and  taking  no  notice 
of  me,  would  needs  force  away  her  meat,  who  could  not 
otherwise  guard  herself  but  by  flight.  Whereupon,  both 
together  flew  toward  the  South,  at  which  I  was  so  hugely 
incensed  and  grieved,  that  without  thinking,  I  made  haste 
after  the  filthy  Raven,  and  so,  against  my  will,  ran  into  one 
of  the  fore-mentioned  ways  a  whole  field's  length.  The 
Raven  being  thus  chased  away,  and  the  Dove  delivered,  I  first 
observed  what  I  had  inconsiderately  done,  and  that  I  was 
already  entered  into  a  way,  from  which,  under  peril  of  pun- 
ishment, I  durst  not  retire,  and  though  I  had  still  where- 
with to  comfort  myself,  yet  that  which  was  worst  of  all  was, 
that  I  had  left  my  bag  and  bread  at  the  Tree,  and  could 
never  retrieve  them,  for  as  soon  as  I  turned  myself  about, 
a  contrary  wind  was  so  strong  against  me  that  it  was  ready 
to  fell  me,  but  if  I  went  forward,  I  perceived  no  hindrance, 
wherefore  I  patiently  took  up  my  cross,  got  upon  my  feet, 
and  resolved  I  would  use  my  utmost  endeavour  to  get  to  my 
journey's  end  before  night.  Now,  although  many  apparent 
byways  showed  themselves,  I  still  proceeded  with  my  com- 
pass, and  would  not  budge  one  step  from  the  meridian  line. 
Howbeit,  the  way  was  oftentimes  so  rugged  that  I  was  in 
no  little  doubt  of  it.  I  constantly  thought  upon  the  Dove 
and  Raven,  and  yet  could  not  search  out  the  meaning,  until 
upon  a  high  hill  afar  off  I  espyed  a  stately  Portal,  to  which, 
not  regarding  that  it  was  distant  from  the  way  I  was  in,  I 
hasted,  because  the  sun  had  already  hid  himself  under  the 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.  in 

hills,  and  I  could  elsewhere  see  no  abiding  place,  which  I 
verily  ascribe  only  to  God,  Who  might  have  permitted  me 
to  go  forward,  and  withheld  my  eyes  that  so  I  might  have 
gazed  beside  this  gate,  to  which  I  now  made  mighty  haste, 
and  reached  it  by  so  much  daylight  as  to  take  a  competent 
view  of  it.  It  was  an  exceeding  Koyal,  beautiful  Portal, 
whereon  were  carved  a  multitude  of  most  noble  figures  and 
devices,  every  one  of  which  (as  I  afterwards  learned)  had  its 
peculiar  signification.  Above  was  fixed  a  pretty  large 
Tablet,  with  these  words,  "Procul  hinc  procul  ite  profani"  and  Tabula  in- 
more  that  I  was  forbidden  to  relate.  As  soon  as  I  was 
come  unto  the  portal,  there  streight  stepped  forth  one  in  a  Portitor. 
sky-coloured  habit,  whom  I  saluted  in  friendly  manner. 
Though  he  thankfully  returned  my  greeting,  he  instantly 
demanded  my  Letter  of  Invitation.  O  how  glad  was  I  Liter*  con- 
that  I  had  brought  it  with  me  !  How  easily  might  I  have 
forgotten  it  as  chanced  to  others,  as  he  himself  told  me.  I 
quickly  presented  it,  wherewith  he  was  not  only  satisfied, 
but  showed  me  abundance  of  respect,  saying,  "  Come  in, 
my  Brother,  an  acceptable  guest -you  are  to  me,"  withal 
entreating  me  not  to  withhold  my  name  from  him. 

Having  replied  that  I  was  a  Brother  of  the  RED  EOSIE  Nomen 

...  authoris. 

CROSS,  he  both  wondred  and  seemed  to  rejoyce  at  it,  and  then 
proceeded  thus  : — "  My  brother,  have  you  nothing  about  you 
wherewith  to  purchase  a  token  ?  "   I  answered  my  ability  was 
small,  but  if  he  saw  anything  about  me  he  had  a  mind  to, 
it  was  at  his  service.     Having  requested  of  me  my  bottle  of  Emitur  aqua 
water,  and  I  granting  it,  he  gave  me  a  golden  token,  whereon  T 
stood  these  letters,  S.C.,  entreating  me  that  when  it  stood  sanctitati 
me  in  good  stead,  I  would  remember  him.     After  which  sponsus 

charus. 

I  asked  him  how  many  were  got  in  before  me,  which  he  Spes 

•*  charitas. 

also  told  me  ;  and  lastly,  out  of  meer  friendship,  gave  me  a 


ii2  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Diploma.  sealed  letter  to  the  second  Porter.  Having  lingered  some 
time  with  him,  the  night  grew  on,  whereupon  a  great 
beacon  upon  the  gate  was  immediately  fired,  that  if  any 
were  still  upon  the  way,  he  might  make  haste  thither. 
The  road  where  it  finished  at  the  castle  was  enclosed  with 

Castnium.  walls,  and  planted  with  all  sorts  of  excellent  fruit  trees. 
On  every  third  tree  on  each  side  lanterns  were  hung  up, 
wherein  all  the  candles  were  lighted  with  a  glorious  torch 

Virgo          by  a  beautiful  Virgin,  habited  in  skye-colour,  which  was  so 

lucifera.  J 

noble  and  majestic  a  spectacle  that  I  delayed  longer  then 
The  Lady  was  requisite.  At  length,  after  an  advantageous  instruc- 

tion, I  departed  from  the  first  porter,  and  so  went  on  the 

way,  until  I  came  to  the  second  gate,  which  was  adorned 
Porta  with  images  and  mystick  significations.  In  the  affixed 

Tablet  stood  —  Date  et  dabitur  volis.     Under  this  gate  lay  a 


Custos  Leo.  terrible  Lyon,  chained,  who,  as  soon  as  he  espied  me,  arose 
and  made  at  me  with  great  roaring,  whereupon  the  second 

2  Portitor.  porter,  who  lay  upon  a  stone  of  marble,  awaked,  and  wish- 
ing me  not  to  be  troubled  nor  affrighted,  drove  back  the 
lyon,  and  having  received  the  letter,  which  I  reached  him 
with  trembling  hand,  he  read  it,  and  with  great  respect 
spake  thus  to  me  ;  —  "  Now  well-come  in  God's  name  unto 
me  the  man  whom  of  long  time  I  would  gladly  have  seen  !  '  ' 
Meanwhile,  he  also  drew  out  a  token,  and  asked  me  whether 

Tessera  I  could  purchase  it.  But  I,  having  nothing  else  left  but 
my  salt,  presented  it  to  him,  which  he  thankfully  accepted. 

studio         Upon  this  token  again  stood   two   letters,  namely,   S.M. 

merentis 

Sai  humor    Being  just  about  to  discourse  with  him,  it  began  to  ring  in 

Sponso 

mittendus     the  castle,  whereupon  the   porter  counselled  me   to   run 

Sal  minerahs 

menstruaiis  aPace>  or  a^  *ne  Paines  I  had  taken  would  serve  to 
no  purpose,  for  the  lights  above  began  already  to  be 
extinguished,  whereupon  I  dispatched  with  much  haste 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    113 

that  I  heeded  not  the  porter ;  the  virgin,  after  whom  all  the 
lights  were  put  out,  was  at  my  heels,  and  I  should  never 
have  found  the  way,  had  not  she  with  her  torch  afforded 
me  some  light.  I  was  more-over  constrained  to  enter  the  Porta 

clauditur. 

very  next  to  her,  and  the  gates  were  so  suddenly  clapt  to 
that  a  part  of  my  coate  was  locked  out,  which  I  was  forced 
to  leave  behind  me,  for  neither  I  nor  they  who  stood  ready 
without  and  called  at  the  gate  could  prevail  with  the  porter 
to  open  it  again.  He  delivered  the  keys  to  the  virgin,  who 
took  them  with  her  into  the  court.  I  again  surveyed  the 
gate,  which  now  appeared  so  rich  that  the  world  could  not 
equal  it.  Just  by  the  door  were  two  columns,  on  one  of  which  pyramides 
stood  a  pleasant  figure  with  this  inscription,  Congmtulor.  p 
On  the  other  side  was  a  statue  with  countenance  veiled, 
and  beneath  was  written,  Condoleo.  In  brief,  the  inscrip- 
tions and  figures  thereon  were  so  dark  and  mysterious  that 
the  most  dexterous  man  could  not  have  expounded  them, 
yet  all  these  I  shall  e'er  long  publish  and  explain.  Under  promissum 
this  gate  I  was  again  to  give  my  name,  which  was  written 
down  in  a  little  vellum-book,  and  immediately  with  the 
rest  dispatched  to  the  Lord  Bridegroom.  Here  I  first  re- 
ceived the  true  guest-token,  which  was  somewhat  less  than 
the  former,  but  much  heavier ;  upon  this  stood  the  letters 
S.  P.  N.  Besides  this,  a  new  pair  of  shoes  were  given  me, 
for  the  floor  of  the  castle  was  pure  shining  marble.  My 

i  j  T  .  f     ,  ,  .      sentandus 

old  ones  1  was  to  give  to  one  ot  the  poor  who  sate  in  nuptus. 
throngs  under  the  gate.     I  bestowed  them  on  an  old  man, 
after  which  two  pages  with  as  many  torches  conducted  me  comes  pue 
into  a  little  room,  where  they  willed  me  to  sit  down  upon 
a  form,  and,  sticking  their  torches  in  two  holes  made  in  the 
pavement,  they  departed,  and  left  me  sitting  alone.     Soon 
after  I  heard  a  noise  but  saw  nothing ;  it  proved  to  be  cer- 

H 


ii4  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


tain  men  who  stumbled  in  upon  me,  but  since  I  could  see 
nothing  1  was  fain  to  suffer  and  attend  what  they  would  do 

Baiueatores.  with  me.  Presently  finding  that  they  were  barbers  I  in- 
treated  them  not  to  jostle  me,  for  I  was  content  to  do 
what  they  desired,  whereupon  one  of  them,  whom  I  yet 
could  not  see,  gently  cut  away  the  hair  from  the  crown  of 

capiiius       my  head,  but  on  my  forehead,  ears,  and  eyes  he  permitted 

detonsus  .  _ 

asservatus.  my  ice-grey  locks  to  hang.  In  this  first  encounter  1  was 
ready  to  despair,  for,  inasmuch  as  some  of  them  shoved  me 
so  forceably,  and  were  still  invisible,  I  could  onely  think 
that  God  for  my  curiosity  had  suffered  me  to  miscarry. 
The  unseen  barbers  carefully  gathered  up  the  hair  which 

Pueri  bim.  was  cut  off,  and  carried  it  away.  Then  the  two  pages  re- 
entered  and  heartily  laughed  at  me  for  being  so  terrified. 
They  had  scarce  spoken  a  few  words  with  me  when  again 
a  little  bell  began  to  ring,  which  (as  the  pages  informed  me) 
was  to  give  notice  for  assembling,  whereupon  they  willed 
me  to  rise,  and  through  many  walks,  doors,  and  winding 

Triclinium,  stairs  lighted  me  into  a  spacious  hall,  where  there  was  a 
great  multitude  of  guests — emperors,  kings,  princes,  and 
lords,  noble  and  ignoble,  rich  and  poor,  and  all  sorts  of 
people,  at  which  I  hugely  marvelled,  and  thought  to  my- 
self, "  Ah  !  how  gross  a  fool  hast  thou  been  to  ingage  upon 
this  journey  with  so  much  bitterness  and  toil,  when  here 
are  fellows  whom  thou  well  knowest,  and  yet  hadst  never 
any  reason  to  esteem,  while  thou,  with  all  thy  prayers  and 
supplications,  art  hardly  got  in  at  last." 

This  and  more  the  devil  at  that  time  injected,  Mean- 
time one  or  other  of  my  acquaintance  spake  to  me  : — "  Oh  ! 
Brother  Kosencreutz,  art  thou  here  too  ? "  "  Yea,  my 
brethren,"  I  replied,  "  The  grace  of  God  hath  helped  me  in 
also,"  at  which  they  raised  a  mighty  laughter,  looking  upon 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    115 

it  as  ridiculous  that  there  should  be  need  of  God  in  so 
slight  an  occasion.     Having  demanded  each  of  them  con- 

hostum  non 

cernimc  his  way,  and  finding  most  of  them  were  forced  to  recta  via 

ingressorum. 

clamber  over  the  rocks,  certain  invisible  trumpets  began  to 
sound  to  the  table,  whereupon  all  seated  themselves,  every 
one  as  he  judged  himself  above  the  rest,  so  that  for  me 
and  some  other  sorry  fellows  there  was  hardly  a  little  nook 
left  at  the  lowermost  table.      Presently  the  two    pages 
entred,  and  one  of  them,  said  grace  in  so  handsom  and 
excellent  a  manner  as  rejoyced  the  very  heart  in  my  body.  Quidam 
Howbeit,  some  made  but  little  reckoning  of  them,  but  negiigunt. 
fleired  and  winked  one  at  another,  biting  their  lips  within 
their  hats,  and  using  like  unseemly  gestures.     After  this, 
meat  was  brought  in,  and,  albeit  none  could  be  seen,  every-  commes- 
thing  was  so  orderly  managed  that  it  seemed  as  if  every 


guest  had  his  proper  attendant.     Now  my  Artists  having  Mmistri 

invisibles. 

somewhat  recruted  themselves,  and  the  wine  having  a  little 


removed  shame  from  their  hearts,  they  presently  began  to 

.,.   .  torum 

vaunt  of  their  abilities.  One  would  prove  this,  another 
that,  and  commonly  the  most  sorry  idiots  made  the  loudest 
noise.  When  I  call  to  mind  what  preternatural  and  im- 
possible enterprises  I  then  heard,  I  am  still  ready  to  vomit 
at  it.  In  fine,  they  never  kept  in  their  order,  but  when- 
ever possible  a  rascal  would  insinuate  himself  among  the 
nobles.  Every  man  had  his  own  prate,  and  yet  the  great 
lords  were  so  simple  that  they  believed  their  pretences,  and 
the  rogues  became  so  audacious,  that  although  some  of 
them  were  rapped  over  the  fingers  with  a  knife,  yet  they 
flinched  not  at  it,  but  when  any  one  perchance  had  filched 
a  gold-chain,  then  would  all  hazard  for  the  like.  I  saw  one 
who  heard  the  movements  of  the  Heavens,  the  second  could 
see  Plato's  Ideas,  a  third  could  number  the  atoms  of  Demo- 


ii6  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

critus.  There  were  not  a  few  pretenders  to  perpetual 
motion.  Many  an  one  (in  my  opinion)  had  good  under- 
standing, but  assumed  too  much  to  himself  to  his  own  de- 
struction. Lastly,  there  was  one  who  would  needs  per- 
suade us  that  he  saw  the  servitors  who  attended,  and  would 
have  pursued  his  contention,  had  not  one  of  those  invisible 
waiters  reached  him  so  handsorn  a  cuff  upon  his  lying 
muzzle,  that  not  only  he,  but  many  who  were  by  him,  be- 
came mute  as  mice.  It  best  of  all  pleased  me  that  those  of 
whom  I  had  any  esteem  were  very  quiet  in  their  business, 
Modest™  acknowledging  themselves  to  be  misunderstanding  men  for 
whom  the  mysteries  of  nature  were  too  high.  In  this 
tumult  I  had  almost  cursed  the  day  wherein  I  came 
hither,  for  I  could  not  but  with  anguish  behold  that 
those  lewd  people  were  above  at  the  board,  but  1  in  my 
sorry  place  could  not  even  rest  in  quiet,  one  of  these 
rascals  scornfully  reproaching  me  for  a  motley  fool.  I 
dreamed  not  that  there  was  one  gate  behind  through  which 
we  must  pass,  but  imagined  during  the  whole  wedding  I 
was  to  continue  in  this  scorn  and  indignity  which  I  had  at  no 
time  deserved,  either  of  the  Lord  Bride-groom  or  the  Bride. 
And,  therefore,  I  opined  he  would  have  done  well  to  seek 
some  other  fool  than  me  for  his  wedding.  To  such  impa- 


d  C  tience  doth  the  iniquity  of  this  world  reduce  simple  hearts. 


But  this  was  really  one  part  of  the  lameness  whereof  I  had 
dreamed. 

The  longer  all  this  clamour  lasted,  the  more  it  increased. 
Assessor  Howbeit,  there  sate  by  me  a  very  fine,  quiet  man,  who  dis- 
coursed of  excellent  matters,  and  at  length  said  :  —  "  My 
Brother,  if  any  one  should  come  now  who  were  willing  to 
instruct  these  blockish  people  in  the  right  way,  would  he 
be  heard  1  "  "  No,  verily,"  I  replyed.  "  The  world,"  said 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.     117 

he.  "  is  now  resolved  to  be  cheated,  and  will  give  no  ear  to  Mimdus  vait 
those  who  intend  its  good.     Seest  thou  that  Cock's-comb,  c 
with  what  whimsical  figures  and  foolish  conceits  he  allures 
others.     There  one  makes  mouths  at  the  people  with  un- 
heard-of mysterious  words.     Yet  the  time  is  now  coming 
when  those  shameful  vizards  shall  be  plucked  off,  and  the 
world  shall  know  what  vagabond  imposters  were  concealed 
behind  them.     Then  perhaps  that  will  be  valued  which  at 
present  is  not  esteemed." 

While  he  was  thus  speaking,  and  the  clamour  was  still 
increasing,  all  on  a  sudden  there  began  in  the  hall  such  ex- 
cellent and  stately  musick  of  which,  all  the  days  of  my  life,  I  Mnsica. 
never  heard  the  like.  Every  one  held  his  peace,  and  at- 
tended what  would  come  of  it.  There  were  all  stringed 
instruments  imaginable,  sounding  together  in  such  har- 
mony that  I  forgot  myself,  and  sate  so  unmovably  that 
those  by  me  were  amazed.  This  lasted  nearly  half  an  hour, 
wherein  none  of  us  spake  one  word,  for  as  soon  as  anyone 
was  about  to  open  his  mouth,  he  got  an  unexpected  blow.  Mulct*  &b 
After  that  space  this  musick  ceased  suddenly,  and  presently 
before  the  door  of  the  hall  began  a  great  sounding  and 
beating  of  trumpets,  shalms,  and  kettle  -  drums,  all  so 
master-like  as  if  the  Emperor  of  Rome  had  been  entring. 
The  door  opened  of  itself,  and  then  the  noise  of  the  trum- 
pets was  so  loud  that  we  were  hardly  able  to  indure  it. 
Meanwhile,  many  thousand  small  tapers  came  into  the  hall,  Facuise  ad 
marching  of  themselves  in  so  exact  an  order  as  amazed  us, 
till  at  last  the  two  fore-mentioned  pages  with  bright 
torches  entred  lighting  in  a  most  beautiful  Virgin,  drawn  virgo  iuci- 
on  a  gloriously  gilded,  triumphant  self-moving  throne. 
She  seemed  to  me  the  same  who  on  the  way  kindled  and  The  Lady 

Chamberlain 

put  out  the  lights,  and  that  these  her  attendants  were  the 


118 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS2CRUCIANS. 


5. 


Albedo,  very  ones  whom  she  formerly  placed  at  the  trees.  She 
was  not  now  in  skye-colour,  but  in  a  snow-white,  glittering 
robe,  which  sparkled  of  pure  gold,  and  cast  such  a  lustre 
that  we  durst  not  steadily  behold  it.  Both  the  pages  were 
after  the  same  manner  habited,  albeit  somewhat  more 
slightly.  As  soon  as  they  were  come  into  the  middle  of 
the  hall,  and  were  descended  from  the  throne,  all  the  small 
tapers  made  obeisance  before  her,  whereupon  we  all  stood 
up,  and  she  having  to  us,  as  we  again  to  her,  shewed  all 

saiutatoria    respect  and  reverence,  in  a  most  pleasant  tone  she  began 

hospitum.  . 

thus  to  speak  : — 

"  The  King  my  Lord  most  gracious, 
Who  now 's  not  very  far  from  us, 
As  also  his  most  lovely  Bride, 
To  him  in  troth  and  honour  tied, 
Already,  with  great  joy  indued, 
Have  your  arrival  hither  view'd  ; 
And  do  to  every  one  and  all 
Promise  their  grace  in  special ; 
And  from  their  very  heart's  desire 
You  may  the  same  in  time  acquire, 
That  so  their  future  nuptial  joy 
May  mixed  be  with  none's  annoy." 

Hereupon,  with  all  her  small  tapers,  she  again  courteously 
bowed,  and  presently  began  thus  : — 


Propositio 
actionis. 


"  In  th'  Invitation  writ  you  know 
That  no  man  called  was  hereto 
Who  of  God's  rarest  gifts  good  store 
Had  not  received  long  before. 
Although  we  cannot  well  conceit 
That  any  man's  so  desperate, 
Under  conditions  so  hard, 
Here  to  intrude  without  regard, 
Unless  he  have  been  first  of  all 
Prepared  for  this  Nuptial, 
And,  therefore,  in  good  hopes  do  dwell 
That  with  all  you  it  will  be  well ; 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    119 

Yet  men  are  grown  so  bold  and  rude, 

Not  weighing  their  ineptitude, 

As  still  to  thrust  themselves  in  place 

Whereto  none  of  them  called  was. 

No  cock's-comb  here  himself  may  sell, 

No  rascal  in  with  others  steal, 

For  we  resolve  without  all  let 

A  Wedding  pure  to  celebrate. 

So,  then,  the  artists  for  to  weigh,  Probatio 

Scales  shall  be  fixt  th'  ensuing  day  ;  artificum 

Whereby  each  one  may  lightly  find 

What  he  hath  left  at  home  behind. 

If  here  be  any  of  that  rout, 

Who  have  good  cause  themselves  to  doubt, 

Let  him  pack  quickly  hence  aside, 

Because  in  case  he  longer  bide, 

Of  grace  forelorn,  and  quite  undone, 

Betimes  he  must  the  gantlet  run. 

If  any  now  his  conscience  gall, 

He  shall  to-night  be  left  in  th'  hall, 

And  be  again  releast  by  morn, 

Yet  so  he  hither  ne'er  return. 

If  any  man  have  confidence, 

He  with  his  waiter  may  go  hence, 

Who  shall  him  to  his  chamber  light, 

Where  he  may  rest  in  peace  to-night. " 

As  soon  as  she  had  done  speaking,  she  again  made 
reverence,  and  sprung  chearfully  into  her  throne,  after 
which  the  trumpets  began  again  to  sound,  and  conducted 
her  invisibly  away,  but  the  most  part  of  the  small  tapers 
remained,  and  still  one  of  them  accompanied  each  of  us. 
In  our  perturbation,  'tis  scarcely  possible  to  express  what 
pensive  thoughts  and  gestures  were  amongst  us,  yet  most 
part  resolved  to  await  the  scale,  and  in  case  things  sorted 
not  well  to  depart  (as  they  hoped)  in  peace.  I  had  soon  Autor 
cast  up  my  reckoning,  and  seeing  my  conscience  convinced 
me  of  all  ignorance  and  unworthiness,  I  purposed  to  stay 
with  the  rest  in  the  hall,  and  chose  rather  to  content  myself 


120  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


with  the  meal  I  had  taken  than  to  run  the  risk  of  a  future 
repulse.  After  every  one  by  his  small  taper  had  been 
severally  conducted  to  a  chamber  (each,  as  I  since  under- 
stood, into  a  peculiar  one),  there  staid  nine  of  us,  including 
he  who  discoursed  with  me  at  the  table.  Although  our 
small  tapers  left  us  not,  yet  within  an  hour's  time  one  of 
the  pages  came  in,  and,  bringing  a  great  bundle  of  cords 
with  him,  first  demanded  whether  we  had  concluded  to 
stay  there,  which  when  we  had  with  sighs  affirmed,  he 
bound  each  of  us  in  a  several  place,  and  so  went  away  with 
our  tapers,  leaving  us  poor  wretches  in  darkness.  Then 
first  began  some  to  perceive  the  imminent  danger,  and 
myself  could  not  refrain  tears,  for,  although  we  were  not 
forbidden  to  speak,  anguish  and  affliction  suffered  none  of 
us  to  utter  one  word.  The  cords  were  so  wonderfully 
made  that  none  could  cut  them,  much  less  get  them  off  his 
feet,  yet  this  comforted  me,  that  the  future  gain  of  many 
an  one  who  had  now  betaken  himself  to  rest  would  prove 
little  to  his  satisfaction,  but  we  by  one  night's  pennance 
might  expiate  all  our  presumption.  At  length  in  my 
sorrowful  thoughts  I  fell  asleep,  during  which  I  had  a 
dream  which  I  esteem  not  impertinent  to  recount.  Me- 

typicum. 

thought  I  was  upon  an  high  mountain,  and  saw  before  me 
what  win  be  a   great   valley,    wherein   were   gathered   an   unspeakable 

tll6  1SSU6  01 

the  proba-     multitude,  each  of  whom  had  at  his  head  a  string  by  which 

tory  beam? 

He  that        he  was  hanging.     Now  one  hung  high,  another  low,  some 

climbs  high 

sto°d  even  quite  uPon  the  earth.     In  the  air  there  flew 


up  and  down  an  ancient  man,  who  had  in  his  hand  a  pair 
of  sheers,  wherewith  here  he  cut  one's  and  there  another's 
thread.  Now  he  that  was  nigh  the  earth  fell  without  noise, 
but  when  this  happened  to  the  high  ones  the  earth  quaked 
at  their  fall.  To  some  it  came  to  pass  that  their  thread 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    121 

was  so  stretched  they  came  to  the  earth  before  it  was  cut. 
I  took  pleasure  at  this  tumbling,  and  it  joyed  me  at  the 
heart  when  he  who  had  over-exalted  himself  in  the  air,  of 
his  wedding,  got  so  shameful  a  fall  that  it  carried  even 
some  of  his  neighbours  along  with  him.     In  like  manner 
it  rejoyced  me  that  he  who  had  kept  so  near  the  earth 
could  come  down  so  gently  that  even  his  next  men  per- 
ceived it  not.     But  in  my  highest  fit  of  jollity,  I  was  un- 
awares jogged  by  one  of  my  fellow-captives,  upon  which  I  Experget. 
waked  and  was  much  discontented  with  him.     Howbeit,  J 
considered  my  dream  and  recounted  it  to  my  brother,  who . 
lay  by  me  on  the  other  side,  and  who  hoped  some  comfort 
might  thereby  be  intended.     In  such  discourse  we  spent 
the  remaining  part  of  the  night,  and  with  longing  expected 
the  day. 

The  Third  Day. 

As  soon  as  the  lovely  day  was  broken,  and  the  bright 
sun,  having  raised  himself  above  the  hills,  had  betaken 
himself  to  his  appointed  office,  my  good  champions  began 
to  rise  and  leisurely  make  themselves  ready  unto  the 
inquisition.  Whereupon,  one  after  another  they  came 
again  into  the  hall,  and  giving  us  a  good  morrow,  demanded  Colloquium 

surgentium. 

how  we  had  slept;  and  having  espied  our  bonds,  some 
reproved  us  for  being  so  cowardly,  that  we  had  not,  as 
they,  hazarded  upon  all  adventures.  Howbeit,  some, 
whose  hearts  still  smote  them,  made  no  loud  cry  of  the 
business.  We  excused  ourselves  with  our  ignorance, 
hoping  we  should  soon  be  set  at  liberty  and  learn  wit  by 
this  disgrace,  that  they  also  had  not  altogether  escaped,  and 
perhaps  their  greatest  clanger  was  still  to  be  expected. 
At  length  all  being  assembled,  the  trumpets  began  again  to  cantos. 


122  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

sound  and  the  kettle-drums  to  beat,  and  we  imagined  that 

the   Bride-groom    was   ready   to   present   himself,   which, 

nevertheless,  was  a  huge  mistake,  for  again  it  was  the 

Virgo          Virgin,  who  had   arrayed  herself  all  in  red  velvet,  and 

The  Lady     girded  herself  with  a  white  scarfe.     Upon  her  head  she  had 

Chamberlain 

a  green  wreath  of  laurel,  which  much  became  her.  Her 
train  was  no  more  of  small  tapers,  but  consisted  of  two 
hundred  men  in  harness,  all  cloathed,  like  herself,  in  red 
and  white.  As  soon  as  they  were  alighted  from  the  throne, 
she  comes  streight  to  us  prisoners,  and,  after  she  had 
saluted  us,  said  in  few  words  : — "  That  some  of  you  have 
been  sensible  of  your  wretched  condition  is  pleasing  to  my 
soiatur  most  mighty  Lord,  and  he  is  also  resolved  you  shall  fare 

humiles.  J 

the  better  for  it."  Having  espied  me  in  my  habit,  she 
laughed  and  spake : — "  Good  lack  !  Hast  thou  also  sub- 
mitted thyself  to  the  yoke  !  I  imagined  thou  wouldst  have 
made  thyself  very  snug,"  which  words  caused  my  eyes  to 
run  over.  After  this  she  commanded  we  should  be  un- 
bound, cuppled  together,  and  placed  in  a  station  where  we 
might  well  behold  the  scales.  "  For,"  said  she,  "  it  may 
fare  better  with  them  than  with  the  presumptuous  who  yet 
stand  at  liberty." 

Libra  aurea.  Meantime  the  scales,  which  were  intirely  of  gold,  were 
hung  up  in  the  midst  of  the  hall.  There  was  also  a  little 

7.  Pondera,    table  covered  with  red  velvet,  and  seven  weights  thereon- 
first  of  all  stood  a  pretty  great  one,  then  four  little  ones, 
lastly,  two  great  ones  severally,  and  these  weights  in  pro- 
portion to  their  bulk  were  so   heavy  that   no  man   can 

Satellites,  believe  or  comprehend  it.  Each  of  the  harnised  men 
carried  a  naked  sword  and  a  strong  rope.  They  were  dis- 
tributed according  to  the  number  of  weights  into  seven 
bands,  and  3.  out  of  every  band  was  one  chosen  for  their 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    123 

proper  weight,  after  which  the  Virgin  again  sprung  up  into 
her  high  throne,  and  one  of  the  pages  commanded  each  to 
place  himself  according  to  his  order,  and  successively  step  PeMesantur 

fVT  till  CCS. 


into  the  scale.  One  of  the  Emperors,  making  no  scruple,  i. 
first  bowed  himself  a  little  towards  the  Virgin,  and  in  all 
his  stately  attire  went  up,  whereupon  each  captain  laid  in 
his  weight,  which  (to  the  wonder  of  all)  he  stood  out. 
But  the  last  was  too  heavy  for  him,  so  that  forth  he  must, 
and  that  with  such  anguish  that  the  Virgin  herself  seemed 
to  pitty  him,  yet  was  the  good  Emperor  bound  and 
delivered  to  the  sixth  band.  Next  him  came  forth  another 
Emperor,  who  stept  hautily  into  the  scale,  and,  having  a  2.  c»sar. 
thick  book  under  his  gown,  he  imagined  not  to  fail  ;  but, 
being  scarce  able  to  abide  the  third  weight,  he  was  un- 
mercifullyttslung  down,  and  his  book  in  that  affrightment 
slipping  from  him,  all  the  soldiers  began  to  laugh,  and  he 
was  delivered  up  bound  to  the  third  band.  Thus  it  went 
also  with  some  others  of  the  Emperors,  who  were  all  shame-  3.  Alii 
fully  laughed  at  and  made  captive.  After  these  comes 
forth  a  little  short  man,  with  a  curled  brown  beard,  an 
Emperor  too,  who,  after  the  usual  reverence,  got  up  and  4. 
held  out  so  stedfastly  that  methought  had  there  been  more 
weights  he  would  have  outstood  them.  To  him  the  Virgin 
immediately  arose  and  bowed  before  him,  causing  him  to 
put  on  a  gown  of  red  velvet,  then  reaching  him  a  branch  of 
laurel,  whereof  she  had  good  store  upon  her  throne,  on  the 
steps  of  which  she  willed  him  to  sit  down.  How  after  him 
it  fared  with  the  rest  of  the  Emperors,  Kings,  and  Lords, 
would  be  too  long  to  recount  ;  few  of  those  great  person- 
ages held  out,  though  sundry  eminent  vertues  were  found 
in  many.  Everyone  who  failed  was  miserably  laughed  at 
by  the  bands.  After  the  inquisition  had  passed  over  the 


r.9. 


nihilominus 
ornantnr. 


124  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

gentry,  the  learned,  and  unlearned,  in  each  condition  one, 
it  may  be,  two,  but  mostly  none,  being  found  perfect,  it 
came  to  those  vagabond  cheaters  and  rascally  Lapidem 
Spitalanftcum  makers,  who  were  set  upon  the  scale  with  such 
scorn,  that  for  all  my  grief  I  was  ready  to  burst  my  belly 
with  laughing,  neither  could  the  prisoners  themselves 
refrain,  for  the  most  part  could  not  abide  that  severe  trial, 
but  with  whips  and  scourges  were  jerked  out  of  the  scale. 
Thus  of  so  pert  a  throng  so  few  remained  that  I  am 
ashamed  to  discover  their  number.  Howbeit,  there  were 
persons  of  quality  also  amongst  them  who,  notwithstand- 
ing?  were  also  honoured  with  velvet  robes  and  wreaths  of 


The  inquisition  being  finished,  and  none  but  we  poor 
coupled  hounds  standing  aside,  one  of  the  captains  stept 
forth,  and  said  :  —  "Gratious  madam,  if  it  please  your  lady- 
ship, let  these  poor  men,  who  acknowledged  their  mis- 
understanding, be  set  upon  the  scale  also  without  danger  of 
penalty,  and  only  for  recreation's  sake,  if  perchance  any- 

Humilium.  . 

thing  right  be  found  among  them.  At  this  1  was  in  great 
perplexity,  for  in  my  anguish  this  was  my  only  comfort, 
that  I  was  not  to  stand  in  such  ignominy,  or  be  lashed  out 
of  the  scale.  Yet  since  the  Virgin  consented,  so  it  must 
be,  and  we  being  untied  were  one  after  another  set  up. 
Now,  although  the  most  part  miscarried,  they  were  neither 
laughed  at  nor  scourged,  but  peaceably  placed  on  one  side. 

Socius  My  companion  was  the  fifth,  who  held  out  bravely,  where- 
upon all,  but  especially  the  captain  who  made  the  request 
for  us,  applauded  him,  and  the  Virgin  showed  him  the 
usual  respect.  After  him  two  more  were  despatched  in  an 

Autor.  instant.  But  I  was  the  eighth,  and  as  soon  as  (with 
trembling)  I  stepped  up,  my  companion,  who  already  sat 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    125 

by  in  his  velvet,  looked  friendly  upon  me,  and  the  Virgin 
herself  smiled  a  little.     But,  for  as  much  as  I  outstayed 
all  the  weights,  the  Virgin  commanded  them  to  draw  me  up 
by  force,  wherefore  three  men  moreover  hung  on  the  other- 
side  of  the  beam,  and  yet  could  nothing  prevail.   Whereupon 
one  of  the  pages  immediately  stood  up,  and  cryed  out  ex- 
ceeding   loud,    "THAT    is    HE,"  upon    which   the    other  That  is  he. 
replyed  : — "  Then   let  him  gain  his  liberty  ! "  which  the 
Virgin  accorded,  and  being  received  with  due  ceremonies, 
the  choice  was  given  me  to  release  one  of  the  captives, 
whomsoever  I  pleased,  whereupon  I  made  no  long  delibera-  probatissi- 
tions,  but  elected  the  first   Emperor,   whom  I  had  long 
pittied,  who  was  immediately  set  free,  and  with  all  respect  Liberat,  i. 
seated  among  us.     Now,  the  last  being  set  up  the  weights 
proved  too  heavy  for  him ;  meanwhile  the  Virgin  espied  my 
roses,  which  I  had  taken  out  of  my  hat  into  my  hands,  and 
•thereupon  by  her  page  graciously  requested  them  of  me,  Autor  rosam 
which  I  readily  sent  her.     And  so  this  first  act  was  finished  virgin!. 
about  ten  in  the  forenoon.  Hora,  10. 

Actus. 

The  trumpets  again  began  to  sound,  which,  nevertheless, 
we  could  not  as  yet  see.  Meantime  the  bands  were  to  step 
aside  with  their  prisoners  and  expect  the  judgment,  after 
which  a  council  of  the  seven  captains  and  ourselves  was  set, 
with  the  Virgin  as  president,  whereat  it  was  concluded  that 
all  the  principal  lords  should  with  befitting  respect  be  led  Judicmm  de 

reprobatis. 

out  of  the  castle,  that  others  should  be  stripped  and  caused 
to  run  out  naked,  while  others  yet  with  rods,  whips,  or 
dogs,  should  be  hunted  out.  Those  who  the  day  before 
willingly  surrendered  themselves  might  be  suffered  to  de- 
part without  any  blame,  but  those  presumptuous  ones,  and 
they  who  had  behaved  themselves  so  unseemly  at  dinner, 
should  be  punished  in  body  and  life  according  to  each 


Prandiurn. 


Ministri 

invisibles 

visibles. 


Probomm 
exaltatio. 


T26 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 


man's  demerit.  This  opinion  pleased  the  Virgin  well,  and 
obtained  the  upper  hand.  There  was  moreover  another 
dinner  vouchsafed  them,  the  execution  itself  being  deferred 
till  noon.  Herewith  the  senate  arose,  and  the  Virgin,  to- 
gether with  her  attendants,  returned  to  her  usual  quarter. 
The  uppermost  table  in  the  room  was  allotted  to  us  till  the 
business  was  fully  dispatched,  when  we  should  be  con- 
ducted to  the  Lord  Bride-groom  and  Bride,  with  which  we 
were  well  content.  The  prisoners  were  again  brought  into 
the  hall,  and  each  man  seated  according  to  his  quality. 
They  were  enjoyned  to  behave  somewhat  more  civilly  than 
they  had  done  the  day  before,  which  admonishment  they 
needed  not,  for  they  had  already  put  up  their  pipes,  and 
this  I  can  boldly  say,  that  commonly  those  who  were  of 
highest  rank  best  understood  how  to  comport  themselves  in 
so  unexpected  a  misfortune.  Their  treatment  was  but  in- 
different, yet  with  respect,  neither  could  they  see  their 
attendants,  who  were  visible  to  us,  whereat  I  was  exceed- 
ing joyful.  Although  fortune  had  exalted  us,  we  took  not 
upon  us  more  than  the  rest,  advising  them  to  be  of  good 
cheer,  and  comforting  them  as  well  as  we  could,  drinking 
with  them  to  try  if  the  wine  might  make  them  cheerful. 
Our  table  was  covered  with  red  velvet,  beset  with  drinking 
cups  of  pure  silver  and  gold,  which  the  rest  could  not  be- 
hold without  amazement  and  anguish.  Ere  we  had  seated 
ourselves  in  came  the  two  pages,  presenting  every  one,  in 
the  Bride-groom's  behalf,  the  Golden  Fleece  with  a  flying 
Lyon,  requesting  us  to  wear  them  at  the  table,  and  to 
observe  the  reputation  and  dignity  of  the  order  which  his 
Remuneratio  Majesty  had  vouchsafed  us  and  would  ratify  with  sutable 

a  sponso.  .  .  i        •  i 

ceremonies.      Inis  we  received  with  profoundest  submis- 
sion, promising  to  perform  whatever  his  Majesty  should 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    127 

please.  Beside  these,  the  noble  page  had  a  schedule  wherein 
we  were  set  down  in  order.  Now  because  our  entertain- 
ment was  exceeding  stately,  we  demanded  one  of  the  pages 
whether  we  might  have  leave  to  send  some  choice  bit  to 
our  friends  and  acquaintance,  who  making  no  difficulty, 
every  one  sent  by  the  waiters ;  howbeit  the  receivers  saw 
none  of  them;  and  forasmuch  as  they  knew  not  whence 
it  came,  I  was  myself  desirous  to  carry  somewhat  to  one 
of  them,  but,  as  soon  as  I  was  risen,  one  of  the  waiters  was  Auton 
at  my  elbow,  desiring  me  to  take  friendly  warning,  for  in  communi- 

catio  erga 

case  one  of  the  pages  had  seen  it,  it  would  have  come  to  reprobos. 
the  King's  ear,  who  would  certainly  take  it  amiss  of  me ; 
but  since  none  had  observed  it  save  himself,  he  purposed 
not  to  betray  me,  and  that  I  must  for  the  time  to  come 
have  better  regard  to  the  dignity  of  the  order.  With 
these  words,  the  servant  did  really  so  astonish  me  that  for 
long  I  scarce  moved  upon  my  seat,  yet  I  returned  him 
thanks  for  his  faithful  warning  as  well  as  I  was  able.  Soon 
after  the  drums  began  to  beat,  wherefore  we  prepared  our- 
selves to  receive  the  Virgin,  who  now  came  in  with  her  virgo  iud- 

fera     The 

train,  upon  her  high  seat,  one  of  the  pages  bearing  before  Lady  Cham- 
her  a  very  tall  goblet  of  gold,  and  the  other  a  patent  in 
parchment.    Being  now  after  a  marvellous  artificial  manner 
alighted  from  her  seat,  she  takes  the  goblet  from  the  page 
and  presents  it  in  the  King's  behalf,  saying  that  it  was 
brought  from  his  Majesty,  and  that  in  honour  of  him  we  caiix 
should  cause  it  to  go  round.     Upon  the  cover  of  this  goblet 
stood  Fortune  curiously  cast  in  gold,  who  had  in  her  hand 
a  red  flying  ensign,  for  which  cause  I  drunk  somewhat  the 
more  sadly,  as  having  been  too  well  acquainted  with  For- 
tune's waywardness.     But  the  Virgin  who  also  was  adorned  omatus 
with  the  Golden  Fleece  and  Lyon,  hereupon  began  to  dis- 


. 


128  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

tinguish  the  patent  which  the  other  page  held  into  two 
different  parts,  out  of  which  thus  much  was  read  before  the 

dividuntur. 

first  company  :— 
Accusatio         That  they  should  confess  that  they  had  too  lightly  given 

unius  partis. 

credit  to  false,  fictitious  books,  had  assumed  too  much  to 

themselves,  and   so  come  into  this  castle  uninvited,  and 

perhaps  designing  to  m-ake  their  markets  here  and  after- 

Affectibus     wards  to  live  in  the  greater  pride  and  lordliness.    Thus  one 

mundanis 

had  seduced  another,  and  plunged  him  into  disgrace  and 
ignominy,  wherefore  they  were  deservedly  to  be  soundly 
punished — all  which  they,  with  great  humility,  readily 
acknowledged,  and  gave  their  hands  upon  it,  after  which  a 
severe  check  was  given  to  the  rest,  much  to  this  purpose :  — 
Aiterius  That  they  were  convinced  in  their  consciences  of  forging 

partis. 

false,  fictitious  books,  had  befooled  and  cheated  others, 
thereby  diminishing  regal  dignity  amongst  all.  They  knew 
what  ungodly,  deceitful  figures  they  had  made  use  of,  not 
even  sparing  the  Divine  Trinity.  It  was  also  clear  as  day 
with  what  practices  they  had  endeavoured  to  ensnare  the 
guests ;  in  like  manner,  it  was  manifest  to  all  the  world 
that  they  wallowed  in  open  whoredom,  adultery,  gluttony, 
and  other  uncleannesses.  In  brief,  they  had  disparaged 
Kingly  Majesty,  even  amongst  the  common  sort,  and  there- 
fore should  confess  themselves  to  be  convicted  vagabond- 
cheats,  and  rascals,  for  which  they  deserved  to  be  cashiered 
from  the  company  of  civil  people,  and  severely  to  be 
punished. 

The  good  Artists  were  loath  to  cfome  to  this  confession, 
but  inasmuch  as  the  Virgin  not  only  herself  threatned,  and 
sware  their  death,  but  the  other  party  also  vehemently 
raged  at  them,  crying  that  they  had  most  wickedly  seduced 
them  out  of  the  Light,  they  at  length,  to  prevent  a  huge 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    129 

misfortune,  confessed  the  same  with  dolour,  yet  alledged 
their  actions  should  not  be  animadverted  upon  in  the  worst  Excusatio. 
sense,  for  the  Lords  were  resolved  to  get  into  the  castle, 
and  had  promised  great  sums  of  money  to  that  effect,  each 
one  had  used  all  craft  to  seize  upon  something,  and  so 
things  were  brought  to  the  present  pass.  Thus  they  had 
disserved  no  more  than  the  Lords  themselves.  Their  books 
also  sold  so  mightily  that  whoever  had  no  other  means  to 
maintain  himself  was  fain  to  ingage  in  this  consonage. 
They  hoped,  moreover,  they  should  be  found  no  way  to 
have  miscarried,  as  having  behaved  towards  the  Lords,  as 
became  servants,  upon  their  earnest  entreaty.  But  answer 
was  made  that  his  Royal  Majesty  had  determined  to  punish  Refutatio. 
all,  albeit  one  more  severely  than  another.  For  although 
what  they  had  alledged  was  partly  true,  and  therefore  the 
Lords  should  not  wholly  be  indulged,  yet  they  had  good 
reason  to  prepare  themselves  for  death,  who  had  so  pre- 
sumptuously obtruded  themselves,  and  perhaps  seduced  the 
ignorant  against  their  will.  Thereupon  many  began  most  Dolor  de 

sententia. 

pitteously  to  lament  and  prostrate  themselves,  all  which 
could  avail  them  nothing,  and  I  much  marvelled  how  the 
Virgin  could  be  so  resolute,  when  their  misery  caused  our 
eyes  to  run  over.  She  presently  dispatched  her  page,  who 
brought  with  him  all  the  cuirassiers  which  had  been 
appointed  at  the  scales,  who  were  each  commanded  to  take 
his  own  man,  and,  in  an  orderly  procession,  conduct  him  Executio 

sententi- 


into  her  great  garden.  Leave  was  given  to  my  yesterday 
companions  to  go  out  into  the  garden  unbound,  and  be 
present  at  the  execution  of  the  sentence.  When  every  man  spectators. 
was  come  forth,  the  Virgin  mounted  up  into  her  high 
throne,  requesting  us  to  sit  down  upon  the  steps,  and 
appear  at  the  judgment.  The  goblet  was  committed  to  the 

I 


130  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

pages'  keeping,  and  we  went  forth  in  our  robes  upon  the 
throne,  which  of  itself  moved  so  gently  as  if  we  had  passed 
in  the  air,  till  we  came  into  the  garden,  where  we  arose 
Hortus.  altogether.  This  garden  was  not  extraordinarily  curious, 
only  it  pleased  me  that  the  trees  were  planted  in  so  good 
order.  Besides  there  ran  in  it  a  most  costly  fountain, 
adorned  with  wonderful  figures  and  inscriptions  and  strange 
characters  (which,  God  willing,  I  shall  mention  in  a  future 


promittit         i        i  \        T         i  •  -,  i  «»  i  i    i 

alter  librum.  book).  In  this  garden  was  raised  a  wooden  scaffold,  hung 
with  curiously  painted  figured  coverlets.  There  were  four 
galleries  made  one  over  another  ;  the  first  was  more  glorious 
than  the  rest  and  covered  with  a  white  Taffata  curtain, 
so  that  we  could  not  perceive  who  was  behind  it.  The 
second  was  empty  and  uncovered,  while  the  two  last  were 
draped  with  red  and  blew  Taffata.  As  soon  as  we  were 
come  to  the  scaffold  the  Virgin  bowed  herself  down  to  the 
ground,  at  which  we  were  mightily  terrified,  for  we  could 
easily  guess  that  the  King  and  Queen  must  not  be  far  off. 
We  also  having  duely  performed  our  reverence,  the  Virgin 
led  us  by  the  winding  stairs  into  the  second  gallery,  where 
she  placed  herself  uppermost,  and  us  in  our  former  order. 

Gratitude  But  how  the  emperor  whom  I  had  released  behaved 
towards  me,  I  cannot  relate  for  fear  of  slander,  for  he  might 


well  imagine  in  what  anguish  he  now  should  have  been, 
and  that  only  through  me  he  had  attained  such  dignity 
and  worthiness.  Meantime,  the  virgin  who  first  brought 
me  the  invitation,  and  whom  I  had  hitherto  never  since 
seen,  stepped  in,  and  giving  one  blast  upon  her  trumpet 
declared  the  sentence  with  a  very  loud  voice  :— 
oratio  ad  "  The  King's  Majesty,  my  most  gratious  Lord,  could 
from  his  heart  wish  that  all  here  assembled  had,  upon  his 
Majestie's  invitation,  presented  themselves  so  qualified  that 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    131 

they  might  have  adorned  his  nuptial  and  joyous  Feast. 
But  since  it  hath  otherwise  pleased  Almighty  God,  he  hath 
not  wherewith  to  murmur,  but  is  forced,  contrary  to  his 
inclination,  to  abide  by  the  antient  and  laudable  constitu- 
tions of  this  Kingdom,  albeit,  that  his  Majesty's  clemency 
may  be  celebrated,  the  usual  sentence  shall  be  considerably 
lenified.  He  vouchsafes  to  the  Lords  and  Potentates  not  sententia 
only  their  lives  intirely,  but  also  freely  dismisses  them, 
courteously  intreating  your  Lordships  not  to  take,  it  in  evil 
part  that  you  cannot  be  present  at  his  Feast  of  Honour. 
Neither  is  your  reputation  hereby  prejudiced,  although  you 
be  rejected  by  this  our  Order,  since  we  cannot  at  once  do 
all  things,  and  forasmuch  as  your  Lordships  have  been 
seduced  by  base  rascals,  it  shall  not  pass  unrevenged. 
Furthermore,  his  Majesty  resolveth  shortly  to  communicate 
with  you  a  Catalogue  of  Hereticks,  or  Index  Expurgatorius, 
that  you  may  with  better  judgment  discern  between  good 
and  evil.  And  because  his  Majesty  also  purposeth  to  rum- 
mage his  library,  and  offer  the  seductive  writings  to  Vulcan, 
he  courteously  entreats  every  one  of  you  to  put  the  same 
in  execution  with  your  own,  whereby  it  is  to  be  hoped  that 
all  evil  and  mischief  may  be  remedied.  And  you  are 
admonished  never  henceforth  so  inconsiderately  to  covet 
entrance  hither,  least  the  former  excuse  of  seducers  be  taken 
from  you.  In  fine,  as  the  estates  of  the  Land  have  still 
somewhat  to  demand  of  your  Lordships,  his  Majesty  hopes 
that  no  man  will  think  it  much  to  redeem  himself  with  a 
chain,  or  what  else  he  hath  about  him,  and  so,  in  friendly 
manner,  depart  from  us. 

"The  others  who  stood  not  at  the  first,  third,  and  fourth  sententia,? 
weight,  his  Majesty  will  not  so    lightly  dismiss,  but  that 
they  also  may  experience  his  gentleness,  it  is  his  command 


132  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


to  strip  them  naked,  and  so  send  them  forth.     Those  who 

s  in  the  second  and  fifth  weight  were  found  too  light  shall, 

besides  stripping,  be  noted  with  one  or  more  brands,  ac- 

cording as  each  was  lighter  or  heavier.     They  who  were 

4.  drawn  up  by  the  sixth  or  seventh  shall  be  somewhat  more 
gratiously  dealt  with,  and  so  forward,  for  unto  every  com- 
bination there  is  a  certain  punishment  ordained.     They 

5.  who  yesterday  separated  themselves  of  their  own  accord 

6.  shall  go  at  liberty  without  blame.     Finally,  the  convicted 
vagabond-cheats,  who  could  move  up  none  of  the  weights, 
shall  be  punished,  in  body  and  life,  with  sword,  halter, 
water,  and  rods,  and  such  execution  of  judgment  shall  be 
inviolably  observed  for  an  example  unto  others." 

Finis  habiti  Herewith  one  virgin  broke  her  wand  ;  the  other,  who 
read  the  sentence,  blew  her  trumpet,  and  stepped  with  pro- 
found reverence  towards  the  curtain.  Now  this  judgment 

Reorum       being  read  over,  the  Lords  were  well  satisfied,  for  which 

. 

cause  they  gave  more  than  they  were  desired,  each  one 
redeeming  himself  with  chains,  jewels,  gold,  monies,  and 
other  things,  and  with  reverence  they  took  leave.  Although 
the  King's  servants  were  forbidden  to  jear  any  at  his 
departure,  some  unlucky  birds  could  not  hold  laughing, 
and  certainly  it  was  sufficiently  ridiculous  to  see  them  pack 
away  with  such  speed,  without  once  looking  behind  them. 
At  the  door  was  given  to  each  of  them  a  draught  of  FOR- 
Haustus  GETFULNESS,  that  he  might  have  no  further  memory  of 
misfortune.  After  these  the  volunteers  departed,  who,  be- 
cause of  their  ingenuity,  were  suffered  to  pass,  but  so  as 
never  to  return  in  the  same  fashion,  albeit  if  to  them  (as 
likewise  to  the  others)  anything  further  were  revealed, 
they  should  be  well-come  guests. 

Meanwhile,   others  were   stripping,    in   which   also   an 


mores. 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    133 

inequality,  according  to  demerit,  was  observed.  Some 
were  sent  away  naked,  without  other  hurt ;  others  were 
driven  out  with  small  bells;  some  again  were  scourged 
forth.  In  brief,  the  punishments  were  so  various,  that  I 
am  not  able  to  recount  them  all.  With  the  last  a  some- 
what longer  time  was  spent,  for  whilst  some  were  hanging, 
some  beheading,  some  forced  to  leap  into  the  water,  much 
time  was  consumed.  Yerily,  at  this  execution  my  eyes 
ran  over,  not  indeed  in  regard  of  the  punishment  which  im- 
pudency  well  deserved,  but  in  contemplation  of  human  blind- 
ness, in  that  we  are  continually  busying  ourselves  over  that 
which  since  the  first  fall  hath  been  sealed  to  us.  Thus  the 
garden  which  lately  was  quite  full  was  soon  emptied, 
As  soon  as  this  was  done,  and  silence  had  been  kept  for  expositio. 
the  space  of  five  minutes,  there  came  forward  a  beautiful 
snow-white  Unicorn,  with  a  golden  collar,  ingraved  with 
certain  letters,  about  his  neck.  He  bound  himself  down 
upon  his  fore-feet,  as  if  hereby  he  had  shown  honour  to  the 
Lyon,  who  stood  so  immoveably  upon  the  fountain  that  I  Leo. 
took  him  to  be  stone  or  brass,  but  who  immediately  took 
the  naked  sword  which  he  bare  in  his  paw,  brake  it  into 
two  in  the  middle,  the  two  pieces  whereof  sunk  into  the 
fountain,  after  which  he  so  long  reared  until  a  white  Dove 
brought  a  branch  of  olive  in  her  bill,  which  the  Lyon 
devoured  in  an  instant,  and  so  was  quieted.  The  Unicorn 
returned  to  his  place  with  joy,  while  our  Virgin  led  us 
down  by  the  winding  staires  from  the  scaffold,  and  so  we 
again  made  our  reverence  towards  the  curtain.  We  washed  Discessus 
our  hands  and  heads  in  the  fountain,  and  thereby  waited 
in  order  till  the  King  through  a  secret  gallery  returned 
into  his  hall,  and  then  we  also,  with  choice  musick,  pomp, 
state,  and  pleasant  discourse,  were  conducted  into  our  for- 


134 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Discessus 

virgin! 

luciferae. 


Hospitum 
modi  in 
delecta- 
mentis. 


Autoris. 


Libellus  de 
Phoenice. 


Usus  eorum 
quae  autor 
vidit. 


mer  lodging.  Here,  that  the  time  might  not  seem  too  long 
to  us,  the  Virgin  bestowed  on  each  of  us  a  noble  Page,  not 
only  richly  habited  but  also  exceeding  learned,  and  able 
aptly  to  discourse  on  all  subjects,  so  that  we  had  reason  to 
be  ashamed  of  ourselves.  These  were  commanded  to  lead 
us  up  and  down  the  castle,  yet  only  in  certain  places,  and, 
if  possible,  to  shorten  the  time  according  to  our  desire. 
Meantime,  the  Virgin  took  leave,  promising  to  be  with  us 
again  at  supper,  and  after  that  to  celebrate  the  ceremonies 
of  hanging  up  the  weights,  while  on  the  morrow  we  should 
be  presented  to  the  King.  Each  of  us  now  did  what  best 
pleased  him,  one  part  viewing  the  excellent  paintings, 
which  they  copied  for  themselves,  and  considered  what  the 
wonderful  characters  might  signify,  others  recruiting  them- 
selves with  meat  and  drink.  I  caused  my  Page  to  conduct 
me,  with  my  Companion,  up  and  down  the  castle,  of  which 
walk  it  will  never  repent  me  so  long  as  I  live.  Besides 
many  other  glorious  antiquities,  the  Royal  Sepulcher  was 
shewed  me,  by  which  I  learned  more  than  is  extant  in  all 
books.  There  in  the  same  place  stands  the  glorious  Phoe- 
nix, of  which  two  years  since  I  published  a  small  discourse, 
and  am  resolved,  in  case  this  narrative  prove  useful,  to  set 
forth  several  treatises  concerning  the  Lyon,  Eagle,  Griffon, 
Falcon,  &c.,  together  with  their  draughts  and  inscriptions. 
It  grieves  me  also  for  my  other  consorts  that  they  neglected 
such  pretious  treasures.  I  indeed  reaped  the  most  benefit 
by  my  Page,  for  according  as  each  one's  genius  lay,  so  he 
led  his  intrusted  one  into  the  quarters  pleasing  to  him. 
Now  the  kyes  hereunto  belonging  were  committed  to  my 
Page,  and,  therefore,  this  good  fortune  happened  to  me 
before  the  rest,  for  though  he  invited  others  to  come  in, 
yet  they  imagining  such  tombs  to  be  only  in  the  church- 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    135 

yard,  thought  they  should  well  enough  get  thither  when 
ever  anything  was  to  be  seen  there.  Neither  shall  these 
monuments  be  with-held  from  my  thankful  schollars.  The 
other  thing  that  was  shewed  us  two  was  the  noble  Library 
as  it  was  altogether  before  the  Reformation,  of  which  I 
have  so  much  the  less  to  say,  because  the  catalogue  is 
shortly  to  be  published.  At  the  entry  of  this  room  stands 
a  great  Book  the  like  whereof  I  never  saw,  in  which  all  the 
figures,  rooms,  portals,  writings,  riddles,  and  the  like,  to  be 
seen  in  the  whole  castle  are  delineated.  In  every  book  stands 
its  author  painted,  whereof  many  were  to  be  burnt,  that  even 
their  memory  mightbe  blotted  out  from  amongstthe  righteous. 
Having  taken  a  full  view,  and  being  scarce  gotten  forth,  there 
comes  another  Page,  and  having  whispered  somewhat  in  our 
Page's  ear,  he  delivered  up  the  kyes  to  him,  who  immediately 
carried  them  up  the  winding  stairs  ;  but  our  Page  was  very 
much  out  of  countenance,  and  we,  setting  hard  upon  him 
with  intreaties,  he  declared  to  us  that  the  King's  Majesty 
would  by  no  means  permit  that  either  the  library  or 
sepulchers  should  be  seen  by  man,  and  he  besought  us  as 
we  tendered  his  life  to  discover  it  not  to  anyone,  he  having 
already  utterly  denyed  it;  whereupon  both  of  us  stood 
hovering  between  joy  and  fear,  yet  it  continued  in  silence, 
and  no  man  made  further  inquiry  about  it.  Thus  in  both 
places  we  consumed  three  hours,  and  now,  although  it  had 
struck  seven,  nothing  was  hitherto  given  us  to  eat,  but  our 
hunger  was  abated  by  constant  revivings,  and  I  could  be 
content  to  fast  all  my  life  with  such  an  entertainment. 
About  this  time  the  curious  fountains,  mines,  and  all  kind  Fastidium 
of  art  shops  were  also  shown  us,  of  which  there  was  none 


spectaculis. 

but  surpassed  all  our  arts  even  it  melted  into  one  mass. 
Every  chamber  was  built  in  semi-circle,  that  so  they  might 


136  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

officmarum  have  before  their  eyes  the  costly  clock-work  which  was 
rum  finis,      erected  upon  a  fair  turret  in  the  centre,  and  regulate  them- 
selves according  to  the  course  of  the  planets  which  were  to 
be  seen  on  it  in  a  glorious  manner.     At  length  I  came  into 
a  spacious  room,  in  the  middle  whereof  stood  a  terestrial 
oiobus         globe,  whose  diameter  contained  thirty  foot,  albeit  near 

terrenus. 

half,  except  a  little  which  was  covered  with  the  steps,  was 
let  into  the  earth.  Two  men  might  readily  turn  it  about, 
so  that  more  of  it  was  never  to  be  seen  but  so  much  as  was 
above  the  horizon.  I  could  not  understand  whereto  those 
ringlets  of  gold  (which  were  upon  it  in  several  places) 
served,  at  which  my  Page  laughed,  and  advised  me  to  view 
them  more  narrowly,  when  I  found  there  my  native  country 
noted  with  gold  also,  whereupon  my  companion  sought  his 
and  found  that  too.  The  same  happened  to  others  who 
stood  by,  and  the  Page  told  us  that  it  was  yesterday 
declared  to  the  King's  Majesty  by  their  old  astronomer 
Atlas,  that  all  the  gilded  points  did  exactly  answer  to  their 
native  countries,  and,  therefore,  he,  as  soon  as  he  perceived 
that  I  undervalued  myself,  but  that  nevertheless  there 
stood  a  point  upon  my  native  country,  moved  one  of 
the  captains  to  intreat  for  us  to  be  set  upon  the  scale 
at  all  adventures,  especially  seeing  one  of  our  native 
countries  had  a  notable  good  mark.  And  truly  it  was  not 
without  cause  that  he,  the  Page  of  greatest  power,  was  be- 
stowed on  me.  For  this  I  returned  him  thanks,  and  look- 
ing more  diligently  upon  my  native  country,  I  found  that, 
besides  the  ringlets,  there  were  also  certain  delicate  streaks 
Exceiientia  upon  it.  I  saw  much  more  even  upon  this  globe  than  I 
autoris.  am  willing  to  discover.  Let  each  man  take  into  considera- 
tion why  every  city  produceth  not  a  philosopher.  After 
this  he  led  us  within  the  globe,  for  on  the  sea  there  was  a 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    137 

tablet  (whereon  stood  three  dedications  and  the  author's 
name)  which  a  man  might  gently  lift  up,  and  by  a  little 
board  go  into  the  center,  which  was  capable  of  four 
persons,  being  nothing  but  a  round  board  whereon  we  Quid  in 
could  sit  and  at  ease  by  broad  daylight  (it  was  now  already 
dark)  contemplate  the  stars,  which  seemed  like  mere  car- 
buncles glittering  in  an  agreeable  order,  and  moving  so 
gallantly  that  I  had  scarce  any  mind  ever  to  go  out  again, 
as  the  Page  afterwards  told  the  Virgin,  and  with  which  she 
often  twitted  me,  for  it  was  already  supper  time  and  I  was 
almost  the  last  at  table.  The  waiters  treated  me  with  so 
much  reverence  and  honour  that  for  shame  I  durst  not  Reverentia 
look  up.  To  speak  concerning  the  musick,  or  the  rest  of  exiuMta 

.     auctoris. 

that  magnificent  entertainment,  I  hold  needless,  because  it 
is  not  possible  sufficiently  to  express  it.  In  brief  there  was 
nothing  there  but  art  and  amenity.  After  we  had  each  to 
other  related  our  employment  since  noon  (howbeit,  not  a 
word  was  spoken  of  the  library  and  monuments),  being 
already  merry  with  wine,  the  Virgin  began  thus: — "MyTheLady 
Lords,  I  have  a  great  contention  with  one  of  my  sisters. 
In  our  chamber  we  have  an  eagle,  whom  we  cherish  with 
such  diligence  that  each  of  us  is  desirous  to  be  the  best  Perplexed 

speeches,  or 

beloved,  and  upon  that  score  have  many  a  squabble.     On  intricate 

questions. 

a  day  we  concluded  to  go  both  together  to  him,  and  toward 
whom  he  should  show  himself  most  friendly,  hers  should  he 
properly  be.  This  we  did,  and  I,  as  commonly,  bare  in  my 
hand  a  branch  of  lawrel,  but  my  sister  had  none.  As  soon 
as  he  espyed  us  both,  he  gave  my  sister  another  branch 
which  he  had  in  his  beak,  and  offered  at  mine,  which  I  gave 
him.  Each  of  us  hereupon  imagined  herself  best  beloved 
of  him.  Which  way  am  I  to  resolve  myself  ?  " 
This  modest  proposal  pleased  us  mightly  well,  and  each 


138  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

one  would  gladly  have  heard  the  solution,  but  inasmuch  as 
all  looked  upon  me,  and  desired  to  have  the  beginning 
from  me,  my  mind  was  so  extreamly  confounded  that  I 
knew  not  what  to  do  but  propound  another  in  its  stead, 
and  said,  therefore: — "Gracious  Lady,  your  Ladyship's 
question  were  easily  to  be  resolved  if  one  thing  did  not 
The  Author's  perplex  me.  I  had  two  companions  who  both  loved  me 

counter- 
demand,        exceedingly  •  they  being  doubtful  which  was  most  dear  to 

me,  concluded  to  run  to  me  unawares,  and  that  he  whom  I 
should  then  embrace  should  be  the  right;  this  they  did, 
yet  one  of  them  could  not  keep  pace  with  the  other,  so  he 
staid  behind  and  wept ;  the  other  I  embraced  with  amaze- 
ment. When  they  had  afterwards  discovered  the  business 
to  me,  I  knew  not  how  to  resolve,  and  have  hitherto  let  it 
rest  in  this  manner  till  I  may  find  some  good  advice 
herein." 

The  Virgin  wondered  at  it,  and  well  observed  where 
about  I  was,  upon  which  she  replied,  that  we  should  both 
be  quit,  and  then  desired  the  solution  from  the  rest.  But 
I  had  already  made  them  wise,  wherefore  the  next  began 
.  thus — "In  my  city  a  Virgin  was  condemned  to  death,  but 
the  judge  being  pittiful  towards  her,  proclaimed  that  if  any 
man  desired  to  be  her  champion,  he  should  have  free  leave. 
Now  she  had  two  lovers;  one  made  himself  ready,  and 
came  into  the  lists  to  expect  his  adversary ;  afterwards  the 
other  presented  himself,  but  coming  too  late,  resolved 
nevertheless  to  fight,  and  suffer  himself  to  be  vanquished 
that  the  Virgin's  life  might  be  preserved,  which  succeeded 
accordingly.  Thereupon  each  challenged  her,  and  now,  my 
lords,  instruct  me  to  which  of  them  of  right  she  belongeth." 
The  Virgin  could  hold  no  longer,  but  said  : — "  I  thought  to 
have  gained  much  information,  and  am  my  self  gotten  into 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    139 

the  net ;  yet  I  would  gladly  hear  whether  there  be  any 
more  behind."  "  Yes,  that  there  is,"  answered  the  third, 
"  a  stranger  adventure  hath  not  been  recounted  then  that 
which  happened  to  myself.  In  my  youth  I  loved  a  worthy  Gripims,  4. 
maid,  and  that  my  love  might  attain  its  end  I  made  use  of 
an  ancient  matron,  who  easily  brought  me  to  her.  Now  it 
happened  that  the  maid's  brethren  came  in  upon  us  as  we 
three  were  together,  and  were  in  such  a  rage  that  they 
would  have  taken  my  life,  but,  on  my  vehement  supplica- 
tion, they  at  length  forced  me  to  swear  to  take  each  of  them 
for  a  year  to  my  wedded  wife.  Now,  tell  me,  my  Lords, 
should  I  take  the  old  or  the  young  one  first  ] "  We  all 
laughed  sufficiently  at  this  riddle,  yet  none  would  under- 
take to  unfold  it,  and  the  fourth  began.  "  In  a  certain  Giipims,  5. 
city  there  dwelt  an  honourable  lady,  beloved  of  all,  but 
especially  of  a  noble  young  man,  who  would  needs  be  too 
importunate  with  her.  At  length  she  gave  him  this  de- 
termination, that  in  case  he  would,  in  a  cold  winter,  lead 
her  into  a  fair  green  garden  of  Eoses,  then  he  should  obtain, 
but  if  not  he  must  resolve  never  to  see  her  more.  The 
noble  man  travelled  into  all  countries  to  find  one  who  might 
perform  this,  till  at  length  he  lite  upon  a  little  old  man  who 
promised  to  do  it  for  him,  in  case  he  would  assure  him  of 
half  his  estate,  which  he  having  consented  to  the  other  was 
as  good  as  his  word.  Whereupon  he  invited  the  Lady 
home  to  his  garden,  where,  contrary  to  her  expectation, 
she  found  all  things  green,  pleasant,  and  warm;  and 
remembring  her  promise,  she  only  requested  that  she 
might  once  more  return  to  her  lord,  to  whom  with  sighs 
and  tears  she  bewailed  her  lamentable  condition.  Her 
lord,  sufficiently  perceiving  her  faithfulness,  dispatched  her 
back  to  her  lover,  who  had  so  dearly  purchased  her,  that 


140  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

she  might  give  him  satisfaction,  when  the  husband's 
integrity  so  mightily  affected  the  noble  man  that  he 
thought  it  a  sin  to  touch  so  honest  a  wife,  and  sent  her 
home  with  honour  to  her  lord.  The  little  man,  perceiving 
such  faith  in  all  these,  would  not,  how  poor  soever  he  were, 
be  the  least,  but  restored  the  noble  man  all  his  goods,  and 
went  his  way.  Now,  my  lords,  which  of  these  persons 
showed  the  greatest  ingenuity  ? "  Here  our  tongues  were 
quite  cut  off,  neither  would  the  Virgin  make  any  reply  but 
that  another  should  go  on ;  wherefore  the  fifth  began  :— 
"I  desire  not  to  make  long  work.  Who  hath  the  greater 
joy,  he  that  beholdeth  what  he  loveth,  or  he  that  only 
thinketh  on  it  1 "  "  He  that  beholdeth  it,"  said  the  Virgin. 
"  Nay,"  answered  I,  and  hereupon  rose  a  contest  till  the 
sixth  called  out : — "  My  lords,  I  am  to  take  a  wife  ;  I  have 
before  me  a  maid,  a  married  wife,  and  a  widdow ;  ease  me 
of  this  doubt,  and  I  will  help  to  order  the  rest."  "  It  goes 
well  there,"  replied  the  seventh,  "when  a  man  hath  his 
choice,  but  with  me  the  case  is  otherwise.  In  my  youth  I 
loved  a  fair  and  virtuous  virgin,  and  she  me  in  like 
manner ;  howbeit,  because  of  her  friends'  denyal,  we  could 
not  come  together  in  wedlock,  whereupon  she  was  married 
to  another,  who  maintained  her  honourably  and  with 
affection,  till  she  came  into  the  pains  of  childbirth,  which 
went  so  hard  with  her  that  all  thought  she  was  dead,  so 
with  much  state  and  mourning  she  was  interred.  Now,  I 
thought  with  myself,  during  her  life  thou  couldst  have  no 
part  in  this  woman,  but  dead  as  she  is,  thou  mayst 
embrace  her  sufficiently,  whereupon  I  took  my  servant 
with  me,  who  dug  her  up  by  night.  Having  opened  the 
coffin  and  locked  her  in  my  arms,  I  found  some  little 
motion  in  her  heart,  which  increased  from  my  warmth,  till 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    141 

I  perceived  she  was  indeed  alive.  I  quietly  bore  her  home, 
and  after  I  had  warmed  her  chilled  body  with  a  costly  bath 
of  herbs,  I  committed  her  to  my  mother  until  she  brought 
forth  a  fair  son,  whom  I  caused  faithfully  to  be  nursed. 
After  two  days  (she  being  then  in  a  mighty  amazement)  I 
discovered  to  her  all  the  affair,  requesting  that  for  the 
time  to  come  she  would  live  with  me  as  a  wife,  against 
which  she  excepted  thus,  in  case  it  should  be  grievous  to 
her  husband,  who  had  maintained  her  well  and  honourably, 
but  if  it  could  otherwise  be,  she  was  the  present  obliged  in 
love  to  one  as  well  as  the  other.  After  two  months  (being 
then  to  make  a  journey  elsewhere)  I  invited  her  husband 
as  a  guest,  and  amongst  other  things  demanded  of  him 
whether  if  his  deceased  wife  should  come  home  again  he 
could  be  content  to  receive  her,  and  he  affirming  it  with 
tears  and  lamentations,  I  brought  him  his  wife  and  son, 
recounting  all  the  fore-passed  business,  and  intreating  him 
to  ratine  with  his  consent  my  fore-purposed  espousals. 
After  a  long  dispute  he  could  not  beat  me  from  my  right, 
but  was  fain  to  leave  me  the  wife.  But  still  the  contest 
was  about  the  son."  Here  the  Virgin  interrupted  him  and 
said  : — "  It  makes  me  wonder  how  you  could  double  the 
afflicted  man's  grief."  Upon  this  there  arose  a  dispute 
amongst  us,  the  most  part  affirming  he  had  done  but  right. 
"  Nay,"  said  he,  "I  freely  returned  him  both  his  wife  and 
son.  Now  tell  me,  my  lords,  was  my  honesty  or  this 
man's  joy  the  greater  1 "  These  words  so  mightily  cheared 
the  Virgin  that  she  caused  a  health  to  go  round,  after 
which  other  proposals  went  on  somewhat  perplexedly,  so 
that  I  could  not  retain  them  all;  yet  this  comes  to  my 
mind,  that  one  told  how  a  few  years  before  he  had  seen  a 
physitian,  who  bought  a  parcel  of  wood  against  winter,  9. 


142 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Virgo 

lucifera 

gratiositas. 


^Enigma 
de  Nomine. 


60,  Sc.  quot 
virgines. 


with  which  he  warmed  himself  all  winter  long ;  but  as  soon 
as  spring  returned  he  sold  the  very  same  wood  again,  and 
so  had  the  use  of  it  for  nothing.  "  Here  must  needs  be 
skill,"  said  the  Virgin,  "  but  the  time  is  now  past." 
"  Yea,"  replyed  my  companion,  "  whoever  understands  how 
to  resolve  all  the  riddles  may  give  notice  of  it  by  a  proper 
messenger;  I  conceive  he  will  not  be  denied."  At  this 
time  they  began  to  say  grace,  and  we  arose  altogether 
from  the  table  rather  satisfied  and  merry  than  glutted  ;  it 
were  to  be  wished  that  all  invitations  and  f eastings  were 
thus  kept.  Having  taken  some  few  turns  up  and  down 
the  hall,  the  Virgin  asked  us  whether  we  desired  to  begin 
the  wedding.  "  Yes,"  said  one,  "  noble  and  vertuous 
lady;"  whereupon  she  privately  dispatched  a  Page,  and, 
meantime,  proceeded  in  discourse  with  us.  In  brief,  she 
was  become  so  familiar  that  I  adventured  and  requested 
her  Name.  The  Virgin  smiled  at  my  curiosity,  and 
replyed  : — "  My  name  contains  five  and  fifty,  and  yet  hath 
only  eight  letters  ;  the  third  is  the  third  part  of  the  fifth, 
which  added  to  the  sixth  will  produce  a  number,  whose 
root  shall  exceed  the  third  itself  by  just  the  first,  and  it  is 
the  half  of  the  fourth.  Now  the  fifth  and  seventh  are 
equal,  the  last  and  first  also  equal,  and  make  with  the 
second  as  much  as  the  sixth  hath,  which  contains  four 
more  than  the  third  tripled.  Now  tell  me,  my  lord,  how 
am  I  called  1 " 

The  answer  was  intricate  enough,  yet  I  left  not  off,  but 
said: — "Noble  and  vertuous  Lady,  may  I  not  obtain  one 
only  letter  1 "  "  Yea,"  said  she,  "  that  may  well  be  done. 
1 '  What,  then,"  I  proceeded,  "may  the  seventh  contain1?" 
"  It  contains,"  said  she,  "  as  many  as  there  are  lords  here." 
With  this  I  easily  found  her  Name,  at  which  she  was  well 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    143 
pleased,  saying;  that  much  more  should  yet  be  revealed  to  Redduntm- 

pondera 

us.     Meantime  certain  virgins  had  made  themselves  ready,  choro 

J  '  Virginum. 

and  came  in  with  great  ceremony.  Two  youths  carried  2  Juvenes. 
lights  before  them,  one  of  whom  was  of  jocond  countenance, 
sprightly  eyes,  and  gentile  proportion,  while  the  other  lookt 
something  angerly,  and  whatever  he  would  have  must  be,  as 
I  afterwards  perceived.  Four  Virgins  followed  them ;  one  4 
looked  shamefully  towards  the  earth  -}  the  second  also  was 
a  modest,  bashful  Virgin ;  the  third,  as  she  entered,  seemed 
amazed  at  somewhat,  and,  as  I  understood,  she  cannot  well 
abide  where  there  is  too  much  mirth.  The  fourth  brought 
with  her  certain  small  wreaths,  to  manifest  her  kindness 
and  liberality.  After  these  four  came  two  somewhat  more  2 
gloriously  apparelled ;  they  saluted  us  courteously.  One  of 
them  had  a  gown  of  skeye-colour,  spangled  with  golden 
stars :  the  other's  was  green,  beautified  with  red  and  white 
stripes.  On  their  heads  they  had  thin  flying  white  tiffaties, 
which  did  most  becomingly  adorn  them.  At  last  came  one  i  virgo 

praestans. 

alone,  wearing  a  coronet,  and  rather  looking  up  towards 
heaven  than  towards  earth.  We  all  took  her  for  the 
Bride,  but  were  much  mistaken,  although  in  honour,  riches, 
and  state  she  much  surpassed  the  bride,  and  afterwards 
ruled  the  whole  Wedding.  On  this  occasion  we  all  fol-  The 
lowed  our  Virgin,  and  fell  on  our  knees;  howbeit,  she 
shewed  herself  extreamly  humble,  offering  each  her  hand, 
and  admonishing  us  not  to  be  too  much  surprized  at  this, 
\vhich  was  one  of  her  smallest  bounties,  but  to  lift  up  our 
eyes  to  our  Creator  and  acknowledge  his  Omnipotency,  and 
so  proceed  in  our  enterprised  course,  employing  this  grace 
to  the  praise  of  God  and  the  good  of  man.  In  sum  her 
words  were  quite  different  from  those  of  our  Virgin,  who 
was  somewhat  more  worldly.  They  pierced  even  through 


144 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Ponderum 
repositio  in 
locum  suum. 

The 
Dutchess. 


Reginae 
habitatio. 


Supellex. 

The 
Dutchess. 


Virgo 
lucifera 
discedit 
cubitum. 


Puerorum 

comitum 

offlcium. 


my  bones  and  marrow.  "  Thou,"  said  she  further  to  me, 
"  hast  received  more  than  others  ;  see  that  thou  also  make 
a  larger  return." 

This  to  me  was  a  very  strange  sermon,  for  as  soon  as  we 
saw  the  Virgins  with  the  musick,  we  imagined  we  should 
fall  to  dancing.  Now  the  Weights  stood  still  in  the  same 
place,  wherefore  the  Queen  (I  yet  know  not  who  she  was) 
commanded  each  Virgin  to  take  up  one,  but  to  our  Virgin 
she  gave  her  own,  which  was  the  largest,  and  commanded 
us  to  follow  behind.  Our  majesty  was  then  somewhat 
abated,  for  I  observed  that  our  Virgin  was  but  too  good  for 
us,  and  that  we  were  not  so  highly  reputed  as  we  ourselves 
were  almost  willing  to  phantsie.  We  were  brought  into 
the  first  Chamber,  where  our  Virgin  hung  up  the  Queen's 
weight,  during  which  an  excellent  spiritual  hymn  was 
sung.  There  was  nothing  costly  in  this  room  save  certain 
curious  little  Prayer-Books  which  should  never  be  missing. 
In  the  midst  was  a  pulpit,  convenient  for  prayer,  where  in 
the  Queen  kneeled  down,  and  about  her  we  also  were  fain 
to  kneel  and  pray  after  the  Virgin,  who  read  out  of  a  book, 
that  this  Wedding  might  tend  to  the  honour  of  God,  and 
our  own  benefit.  We  then  came  into  the  second  chamber, 
where  the  first  Virgin  hung  up  her  weight  also,  and  so  for- 
ward till  all  the  ceremonies  were  finished,  upon  which  the 
Queen  again  presented  her  hand  to  every  one,  and  departed 
with  her  Virgins.  Our  president  staied  awhile  with  us,  but 
because  it  had  been  already  two  hours  night  she  would  then 
no  longer  detain  us,  and,  though  methought  she  was  glad 
of  our  company,  she  bid  us  good  night,  wishing  us  quiet 
rest.  Our  Pages  were  well  instructed,  and  shewed  every 
man  his  chamber,  staying  with  us  in  another  pallet,  in  case 
we  wanted  any  thing.  My  chamber  was  royally  furnished 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    145 

with  rare  tapistries,  and  hung  about  with  paintings ;  but  Autoris 
above  all  things  I  was  delighted  in  my  Page,  who  was  so 
excellently  spoken,  and  experienced  in  the  arts,  that  he  yet 
spent  me  another  hour,  and  it  was  half  an  hour  after  three 
when  I  fell  asleep.     This  was  the  first  night  that  I  slept  in 
quiet,  and  yet  a  scurvy  dream  would  not  suffer  me  to  rest, 
for  I  was  troubled  with  a  Door  which  I  could  not  get  open, 
though  at  last  I  did  so.     With  these  phantasies  I  passed  Somnium 
the  time,  till  at  length,  towards  day,  I  awaked.  difflciu. 

The  Fourth  Day. 

I  still  lay  in  my  bed,  and  leisurely  surveighed  the  noble  Autor 
images  and  figures  about  my  chamber,  during  which,  on  a  dormiens 
sudden,  I  heard  the  musick  of  coronets,  as  if  already  they  had 
been  in  procession.  My  Page  skipped  out  of  the  bed  as  if  he 
had  been  at  his  wits'  end,  and  looked  more  like  one  dead 
than  living.  "  The  rest  are  already  presented  to  the  King," 
said  he.  I  knew  not  what  else  to  do  but  weep  outright, 
and  curse  my  own  sloathfulness.  I  dressed  myself,  but  my 
Page  was  ready  long  before  me,  and  ran  out  of  the  chamber 
to  see  how  affairs  might  yet  stand.  He  soon  returned  with 
the  joyful  news  that  the  time  was  not  past,  only  I  had 
over-slept  my  breakfast,  they  being  unwilling  to  waken  me  Jentacuio 
because  of  my  age,  but  that  now  it  was  time  for  me  to  go 
with  him  to  the  Fountain,  where  most  were  assembled. 
With  this  consolation  my  spirit  returned,  wherefore  I  was 
soon  ready  with  my  habit,  and  went  after  the  Page  to  the 
Fountain  in  the  Garden,  where  I  found  that  the  Lyon,  in- 
stead of  his  sword,  had  a  pretty  large  tablet  by  him.  Leonis 

Tabula 

Having  well  viewed  it,  I  found  that  it  was  taken  out  of  the 
ancient  monuments,  and  placed  here  for  some  especial 
honour.  The  inscription  was  worn  with  age,  and,  therefore, 

K 


146  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

I  am  minded  to  set  it  down  here,  as  it  is,  and  give  every 
one  leave  to  consider  it. 

HERMES  PRINCEPS. 

POST  TOT  ILLATA 

GENERI  HUMANO  DAMNA, 

DEI  CONSILIO  : 

ARTISQUE  ADMINICULO 

MEDICINA  SALUBRIS  FACTUS 

HEIC  FLUO. 

Bibat  ex  me  qui  potest  :  lavet,  qui  vult  :  turbet,  qui  audet  : 
BIBITE  FRATRES,  ET  VIVITE. 


Scripture  This  writing  might  well  be  read  and  understood,  being 
easier  than  any  of  the  rest.  After  we  had  washed  our- 
selves out  of  the  Fountain,  and  every  man  had  taken  a 

Potus.  draught  out  of  an  intirely  golden  cup,  we  once  more  fol- 
lowed the  Virgin  into  the  hall,  and  there  put  on  new 

Vestitus.  apparel,  all  of  cloth  of  gold  gloriously  set  out  with  flowers. 
There  was  also  given  to  everyone  another  Golden  Fleece, 
set  about  with  pretious  stones,  and  various  workmanship 
according  to  the  utmost  skill  of  each  artificer.  On  it  hung 
a  weighty  medal  of  gold,  whereupon  were  figured  the  sun 
and  moon  in  opposition,  but  on  the  other  side  stood  this 
poesie  :  —  "  The  light  of  the  moon  shall  be  as  the  light  of 
the  sun,  and  the  light  of  the  sun  shall  be  seven  times 
brighter  than  at  present."  Our  former  jewels  were  laid  in 
a  little  casket,  and  committed  to  one  of  the  waiters. 
After  this  the  Virgin  led  us  out  in  our  order,  where  the 
musitians  waited  ready  at  the  door,  all  apparelled  in  red 
velvet  with  white  guards.  After  which  a  door,  that  J 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    147 

never  before  saw  open,  was  unlocked ;  it  opened  on  the 
Eoyal  winding-stairs.     There  the  Virgin  led  us,  together  Accessus 

"ad  regis 

with  the  musick,  up  three  hundred  sixty-five  stairs ;   we  auiam. 
saw  nothing  but  what  was  of  extream  costly  and  artificial 
workmanship ;  the  further  we  went,  the  more  glorious  still 
was  the  furniture,  until  at  the  top  we  came  under  a  painted 
arch,  where  the  sixty  virgins  attended  us,  all  richly  ap-  Latorato- 

rium  aron- 

parelled.     As  soon  as  they  had  bowed  to  us,  and  we  as  atum  60 

'  Virgines. 

well  as  we  could  had  returned  our  reverence,  the  musitians 
were  dispatched  away  down  the  winding-stairs,  the  Door 
being  shut  after  them.     Then  a  little  Bell  was  told,  when 
in  came  a  beautiful  Virgin,  who  brought  every  one  a  wreath 
of  lawrel,   but   our   Virgins    had    branches    given    them.  vh-g.  Ludf. 
Meanwhile,  a  curtain  was  drawn  up,  where  I  saw  the  King 
and  Queen  as  they  sate  in  their  majesty,  and  had  not  the 
yesterday  queen  warned  me  I  should  have  equalled  this 
unspeakable  glory  to  Heaven ;  for  besides  that  the  room  Regis  et 
glittered  of  meer  gold  and  pretious  stones,  the   Queen's  gloria, 
robes  were  so  made  that  I  was  not  able  to  behold  them. 
In  the  meantime  the  Virgin  stept  in,  and  then  each  of  the 
other  virgins,  taking  one  of  us  by  the  hand,  with  most  pro-  Virgo 

T7--  TT  lucifera 

found  reverence  presented  us  to  the  King.     Whereupon  praesentat 

hospites 

the  Virgin  began  thus  to  speak  : — "  That  to  honour  your 
most  gratious,  royal  Majesties,  these  Lords  have  adventured 
hither  with  peril  of  body  and  life,  your  Majesties  have 
reason  to  rejoyce,  especially  since  the  greatest  part  are 
qualified  for  inlarging  your  Majesties'  dominions,  as  you 
will  find  by  a  most  gratious  particular  examination  of  each. 
Herewith  I  was  desirous  thus  to  have  them  in  humility 
presented  to  your  Majesties,  with  most  humble  suit  to  dis- 
charge me  of  this  my  commission,  and  to  take  information 
from  each  of  them  concerning  my  actions  and  omissions." 


148 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Respites 

nesciunt 

respondere. 

Atlas 

respondet. 


Descriptio 
labatorii. 


Subscellia. 


1.  Rex  senex 
Conjux 
Juven. 

2.  Rex  and 
conjuxsene". 


Scomna. 
assessores. 


Cnpide. 


Hereupon  she  laid  her  branch  on  the  ground.  It  would 
have  been  fitting  for  one  of  us  to  have  spoken  somewhat  on 
this  occasion,  but,  seeing  we  were  all  troubled  with  the 
falling  of  the  uvula,  old  Atlas  stept  forward  and  spoke  on 
the  King's  behalf : — "  Their  Eoyal  Majesties  most  gratiously 
rejoyce  at  your  arrival,  and  will  that  their  grace  be  assured 
to  all.  With  thy  administration,  gentle  Virgin,  they  are 
most  gratiously  satisfied,  and  a  Royal  Reward  shall  be 
provided  for  thee ;  yet  it  is  their  intention  that  thou  shalt 
this  day  also  continue  with  them,  inasmuch  as  they  have 
no  reason  to  mistrust  thee." 

Here  the  Virgin  humbly  took  up  the  branch,  and  we  for 
this  first  time  were  to  step  aside  with  her.  This  room  was 
square  on  the  front,  five  times  broader  than  it  was  long, 
but  towards  the  West  it  had  a  great  arch  like  a  porch,  where 
stood  in  circle  three  glorious  thrones,  the  middlemost  being 
somewhat  higher  than  the  rest.  In  each  throne  sate  two 
persons — in  the  first  sate  a  very  antient  King  with  a  gray 
beard,  yet  his  consort  was  extraordinarily  fair  and  young. 
In  the  third  throne  sate  a  black  King  of  middle  age,  and 
by  him  a  dainty  old  matron,  not  crowned,  but  covered 
with  a  vail.  But  in  the  middle  sate  the  two  young 
persons,  who  though  they  had  likewise  wreaths  of  lawrel 
upon  their  heads,  yet  over  them  hung  a  large  and  costly 
crown.  Now  albeit  they  were  not  at  this  time  so  fair  as  I 
had  before  imagined  to  my  self,  yet  so  it  was  to  be. 
Behind  them  on  a  round  form  sat  for  the  most  part  antient 
men,  yet  none  had  any  sword  or  other  weapon  about  him. 
Neither  saw  I  any  life-guard  but  certain  Virgins  which 
were  with  us  the  day  before,  and  who  sate  on  the  sides  of 
the  arch.  I  cannot  pass  in  silence  how  the  little  Cupid 
flew  to  and  again  there,  but  for  the  most  part  he  hovered 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    149 

about  the  great  crown.     Sometimes  he  seated  himself  in 

between  the  two  lovers,  somewhat  smiling  upon  them  with 

his  bow.     Sometimes  he  made  as  if  he  would  shoot  one  of 

us  ;  in  brief,  this  knave  was  so  full  of  his  waggery,  that 

he  would  not  spare  even  the  little  birds,  which  in  multi-  Aves. 

tudes  flew  up  and  down  the  room,  but  tormented  them  all 

he  could.     The  virgins  also  had  their  pastimes  with  him,  virgines. 

and  when  they  could  catch  him  it  was  no  easie  matter  for 

him  to  get  from  them  again.     Thus  this  little  knave  made 

all  the  sport  and  mirth.     Before  the  Queen  stood  a  small  supeiiex  in 

.  -11-1  -i  au^a  altai'e. 

but  inexpressibly  curious  altar,  wherein  lay  a  book  covered  i.  Book. 
with  black  velvet,  only  a  little  overlaid  with  gold.    By  this 
stood  a  taper  in  an  ivory  candlestick,  which,  although  very  2-  Taper. 
small,  burnt  continually,  and  stood  in  that  manner,  that 
had  not  Cupid,  in  sport,  now  and  then  puffed  upon  it,  we 
could  not  have  conceived  it  to  be  fire.     By  this  stood  a 
sphere  or  celestial  globe,   which  of  itself  turned   about.  3.  sphsere. 
Next  this  was  a   small   striking- watch,  by  that   a   little  4.  watch. 
christal  pipe  or  syphon-fountain,  out  of  which  perpetually  5.  Little 
ran  a  clear  blood-red  liquor,  and  last  of  all  there  was  a  scull 
or  death's  head,  in  which  was  a  white  serpent,  of  such  a  6.  Scuii. 

serpent. 

length,  that  though  she  crept  circle-wise  about  the  rest  of 
it,  yet  her  taile  still  remained  in  one  of  the  eye -holes  until  her 
head  agaia  entered  at  the  other  ;  so  she  never  stirred  from 
her  scull,  unless  Cupid  twitched  a  little  at  her,  when  she 
slipt  in  so  suddenly  that  we  could  not  choose  but  marvel  at 
it.     There  were  hung  up  and  down  the  room  wonderful 
images,  which  moved  as  if  alive.     Likewise,  as  we  were  imagines, 
passing  out,  there  began  such  marvellous  vocal  musick  that  Musicse. 
I  could  not  tell  whether  it  were  performed  by  the  virgins 
who  yet  stayed  behind,  or  by  the  images  themselves.     We,  Disceaitur 

.     .  ,  .  .  ,  ex  labora- 

being  for  this  time  satisfied,  went  thence  with  our  virgins,  tovio 


150 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Virgines 
jocantur 
de  senio 
autoris. 


Convivium 
cum  virgini- 
bus. 


Sermones 
conviviales. 


Autor 
maestus  ob 
senium. 


Jocosum 
solatium 
accipit  a 
Virgine. 


Socio. 


Virg.  lucif . 


who,  the  musitians,  being  already  present,  led  us  down  the 
winding  stairs,  the  door  being  diligently  locked  and  bolted. 
As  soon  as  we  were  come  again  into  the  hall,  one  of  the 
virgins  began  : — "  I  wonder,  Sister,  that  you  durst  adven- 
ture yourself  amongst  so  many  persons."  "  My  Sister," 
reply ed  our  president,  "  I  am  fearful  of  none  so  much  as  of 
this  man,"  pointing  at  me.  This  speech  went  to  my  heart, 
for  I  understood  that  she  mocked  at  my  age,  and  indeed  I 
was  the  oldest  of  all ;  yet  she  comforted  me  by  promising, 
that  in  case  I  behaved  myself  well  towards  her,  she  would 
easily  rid  me  of  this  burden. 

Meantime  a  collation  was  again  brought  in,  and  every 
one's  Virgin  seated  by  him,  who  well  knew  how  to  shorten 
the  time  with  handsom  discourses,  but  what  these  and 
their  sports  were  I  dare  not  blab  out  of  school.  Most  of 
the  questions  were  about  the  arts,  whereby  I  could  lightly 
gather  that  both  young  and  old  were  conversant  in  the 
sciences.  Still  it  run  in  my  thoughts  how  I  might  become 
young  again,  whereupon  I  was  somewhat  the  sadder.  This 
the  Virgin  perceived,  and,  therefore,  began : — "I  dare  lay 
anything,  if  I  lye  with  him  to-night,  he  shall  be  pleasanter 
in  the  morning."  Hereupon  they  began  to  laugh,  and 
albeit  I  blushed  all  over,  I  was  fain  to  laugh  too  at  my 
own  ill-luck.  ]S"ow  there  was  one  there  that  had  a  mind  to 
return  my  disgrace  upon  the  Virgin,  whereupon  he  said  :— 
"  I  hope  not  only  we  but  the  virgins  themselves  will  bear 
witness,  that  our  Lady  President  hath  promised  herself  to 
be  his  bed-fellow  to-night."  "I  should  be  well  content 
with  it,"  replyed  the  Virgin,  "  if  I  had  not  reason  to  be 
afraid  of  these  my  sisters ;  there  would  be  no  hold  with 
them  should  I  choose  the  best  and  handsomest  for  myself/' 
"  My  Sister,"  presently  began  another,  "  we  find  hereby 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    151 

that  thy  high  office  makes  thee  not  proud,  wherefore  if  by 
thy  permission  we  might  by  lot  part  the  Lords  here  present, 
thou  shouldst,  with  our  goodwill,  have  such  a  preroga- 
tive." We  let  this  pass  for  a  jest,  and  began  again  to  dis- 
course together,  but  our  Virgin  could  not  leave  tormenting 
us,  and  continued: — "My  lords,  how  if  we  should  permit 
fourtune  to  decide  which  of  us  must  be  together  to-night  1 "  una  dor- 

mientium. 

"Well,"  said  I,  "if  it  may  be  no  otherwise,  we  cannot 
refuse  such  a  proffer."  Now  because  it  was  concluded  to 
make  this  trial  after  meat,  we  resolved  to  sit  no  longer  at 
table,  so  we  arose  and  each  walked  up  and  down  with  his 
Virgin.  "  Nay,"  said  the  president,  "  it  shall  not  be  so 
yet,  but  let  us  see  how  fortune  will  couple  us,"  upon  which 
we  were  separated.  Now  first  arose  a  dispute  how  the 
business  should  be  carried  out,  but  this  was  only  a  pre- 
meditated device,  for  the  Virgin  instantly  proposed  that 
we  should  mix  ourselves  in  a  ring,  and  that  she  beginning 
to  count  from  herself,  the  seventh  was  to  be  content  with 
the  following  seventh,  were  it  a  virgin  or  man.  We  were 
not  aware  of  any  craft,  and  therefore  permitted  it  so  to  be ; 
but  when  we  thought  we  had  very  well  mingled  ourselves, 
the  Virgins  were  so  subtil  that  each  knew  her  station 
before-hand.  The  president  began  to  reckon,  the  seventh 
next  her  was  a  Virgin,  the  third  seventh  a  Virgin  likewise, 
and  this  continued  till,  to  our  amazement,  all  the  Virgins 
came  forth  and  none  of  us  was  hit.  Thus  we  poor  wretches 
remained  standing  alone,  and  were  forced  to  confess  that 
we  had  been  handsomely  couzened,  albeit,  whoever  had 
seen  us  in  our  order  might  sooner  have  expected  the  sky  to 
fall  then  that  it  should  never  have  come  to  our  turn. 
Herewith  our  sport  was  abandoned.  In  the  interim  the 
little  wanton  Cupid  came  also  in  unto  us,  but  because  he 


A  merry 
dance. 


Hospites 
invitantur 
a  virgine 
Lucif.  ad 
comediam. 


Processus 
Regis  ad 
spectandum 
comediam. 


I5±  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

presented  himself  on  behalf  of  their  Royal  Majesties,  and 
deliverd  us  a  health  from  them  out  of  a  golden  cup,  and 
was  to  call  our  Virgin  to  the  King,  withal  declaring  he 
could  not  at  this  time  tarry,  we  could  not  sport  ourselves 
with  him,  so,  with  a  due  return  of  our  most  humble  thanks 
we  let  him  flye  forth  again.  Now  because  the  mirth  began 
to  fall  into  my  consort's  feet,  and  the  Virgins  were  nothing 
sorry  to  see  it,  they  lead  up  a  civil  dance  which  I  rather 
beheld  with  pleasure  then  assisted,  for  my  mercurialists 
were  so  ready  with  their  postures,  as  if  they  had  been  long 
of  the  trade.  After  some  few  dances,  our  president  came 
in  again,  and  told  us  how  the  artists  and  students  had 
offered  themselves  to  their  Royal  Majesties  before  their 
departure  to  act  a  merry  comedy ;  and  if  we  thought  good 
to  be  present  thereat,  and  to  waite  upon  their  Royal 
Majesties  to  the  House  of  the  Sun,  it  would  be  acceptable 
to  them.  Hereupon  we  returned  our  humble  thanks  for 
the  honour  vouchsafed  us,  and  most  submissively  tendered 
our  small  service,  which  the  Virgin  related,  and  presently 
brought  word  to  attend  their  Royal  Majesties  in  the  gallery, 
whither  we  were  soon  led,  and  staid  not  long  there,  for  the 
Royal  Procession  was  just  ready,  yet  without  musick.  The 
unknown  Queen  who  was  yesterday  with  us  went  foremost 
with  a  small  and  costly  coronet,  apparelled  in  white  satin, 
and  carrying  nothing  but  a  small  crucifix  made  of  a  pearl, 
and  this  very  day  wrought  between  the  young  King  and 
his  Bride.  After  her  went  the  six  fore-mentioned  Virgins 
in  two  ranks,  carrying  the  King's  jewels  belonging  to  the 
little  altar.  Next  to  these  came  the  three  Kings.  The 
Bridegroom  was  in  the  midst  of  them  with  a  plain  dress  of 
black  sattin,  after  the  Italian  mode.  He  had  on  a  small 
round  black  hat,  with  a  little  black  pointed  feather,  which 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    153 

he  courteously  put  off  to  us,  thereby  to  signify  his  favour 
towards  us.  To  him  we  bowed,  as  we  had  been  before 
instructed.  After  the  Kings  came  the  three  Queens,  two 
whereof  were  richly  habited ;  she  in  the  middle  went  like- 
wise all  in  black,  and  Cupid  held  up  her  train.  Intimation 
was  given  us  to  follow,  and  after  us  the  Virgins,  old  Atlas 
bringing  up  the  rear.  Through  many  stately  walks  we 
came  to  the  House  of  the  Sun,  there  next  to  the  King  and 
Queen,  upon  a  richly  furnished  scaffold,  to  behold  the  fore- 
ordained comedy.  "We,  though  separated,  stood  on  the  statio 
right  hand  of  the  Kings,  but  the  Virgins  on  the  left,  except SI 
those  to  whom  the  Eoyal  Ensignes  were  committed.  To 
them  was  allotted  a  peculiar  standing  at  top  of  all,  but  the 
rest  of  the  attendants  were  content  to  stand  below  between 
the  columns.  Now  because  there  are  many  remarkable  A  Precipua 
passages  in  this  Comedy,  I  will  in  brief  run  it  over.  Cur.e~ 

First  of  all  came  forth  a  very  antient  King  with  some  Actus  i. 
servants  ;  before  his  throne  was  brought  a  little  chest,  with 
mention  that  it  was  found  upon  the  water.  Being  opened, 
there  appeared  in  it  a  lovely  babe,  together  with  certain 
jewels,  and  a  small  parchment  sealed,  and  superscribed  to 
the  King.  This  the  King  presently  opened,  and  having 
read  it,  he  wept  and  declared  to  his  servants  how  in- 
juriously the  King  of  the  iKOOX'f  J3  had  deprived  his  aunt 
of  her  country,  and  had  extinguished  all  the  royal  seed  even 
to  this  infant,  with  the  Daughter  of  which  country  he  had 
purposed  to  match  his  Son.  Hereupon  he  swore  to  main- 
tain perpetual  enmity  with  the  Moore  and  his  allies,  and  to 
revenge  this  on  him.  He  commanded  that  the  Child 
should  be  tenderly  nursed,  and  to  make  preparations  against 
the  Moore.  This  provision,  and  the  discipline  of  the 
young  lady  (who  after  she  was  a  little  grown  up  was  com- 


154  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCTANS. 

mitted  to  an  ancient  tutor),  continued  all  the  first  act,  with 
interiudium.  many  laudable  sports  beside.     In  the  interlude  a  Lyon  and 
Griffon  were  set  at  one  another,  and  the  Lyon  got  the 
victory ;  this  was  also  a  pretty  sight. 

Actus  2.  In  the  second  act,  the  Moore,  a  black,  treacherous  fellow, 

came  forth,  who  having  with  vexation  understood  that  his 
murder  was  discovered,  and  that  a  little  lady  was  craftily 
stollen  from  him,  began  to  consult  how  by  stratagem  he 
might  encounter  so  powerful  an  adversary,  whereof  he  was 
at  length  advised  by  certain  fugitives  who  fled  to  him 
through  famine.  So  the  young  lady,  contrary  to  all 
expectation,  fell  again  into  his  hands,  whom  had  he  not 
been  wonderfully  deceived  by  his  own  servants,  he  had 
like  to  have  slain.  Thus  this  act  was  concluded  with  a 
mervelous  triumph  of  the  Moore. 

Actus  3.  jn  the  third  act  a  great  army  on  the  King's  part  was 

raised  against  the  Moore,  and  put  under  the  conduct  of  an 
antient,  valiant  knight,  who  fell  into  the  Moore's  country, 
till  he  forceably  rescued  the  young  Lady  from  a  tower,  and 
apparelled  her  anew.  After  this  they  erected  a  glorious 
scaffold  and  placed  her  upon  it;  presently  came  twelve 
royal  embassadors,  amongst  whom  the  Knight  made  a 
speech,  alledging  that  the  King,  his  most  gracious  Lord, 
had  not  only  heretofore  delivered  her  from  death,  and 
caused  her  to  be  royally  brought  up,  though  she  had  not 
behaved  herself  altogether  as  became  her,  but,  moreover, 
had,  before  others,  elected  her  as  a  spouse  for  the  young 
Lord,  his  Son,  most  gratiously  desiring  that  the  espousals 
might  be  really  executed  in  case  they  would  be  sworn  to  his 
Majesty  upon  the  following  articles.  Hereupon  out  of  a 
patent  he  caused  certain  glorious  conditions  to  be  read ; 
the  young  Lady  took  an  oath  inviolably  to  observe  the 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    155 

same,  returning  thanks  in  most  seemly  sort  for  so  high  a 
grace.  Whereupon  they  began  to  sing  to  the  praise  of 
God,  of  the  King,  and  the  young  Lady,  and  for  this  time  so 
departed.  In  sport,  meanwhile,  the  four  beasts  of  23tiut£f ,  interiudium. 
as  he  saw  them  in  the  vision,  were  brought  in,  all  which 
had  its  certain  signification. 

In  the  fourth  act  the  young  Lady  was  restored  to  her  Actus  4. 
lost  kingdom  and  crowned,  being  in  this  array  conducted 
about  the  place  with  extraordinary  joy.  After  various 
embassadors  presented  themselves  not  only  to  wish  her 
prosperity  but  also  to  behold  her  glory.  Yet  it  was  not 
long  that  she  preserved  her  integrity,  but  began  to  look 
wantonly  about  her,  and  to  wink  at  the  embassadors 
and  lords.  These  her  manners  were  soon  known  to  the 
Moore,  who  would  by  no  means  neglect  such  an  oppor- 
tunity ;  and  because  her  steward  had  not  sufficient  regard 
to  her,  she  was  easily  blinded  with  great  promises,  so  that 
she  had  no  good  confidence  in  her  King,  but  privily  sub- 
mitted herself  to  the  intire  disposal  of  the  Moore,  who 
having  by  her  consent  gotten  her  into  his  hands,  he  gave 
her  words  so  long  till  all  her  kingdom  had  subjected  itself 
to  him;  after  which,  in  the  third  scene  of  this  act,  he 
caused  her  to  be  led  forth,  stript  naked,  and  then  upon  a 
scurvy  wooden  scaffold  bound  to  a  post,  well  scourged,  and 
at  last  sentenced  to  death.  This  woful  spectacle  made  the 
eyes  of  many  to  run  over.  Naked  as  she  was,  she  was  cast 
into  prison,  there  to  expect  death  by  poyson,  which,  how- 
ever, killed  her  not,  but  made  her  leprous  all  over.  Thus 
this  act  was  for  the  most  part  lamentable.  Between  they 
brought  forth  IJ^foUCJja&tt^&t'B  image,  which  was  adorned 
with  all  manner  of  arms  on  the  head,  breast,  legs,  and  feet, 
of  which  more  shall  be  spoken  in  the  future  explication. 


156  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Actus  s.  In  the  fifth  act  the  young  King  was  acquainted  with 

all  that  had  passed  between  the  Moore  and  his  future 
spouse,  who  interceded  with  his  father  for  her,  intreating 
that  she  might  not  be  left  in  that  condition,  and  embas- 
sadors  were  dispatched  to  comfort  her,  but  withal  to  give 
her  notice  of  her  inconsiderateness.  She,  nevertheless, 
would  not  receive  them,  but  consented  to  be  the  Moore's 
concubine,  and  the  young  King  was  acquainted  with  it. 

interiudium.  After  this  comes  a  band  of  fools,  each  of  which  brought  a 
cudgel,  wherewith  they  made  a  great  globe  of  the  world, 
and  undid  it  again,  the  which  was  a  fine  sportive 
phantsie. 

Actus  6.  In  the  sixth  act,  the  young  King  resolved  to  bid  battle 

to  the  Moore,  which  was  done,  and  albeit  the  Moore  was 
discomfited,  yet  all  held  the  young  King  for  dead,  but  he 
came  again  to  himself,  released  his  spouse,  and  committed 
her  to  his  steward  and  chaplain,  the  first  whereof  tormented 
her  mightily,  while  the  priest  was  so  insolently  wicked 
that  he  would  needs  be  above  all,  till  the  same  was 
reported  to  the  young  King,  who  dispatched  one  to  break 
the  neck  of  the  priest's  mightiness,  and  adorn  the  bride  in 

interiudium.  some  measure  for  the  nuptials.  After  this  act  a  vast  arti- 
ficial elephant  was  brought  in,  carrying  a  great  tower  with 
musitians,  which  was  well  pleasing  to  all. 

Actus  7.  In  the  last  act  the  bride-groom  appeared  in  such  pomp  as 

is  not  well  to  be  believed.  The  bride  met  him  in  the  like 
solemnity,  whereupon  all  the  people  cried  out  —  VIVAT 
SPONSUM,  VIVAT  SPONSA,  so  that  by  this  comedy  they  did 


applausus 

erga  Regem   withal  congratulate  our  King  and  Queen  in  the  most  stately 

et  Reginam. 

manner,  which  pleased  them  most  extraordinary  well.  At 
length  they  made  some  pasces  about  the  stage,  till  at  last 
they  altogether  began  thus  to  sing. 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    157 

i. 

This  time  full  of  love  Cantilena. 

Does  our  joy  much  approve 
Because  of  the  King's  Nuptial ; 

And,  therefore,  let's  sing, 

Till  from  all  parts  it  ring, 
Blest  be  he  that  granted  us  all ! 

u. 

The  Bride  most  exquisitely  faire, 
Whom  we  attended  long  with  care, 

To  him  in  troth  is  plighted  ; 
We  fully  have  at  length  obtain'd 
The  same  for  which  we  did  contend — 

He's  happy  that's  fore-sighted. 

in. 

Now  the  parents  kind  and  good 

By  intreaties  are  subdued  ; 
Long  enough  in  hold  was  she  mew'd  ; 

So  in  honour  increase 

Till  ^howsanbs  arise 
And  spring  from  your  own  proper  blood. 

After  this  thanks  were  returned,  and  the  comedy  was  Epiiogus. 
finished  with  joy  to  the  particular  liking  of  the  Eoyal 
Persons,  who,  the  evening  being  already  hard  by,  departed 
in  their  fore-mentioned  order,  we  attending  them  up  the  Respites 
winding  stairs  into  the  previous  hall,  where  the  tables  were 
already  richly  furnished.     This  was  the  first  time  that  we 
were  invited  to  the  King's  table.      The  little  altar  was 
placed  in  the  midst  of  the  hall,  and  the  six  royal  ensignes 
were  laid  upon  it.     The  young  King  behaved  himself  very  Rex 

Adolesc. 

gratiously  towards  us,  yet  he  could  not  be  heartily  merry  ; 
he  discoursed  a  little  with  us,  yet  often  sighed,  at  which 
the  little  Cupid  only  mocked,  and  played  his  waggish  tricks. 
The  old  King  and  Queen  were  very  serious,  but  the  wife  Reges 

adulti. 

of  one  of  the  ancient  Kings  was  gay  enough,  the  cause 


158  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS, 

Ordo  dis-      whereof  I  understood  not.     The  Eoyal  Persons  took  up  the 

cumbanum.  g^  ^j^  at  ^he  second  we  only  sate ;  at  the  third  some 
of  the  principal  Virgins  placed  themselves.  The  rest  were 
fain  to  wait.  This  was  performed  with  such  state  and 
solemn  stillness  that  I  am  afraid  to  make  many  words  of  it. 

omatus  All  the  Eoyal  Persons,  before  meat,  attired  themselves  in 
snow-white  glittering  garments.  Over  the  table  hung  the 
great  golden  crown,  the  pretious  stones  whereof,  without 

Corona  other  light,  would  have  sufficiently  illuminated  the  hall. 
All  the  lights  were  kindled  at  the  small  taper  upon  the 
altar.  The  young  king  frequently  sent  meat  to  the  white 
serpent,  which  caused  me  to  muse.  Almost  all  the  prattle 
s  a^  this  banquet  was  made  by  Cupid,  who  could  not  leave 
sst'  us,  and  me  especially,  un tormented,  and  was  perpetually 
producing  some  strange  matter.  However,  there  was  no 
considerable  mirth,  from  whence  I  could  imagine  some 
great  imminent  peril.  There  was  no  musick  heard,  and  if 
we  were  demanded  anything,  we  were  fain  to  give  short 

Sermones      answers,  and  so  let  it  rest.     In  short,  all  things  had  so 

breves 

strange  a  face  that  the  sweat  began  to  trickle  down  over 
my  body,  and  I  believe  that  the  stoutest-hearted  man 
would  have  lost  courage.  Supper  being  almost  ended,  the 
young  King  commanded  the  book  to  be  reached  him  from 
Oratio  Regis  the  altar.  This  he  opened  and  caused  it  again  to  be  pro- 
pounded to  us  by  an  old  man  whether  we  resolved  to  abide 
with  him  in  prosperity  and  adversity,  which  we  having 
with  trembling  consented  to,  he  further  caused  us  sadly  to 
be  demanded  whether  we  would  give  him  our  hands  on  it, 
which,  when  we  could  fain  no  reason,  was  fain  so  to  be. 
One  after  another  rose  and  with  his  own  hand  writ  himself 
down  in  this  book,  after  which  the  little  christal  fountain 
was  brought  near,  together  with  a  very  small  christal  glass, 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    159 

out  of  which  all  the  Eoyal  Persons  drank ;  afterwards  it 
was  reached  to  us,  and  so  forward  to  all,  and  this  was 
called  the  Draught  of  Silence.  Hereupon  all  the  Eoyal  Haustus  de 

r  silentio. 

Persons  presented  us  their  hands,  declaring  that  in  case  we 
did  not  now  stick  to  them  we  should  never  hereafter  see 
them,  which  verily  made  our  eyes  run  over.  But  our 
president  engaged  herself  and  promised  largely  on  our  Fidejutetu 

virff  Iticif . 

behalf,  which  gave  them  satisfaction.  Mean  time  a  little 
bell  was  tolled,  at  which  all  the  Eoyal  Persons  waxed  so 
mighty  bleak  that  we  were  ready  utterly  to  despair.  They 
quickly  put  off"  their  white  garments  and  assumed  intirely  MOI-S 

J   Regulorum. 

black  ones ;  the  whole  hall  was  hung  with  black  velvet,  the 
floor  covered  with  the  same,  with  which  also  the  ceiling 
was  overspread.  The  tables  were  also  removed,  all  seated 
themselves  upon  the  form,  and  we  also  had  put  on  black 
habits.  Our  president,  who  was  before  gone  out,  comes  in 
again,  bearing  six  black  taffeta  scarffs,  with  which  she  . 
bound  the  six  Eoyal  Persons'  eyes,  and  there  were  immedi- 
ately brought  in  by  the  servants  six  covered  coffins,  which 
were  set  down,  a  low  black  seat  being  placed  in  their 
midst.  Finally,  there  stept  in  a  cole-black,  tall  man,  who 
bare  in  his  hand  a  sharp  ax.  Now  after  that  the  old  King  Decollate 
had  been  brought  to  the  seat,  his  head  was  instantly  whipt 
off  and  wrapped  in  a  black  cloth,  the  blood  being  received 
in  a  great  golden  goblet,  and  placed  with  him  in  the  coffin 
that  stood  by,  which,  being  covered,  was  set  aside.  Thus 
it  went  with  the  rest,  so  that  I  thought  it  would  have  come 
to  me  too,  but  as  soon  as  the  six  Eoyal  Persons  were 
beheaded,  the  black  man  retired,  another  following  who 
just  before  the  door  beheaded  him  also,  and  brought  back 
his  head,  which,  with  the  ax,  was  laid  in  a  little  chest. 
This  indeed  seemed  to  me  a  bloody  Wedding,  but,  because 


i6o 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Hospites 
maerent. 
Solatium. 


Cura 

nocturna 

mortuorum. 


Cubiculum. 

Visio 
nocturna. 


Cadavera 
avehuntur 
trans  Lacum, 


I  could  not  tell  what  the  event  would  be,  I  was  fain  to 
captivate  my  understanding  until  I  were  further  resolved. 
The  Virgin,  seeing  that  some  of  us  were  faint-hearted  and 
wept,  bid  us  be  content,  saying : — "  The  life  of  these 
standeth  now  in  your  hands,  and  in  case  you  follow  me, 
this  death  shall  make  many  alive." 

Herewith  she  intimated  we  should  go  sleep  and  trouble 
ourselves  no  further,  for  they  should  have  their  due  right. 
She  bade  us  all  good  night,  saying  that  she  must  watch  the 
dead  corps.  We  then  were  conducted  by  our  Pages  into 
our  lodgings.  My  Page  talked  with  me  of  sundry  matters, 
and  gave  me  cause  enough  to  admire  his  understanding, 
but  his  intention  was  to  lull  me  asleep,  which  at  last  I 
observed,  whereupon  I  made  as  though  I  was  fast  asleep, 
but  no  sleep  came  to  my  eyes,  and  I  could  not  put  the 
beheaded  out  of  my  mind.  Now  my  lodging  was  directly 
over  against  the  great  lake,  so  that  I  could  look  upon 
it,  the  windows  being  nigh  the  bed.  About  midnight  I 
espied  on  the  lake  a  great  fire,  wherefore  I  quickly  opened 
the  window  to  see  what  would  become  of  it.  Then  from 
far  I  saw  seven  ships  making  forward  all  full  of  lights. 
Above  each  of  them  hovered  a  flame  that  passed  to  and 
fro,  and  sometimes  descended,  so  that  I  could  lightly  judge 
that  it  must  needs  be  the  spirits  of  the  beheaded.  The 
ships  gently  approached  to  land,  and  each  had  no  more 
than  one  mariner.  When  they  were  gotten  to  shore,  I 
espied  our  Virgin  with  a  torch  going  towards  them,  after 
whom  the  six  covered  coffins,  together  with  the  little 
chest,  were  carried,  and  each  was  privily  laid  in  a  ship. 
Wherefore  I  awaked  my  Page,  who  hugely  thanked  me, 
for  having  run  much  up  and  down  all  day,  he  might 
quite  have  over-slept  this,  though  he  well  knew  it.  As 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.     161 

soon  as  the  coffins  were  laid  in  the  ships,  all  the  lights 
were  extinguished,  and  the  six  flames  passed  back  together 
over  the  lake,  so  that  there  was  but  one  light  for  a  watch 
in  each  ship.  There  were  also  some  hundreds  of  watchmen 
encamped  on  the  shore,  who  sent  the  Virgin  back  again 
into  the  Castle,  she  carefully  bolting  all  up  again ;  so  that 
I  could  judge  that  there  was  nothing  more  to  be  done  this 
night.  We  again  betook  ourselves  to  rest.  I  only  of  all  Autor  solus 

hsec  vidit. 

my  company  had  a  chamber  towards  the  lake  and  saw 
this.  Then  being  extream  weary  I  fell  asleep  in  my  mani- 
fold speculations. 

The  Fifth  Day. 
The  night  was  over,  and  the  dear  wished-for  day  broken,  obambuiatio 

antelucana. 

when  hastily  I  got  me  out  of  bed,  more  desirous  to  learn 
what  might  insue  than  that  I  had  sufficiently  slept.  After 
I  had  put  on  my  cloathes,  and  according  to  my  custom  was 
gone  down  stairs,  it  was  still  too  early,  and  I  found  nobody 
else  in  the  hall,  wherefore  I  entreated  my  Page  to  lead  me 
a  little  about  the  castle,  and  shew  me  somewhat  that  was 
rare,  who  now  (as  always)  willing,  presently  lead  me  down 
certain  steps  underground  to  a  great  iron  door,  on  which 
the  following  words  were  fixed  in  large  copper  letters :— 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Thalamus 

veneris 

sepultae. 


Thesaurus 
Regis. 


Descriptio 
sepulcliri. 


Aliud  tri- 
clinium. 


These  I  copied  and  set  down  in  my  table-book.     After  this 
door  was  opened,  the  Page  lead  me  by  the  hand  through 
a  very  dark  passage  till  we  came  to  a  little  door  now  only 
put  too,  for,  as  the  Page  informed  me,  it  was  first  opened 
yesterday  when  the  coffins  were  taken  out,  and  had  not 
since  been  shut.     As  soon  as  we  stepped  in  I  espied  the 
most  pretious  thing   that   Nature    ever   created,  for   this 
vault  had  no  other  light  but  from  certain  huge  carbuncles. 
This  was  the  King's  Treasury,  but  the  most  glorious  and 
principal  thing  was  a  sepulchre  in  the  middle,  so  rich  that 
I  wondered  it  was  no  better  guarded,  whereunto  the  Page 
answered  me,  that  I  had  good  reason  to  be  thankful  to  my 
planet,  by  whose  influence  I  had  now  seen  certain  pieces 
which  no  humane  eye  (except  those  of  the  King's  family) 
had  ever  viewed.    This  sepulcher  was  triangular,  and  had  in 
the  middle  of  it  a  kettle  of  polished  copper,  the  rest  was  of 
pure  gold  and  pretious   stones.     In  the  kettle  stood  an 
angel,  who  held  in  his  arms  an  unknown  tree,  whose  fruit 
continually   falling  into    the    kettle,   turned    into   water 
therein,  and  ran  out  into  three  small  golden  kettles  stand- 
ing by.     This  little  altar  was  supported  by  an  eagle,  an  ox, 
and  a  lion,  which  stood  on  an  exceeding  costly  base.     I 
asked  my  Page  what  this  might  signifie.     "  Here,"  said  he, 
"lies  buried  Lady  Venus,  that  beauty  which  hath  undone 
many  a  great  man,  both  in  fourtune,  honour,  blessing,  and 
prosperity " ;  after  which  he  showed  me  a  copper  door  in 
the  pavement,  saying,  "  Here,  if  you  please,  we  may  go 
further  down."     We  descended  the  steps,  where  it  was 
exceeding  dark,  but  the  Page  immediately  opened  a  little 
chest  in  which  stood  a  small  ever-burning  taper,  wherefrom 
he  kindled  one  of  the  many  torches  that  lay  by.     I  was 
mightily  terrified  and  asked  how  he  durst  do  this.     He 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    163 

gave  me  for  answer,  "  as  long  as  the  Royal  Persons  are  still 
at  rest  I  have  nothing  to  fear."  Herewith  I  espied  a  rich 
bed  ready  made,  hung  about  with  curious  curtains,  one  of 
which  he  drew,  and  I  saw  the  Lady  Venus  stark  naked  Descriptio 

corporis 

(for  he  heaved  up  the  coverlets  too),  lying  there  in  such  veneris 

dormientis. 

beauty,  and  a  fashion  so  surprising,  that  I  was  almost 
besides  myself,  neither  do  I  yet  know  whether  it  was  a 
piece  thus  carved,  or  an  humane  corps  that  lay  dead  there, 
for  she  was  altogether  immoveable,  and  yet  I  durst  not 
touch  her.  So  she  was  again  covered,  yet  she  was  still,  as 
it  were,  in  my  eye.  But  I  soon  espyed  behind  the  bed  a 
tablet  on  which  it  was  thus  written. 


I  asked  my  Page  concerning  this  writing,  but  he  laughed, 
with  promise  that  I  should  know  it  too,  and,  he  putting 
out  the  torch,  we  again  ascended.  Then  I  better  viewed 
all  the  little  doors,  and  found  that  on  every  corner  there 
burned  a  small  taper  of  pyrites  of  which  I  had  before  taken 
no  notice,  for  the  fire  was  so  clear  that  it  looked  much 
liker  a  stone  than  a  taper.  From  this  heat  the  tree  was 
forced  continually  tojmelt,  yet  it  still  produced  new  fruit. 
"Now,  behold,"  said  the  Page,  "when  the  tree  shall  be 


164 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


quite  melted  down,  then  shall  Lady  Venus  awake  and  be 
the  mother  of  a  King."  Whilst  he  was  thus  speaking,  in 
flew  the  little  Cupid,  who  at  first  was  somewhat  abashed  at 
our  presence,  but  seeing  us  both  look  more  like  the  dead 
Muictafacta  then  the  living,  he  could  not  refrain  from  laughing,  and 

hujus  obam-  .111  i  • 

demanded  what  spirit  had  brought  me  thither,  whom  1 
with  trembling  answered,  that  I  had  lost  my  way  in  the 
castle,  and  was  by  chance  come  hither,  that  the  Page  had 
likewise  been  looking  up  and  down  for  me,  and  at  last 
lited  upon  me  here,  and  that  I  hoped  he  would  not  take  it 
amiss.  "  Nay,  then,  'tis  well  enough  yet,"  said  Cupid,  "  my 
old  busie  gransir,  but  you  might  lightly  have  served  me  a 
scurvy  trick,  had  you  been  aware  of  this  door.  I  must 
look  better  to  it,"  and  so  he  put  a  strong  lock  on  the  copper 
door  where  we  before  descended.  I  thanked  God  that 
he  lited  upon  us  no  sooner  ;  my  Page,  too,  was  the  more 
jocond  because  I  had  so  well  helped  him  at  this  pinch. 
"  Yet  can  I  not,"  said  Cupid,  "let  it  pass  unrevenged  that 
you  were  so  near  stumbling  upon  my  dear  mother."  With 
that  he  put  the  point  of  his  dart  into  one  of  the  little  tapers, 
and  heating  it  somewhat,  pricked  me  with  it  on  the  hand, 
which  at  that  time  I  little  regarded,  but  was  glad  that  it 
went  so  well  with  us.  Meantime  my  companions  were  gotten 
out  of  bed  and  were  come  into  the  hall,  to  whom  I  joyned 
myself,  making  as  if  I  were  then  first  risen.  After  Cupid 
had  carefully  made  all  fast  again,  he  came  likewise  to  us, 
and  would  needs  have  me  shew  him  my  hand,  where  he  still 
found  a  little  drop  of  blood,  at  which  he  heartily  laughed, 
and  bad  the  rest  have  a  care  of  me,  as  I  would  shortly  end 
my  days.  We  all  wondered  how  he  could  be  so  merry  and 
have  no  sence  of  yesterday's  sad  passages.  Our  President 
had  meantime  made  herself  ready  for  a  journey,  coming  in 


autori. 


Cupidinus 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    165 

i 
all  in  black  velvet,  yet  she  and  her  Virgins  still  bare  their 

branches  of  lawrel.  All  things  being  in  readiness,  she  bid  iugubris. 
us  first  drink  somewhat,  and  then  presently  prepare  for  the 
procession,  wherefore  we  made  no  long  tarrying,  but 
followed  her  out  of  the  hall  into  the  court,  where  stood  six 
coffins,  and  my  companions  thought  no  other  but  that  the 
six  Royal  Persons  lay  in  them,  but  I  well  observed  the 
device,  though  I  knew  not  what  was  to  be  done  with  these 
other.  By  each  coffin  were  eight  muffled  men.  As  soon  as 
the  musick  went,  it  was  so  doleful  a  tune  that  I  was 
astonished  at  it,  they  took  up  the  coffins,  and  we  followed 
them  into  the  Garden,  in  the  midst  of  which  was  erected  a 
wooden  edifice,  have  round  about  the  roof  a  glorious  crown, 
and  standing  upon  seven  columns.  Within  it  were  formed 
six  sepulchers ;  by  each  of  them  was  a  stone,  but  in  the 
middle  it  had  a  round  hollow  rising  stone.  In  these  graves 
the  coffins  were  quietly,  and  with  many  ceremonies,  laid  ; 
the  stones  were  shoved  over  them,  and  they  shut  fast,  but 
the  little  chest  was  to  lie  in  the  middle.  Herewith  were 
my  companions  deceived,  for  they  imagined  that  the  dead 
corps  were  there.  On  the  top  of  all  was  a  great  flag,  having 
a  Phcenix  painted  on  it,  perhaps  the  more  to  delude  us. 
After  the  funerals  were  done,  the  Virgin,  having  placed 
herself  upon  the  midmost  stone,  made  a  short  oration,  Respites 

vocantur 

exhorting  us  to  be  constant  to  our  ingagements,   not  to  ad  labore 

pro  vita 

repine  at  the  pains  we  must  undergo,  but  be  helpful  in 
restoring  the  buried  Royal  Persons  to  life,  and  therefore, 
without  delay,  to  rise  and  make  a  journey  with  her  to  the 
Tower  of  Olympus,  to  fetch  thence  the  medicines  necessary 
for  this  purpose. 

This  we  soon  agreed  to,  and  followed  her  through  another 
little  door  to  the  shore,  where  the  seven  ships  stood  empty, 


1 66  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

and  on  them  all  the  Virgins  stuck  up  their  Laurel  branches, 
and,  having  distributed  us  in  the  six  ships,  they  caused  us 
in  God's  name  to  begin  our  voyage,  and  looked  upon  us  as 
long  as  we  were  in  sight,  after  which  they,  with  all  the  watch- 
men,  returned  into  the  Castle.  Our  ships  had  each  of  them  a 

remanent 

in  arce.        peculiar  device  ;  five  of  them,  indeed,  had  the  five  regular 

bodies,  each  a  several  one,  but  mine,  in  which  the  Virgin 

too  sate,  carried  a  globe.     Thus  we  sailed  on  in  a  singular 

order,  and  each  had  only  two  mariners.     Foremost  went  the 

a         ship  a  in  which,  as  I  conceive,  the  Moor  lay.     In  this  were 

b  ii  c  ii  d  ii    twelve  musitians  who  played  excellently  well,  and  its  device 

ff  I!        was  a  pyramid.     Next  followed  three  abreast,  b,  c,  and  d, 

in  which  we  were  disposed ;    I  sate  in  c.     Behind  these 

came  the  two  fairest  and  stateliest  ships,  e  and/,  stuck  about 

with  many  branches  of  lawrel,  and  having  no  passengers  in 

them ;  their  flags  were  the  sun  and  moon.     But  in  the  rear 

4ovirgmes  was  only  one  ship,  g,  and  in  this  were  forty  Virgins. 
Having  passed  over  this  lake,  we  came  through  a  narrow 
arm  into  the  right  sea,  where  all  the  sirens,  nymphs,  and 
sea-goddesses  attended  us,  and  immediately  dispatched  a 

Excipiuntur  sea-nymph  unto  us  to  deliver  their  present  of  honour  to  the 

a  nymphis. 

Wedding.  It  was  a  costly,  great,  set,  round,  and  orient 
pearl,  the  like  to  which  hath  not  at  any  time  been  seen, 

either   in    ours   or    in    the  new 

\c     world-       The     Virgins     having 

^>  friendly  received  it,  the  nymph 
intreated  that  audience  might  be 
given  to  their  divertisements,  which 
the  Virgin  was  content  to  give,  and 
commanded  the  two  great  ships  to 

stand  into  the  middle,  and  to  the  rest  to  incompass  them  in 
pentagon,  after  which  the  nymphs  fell  into  a  ring  about  them, 
and  with  a  most  delicate  sweet  voice  began  thus  to  sing  : 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    167 


There's  nothing  better  here  below 
Than  beauteous,  noble  Love, 
Whereby  we  like  to  God  do  grow, 
And  none  to  grief  do  move  ; 
Wherefore  let's  chant  it  to  the  King, 
That  all  the  sea  therewith  may  ring. 
We  question,  answer  you  ! 


ii. 


What  was  it  that  at  first  us  made  ? 

'Twas  Love. 
And  what  hath  grace  afresh  conveigh'd  ? 

'Twas  Love. 
And  whence  (pray  tell  us  !)  were  we  born  ? 

Of  Love. 
How  came  we  then  again  forlorn  ? 

Sans  Love. 


in. 

Who  was  it,  say,  that  us  conceived  ? 

'Twas  Love. 
Who  suckled,  nursed,  and  relieved  ? 

'Twas  Love. 
What  do  we  to  our  parents  owe  ? 

'Tis  Love. 
Why  do  they  us  such  kindness  show  ? 

Of  Love. 


IV. 


Who  gets  herein  the  victory  ? 

'Tis  Love. 
Can  Love  by  search  obtained  be  ? 

By  Love. 
How  may  a  man  good  works  perform  ? 

Through  Love. 
Who  into  one  can  two  transform  ? 

'Tis  Love. 


168  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


v. 

Then  let  our  song  sound, 

Till  its  eccho  rebound, 

To  Love's  honour  and  praise  ; 

May  it  ever  increase 

With  our  noble  Princes,  the  King  and  the  Queen, 
The  soul  is  departed,  their  body's  within. 

VI. 

And  as  long  as  we  live 

God  gratiously  give, 

That  as  great  love  and  amity 

They  bear  each  other  mightily, 

So  we,  likewise,  by  love's  own  flame 

May  reconjoyn  them  once  again. 

VII. 

Then  this  annoy  Into  great  joy 

(If  many  thousand  younglings  deign) 

Shall  change,  and  ever  so  remain. 

Autori  These  having,  with  most  admirable  concent  and  melody, 

perplacent 

nymphae  and  finished   this  song,   I   no   more   wondred   at   Ulisses    for 

cantus. 

stopping  the  ears  of  his  companions ;  I  seemed  to  myself 

the  most  unhappy  man  alive  that  Nature  had  not  made  me 

too  so  trim  a  creature.     But  the  Virgin  soon  dispatched 

The  nymphs  them,  and  commanded  to  set  sail  :  wherefore  the  nymphs, 

rewarded. 

having  been  presented  with  a  long  red  scarff  for  a  gratuity, 

dispersed  themselves  in  the  sea.    I  was  at  this  time  sensible 

that  Cupid  began  to  work  with  me  too,  which  tended  little 

Autori         to  my  credit ;  but  as  my  giddiness  is  likely  to  be  nothing 

desunt  adhuc 

Qu°-  beneficial  to  the  reader,  I  am  resolved  to  let  it  rest.  This 

was  the  wound  that  in  the  first  book  I  received  on  my  head 
in  a  dream.  Let  every  one  take  warning  by  me  of  loitering 
about  Venus'  bed,  for  Cupid  can  by  no  means  brook  it. 

Tun-is          After  some  hours,  we  came  within  ken  of  the  Tower  of 

Olympi. 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    169 

Olympus;  wherefore  the  Virgin   commanded   by  the  dis- 
charge of  some  pieces  to  give  signal  of  our  approach,  and 
immediately  we  espyed  a  great  white  flag  thrust  out,  and  a 
small  gilded  pinnace  sent  forth  to  meet  us,  wherein  was  a 
very  antient  man,  the  Warder  of  the  Tower,  with  certain  Custos 
guards  in  white,  by  whom  we  were  friendly  received,  and 
conducted  to  the  Tower,  which  was  situated  upon  an  island 
exactly  square,1   and  invironed  with  a  wall  so  firm  and  structura 
thick  that  I  counted  two  hundred  and  sixty  paces  over.  Dies. 
On  the  other  side  was  a  fine  meadow  with  certain  little 
gardens,  in  which  grew  strange,  and  to  me  unknown  fruits. 
There  was  an  inner  wall  about  the  Tower  which  itself  was 
as  if  seven  round  towers  had  been  built  one  by  another, 
yet  the  middlemost  was  somewhat  higher,  and  within  they 
all  entered  one  into  another.     Being  come  to  the  gates  of 
the  Tower,  we  were  led  a  little  aside  on  the  wall,  that  so 
the  coffins  might  be  brought  in  without  our  notice,  but  of 
this  the  rest  knew  nothing.     We  were  conducted  into  the  i.  conclave. 
Tower   at    the   very   bottom,   which    was    an    excellently 
painted  laboratory,  where  we  were  fain  to  beat  and  wash  Labores 

hospitum. 

plants,  precious  stones,  and  all  sorts  of  things,  extract 
their  juice  and  essence,  put  up  the  same  in  glasses,  and 
deliver  them  to  be  laid  up.  Our  Virgin  was  so  busie  with 
us,  and  so  full  of  directions,  that  she  knew  not  how  to  give 
us  employment  enough,  so  that  in  this  Island  we  were 
meer  drudges  till  we  had  atchieved  all  that  was  necessary 
for  restoring  the  beheaded  bodies.  Meantime,  as  I  after- 
wards learned,  three  Virgins  were  in  the  first  apartment  virginum. 
washing  the  corps  with  diligence.  Having  at  length 
almost  done  our  preparation,  some  broath,  with  a  little 

1  See  additional  note,  No.  4. 


170 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Cibus. 
Potus. 


Lectus 
tenuis. 


Autor 
speculatur 
ccelum 
prosomno. 


draught  of  wine,  was  brought  us,  whereby  I  observed  that 
we  were  not  here  for  pleasure.  When  we  had  finished  our 
day's  work,  everyone  had  a  mattress  laid  on  the  ground 
for  him,  wherewith  we  were  to  content  ourselves.  For  my 
part  I  was  not  much  troubled  with  sleep,  and  walking  out 
into  the  garden,  at  length  came  as  far  as  the  wall,  where, 
the  heaven  being  very  clear,  I  could  well  give  away  the 
time  in  contemplating  the  stars.  By  chance  I  came  to  a 
great  pair  of  stone  stairs  leading  to  the  top  of  the  wall,  and 
because  the  moon  shone  very  bright,  I  was  so  much  the 
more  confident,  and,  going  up,  looked  too  a  little  upon  the 
sea,  which  was  exceeding  calm.  Thus  having  good  oppor- 
tunity to  consider  better  of  astronomy,  I  found  that  this 
night  there  would  happen  such  a  conjunction  of  the 
planets,  the  like  to  which  was  not  otherwise  suddenly  to  be 
observed.  Having  looked  a  good  while  into  the  sea,  and 
it  being  just  about  midnight,  I  beheld  from  far  the  seven 
Flames  passing  over  sea  hitherward,  and  betakeing  them- 
selves to  the  top  of  the  spire  of  the  tower.  This  made  me 
somewhat  affraid ;  for  as  soon  as  the  Flames  had  settled 
themselves,  the  winds  rose,  and  made  the  sea  very  tempes- 
tuous. The  moon  also  was  covered  with  clouds,  and  my 
joy  ended  with  such  fear  that  I  had  scarce  time  enough  to 
hit  upon  the  stairs  again,  and  betake  myself  to  the  Tower, 
where  I  laid  me  down  upon  my  mattress,  and  there  being 
in  the  laboratory  a  pleasant  and  gently  purling  fountain,  I 
fell  asleep  so  much  the  sooner.  And  thus  this  fifth  day 
too  was  concluded  with  wonders. 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    171 

The  Sixth  Day. 
Xext  morning,  after  we  had  awaked  another,  we  sate  Define 

,  PI- 

together  to  discourse  what  might  be  the  wont  or  things, 
Some  were  of  opinion  that  the  corps  should  all  be  in- 
livened  again  together.  Others  contradicted  this,  because 
the  decease  of  the  ancients  was  not  only  to  restore  life  but 
increase  too  to  the  young  ones.  Some  imagined  that  they 
were  not  put  to  death,  but  that  others  were  beheaded  in 
their  stead.  Having  talked  a  pretty  while,  in  comes  the  Custos. 
old  man,  and  first  saluting  us,  looks  about  to  see  if  all 
things  were  ready.  We  had  herein  so  behaved  ourselves  pyrotecimia 
that  he  had  no  fault  to  find  with  our  diligence,  whereupon  laudatur. 
he  placed  all  the  glasses  together,  and  put  them  into  a 
case.  Presently  come  certain  youths,  bringing  ladders,  Puen 
roapes,  and  large  wings,  which  they  laid  before  us  and 
departed.  Then  the  old  man  began  thus  : — "  My  dear 
Sons,  one  of  these  three  things  must  each  of  you  this  day 
constantly  bear  about  with  him.  It  is  free  for  you  to 
make  choice  of  one  of  them,  or  to  cast  lots."  We  replied 
that  we  would  choose.  "  Nay,"  said  he,  "  let  it  rather  go 
by  lot.  Hereupon  he  made  three  little  schedules,  writing  Sors. 
on  one  Ladder,  on  the  second  Rope,  on  the  third  Wings. 
These  he  laid  in  an  hat ;  each  man  must  draw,  and  what- 
ever he  happened  on  was  to  be  his.  Those  who  got  ropes 
imagined  themselves  in  the  best  case ;  but  I  chanced  on  a 
ladder,  which  hugely  afflicted  me,  for  it  was  twelve-foot 
long,  pretty  weighty,  and  I  must  be  forced  to  carry  it, 
whereas  the  others  could  handsomely  coyle  their  ropes 
about  them,  and  as  for  the  wings,  the  old  man  joyned 
them  so  neatly  on  to  the  third  sort  as  if  they  had  grown 
upon  them.  Hereupon  he  turned  the  cock,  and  the 


172 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIAAS. 


Restis 
dififtcultas. 


fountain  ran  no  longer,  and  we  were  fain  to  remove  it  out 
of  the  way.  After  all  things  were  carried  off,  he,  taking 
with  him  the  casket  and  glasses,  took  leave,  and  locked 
the  door  after  him,  so  we  imagined  that  we  had  been 
Ascensusin  imprisoned  in  this  Tower:  but  it  was  hardly  a  quarter  of 

2  conclave. 

an  hour  before  a  round  hole  above  was  uncovered,  where 
we  saw  our  Virgin,  who  bad  us  good  morrow,  desiring  us 
to  come  up.  They  with  the  wings  were  instantly  through 
the  hole ;  only  they  with  the  ropes  were  in  an  evil  plight, 
for  as  soon  as  ever  one  of  us  was  up,  he  was  commanded  to 
draw  up  the  ladder  to  him.  At  last  each  man's  rope  was 
hanged  on  an  iron  hook,  and  he  climbed  up  as  well  as  he 
could,  which  indeed  was  not  compassed  without  blisters. 
When  we  were  all  well  up,  the  hole  was  again  covered,  and 
we  were  friendly  received  by  the  Virgin.  This  room  was 
the  whole  breadth  of  the  Tower  itself,  having  six  very 
stately  vestries  a  little  raised  and  reached  by  three  steps. 
In  these  we  were  distributed  to  pray  for  the  life  of  the 
King  and  Queen.  Meanwhile  the  Virgin  went  in  and  out 
at  the  little  door  a  till  we  had  done.  As  soon  as  our 
process  was  absolved,  there  was  brought  in  through  the 
little  door  by  twelve  persons,  which  were  formerly  our 
musitians,  a  wonderful  thing  of  longish  shape,  which  my 
companions  took  to  be  a  fountain,  and  which  was  placed  in 
the  middle.  I  well  observed  that  the  corps  lay  in  it,  for 
the  inner  chest  was  of  an  oval  figure,  so  large  that  six 
persons  might  well  lie  therein  one  by  another.  After  this 
they  again  went  forth,  fetched  their  instruments,  and  con- 
ducted in  our  Virgin,  with  her  she-attendants,  to  a  most 
delicate  voice  of  musick.  The  Virgin  carried  a  little 
casket,  the  rest  only  branches,  and  small  lamps  or  lighted 


Descriptio 
2  conclav 


The  little 

casket. 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    173 

torches,  which  last  were  immediately  given  into  our  hands, 
and  we  stood  about  the  fountain  in  this  order. 


oooo     oooo 


o 


o 


o  o 

OOOO 

°ooooooo 

First  stood  the  Virgin  A,  with  her  attendants  in  a  ring  Ordo  chori 
round  about,  with  the  lamps  and  branches  c.     Next  stood 
we  with  our  torches  b,  then  the  musitians  in  a  long  rank ; 
last  of  all,  the  rest  of  the  Virgins  d,  in  another  long  rank. 
Whence   the   Virgins    came,   whether   they  dwelt   in   the  ^d?nes 
Castle,  or  were  brought  in  by  night,  I  know  not,  for  their 
faces   were    covered    with    delicate   white    linnen.      The  Quid  in 

arcula. 

Virgin  opened  the  casket,  in  which  was  a  round  thing 
wrapped  in  a  piece  of  green  double  taffata.  This  she  laid 
in  the  uppermost  kettle,  and  covered  it  with  the  lid,  which 
was  full  of  holes,  and  had  besides  a  rim,  on  which  she 
poured  in  some  of  the  water  which  we  had  the  day  before 
prepared  ;  the  fountain  began  immediately  began  to  run, 
and  through  four  small  pipes  to  drive  into  the  little 
kettle.  Beneath  the  undermost  kettle  were  many  sharp 


174  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


points,  on  which  the  Virgins  stuck  their  lamps,  that  the 
heat  might  come  to  the  kettle  and  make  the  water  seeth, 
which,  when  it  began  to  simper,  by  many  little  holes  at  a, 
fell  in  upon  the  bodies,  and  was  so  hot  that  it  dissolved 
them  all,  and  turned  them  into  liquor.  What  the  above- 
said  round  wrapt-up  thing  was,  my  companions  knew  not, 
but  I  understood  that  it  was  the  Moor's  head,  from  which 
the  water  conceived  so  great  heat.  At  b,  round  about  the 
Kami  great  kettle,  there  were  again  many  holes,  in  which  they 

Isurcs. 

stuck  their  branches,  but  whether  this  was  done  of  neces- 
sity or  for  ceremony  I  know  not.  However,  these  branches 
were  continually  sprinkled  by  the  fountain,  whence  it 
afterwards  dropt  somewhat  of  a  deeper  yellow  into  the 
kettle.  This  lasted  for  near  two  hours,  the  fountain  still 
running,  but  more  faintly.  Meantime  the  musitians  went 
their  way,  and  we  walked  up  and  down  in  the  room,  which 
Delict  in  truly  was  so  made  that  we  had  opportunity  enough  to  pass 

conclavi.  . 

away  our  time.  There  were  images,  paintings,  clock-works, 
organs,  springing  fountains,  and  the  like.  When  it  was 
near  the  time  that  the  fountain  ceased,  the  Virgin  com- 
manded a  golden  globe  to  be  brought.  At  the  bottom  of 
the  fountain  was  a  tap,  by  which  she  let  out  all  the  matter 
dissolved  by  those  hot  drops  (whereof  certain  quarts  were 
then  very  red)  into  the  globe.  The  rest  of  the  water  above 
in  the  kettle  was  poured  out,  and  so  this  fountain  was 
again  carried  forth.  Whether  it  was  opened  abroad,  or 
whether  anything  of  the  bodies  that  was  useful  yet  re- 
mained, I  dare  not  certainly  say,  but  the  water  emptied 
Gravitas  into  the  globe  was  much  heavier  than  six  or  more  of  us 
were  able  to  bear,  albeit  for  its  bulk  it  should  have  seemed 
not  too  heavy  for  one  man.  This  globe  being  with  much 
ado  gotten  out  of  doors,  we  again  sate  alone,  but  I,  per- 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    175 

ceiving  a  trampling  over  head,  had  an  eye  to  my  ladder. 
After  one  quarter  of  an  hour,  the  cover  above  was  lifted,  and 
we  commanded  to  come  up,  which  we  did  as  before,  with 
wines,  ladders,  and  ropes,  and  it  did  not  a  little  vex  me  that  Ascensus  in 

3  conclave. 

whereas  the  Virgins  could  go  up  another  way,  we  were  fain 
to  take  so  much  toil  ;  yet  I  could  judge  there  must  be  some 
special  reason  for  it,  and  we  must  leave  somewhat  for  the  old 
man  to  do  too.  The  hole  being  again  shut  fast,  I  saw  the 
globe  hanging  by  a  strong  chain  in  the  middle  of  the  room,  in 
which  there  was  nothing  but  windows,  with  a  door  between  Descriptio 

conclavis. 

every  two,  which  was  covered  with  a  great  polished  looking- 
glass.  These  windows  and  looking-glasses  were  so  optically 
opposed  that  although  the  sun,  which  now  shined  exceeding 
bright,  beat  only  upon  one  door,  yet  (after  the  windows  Artif-  °Ptica- 
towards  the  sun  were  opened,  and  the  doors  before  the 
looking-glasses  drawn  aside)  in  all  quarters  of  the  room 
there  was  nothing  but  suns,  which  by  artificial  refractions 
beat  upon  the  whole  golden  globe  hanging  in  the  midst, 
which,  being  polished,  gave  such  a  lustre  that  none  of  us 
could  open  our  eyes,  but  were  forced  to  look  out  at 
windows  till  the  globe  was  well  heated,  and  brought  to  the  Mirac-  sPec- 
desired  effect.  In  these  mirrors  I  saw  the  most  wonderful 
spectacles  that  ever  nature  brought  to  light,  for  there  were 
suns  in  all  places,  and  the  globe  in  the  middle  shined 
brighter  yet.  At  length  the  virgin  commanded  to  shut  up 
the  looking-glasses  and  make  fast  the  windows  to  let  the 
globe  cool  a  little,  wherefore  we  thought  good,  since  we 
might  now  have  leisure,  to  refresh  ourselves  with  a  break- 
fast. This  treatment  was  again  right  philosophical,  and 


philosoph. 

we  had  no  need  to  be  afraid  of  intemperance,  though  we 
had  no  want,  while  the  hope  of  the  future  joy,  with  which 
the  virgin  continually  comforted  us,  made  us  so  jocond  that 


1 76  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

we  regarded  not  any  pains  or  inconvenience.  I  can  truly 
say  concerning  my  Companions  of  high  quality  that  their 
minds  never  ran  after  their  kitchen  or  table,  but  their 
pleasure ^was  only  to  attend  on  this  adventurous  physic,  and 
hence  to  contemplate  the  Creator's  wisdom  and  omni- 
potency.  After  our  refection  we  settled  ourselves  to  work, 
for  the  globe  was  sufficiently  cooled,  which  with  toil  and 
labour  we  were  to  lift  off  the  chain  and  set  upon  the  floor. 
The  dispute  then  was  how  we  were  to  get  the  globe  in 
sunder,  for  we  were  commanded  to  divide  it  in  .the  midst. 
The  conclusion  was  that  a  sharp-pointed  diamond  would  be 
best  to  do  it,  and  when  we  had  thus  opened  the  globe, 
there  was  no  redness  to  be  seen,  but  a  lovely  great  snow- 
white  egg,  and  it  mightily  rejoyced  us  that  this  was  so  well 
brought  to  pass,  for  the  virgin  was  in  perpetual  care  least 
the  shell  might  still  be  too  tender.  We  stood  around  about 
this  egg  as  jocond  as  if  we  ourselves  had  laid  it,  but  the 
Virgin  made  it  presently  be  carried  forth,  and  departed 
herself,  locking  the  door  behind  her.  What  she  did 
abroad  with  the  egg,  or  whether  it  were  privately  handled, 
I  know  not,  neither  do  I  believe  it.  We  were  again  to 
pause  for  one  quarter  of  an  hour,  till  the  third  hole  opened, 
and  we,  by  means  of  our  instruments,  came  upon  the  fourth 
stone  or  floor.  In  this  room  we  found  a  great  copper 
kettle  filled  with  silver  sand,  which  was  warmed  with  a 
gentle  fire,  and  afterwards  the  egg  was  raked  up  in  it,  that 
it  might  therein  come  to  perfect  maturity.  This  kettle  was 
exactly  square.  Upon  one  side  stood  these  two  verses  writ 
in  great  letters— 

O.  BLI.  TO.  BIT.  ML  LI. 

KANT.  I.i  VOLT.  BIT.  TO.  GOLT. 

1  This  letter  is  omitted  in  one  of  the  German  editions. 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    177 

On  the  second  side  were  these  three  words  — 

SANITAS.  Nix.  HASTA. 
The  third  had  but  this  one  word  — 

F.I.A.T. 

But  on  the  hindmost   part  stood  an   entire   inscription, 
running  thus  — 

QUOD 

Tgnis  :  Aer  :  Aqua  :  Terra  : 

SANCTIS  EEGUM  BT  KEGI- 

NARUM  NOSTR  : 

Cineribus 

Eripere  non  potuerunt. 

Fidelis  Chymicorum  Turba 

IN  HANC  URNAM 

Contulit. 

Ao 


Now,  whether  the  sand  or  egg  were  hereby  meant  I  leave 
the  learned  to  dispute.  Our  egg,  being  ready,  was  taken 
out,  but  it  needed  no  cracking,  for  the  Bird  soon  freed  him- 
self, looking  very  jocond,  though  bloody  and  unshapen. 
We  first  set  him  on  the  warm  sand,  the  Virgin  commanding  Puiius 

implumis. 

that  before  we  gave  him  anything  to  eat  we  should  be  sure 
to  make  him  fast,  otherwise  he  would  give  us  all  work 
enough.     This  being  done,  food  was  brought  him,  which  vindtur. 
surely  was  nothing  but  the  blood  of  the  beheaded  deluted  Pascitur 

sanguine 

with  prepared  water,  by  which  the  Bird  grew  so  fast  under  decaiiatomm 
our   eye   that  we   well   saw  why   the   Virgin  gave   such 
warning  of  him.     He  bit  and  scratched  so  devilishly  that, 
could  he  have  had  his  will  upon  any  of  us,  he  would  soon 

M 


Sanguine 
alias  Regis 
pascitur. 


Iridescit. 


Liberatur 
vkiculis. 


178  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

have  dispatched  him.     Now  he  was  wholly  black  and  wild, 
wherefore  other  meat  was  brought  him,  perhaps  the  blood 
of  another  of  the  Eoyal  Persons,  whereupon  all  his  black 
feathers  moulted  and  were  replaced  by  snow-white  ones. 
He  was  somewhat  tamer  too,  and  more  tractable,  though 
we  did  not  yet  trust  him.     At  the  third  feeding  his  feathers 
began  to  be  so  curiously  coloured  that  I  never  saw  the  like 
for  beauty.     He  was  also  exceedingly  tame,  and  behaved 
himself  so  friendly  with  us  that,  the  Virgin  consenting,  we 
released  him  from  captivity.     "  'Tis  now  reason,"  she  began, 
"  since  by  your  diligence,  and  our  old  man's  consent,  the 
Bird  has  attained  with  his  life  and  the  highest  perfection, 
that  he  be  also  joyfully  consecrated  by  us."     Herewith  she 
commanded  to  bring  in  dinner,  since  the  most  troublesome 
part  of  our  work  was  now  over,  and  it  was  fit  we  should 
begin  to  enjoy  our  passed  labours.     We  began  to  make 
merry   together.      Howbeit,    we   had   still   our   mourning 
cloaths  on,  which  seemed  somewhat   reproachful   to   our 
mirth.     The  Virgin  was  perpetually  inquisitive,  perhaps  to 
find  to  which  of  us  her  future  purpose  might  prove  service- 
able,  but   her    discourse   was,   for   the   most  part,  about 
Melting,  and  it  pleased  her  well  when  any  one  seemed 
expert   in   such   compendious   manuals    as   do    peculiarly 
commend  an  artist.     This  dinner  lasted  not  above  three- 
quarters  of  an  hour,  which  we  yet,  for  the  most  part,  spent 
with  our  Bird,  whom  we  were  fain  constantly  to  feed  with 
his  meat,  though  he  continued  much  at  the  same  growth. 
After  Dinner  we  were  not  long  suffered  to  digest  our  food, 
for  the  Virgin,  together  with  the  Bird,  departed  from  us, 
6.  conclave*  and  the  fifth  room  was  opened,  which  we  reached  after 
the  former  manner,   and   tendred   our   service.     In   this 
Avis  room  a  bath  was   prepared  for   our   Bird,  which  was  so 

balneum. 


Primus 
usus  ejus 


Me0o5i'o. 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    179 

coloured  with  a  fine  white  powder  that  it  had  the  appear- 
ance of  milk.  It  was  cool  when  the  Bird  was  set  into 
it,  and  he  was  mighty  well  pleased  with  it,  drinking  of 
it,  and  pleasantly  sporting  in  it.  But  after  it  began  to  heat, 
by  reason  of  the  lamps  placed  under  it,  we  had  enough  to 
do  to  keep  him  in  the  bath.  We,  therefore,  clapt  a 
cover  on  the  kettle,  and  suffered  him  to  thrust  out 
his  head  through  a  hole,  till  he  had  lost  all  his  feathers 
in  this  bath,  and  was  as  smooth  as  a  new-born  babe, 
yet  the  heat  did  him  no  further  harm.  In  this  bath  the 
feathers  were  quite  consumed,  and  the  bath  was  thereby 
turned  into  blew.  At  length  we  gave  the  Bird  air,  who  of 
himself  sprung  out  of  the  kettle,  and  was  so  glitteringly 
smooth  that  it  was  a  pleasure  to  behold  him.  But  because 
he  was  still  somewhat  wild,  we  were  fain  to  put  a  collar, 
with  a  chain,  about  his  neck,  and  so  led  him  up  and  down  vincitur. 
the  room.  Meantime  a  strong  fire  was  made  under  the 
kettle,  and  the  bath  sodden  away  till  it  all  came  to  a  blew 
stone,  which  we  took  out,  and,  having  pounded  it,  we  Balneum 

•  m  coquiturin 

ground  it  on  a  stone,  and  finally  with  this  colour  painted 


the  Bird's  whole  skin  over,  who  then  looked  much  more 
strangely,  for  he  was  all  blew  except  the  head,  which 
remained  white.  Herewith  our  work  in  this  story  was 
performed,  and  we,  after  the  Virgin  with  her  blew  Bird 
was  departed  from  us,  were  called  up  a  hole  to  the  sixth  6-  Conclave. 
story,  where  we  were  mightily  troubled,  for  in  the  midst  a 
little  altar,  every  way  like  that  in  the  King's  hall,  was 
placed.  Upon  it  stood  the  six  forementioned  particulars, 
and  he  himself  (the  Bird)  made  the  seventh.  First  of  all 
the  little  fountain  was  set  before  him,  out  of  which  he 
drunk  a  good  draught  j  afterwards  he  pecked  upon  the 
white  serpent  till  she  bled  mightily.  This  blood  we  re- 


i8o  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

ceived  in  a  golden  cup,  and  poured  down  the  Bird's  throat, 
who  was  mighty  averse  from  it ;  then  we  dipt  the  serpent's 
head  in  the  fountain,  upon  which  she  again  revived,  and 
crept  into  her  death's  head,  so  that  I  saw  her  no  more  for 
a  long  time.  Meanwhile  the  sphere  turned  constantly  on 
until  it  made  the  desired  conjunction.  Immediately  the 
watch  struck  one,  upon  which  there  was  going  another 
conjunction.  Then  the  watch  struck  two.  Finally,  whilst 
we  were  observing  the  third  conjunction,  and  the  same 
was  indicated  by  the  watch,  the  poor  Bird  of  himself  sub- 
missively laid  down  his  neck  upon  the  book,  and  willingly 
Avis  suffered  his  head  to  be  smitten  off  by  one  of  us,  thereto 

decollatur. 

chosen  by  lot.  Howbeit  he  yielded  not  one  drop  of  blood 
till  he  was  opened  on  the  breast,  and  then  the  blood  spun 
out  so  fresh  and  clear  as  if  it  had  been  a  fountain  of  rubies. 
His  death  went  to  the  heart  of  us,  yet  we  might  well  judge 
Avis  that  a  naked  bird  would  stand  us  in  little  stead.  We 

combursitur. 

removed  the  little  altar,  and  assisted  the  Virgin  to  burn 
the  body,  together  with  the  little  tablet  hanging  by,  to 
ashes,  with  fire  kindled  at  the  little  taper,  afterwards  to 
cleanse  the  same  several  times,  and  to  lay  them  in  a  box  of 
cypress  wood.  Here  I  cannot  conceal  what  a  trick  I,  with 
three  more,  was  served.  After  we  had  diligently  taken  up 
the  ashes,  the  Virgin  began  to  speak  thus  : — "  My  Lords, 
we  are  here  in  the  sixth  room,  and  have  only  one  more 
before  us,  in  which  our  trouble  will  be  at  an  end,  and  we 
shall  return  home  to  our  castle  to  awaken  our  most  gratious 
Lords  and  Ladies.  Now  albeit  I  could  heartily  wish  that 
all  of  you  had  behaved  yourselves  in  such  sort  that  I  might 
have  given  your  commendations  to  our  most  renowned  King 
and  Queen,  and  you  have  obtained  a  suitable  reward,  yet 
because,  contrary  to  my  desire,  I  have  found  amongst  you 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    181 

these  four  "•  —pointing  at  me  and  three  others— "lazy  and 
sluggish  labourators,  and  yet  according  to  my  good-will  to 
all,  I  am  not  willing  to  deliver  them  to  condign  punish- 
ment. However,  that  such  negligence  may  not  remain 
wholly  unpunished,  I  purpose  that  they  shall  be  excluded 
from  the  future  seventh  and  most  glorious  action  of  all  the 
rest,  and  so  they  shall  incur  no  further  blame  from  their 
Eoyal  Majesties." 

In  what  a  case  we  now  were  I  leave  others  to  consider, 
for  the  Virgin  so  well  knew  how  to  keep  her  countenance 
that  the  water  soon  ran  over  our  baskets,  and  we  esteemed 
ourselves  the  most  unhappy  of  all  men.  The  Virgin  by  one 
of  her  maids,  whereof  there  were  many  always  at  hand, 
caused  the  musitians  to  be  fetcht,  who  were  with  cornets  to 
blow  us  out  of  doors  with  such  scorn  and  derision  that  they 
themselves  could  hardly  sound  for  laughing.  But  it  did 
particularly  afflict  us  that  the  Virgin  vehemently  laughed 
at  our  weeping,  and  that  there  might  be  some  amongst  our 
companions  who  were  glad  of  our  misfortune.  But  it 
proved  otherwise,  for  as  soon  as  we  were  come  out  at  the  co 

ejoco. 

door  the  .musitians  bid  us  be  of  good  cheere,  and  follow 
them  up  the  winding  staires  to  the  eighth  floor  under  the  8-  Conclave, 
roof,  where  we  found  the  old  man  standing  upon  a  little 
round  furnace.  He  received  us  friendly,  and  heartily  con- 
gratulated us  that  we  were  hereto  chosen  by  the  Virgin ; 
but  after  he  had  understood  the  fright  we  had  conceived, 
his  belly  was  ready  to  burst  with  laughing  that  we  had 
taken  such  good  fortune  so  hainously.  "  Hence,"  said  he, 
"  my  dear  sons,  learn  that  man  never  knoweth  how  well 
God  intendeth  him."  The  Virgin  also  came  running  in, 
who,  after  she  had  sufficiently  laughed  at  us,  emptied  her 
ashes  into  another  vessel,  filling  hers  again  with  other 


182 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Virgo,  lucif. 

ludit 

coeteros. 


7.  Conclave. 


Verus  labor 
sub  tecto. 


Labor 
spurius  in 
7  conclavi. 


Homunculi 
duo. 


Pascuntur 

sanguine 

avis. 


matter,  saying,  she  must  now  cast  a  mist  before  the  other 
artist's  eyes,  that  we  in  the  mean  time  should  obey  the  old 
lord,  and  not  remit  our  former  diligence.  Herewith  she 
departed  from  us  into  the  seventh  room,  whither  she  called 
our  companions.  What  she  first  did  with  them  I  cannot 
tell,  for  they  were  not  only  most  earnestly  forbidden  to 
speak  of  it,  but  we,  by  reason  of  our  business,  durst  not 
peep  on  them  through  the  cieling.  Our  work  was  to 
moisten  the  ashes  with  our  fore-prepared  water  till  they 
became  like  a  very  thin  dough,  after  which  we  set  the 
matter  over  the  fire  till  it  was  well  heated ;  then  we  cast  it 
into  two  little  forms  or  moulds,  and  [so  let  it  cool  a  little, 
when  we  had  leisure  to  look  on  our  companions  through 
certain  crevises  in  the  floor.  They  were  busie  at  a  furnace, 
and  each  was  himself  fain  to  blow  up  the  fire  with  a  pipe, 
till  he  was  ready  to  lose  his  breath.  They  imagined  they 
were  herein  wonderfully  preferred  before  us.  This  blowing 
lasted  till  our  old  man  rouzed  us  to  work  again.  We 
opened  our  little  forms,  and  there  appeared  two  bright  and 
almost  transparent  little  images,  a  male  and  a  female,  the 
like  to  which  man's  eye  never  saw,  each  being  but  four 
inches  long,  and  that  which  most  mightily  surprised  me 
was  that  they  were  not  hard,  but  limber  and  fleshy  as  other 
human  bodies ;  yet  had  they  no  life,  so  that  I  assuredly 
believe  that  Lady  Venus'  image  was  made  after  some  such 
way.  These  angelically  fair  babes  we  laid  upon  two  little 
sattin  cushonets,  and  beheld  them  till  we  were  ^almost 
besotted  upon  so  exquisite  an  object.  The  old  lord  warned 
us  to  forbear,  and  continually  to  instil  the  blood  of  the 
bird,  which  had  been  received  in  a  little  golden  cup,  drop 
after  drop  into  the  mouths  of  the  little  images,  from  whence 
they  apparently  encreased,  becoming  according  to  propor- 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    183 

tion   much  more  beautiful.     They  grew  so  big  that  we 

lifted  them  from  the  little  cushonets,  and  were  fain  to 

lay  them  upon  a  long  table  covered  with  white  velvet. 

The  old  man  commanded  us  to  cover  them  up  to  the  breast 

with  a  piece  of  fine  white  double  taffata,  which,  because  of 

their  unspeakable  beauty,  almost  went  against  us.     Before 

we  had  in  this  manner  quite  spent  the  blood,  they  were  in 

their  perfect  full  growth,  having  gold-yellow  ourled  hair, 

and  the  figure  of  Venus  was  nothing  to  them.     But  there 

was  not  yet  any  natural  warmth  or  sensibility  in  them  ; 

they  were  dead  figures,  yet  of  a  lively  and  natural  colour  ; 

and  since  care  was  to  be  taken  that  they  grew  not  too 

great,  the  old  man  would  not  permit  anything  more  to  be 

given  them,  but  covered  their  faces  too  with  the  silk,  and 

caused  the  table  to  be  stuck  round  about  with  torches. 

Let  the  reader  imagine  not  these  lights  to  have  been  of 

necessity,  for  the  old  man's  intent  was  that  we  should  not 

observe  when   the  Soul   entred  into  them,  as  indeed  we 

should  not  have  taken  notice  of  it,  in  case  I  had  not  twice 

before  seen  the  flames.     However,  I  permitted  the  other 

three    to    remain    in    their   belief,    neither   did   the   old 

man    know    that    I    had    seen    anything    more.      Here- 

upon   he    bid    us    sit    down   on   a  bench   over    against 

the  table.     The  Virgin  came  in  with  the  musick  and  all 

furniture,  and  carried  two  curious  white  garments,  the  like 

to  which  I  had  never  seen  in  the  Castle.     I  thought  no  vestiuntur. 

other  but  that  they  were  meer  christal,  but   they  were 

gentle  and  not  transparent.     These  she  laid  upon  a  table, 

and  after  she  had  disposed  her  Virgins  upon  a  bench  round 

about,  she  and  the  old  man  began  many  leger-de-main  tricks 

about  the  table,  which  were  done  only  to  blind.     All  this  spectators 

luduntur. 

was   managed    under  the   roof,    which    was   wonderfully 


1 84  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

formed,  for  on  the  inside  it  was  arched  into  seven  hemi- 
spheres, of  which  the  middlemost  was  somewhat  the  highest, 
and  had  at  top  a  little  round  hole,  which  was  shut  and  was 
observed  by  none  but  myself.  After  many  ceremonies 
stept  in  six  Virgins,  each  of  which  bare  a  large  trumpet, 
rouled  about  with  a  green,  glittering,  and  burning  material 
like  a  wreath,  one  of  which  the  old  man  took,  and  after  he 
had  removed  some  of  the  lights  at  top,  and  uncovered  their 
faces,  he  placed  one  of  the  trumpets  upon  the  mouth  of  one 
of  the  bodies  in  such  manner  that  the  upper  and  wider  part 
Usus  of  it  was  directed  towards  the  fore-mentioned  hole.  Here 

tubarum. 

my  companions  always  looked  upon  the  images,  but  as  soon 

as  the  foliage  or  wreath  about  the  shank  of  the  trumpet 

Forti  ex       was  kindled,  I  saw  the  hole  at  top  open  and  a  bright  stream 

ccelo  ° 

veniens.  of  fire  shoot  down  the  tube  and  pass  into  the  body,  where- 
upon the  hole  was  again  covered,  and  the  trumpet  removed. 
With  this  device  my  companions  were  deluded  into  imagin- 
ing that  life  came  to  the  image  by  the  fire  of  the  foliage, 
for  as  soon  as  he  received  his  Soul  he  twinckled  his  eyes 

Homuncuii    though   scarcely   stirring.      The   second  time   he    placed 

transfer-  ' '  another  tube  upon  its  mouth,  kindled  it  again,  and  the 
Soul  was  let  down  through  the  tube.  This  was  repeated 
upon  each  of  them  three  times,  after  which  all  the  lights 
were  extinguished  and  carried  away.  The  velvet  carpets 
of  the  table  were  cast  together  over  them,  and  immediately 
a  travelling  bed  was  unlocked  and  made  ready,  into  which, 
thus  wrapped  up,  they  were  born,  and,  after  the  carpets 
were  taken  off  them,  neatly  laid  by  each  other,  where,  with 
the  curtains  drawn  before  them,  they  slept  a  good  while. 

DC.  7  conci.  It  was  now  time  for  the  Virgin  to  see  how  the  other  artists 
behaved  themselves •  they  were  well  pleased  because  they 
were  to  work  in  gold,  which  is  indeed  a  piece  of  this  art, 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    185 

but  not  the  most  principal,  necessary,  and  best.  They  had 
too  a  part  of  these  ashes,  so  that  they  imagined  that  the 
whole  Bird  was  provided  for  the  sake  of  gold,  and  that  life 
must  thereby  be  restored  to  the  deceased.  Mean  time  we 
sate  very  still,  attending  when  our  married  couple  would 
awake,  and  thus  about  half  an  hour  was  spent.  Then  the 
wanton  Cupid  presented  himself,  and,  after  he  had  saluted 
us  all,  flew  to  them  behind  the  curtain,  tormenting  them 
till  they  waked.  This  happened  to  them  with  very  great 
amazement,  for  they  imagined  that  theypiad  slept  from  the 
hour  in  which  they  were  beheaded.  Cupid,  after  he  had  Fuenmt  im 

J  qui  decol- 

awaked  them,  and  renewed  their  acquaintance  one  with 
another,  stepped  aside  and  permitted  them  to  recruit  their 
strength,  mean  time  playing  his  tricks  with  us,  and  at 
length  he  would  needs  have  the  musick  fetcht  to  be  some- 
what the  merrier.  Not  long  after  the  Virgin  herself  comes, 
and  having  most  humbly  saluted  the  young  King  and 
Queen,  who  found  themselves  somewhat  faint,  and  having 


induunt 

kissed  their  hands,  she  brought  them  the  two  fore-mentioned  vestimenta 

ut  se  con- 

garments,  which  they  put  on,  and  so  stepped  forth. 


There  were  already   prepared   two  very  curious    chaires, 
wherein  they  placed  themselves,  and  were  by  us  with  most 
profound  reverence  congratulated,  for  which  the  King  in 
his  own  person  most  gratiously  returned  his  thanks,  and 
again  re-assured  us  of  all  grace.    It  was  already  about  five  of 
clock,  wherefore  they  could  make  no  longer  stay  ;  but  as  soon 
as  ever  the  chiefest  of  their  furniture  could  be  laden,  we  were 
to  attend  the  young  Royal  Persons  down  the  stairs,  through 
all  doors  and  watches  unto  the  ship,  in  which  they  inbarqued,  conjuges 
together  with  certain  Virgins  and  Cupid,  and  sailed  so  trans  mare. 
swiftly  that  we  soon  lost  sight  of  them,  yet  they  were  met, 
as  I  was  informed,  by  certain  stately  ships,  and^  in  four 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Musick. 


Turris 
custodita  a 
militibus. 


Custos  est 
inspector. 


hours  time  had  made  many  leagues  out  at  sea.     After  five 
of  clock  the  musitians  were  charged  to   carry  all  things 
back  to  the  ships,  and  to  make  themselves  ready  for  the 
voyage,  but  because  this  was  somewhat  long  a  doing,  the 
Custos  senex  old  lord  commanded  forth  a  party  of  his  concealed  soldiers, 
who  had  hitherto  been  planted  in  the  wall  so  that  we  had 
taken  no  notice  of  any  of  them,  whereby  I  observed  that  this 
tower  was  well  guarded  against  opposition.     These  soldiers 
made  quick  work  of  our  stuff,  so  that  no  more  remained  to 
be  done  but  to  go  to  supper.     The  table  being  compleatly 
furnished,  the  Virgin  brings  us  again  to  our  companions, 
where  we  were  to  carry  ourselves  as  if  we  had  truly  been 
in  a  lamentable  condition,  while  they  were  always  smiling 
one  upon  another,  though  some  of  them  too  simpathized 
with  us.     At  this  supper  the  old  lord  was  with  us,  who  was 
a  most  sharp  inspector  over  us,  for  none  could  propound 
anything  so  discreetly  but  that  he  knew  how  to  confute  or 
amend  it,  or  at  least  to  give  some  good  document  upon  it. 
I  learned  most  by  this  lord,  and  it  were  good  that  each 
would  apply  himself  to  him,  and  take  notice  of  his  pro- 
cedure, for  then  things  would  not  so  often  and  untowardly 
miscarry.     After  we  had  taken  our  nocturnal  refection,  the 
old  lord  led  us  into  his  closets  of  rarities,  dispersed  among 
the  bulworks,  where  we  saw  such  wonderful  productions  of 
nature,  and  other  things  which  man's  wit  in  imitation  of 
nature  had  invented,  that  we  needed  a  year  sufficiently  to 
survey  them.     Thus  we  spent  a  good  part  of  the  night  by 
candle-light.     At  last,  because  we  were  more  inclined  to 
sleep  then  see  many  rarities,  we  were  lodged  in  rooms  in 
the  wall,  where  we  had  not  only  costly  good  beds  but 
extraordinary  handsome   chambers,  which   made    us   the 
more  wonder  why  we  were  forced  the  day  before  to  under- 


Laus  hujus 
senis. 


The  old 
man's  closets. 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.  187 

go  so  many  hardships.  In  this  chamber  I  had  good  rest, 
and,  being  for  the  most  part  without  care,  and  weary  with 
continual  labour,  the  gentle  rushing  of  the  sea  helped  me 
to  a  sound  and  sweet  sleep,  for  I  continued  in  one  dream 
from  eleven  of  clock  till  eight  in  the  morning. 


The  Seventh  Day. 

After  eight  of  clock  I  awaked,  and  quickly  made  myself 
ready,  being  desirous  to  return  again  into  the  tower,  but 
the  dark  passages  in  the  wall  were  so  many  that  I  wandered 
a  good  while  before  I  could  find  the  way  out.  The  same 
happened  to  the  rest,  till  we  all  meet  in  the  nethermost  Hospites 

deponunt 

vault,  and  habits  intirely  yellow  were  given  us,  together 
with  our  golden  fleeces.  At  that  time  the  Virgin  declared 
to  us  that  we  were  Knights  of  the  (Sollmt  i>tOn£,  of  which 
we  were  before  ignorant.  After  we  had  made  ourselves 
readv,  and  taken  our  breakfast,  the  old  man  presented  each  Donantur 

J  '  a  sene. 

of  us  with  a  medal  of  gold.  On  the  one  side  stood  these 
words  — 


NAT.       Ml.  Ars  naturae 

ministra. 

On  the  other  these, 

TEM.    NA.    F.  ST?,,.. 

exhorting  us  to  enterprize  nothing  beyond  and  against  this 
token  of  remembrance.  Herewith  we  went  forth  to  the 
sea,  where  our  ships  lay  so  richly  equipped  that  it  was  not 
well  possible  but  that  such  brave  things  must  first  have 
been  brought  thither.  The  ships  were  twelve  in  number, 
six  of  ours  and  six  of  the  old  lord's,  who  caused  his  to  be 
freighted  with  well-appointed  soldiers.  But  he  betook 
himself  to  us  in  our  ship,  where  we  were  all  together.  In  Navis,  i. 
the  first  the  musitians  seated  themselves,  of  which  the  old 


1 88 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Vexilla  12 
sign.    Navis 
autoris  libra 
Horolog. 


Facundia 
senis. 


Obviatio 
ex  arce. 


500  naves. 


Applausus. 


Atlas 
oratione 
excipit 
hospites. 


Atlanti 
respondet 
sen  ex. 


lord  had  also  a  great  number.  They  sailed  before  us  to 
shorten  the  time.  Our  flags  were  the  twelve  celestial  signs, 
and  we  sate  in  Libra.  Besids  other  things  our  ship  had  a 
noble  and  curious  clock  which  showed  us  all  the 
minutes.  The  sea  was  so  calm  that  it  was  a 
singular  pleasure  to  sail,  but  that  which  surpassed  all 
was  the  old  man's  discourse,  who  so  well  knew  how 
to  pass  away  our  time  with  wonderful  histories  that  I 
could  have  been  content  to  sail  with  him  all  my  life  long. 
The  ships  passed  on,  and  before  we  had  sailed  two  hours 
the  mariner  told  us  that  he  saw  the  whole  lake  almost 
covered  with  ships,  by  which  we  conjectured  they  were 
come  out  to  meet  us,  which  proved  true,  for  as  soon  as  we 
were  gotten  out  of  the  sea  into  the  lake  of  the  f  orementioned 
river,  there  stood  in  to  us  five  hundred  ships,  one  of  which 
sparkled  with  gold  and  pretious  stones,  and  in  it  sate  the 
King  and  Queen,  with  lords,  ladies,  and  virgins  of  high 
birth.  As  soon  as  they  were  well  in  ken  of  us  the  pieces 
were  discharged  on  both  sides,  and  there  was  such  a  din  of 
trumpets,  shalms,  and  kettle-drums,  that  all  the  ships  upon 
the  sea  capered  again.  As  soon  as  we  came  near,  they 
brought  about  our  ships  together  and  so  made  a  stand. 
Old  Atlas  stepped  forth  on  the  King's  behalf,  making  a 
short  but  handsom  oration,  wherein  he  wellcomed  us,  and 
demanded  whether  the  royal  Presents  were  in  readiness. 
The  rest  of  my  companions  were  in  an  huge  amazement 
whence  this  King  should  arise,  for  they  imagined  no  other 
but  that  they  must  again  awaken  him.  We  suffered  them 
to  continue  in  their  wonderment,  and  carried  ourselves  as 
if  it  seemed  strange  to  us  too.  After  Atlas'  oration  out 
steps  our  old  man,  making  somewhat  a  larger  reply,  wherein 
he  wished  the  King  and  Queen  all  happiness  and  increase, 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.  189 

after  which  he  delivered  a  curious  small  casket,  but  what 

was  in  it  I  know  not.     It  was  committed  to  the  custody  of  ?e«i|s  COI>- 

*          jugibus 


Cupid,  who  hovered  between  them  both.  After  the  oration  ^^  affert 
they  again  let  off  a  joyful  voile  of  shot,  and  so  we  sailed 
on  a  good  time  together,  till  we  arrived  at  another  shore, 
near  the  first  gate  at  which  I  first  entred.  At  this  place 
there  attended  a  great  multitude  of  the  King's  family, 
together  with  some  hundreds  of  horses.  As  soon  as  we 
were  come  to  shore  and  disembarqued,  the  King  and 
Queen  presented  their  hands  to  all  of  us,  one  with  another, 
with  singular  kindness,  and  so  we  were  to  get  up  on  horse- 
back. Here  I  desire  to  have  the  reader  friendly  entreated 
not  to  interpret  the  following  narration  to  any  vain  glory 
of  mine,  but  to  credit  me  that  had  there  been  not  a  special 
necessity  in  it,  I  could  well  have  concealed  the  honour 
which  was  shewed  me.  We  were  all  distributed  amongst 
the  lords,  but  our  old  lord  and  I,  most  unworthy,  were  to 
ride  even  with  the  King,  each  of  us  bearing  a  snow-white  JUJ 
ensign  with  a  Eed  Cross.  I  indeed  was  made  use  of 
because  of  my  age,  for  we  both  had  long  grey  beards  and 
hair.  I  had  besides  fastened  my  tokens  round  about  my 
hat,  of  which  the  young  King  soon  took  notice,  and 
demanded  if  I  were  he  who  could  at  the  gate  redeem  these 
tokens.  I  answered  yes  in  the  most  humble  manner,  but 
he  laughed  on  me,  saying  there  henceforth  needed  no 
ceremony,  I  was  HIS  Father.  Then  he  asked  me  where-  Pater. 
with  I  had  redeemed  them.  I  answered,  "  With  Water  Tesseras 
and  Salt,"  whereupon  he  wondred  who  had  made  me  so  et  aqua. 
wise,  upon  which  I  grew  somewhat  more  confident,  and 
recounted  how  it  had  happened  to  me  with  my  Bread,  the 
>ove,  and  the  Raven  ;  he  was  pleased  with  it,  and  said 
expressly,  that  it  must  needs  be  that  God  had  herein 


190 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Primus 
custos.    Ob, 
visam  ven- 
erem  factus 
portitor. 


Autor 
ejusdem 
delicterus 
traditur  a 
portitore. 


Actus  in 
Arce. 


Virg.  lucif . 


vouchsafed  me  a  singular  happiness.     Herewith  we  came 
to  the  first  gate,  where  the  porter  with  the  blew  cloaths 
waited,  bearing  in  his  hand  a  supplication.     As  soon  as  he 
spied  me  even  with  the  king,  he  delivered  me  the  supplica- 
tion, most  humbly  beseeching  me  to  mention  his  ingenuity 
before  me  towards   the  King ;  so,  in   the   first   place,   I 
demanded  of  his  majesty  what  the  condition  of  this  porter 
was,  who  friendly  answered  me,  that  he  was  a  very  famous 
and  rare  astrologer,  always  in  high  regard  with  the  Lord 
his  Father,  but  having  on  a  time  committed  a  fault  against 
Venus,  and  beheld  her  in  her  bed  of  rest,  this  punishment 
was  imposed  upon  him,  that  he  should  so  long  wait  at  the 
gate  till  some  one   should  release   him   from   thence.     I 
replyed,    "May  he  then  be  released?"      "Yes,"  said  the 
King,    "  if  anyone   can   be   found   that    hath   as    highly 
transgressed  as  himself,  he  must  stand  in  his  stead,  arid  the 
other  shall  be  free.    This  word  went  to  my  heart ;  conscience 
convinced  me  that  I  was  the  offender,  yet  I  held  my  peace 
and  delivered  the  supplication.  As  soon  as  the  King  had  read 
it,  he  was  mightily  terrified,  so  that  the  Queen,  who,  with  our 
virgins  and  that  other  queen  whom  I  mentioned  at  the  hang- 
ing of  the  weights,  rid  behind  us,  asked  him  what  the  letter 
might  signifie ;  but  he,  putting  up  the  paper,  began  to  dis- 
course of  other  matters,  till  in  about  three  hours  we  came 
quite  to  the  Castle,  where  we  alighted  and  waited  upon  the 
King  into  his  hall,  who  called  immediately  for  the  old  Atlas 
to  come  to  him  in  a  little  closet,  and  showed  him  the  writing. 
Atlas  made  no  long  tarrying,  but  rid  out  to  the  porter  to 
take  better  cognizance  of  the  matter,  after  which  the  young 
King,  with  his  spouse  and  other  Lords,  Ladies,  and  Virgins 
sate  down.     Then  began  our  Virgin  highly  to  commend  the 
diligence  we  had  used,  and  the  pains  and  labour  we  had  un- 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    191 

dergone,  requesting  we  might  be  royally  rewarded,  and  that 
she  henceforward  might  be  permitted  to  enjoy  the  benefit 
of  her  commission.  The  old  lord  stood  up  too,  and  attested 
the  truth  of  all  that  the  Virgin  had  spoken,  and  that  it  was 
but  equity  that  we  should  on  both  parts  be  contented. 
Hereupon  we  were  to  step  out  a  little  ;  it  was  concluded 
that  each  man  should  make  some  possible  wish,  and  were 
to  consider  of^it  till  after  supper.  Meantime  the  King  and  Ludus  Regis 

cum  Regina. 

Queen,  for  recreation's  sake,  began  to  play  together.     It 

looked  not  unlike  chesse,  only  it  had  other  laws,  for  it  was 

the  vertues  and  vices  one  against  another,  where  it  might 

be  ingeniously  observed  with  what  plots  the  vices  lay  in 

wait  for  the  vertues,  and  how  to  re-encounter  them  again. 

This  was  so  properly  and  artificially  performed  that  it  were  Artificios. 

to  be  wished  that  we  had  the  like  game  too.     During  the 

game  in  comes  Atlas  again,  and  makes  his  report  in  private, 

yet  I  blushed  all  over,  for  my  conscience  gave  me  no  rest. 

The  King  presented  me  the  supplication  to  read,  the  con-  suppiicatio 

portitoris 

tents  whereof  were  to  this  purpose  :  First,  the  writer  wished  traditum 

autori. 

the  King  prosperity  and  peace,  and  that  his  seed  might  be 
spread  far  and  wide.  Afterwards  he  remonstrated  that  the 
time  was  now  come  wherein,  according  to  the  royal  promise, 
heought  to  be  released;  because  Venus  was  already  uncovered 
by  one  of  his  guests,  for  his  observations  could  not  lie  to 
to  him,  and  that  if  his  Majesty  would  please  to  make  strict 
and  diligent  enquiry,  in  case  this  should  not  prove  to  be, 
he  would  remain  before  the  gate  all  the  days  of  his  life. 
Then  he  humbly  sued  that,  upon  peril  of  body  and  life,  he 
might  be  present  at  this  night's  supper,  being  in  good  hopes 
to  spye  out  the  offender  and  obtain  his  wished  freedom. 
This  was  handsomly  indited,  and  I  could  well  perceive  his 


192 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 


Triclinium 
preciosissi- 
mum. 


Cupido 
iratus  ob 
venerem 
visam  ab 
autore. 


Etiam  Rex 
condolet. 


Lagtitia 
discum- 
bentium . 


Post  coenam 
obligantur 
equites 
legibus  suis. 


ingenuity,  but  it  was  too  sharp  for  me,  and  I  could  well 
have  endured  never  to  have  seen  it.     Casting  in  my  mind 
whether  he  might  perchance  be  helped  through  my  wish,  I 
asked  the  King  whether  he  might  not  be  released  some 
other  way,  but  he  replyed  no,  because  there  was  special 
consideration  in  the  business,  but  for  this  night  we  might 
gratifie  his  desire,  so  he  sent  one  forth  to  fetch  him  in. 
Mean  time  the  tables  were  prepared  in  a  spatious  room,  in 
which  we  had  never  before  been,  which  was  so  compleat 
that  it  is  not  possible  for  me  to  describe  it.     Into  this  we 
were  conducted  with  singular  ceremony.     Cupid  was  not 
present,  for  the  disgrace  which  had  happened  to  his  mother 
had  somewhat  angered  him.     In  brieflf,  my  offence,  and  the 
supplication  which  had  been  delivered,  were  the  occasion  of 
much  sadness,  for  the  King  was  in  perplexity  how  to  make 
inquisition  amongst  his  guests.     He  caused  the  porter  him- 
self to  make  his  strict  surveigh,  and  showed  himself  as 
pleasant  as  he  was  able.     Howbeit,  at  length  they  began 
again  to  be  merry,  and  to  bespeak  one  another  with  all 
sorts  of  recreative,  profitable   discourses.     The   treatment 
and  other  ceremonies  then  performed  it  is  not  necessary  to 
declare,  since  it  is  neither  the  reader's  concern  nor  service- 
able to  my  design,  but  all  exceeded  more  in  invention  than 
that  we  were  overcharged  with  drinking.     This  was  the 
last  and  noblest  meal  at  which  I  was  present.     After  the 
bancket  the  tables  were  suddainly  taken  away,  and  certain 
curious  chairs  placed  round  in  circle,  in  which  we,  together 
with  the  King  and  Queen,  both  their  old  men,  the  Ladies 
and  Virgins,  were  to  sit.     After  this  a  very  handsom  Page 
opened  the   above  mentioned   glorious  little  book,  when 
Atlas,  immediately  placing  himself  in  the  midst,  bespoke 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.   193 

us  to  the  ensuing  purpose : — That  his  Eoyal  Majesty  had 
not  yet  committed  to  oblivion  the  service  we  had  done  him, 
and  therefore  by  way  of  retribution  had  elected  each  of  us 
Knights  of  the  Golden  Stone.  That  it  was,  therefore, 
further  necessary  not  only  once  again  to  oblige  ourselves 
towards  his  Royal  Majesty,  but  to  vow  upon  the  following 
articles,  and  then  His  Eoyal  Highness  would  likewise 
know  how  to  behave  himself  towards  his  high  people. 
Upon  which  he  caused  the  Page  to  read  over  these 
articles  :— 

I.  You,  my  Lords  the  Knights,  shall  swear  that  you  will 
at  no  time  ascribe  your  order  either  unto  any  Devil  or 
Spirit,  but  only  to  God,  your  Creator,  and  His  hand-maid 
Nature. 

II.  That  you  will  abominate  all  whoredom,  incontinency, 
and   uncleanness,    and   not   defile   your  order  with    such 
vices. 

III.  That  you,  through  your  talents,  will  be  ready  to 
assist  all  that  are  worthy  and  have  need  of  them. 

IV.  That  you  desire  not  to  employ  this  honour  to  worldly 
pride  and  high  authority. 

V.  That  you  shall  not  be  willing  to  live  longer  than  God 
will  have  you. 

At  this  last  article  we  could  not  choose  but  laugh,  and  it 
may  well  have  been  placed  there  for  a  conceit.  Now,  being 
sworn  them  all  by  the. King's  scepter,  we  were  afterwards, 
with  the  usual  ceremonies,  installed  Knights,  and,  amongst 
other  privileges,  set  over  ignorance,  poverty,  and  sickness, 

to  handle  them  at  our  pleasure.  This  was  afterwards  ratified 

•*•  * 

in  a  little  chappel,  whither  we  were  conducted  in  proces- 
sion, and  thanks  returned  to  God  for  it.  There  I  also  at 
that  time,  to  the  honour  of  God,  hung  up  my  golden  fleece 


i94  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

and  hat,  and  left  them  for  an  eternal  memorial.    And  because 
every  one  was  to  write  his  name  there,  I  writ  thus  :— 

Summa  Scientia  nihil  Scire, 
Fr.  CHRISTIANUS  ROSENCREUTZ. 
Egues  aurei  Lapidis. 
Anno.  1459. 

Jam  Others  writ  differently,  each  as  seemed  him  good ;  after 

postulantur  .        .  .        ,     ,,        ,  ,     . 

depositiones  which  we  were  again  brought  into  the  hall,  where,  being 

optionum.  -11  • 

sate  down,  we  were  admonished  quickly  to  bethink  our- 
selves what  every  one  would  wish.  The  King  and  his 
party  retired  into  a  little  closet  to  give  audience  to  our 
wishes.  Each  man  was  called  in  severally,  so  that  I  can- 
not speak  of  any  man's  proper  wish ;  but  I  thought 
nothing  could  be  more  praiseworthy  than,  in  honour  of  my 
order,  to  demonstrate  some  laudable  vertue,  and  found  that 
none  at  present  could  be  more  famous  and  cost  me  more 
trouble  than  gratitude;  wherefore,  not  regarding  that  I 
Autor  optat  might  well  have  wished  somewhat  more  agreeable  to  my- 

liberationem 

portitoris      Self  I  vanquished  myself,  and  concluded,  even  with  my 

e  gratitudme. 

own  peril,  to  free  the  porter,  my  benefactor.  Being  called 
in,  I  was  first  demanded  whether,  having  read  the  suppli- 
cation, I  had  suspected  nothing  concerning  the  oifendor, 
upon  which  I  began  undauntedly  to  relate  how  all  the  busi- 
ness had  passed,  how,  through  ignorance,  I  fell  into  that 
mistake,  and  so  offered  myself  to  undergo  all  that  I  had 
Autor  reus  thereby  demerited.  The  King  and  the  rest  of  the  Lords 

confitefts.  ° 

wondred  mightily  at  so  un-hoped  for  confession,  and  wished 
me  to  step  aside  a  little ;  and  as  soon  as  I  was  called  in 
again>  Atlas  declared  to  me  that,  although  it  were  grievous 
to  the  King's  Majesty  that  I,  whom  he  loved  above  others, 
was  fallen  into  such  a  mischance,  yet,  because  it  was  not 


MARRIAGE  OF  CHRISTIAN  ROSENCREUTZ.    195 

possible  for  him  to  transgress  his  ancient  usages,  he  knew 
not  how  else  to  absolve  me  but  that  the  other  must  be  at 
liberty  and  I  placed  in  his  stead ;  yet  he  would  hope  that 
some  other  would  soon  be  apprehended,  that  so  I  might  be 
able  to  go  home  again.  However,  no  release  was  to  be 
hoped  for  till  the  marriage  feast  of  his  future  son.  This  Audit 

sententiam. 

sentence  near  cost  me  my  life,  and  I  first  hated  myself 
and  my  twatling  tongue  in  that  I  could  not  hold  my 
peace ;  yet  at  last  I  took  courage,  and,  because  T  con- 
sidered there  was  no  remedy,  I  related  how  this  porter 
had  bestowed  a  token  on  me  and  commended  me  to  the 
other,  by  whose  assistance  I  stood  upon  the  scale,  and  so 
was  made  partaker  of  all  the  honour  and  joy  already  re- 
ceived. And  therefore  now  it  was  equal  that  I  should  show  Laus 

benencn 

myself  grateful  to  my  benefactor,  and  was  willing  gently  poi>fcitOTis- 
to  sustain  inconvenience  for  his  sake,  who  had  been  helpful 
to  me  in  coming  to  so  high  place ;  but  if  by  my  wish  any- 
thing might  be  effected,  I  wished  myself  at  home  again, 
and  that  so  he  by  me,  as  I  by  my  wish,  might  be  at  liberty. 
Answer  was  made  me,  that  the  wishing  stretched  not  so  far,  Laudatur 

'  aRege 

yet  it  was  very  pleasing  to  his  Eoyal  Majesty  that  I  had 
behaved  myself  so  generously,  but  he  was  affraid  I  might 
still  be  ignorant  into  what  a  miserable  condition  I  had 
plunged  myself  through  this  curiosity.  Hereupon  the 
good  man  was  pronounced  free,  and  I,  with  a  sad  heart, 
was  fain  to  step  aside.  The  rest  were  called  for  after  me,  Reiiqui 

laeti  evadunt 

and  came  jocundly  out  again,  which  was  still  more  to  my 
smart,  for  I  imagined  no  other  but  that  I  must  finish  my 
life  under  the  gate.  I  had  also  many  pensive  thoughts 
running  in  my  head  as  to  what  I  should  yet  undertake,  and 
wherewith  to  spend  the  time.  At  length  I  considered  that  Spes. 

Metust 

I  was  now  old,  and,  according  to  the  course  of  Nature,  had 


196  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

few  more  years  to  live,  that  this  anguish  and  melancholy 
life  would  easily  dispatch  me,  and  then  my  doorkeeping 
would  be  at  an  end,  and  that  by  a  most  happy  sleep  I 

Solatium.  might  quickly  bring  myself  into  the  grave.  Sometimes  it 
vexed  me  that  I  had  seen  such  gallant  things,  and  must  be 
robbed  of  them ;  sometimes  it  rejoyced  me  that  before  my 
end  I  had  been  accepted  to  all  joy,  and  should  not  be  forced 
so  shamefully  to  depart.  Thus  this  was  the  last  and  worst 
shock  that  I  sustained.  During  these  my  cogitations  the 
rest  were  ready,  wherefore,  after  they  had  received  a  good 
night  from  the  King  and  Lords,  each  was  conducted  into 
his  lodging,  but  I,  most  wretched  man,  had  nobody  to  show 
me  the  way,  and  yet  must  suffer  myself  to  be  tormented. 
That  I  might  be  certain  of  my  future  function,  I  was  fain 

Autor          to  Put  on  *^e  Ring  which  the  other  had  worn.     Finally, 

aSmm.  tne  King  exhorted  me  that,  since  this  was  the  last  time  I 
was  like  to  see  him  in  this  manner,  I  should  behave  myself 
according  to  my  place,  and  not  against  the  Order,  upon 
which  he  took  me  in  his  arms  and  kissed  me,  all  which  I 
understood  as  if  in  the  morning  I  must  sit  at  my  gate. 
After  they  had  all  spoken  friendly  to  me,  and  at  last  pre- 
sented their  hands,  committing  me  to  the  divine  protection, 
I  was  by  both  the  old  men — the  Lord  of  the  Tower  and 

Auteraormit  Atlas — conducted  into  a  glorious  lodging,  in  which  stood 

cum  atlante 

&  sene         three  beds,  and  each  of  us  lay  in  one  of  them,  where  we  yet 

custode  J  J 

Tunis.         spent  almost  two,  &c. 

Here  are  wanting  about  two  leaves  in  quarto,  and  he  (the 
author  hereof),  whereas  he  imagined  he  must  in  the  morning 
be  door-keeper,  returned  home. 


CHAPTER  VI. 

ON  THE  CONNECTION  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIAN  CLAIMS  WITH 
THOSE  OF  ALCHEMY  AND  MAGIC. 

THE  guise  of  antiquity  being  almost  indispensable  to  the 
pretensions  contained  in  these  singular  documents,  I  have 
preferred  presenting  them  to  my  readers  in  the  archaic 
form  of  the  original  English  translations,  which,  moreover, 
represent  the  Rosicrucian  period  in  this  country,  than  to 
undertake  the  somewhat  superfluous  task  of  a  new  version. 
If  the  "Fama"  and  "Confessio  Fraternitatis "  are  to  be 
taken  in  their  literal  sense,  the  publication  of  these  documents 
will  not  add  new  lustre  to  Rosicrucian  reputations.  We  are 
accustomed  to  regard  the  adepts  of  the  Rose-Cross  as  beings 
of  sublime  elevation  and  preternatural  physical  powers, 
masters  of  Nature,  monarchs  of  the  intellectual  world, 
illuminated  by  a  relative  omniscience,  and  absolutely  ex- 
alted above  all  weakness  and  all  prejudice.  We  imagine 
them  to  be  "  holding  no  form  of  creed,  but  contemplating 
all "  from  the  solitary  grandeur  of  the  Absolute,  and  in- 
vested with  the  "  sublime  sorrow  of  the  ages  as  of  the  lone 
ocean."  But  here  in  their  own  acknowledged  manifestoes 
they  avow  themselves  a  mere  theosophical  offshoot  of  the 
Lutheran  heresy,  acknowledging  the  spiritual  supremacy  of 
a  temporal  prince,  and  calling  the  pope  Antichrist.  We 
have  gauged  in  these  days  of  enlightenment  and  universal 
tolerance  the  intellectual  capacities  of  all  professors,  past 


198  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

and  present,  of  that  art  prophetic  which  is  represented  by 
Baxter  and  Gumming.  We  know  the  value  of  all  the  mul- 
titudinous speculations  in  the  theological  no-man's  land  of 
the  Apocalypse.  We  do  not  expect  a  new  Star  of  Jacob  to 
rise  out  of  the  Galilee  of  religious  intolerance,  and  out  of  the 
frantic  folly  of  sectarian  squabblings.  We  do  not  calculate 
the  number  of  the  beast,  we  do  not  denounce  the  Jesuits, 
we  are  not  obsessed  by  an  infectious  terror  of  papal  power 
and  its  possible  agressions ;  on  the  contrary,  we  respect  the 
associations  connected  with  sovereign  pontiffs,  grand  lamas, 
and  chief  patriarchs.  We  have,  most  of  us,  decided  that 
the  pope  is  neither  God's  vicar  nor  the  Man  of  Sin ;  we 
persistently  refuse  our  adherence  to  any  theory  which  con- 
nects the  little  horn  with  Prince  Jerome  Napoleon,  and  we 
are  not  open  to  any  positive  convictions  on  the  identity 
of  the  Scarlet  Woman,  or  of  the  lost  tribes  of  Israel.  All 
persons  possessed  of  such  positive  convictions  we  justifiably 
regard  as  fanatics,  and  after  due  and  deliberate  considera- 
tion of  the  Eosi crucian  manifestoes,  we  do  not  feel  able  to 
make  an  exception  in  favour  of  this  Fraternity,  whose 

"  Manners  have  not  that  repose 
Which  marks  the  caste  of  Vere  de  Vere. " 

In  other  words,  we  find  them  intemperate  in  their  language, 
rabid  in  their  religious  prejudices,  and,  instead  of  towering 
giant-like  above  the  intellectual  average  of  their  age,  we  see 
them  buffeted  by  the  same  passions  and  identified  with  all  the 
opinions  of  the  men  by  whom  they  were  environed.  The  voice 
which  addresses  us  behind  the  mystical  mask  of  the  Eose- 
Cross  does  not  come  from  an  intellectual  throne,  erected  on 
the  pinnacles  of  high  thinking  and  surrounded  by  the  serene 
and  sunny  atmosphere  of  a  far-sighted  tolerance  ;  it  comes 


ROS1CRUCIANISM,  ALCHEMY,  AND  MAGIC.     199 

from  the  very  heart  of  the  vexatious  and  unprofitable  strife 
of  sects,  and  it  utters  the  war-cry  of  extermination.  The 
scales  fall  from  our  eyes,  the  romance  vanishes ;  we  find  our- 
selves in  the  presence  of  some  Germans  of  the  period,  not 
of  "  the  mystic  citizens  of  the  eternal  kingdom." 

We  are  dejected  and  disillusioned,  but  we  are  thankful, 
notwithstanding,  to  know  the  truth,  as  distinguished  from 
the  fictions  of  Mr  Hargrave  Jennings  and  the  glamorous 
fables  of  professed  romancers.  In  this  spirit  we  proceed  to 
a  closer  acquaintance  with  the  Eosicrucians  as  represented 
by  themselves. 

I  have  already  said  that  "  The  Universal  Eeformation  " 
has  little  internal  connection  with  the  society  which  is  sup- 
posed to  have  issued  it  in  its  Teutonic  dress.     The  conclu- 
sion which  is  reached  in  that   curious  tract  is,   indeed, 
completely  opposed  to  the  expressed  hopes  of  the  Frater- 
nity.    It  illustrates  the  ludicrous  futility  and  abortiveness 
of  the  attempt  to  reform  society,  even  when  undertaken  by 
the  flower  of  the  world's  "  literati."     It  bids  the  reformers 
begin  their  work   at   home,   and  reduces   their   Utopian 
scheming  from  the  splendid  scale  of  universal  reconstruc- 
tion   to   appraising    sprats   and    cabbages.      It    considers 
mankind  to   be  as   good  as  his   surroundings  will  allow 
him,  and  that  "  the  height  of  human  wisdom  lies  in  the 
discretion  to  be  content  with  leaving  the  world  as  they 
found  it."     On  the  other  hand,  the  "  Fama "    and  "  Con- 
fessio  "  invite  "  the  learned  of  Europe  to  co-operate  with  a 
secret  society  for  the  renovation  of  the  age,  the  reform  of 
philosophy,"  and  to  remedy  "  the  imperfection  and  incon- 
sistencies of  all  the  arts."     The  discrepancy  is  singularly 
complete,  and  as  "  The  Universal  Keformation  "  throws  no 
light  upon  the  history  or  the  claims  of  the  Rosicrucians,  it 


200  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

need  not  detain  ns.  "  The  Chymical  Marriage  of  Christian 
Rosencreutz  "  I  shall  also  set  aside  for  the  present,  because 
it  is  an  allegorical  romance — pace  Professor  Buhle,  as  De 
Quincey  hath  it — though  otherwise  of  the  first  importance 
and  interest. 

From  the  "  Fama  "  and  "  Confessio  "  we  gather  the  reli- 
gious opinions  of  the  Rosicrucian  Fraternity,  and  classify 
them  as  follows  : — 

a.  They  acknowledge  Jesus  Christ  as  the  Son  of  God. 
I.  Man  is  born  into  life  by  the  power  of  God,  falls 
asleep  in  Jesus,  and  will  rise  again  through  the 
Holy  Spirit. 

c.  They  acknowledge  a  personal  devil,  the  old  enemy, 

who  "  hinders  every  good  purpose  by  his  instru- 
ments." 

d.  They  "  use  two  Sacraments,  as  they  are  instituted 

with  all  Formes  and  Ceremonies  of  the  first  and 
renewed  Church." 

e.  It  follows  from  this  that  they  believe  the  Lutheran 

Reformation  restored  the  Christian  Church  to  its 
primitive  purity. 

/  They  consider  "  that  from  the  beginning  of  the  world 
there  hath  not  been  given  to  man  a  more  excel- 
lent, admirable,  and  wholesome   book  than  the 
Bible,"  which  is  "  the  whole  sum  "  of  their  laws. 
g.  They  call  the  pope  Antichrist,  a  blasphemer  against 
Christ.     They  execrate  him,  and  look  forward  to 
the  time  "  when  he  shall  be  torn  in  pieces  with' 
nails."     They  foretell  his   "  final  fall,"  with  the 
assurance  of  Brothers  the  prophet,  and  in  the  ter- 
minology of  Mr  Grattan-Guiness. 
The  philosophical  and  scientific  opinions  and  pretensions 


ROSICRUCIANISM,  ALCHEMY,  AND  MAGIC.     201 

of  the  Rosicrucian  Society  have  more  claim  on  our  notice. 
As  in  their  theological  views,  so  in  these  they  are  simply 
the  representatives  of  a  certain  school  of  thought  current  at 
their  epoch.  In  its  aspirations,  as  distinguished  from  its 
methods,  this  school  was  considerably  in  advance  of  the  scien- 
tific orthodoxy  of  the  moment.  Looking  with  piercing  glance 

"  Into  great  Nature's  open  eye, 
To  see  within  it  trembling  lie 
The  portrait  of  the  Deity," 

they  dreamed  of  a  universal  synthesis,  and  combining  pro- 
found contemplation  with  keen  observant  faculties,  the  ex- 
perimental with  a  priori  methods,  they  sought  to  arrive  at 
those  realities  which  underlie  phenomena,  "  in  more  common 
but  more  emblematic  words,"  they  sought  for  the  substance 
which  is  at  the  base  of  all  the  vulgar  metals.  Mystics  in 
an  age  of  scientific  and  religious  materialism,  they  were 
connected  by  an  unbroken  chain  with  the  theurgists  of  the 
first  Christian  centuries ;  they  were  alchemists  in  the 
spiritual  sense  and  the  professors  of  a  divine  magic.  Their 
disciples,  the  Eosicrucians,  followed  closely  in  their  foot- 
steps, and  the  claims  of  the  "  Fanaa  "  and  "  Confessio  "  must 
be  viewed  in  the  light  of  the  great  elder  claims  of  alchemy 
and  magic.  In  these  documents  we  find — I.  The  doctrine 
of  the  microcosmus,  which  considers  man  as  containing  the 
potentialities  of  the  whole  universe,  or  macrocosmus.  Ac- 
cording to  Paracelsus,  who  first  developed  this  suggestive 
teaching  from  obscure  hints  in  the  Kabbalistic  books,  the 
macrocosmus  and  the  microcosmus  are  one.  "  They  are  one  con- 
stellation, one  influence,  one  breath,  one  harmony,  one  time, 
one  metal,  one  fruit."  Each  part  of  the  great  organism  acts 
upon  "the  corresponding  part  of  the  small  organism  in  the 
same  sense  as  the  various  organs  of  the  human  body  are  inti- 


202  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

mately  connected  with  and  influence  each  other."  Every 
change  that  takes  place  in  the  macrocosmus  may  be  sensed 
by  the  spiritual  body  which  surrounds  the  spirit  of  the 
minutum  mundum.  The  forces  composing  the  one  are  iden- 
tical with  those  of  the  other.1 

II.  We  find,  in  the  next  place,  the  doctrine  of  Elemental 
spirits,  which  it  is  a  common  error  to  suppose  originated 
with  the  Eosicrucians.  This  graceful  and  fanciful  hypo- 
thesis also  owes  its  development,  if  not  its  invention, 
to  the  seer  of  Hohenheim.  It  was  naturalised  on  French 
soil  by  the  author  of  the  "  Comte  de  Gabalis,"  and  is 
known  chiefly  in  England  through  the  preface  to  "  The 
Eape  of  the  Lock,"  and  of  later  years  through  the  German 
"  Komance  of  Undine,"  which  has  been  many  times 
translated.5  "  When  you  shall  be  numbered  among  the 
Children  of  the  philosophers,"  says  the  "  Comte  de  Gabalis," 
"and  when  your  eyes  shall  have  been  strengthened 
by  the  use  of  the  most  sacred  medecine,  you  will  learn  that 
the  Elements  are  inhabited  by  creatures  of  a  singular  per- 
fection, from  the  knowledge  of,  and  communication  with, 
whom  the  sin  of  Adam  has  deprived  his  most  wretched 
posterity.  Yon  vast  space  stretching  between  earth  and 
Heaven  has  far  nobler  dwellers  than  the  birds  and  the 
gnats ;  these  wide  seas  hold  other  guests  than  the  whales 
and  the  dolphins  j  the  depths  of  the  earth  are  not  reserved 
for  the  moles  alone ;  and  that  element  of  fire  which  is 
nobler  than  all  the  rest  was  not  created  to  remain  void  and 
useless."  According  to  Paracelsus,  "the  Elementals  are 
not  spirits,  because  they  have  flesh,  blood,  and  bones  ;  they 
live  and  propagate  offspring ;  they  eat  and  talk,  act  and 
sleep,  &c.  .  .  .  They  are  beings  occupying  a  place  between 
1  "Paracelsus,"  by  Franz  Hartmann,  M.D.,  p.  44. 


ROSICRUC1ANISM,  ALCHEMY,  AND  MAGIC.     203 

men  and  spirits,  resembling  men  and  women  in  their  or- 
ganisation and  form,  and  resembling  spirits  in  the  rapidity 
of  their  locomotion."  They  must  not  be  confounded  with  the 
Elementaries  which  are  the  astral  bodies  of  the  dead.1  They 
are  divided  into  four  classes.  "  The  air  is  replete  with  an 
innumerable  multitude  of  creatures,  having  human  shapes, 
somewhat  fierce  in  appearance,  but  docile  in  reality  ;  great 
lovers  of  the  sciences,  subtle,  serviceable  to  the  Sages,  and 
enemies  of  the  foolish  and  ignorant.  Their  wives  and 
daughters  are  beauties  of  the  masculine  type.  .  .  .  The 
seas  and  streams  are  inhabited  even  as  the  air  ;  the  ancient 
Sages  gave  the  names  of  Undines  or  Nymphs  to  these  Ele- 
mentals.  There  are  few  males  among  them,  and  the  women 
are  very  numerous,  and  of  extreme  beauty ;  the  daughters 
of  men  cannot  compare  with  them.  The  earth  is  filled  by 
gnomes  even  to  its  centre,  creatures  of  diminutive  size, 
guardians  of  mines,  treasures,  arid  precious  stones.  They 
furnish  the  Children  of  the  Sages  with  all  the  money  they 
desire,  and  ask  little  for  their  services  but  the  distinction 
of  being  commanded.  The  gnomides,  their  wives,  are  tiny, 
but  very  pleasing,  and  their  apparel  is  exceedingly  curious. 
As  to  the  Salamanders,  those  fiery  dwellers  in  the  realm  of 
flame,  they  serve  the  Philosophers,  but  do  not  eagerly  seek 

1  According  to  Eliphas  LeVi,  the  Astral  Light,  i.e.,  the  substance 
diffused  through  infinity,  and  which  is  the  first  matter  of  the  material 
and  psycho-material  universe,  is  "  transformed  at  the  moment  of 
conception  into  human  light,  and  is  the  first  envelope  of  the  soul. "  In 
combination  with  fluids  of  extreme  subtlety,  it  becomes  the  astral, 
etherised,  or  sidereal  body.  When  a  man  dies  and  the  divine  spirit 
returns  into  the  empyrean,  it  leaves  two  corpses,  one  on  the  earth  and 
one  in  the  atmosphere,  "one  already  inert,  the  other  still  animated 
by  the  universal  movement  of  the  soul  of  the  world,  but  destined  to 
die  gradually,  being  absorbed  by  the  astral  energies  which  produced 
it."—"  Mysteries  of  Magic,"  pp.  97,  105. 


204  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

their  company,  and  their  wives  and  daughters  are  seldom 
visible.  They  transcend  all  the  others  in  beauty,  for  they 
are  natives  of  a  purer  element."  l 

III.  In  the  third  place,  the  Eosicrucian  manifestoes  con- 
tain the  doctrine  of  the  signatura  rerum,  which  again  is  of 
Paracelsian  origin.  This  is  the  "  magical  writing  "  referred 
to  in  the  "Fama,"  and  the  mystic  characters  of  that  "  Book 
of  Nature "  which,  according  to  the  "  Confessio,"  stands 
open  "for  all  eyes,"  but  "  can  be  read  or  understood  by  only 
a  very  few."  These  characters  are  the  seal  of  God  im- 
printed "  on  the  wonderful  work  of  creation,  on  the  heavens, 
the  earth,  and  on  all  beasts."2  This  "signature  of  things  "  is 
described  by  Paracelsus  as  "a  certain  organic  vital  activity," 
which  is  frequently  "  expressed  even  in  the  exterior  form  of 
things ;  and  by  observing  that  form  we  may  learn  something 
in  regard  to  their  interior  qualities,  even  without  using  our 
interior  sight.  We  see  that  the  internal  character  of  a  man 
is  often  expressed  in  his  exterior  appearance,  even  in  the 
manner  of  his  walking  and  in  the  sound  of  his  voice.  Like- 
wise the  hidden  character  of  things  is  to  a  certain  extent 
expressed  in  their  outward  forms.  As  long  as  man  re- 
mained in  a  natural  state,  he  recognised  the  signatures  of 
things  and  knew  their  true  character;  but  the  more  he 
diverged  from  the  path  of  Nature,  and  the  more  his  mind 
became  captivated  by  illusive  external  appearances,  the 
more  this  power  became  lost." :  The  same  doctrine  is  de- 
veloped by  the  most  distinguished  disciple  of  Paracelsus, 
the  Kentish  Rosicrucian,  Robert  Fludd.  "  There  are  other 
invisible  writings,  secretly  impressed  on  the  leaves  of 

1  "  Comte  de  Gabalis."     Second  Entretien. 

2  "Confessio  Fraternatis,"  c.  viii. 

:i  Hartmann's  "Paracelsus,"  pp.  51,  52. 


ROSICRUCIANISM,  ALCHEMY,  AND  MAGIC.     205 

Nature's  book,  which  are  not  to  be  read  or  comprehended 
save  with  the  eyes  of  understanding,  being  traced  by  the 
Spirit  of  the  living  God  on  the  hidden  fleshly  tablets  of  our 
own  hearts.  .  .  .  These  internal  and  spiritual  characters, 
constituting  the  interior  writing,  may  also  to  the  bodily 
eyes  be  the  cause  and  origin  of  the  things  which  do  ap- 
pear."1 "It  is  manifest,"  he  also  remarks,  "that  those 
vivific  letters  and  characters  impressed  on  the  Bible  and  on 
the  great  Book  of  Nature,  and  which  we  call  arcane,  be- 
cause they  are  understood  only  by  the  few,  are  one  thing, 
and  that  the  dead,  destroying  letters  of  the  same  books, 
whose  cortices  contain  the  living  and  spiritual  characters, 
are  another." 

IV.  These  speculative  principles  appear  to  have  been 
united  with  some  form  of  practical  magic.  Now  magic  is 
a  term  which  conjures  up  into  the  mind  of  the  ordinary 
reader  some  hazy  notions  either  of  gross  imposture  or 
diabolical  compacts  and  hellish  rites ;  it  seems  necessary, 
therefore,  to  state  what  it  really  was  in  the  opinions  of 
those  who  professed  it.  According  to  Paracelsus,  magic  is 
that  great  and  hidden  wisdom  which  discovers  the  interior 
constitution  of  everything.  "  It  teaches  the  true  nature  of 
the  inner  man  as  well  as  the  organization  of  his  outward 
body."  It  includes  "  a  knowledge  of  visible  and  invisible 
nature."  It  is  the  only  true  teacher  of  the  art  of  healing.  If 
physicians  possessed  it,  their  books  might  be  burnt  and  their 
medicines  be  thrown  into  the  ocean.  "  Magic  and  sorcery 
are  two  entirely  different  things,  and  there  is  as  much  dif- 
ference between  them  as  there  is  between  light  and  dark- 
ness, and  between  white  and  black."  The  same  authority 

1  Robertas  de  Fluctibus,  "Apologia  Compendiana  Fraternitateir* 
de  Rosea  Cruce." 


206  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 


teaches  that  the  great  agent  in  magic  is  the  imagination 
confirmed  by  that  faith  which  perfects  will-power,  and  that 
the  imagination  thus  strengthened  can  create  its  own  ob- 
jects. "  Man  has  a  visible  and  invisible  workshop.  The 
visible  one  is  his  body ;  the  invisible  one  his  imagination. 
.  .  .  The  imagination  is  a  sun  in  the  soul  of  man,  acting  in 
its  own  sphere  as  the  sun  of  the  earth  acts  in  his.  Wher- 
ever the  latter  shines,  germs  planted  in  the  soil  grow,  and 
vegetation  springs  up ;  and  the  sun  of  the  soul  acts  in  a 
similar  manner,  and  calls  the  forms  of  the  soul  into  exist- 
ence. .  .  .  The  spirit  is  the  master,  imagination  the  tool, 
and  the  body  the  plastic  material.  Imagination  is  the 
power  by  which  the  will  forms  sidereal  entities  out  of 
thoughts.  It  is  not  fancy,  which  latter  is  the  corner-stone 
of  superstition  and  foolishness.  .  .  .  The  power  of  the 
imagination  is  a  great  factor  in  medicine.  It  may  produce 
diseases  in  man  and  in  animals,  and  it  may  cure  them." l 
This  theory  covers  all  the  phenomena  of  visions,  ecstacies, 
evocations,  and  other  pseudo-miracles,  recognising  that  they 
are  facts,  and  accounting  for  the  futility  of  their  results. 

V.  Whether  the  Eosicrucians  pretended  to  manufacture 
material  gold  is  a  question  which  is  difficult  to  decide  from 
the  materials  contained  in  their  manifestoes.  They  acknow- 
ledge the  fact  of  transmutation,  and  call  it  a  "  great  gift  of 
God ; "  but  "as  it  bringeth  not  always  with  it  a  knowledge 
of  Nature,  while  this  knowledge  bringeth  forth  both  that 
and  an  infinite  number  of  other  natural  miracles,  it  is  right 
that  we  be  rather  earnest  to  attain  to  the  knowledge  of 
philosophy,  nor  tempt  excellent  wits  to  the  tincture  of 
metals  sooner  then  to  the  observation  of  Nature."  What- 
ever may  be  thought  of  this  reasoning,  it  definitely  places 
1  "Confessio  Fraternitatis,"  c.  xi.  2  Ibid. 


ROSICRUC1ANISM,  ALCHEMY,  AND  MAGIC.     207 

the  Rosicrucians  in  that  school  of  alchemy  to  which  I  made 
reference  at  the  close  of  the  first  chapter,  and  whose  aim 
was  to  accomplish  the  spiritual  side  of  the  magnum  opus,  or 
great  work  of  alchemical  reconstruction.  For  them  the 
transmutation  of  metals  being  no  operation  of  common 
chemistry,1  both  the  "  Fama  "  a»d  "  Confessio  "  appear  to 
condemn  indiscriminately  all  professors  of  the  purely  phy- 
sical process,  which  they  call  "  the  ungodly  and  accursed 
gold-making."  Here,  as  in  their  other  opinions,  they  echo 
Paracelsus.  "  What  shall  I  say  to  you  about  all  your 
alchemical  prescriptions,  about  all  your  retorts  and  bottles, 
crucibles,  mortars,  and  glasses  ;  about  all  your  complicated 
processes  of  distilling,  melting,  cohibiting,  coagulating,  sub- 
limating, precipitating,  and  filtering,  all  the  tomfoolery  for 
which  you  throw  away  your  time  and  your  money.  All 
such  things  are  useless,  and  the  labour  over  them  is  lost. 
They  are  rather  an  impediment  than  a  help  to  arrive  at  the 
truth."  After  the  same  fashion,  the  "  Confessio "  de- 
nounces the  "  monstrous  symbols  and  enigmas  "  by  which 
pseudo-chymists  impose  upon  credulous  curiosity.  Ac- 
cording to  Dr  Hartmann,  "  Paracelsus  asserts  that  it  is  pos- 
sible to  make  gold  and  silver  by  chemical  means  ;  still  he 
condemns  such  experiments  as  useless,  and  it  seems  to  be 
more  than  probable  that  even  in  such  chemical  experiments 
as  may  have  succeeded,  something  more  than  merely 
chemical  manipulations  was  required  to  make  them  suc- 
cessful."5 Eliphas  Le>i,  one  of  the  most  profound  com- 
mentators on  Paracelsus,  declares  that  "  there  is  light  in 
gold,  gold  in  light,  and  light  in  all  things."  Thus  the  first 

1  On  this  point  see   "Mysteries  of  Magic,"  Biographical    and 
Critical  Preface,  p.  xliii. 

2  Hartmann's  "  Paracelsus,"  pp.  177,  178. 


208  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


matter  of  the  magnum  opus  is  both  within  and  about  us, 
and  "  the  intelligent  will,  which  assimilates  light,  directs 
the  operations  of  substantial  form,  and  only  employs 
chemistry  as  a  very  secondary  instrument." l 

At  the  same  time  the  Eosicrucians  claimed  to  be  in  pos- 
session of  u  great  treasures  of  gold,"  and  of  the  purse  of 
Fortunatus.  There  seems  no  special  reason  to  doubt  that 
they  intended  this  to  be  literally  construed,  and  the  "  Fama  " 
definitely  states  that  it  was  a  project  of  their  founder,  C.  R., 
to  institute  a  society  in  Europe  "  which  might  have  gold, 
silver,  and  precious  stones  sufficient  for  to  bestow  them  on 
kings." 

VI.  Closely  connected  with  the  secret  of  metallic  trans- 
mutation is  "  the  supreme  medicine  of  the  world,"  the  life- 
elixir,  which,  according  to  Bernard-le-Trevisan  (fifteenth 
century),  is  the  reduction  of  the  Philosophical  Stone  into 
mercurial  water.  It  cures  all  diseases,  and  prolongs  life 
beyond  the  normal  limits.  Without  claiming  to  be  actually 
in  possession  of  this 

"  Wonderful  Catholicon, 
Of  very  subtle  and  magical  powers," 

the  Rosicrucians  come  before  us  as  essentially,  or  at  least  pri- 
marily, a  healing 'fraternity.  .  "  Their  agreement  was  this 
....  That  none'  of  them  should  profess  any  other  thing 
than  to  cure  the  sick,  and  that  gratis."  2  Professor  Buhle, 
in  his  notice  of  the  Rosicrucians  and  Freemasons,  says  that 
the  evils  of  Germany  at  this  period  were  immense,  that  the 
land  was  overswept  by  a  "  great  storm  of  wretchedness  and 
confusion."  The  science  of  medicine  was  still  in  its  infancy, 
the  Lutheran  Reformation,  by  spoliating  monasteries,  had 

1  "  Mysteries  of  Magic,"  p.  204.          2  "Fama  Fraternitatis,"  p.  73. 


ROSICRUCIANISM,  ALCHEMY,  AND  MAGIC.     209 

destroyed  hospitals,1  and  the  diseases  and  miseries  unavoid- 
ably consequent  on  unsanitary  principles  and  medical  guess- 
work, were  undoubtedly  very  widely  spread.  The  utter  in- 
competence of  the  ancient  methods  led  many  others  besides 
the  Eosicrucians  to  disregard  and  denounce  the  traditional 
authority,  and  in  the  wide  field  of  experimental  research 
to  lay  the  foundations  of  a  new  and  rational  hypothesis. 
The  germs  of  this  revolution  are  found  in  Paracelsus,  and 
the  practical  theosophy — medicine  itself  being  a  branch  of 
mysticism  from  the  standpoint  of  orthodox  mystics — prac- 
tised by  Rosicrucian  adepts  is  their  strongest  claim  on  our 
favour,  the  one  golden  link  which  joins  their  dissonant 
commonplace  with  the  Orphean  harmonies  of  true  and 
divine  occultism. 

It  will  be  sufficient  to  enumerate  only  their  belief  in  a 
secret  philosophy,  perpetuated  from  primeval  times,  in  ever- 
burning lamps,  in  vision  at  a  distance,  and  in  the  approach- 
ing end  of  the  world.  I  have  shown  indisputably  that  there 
was  no  novelty  in  the  Rosicrucian  pretensions,  and  no  ori- 
ginality in  their  views.  They  appear  before  us  as  Lutheran 
disciples  of  Paracelsus  ;  and,  returning  for  a  moment  to  the 
problem  discussed  in  the  introduction,  we  find  nothing  in 
either  manifesto  to  connect  them  with  the  typology  of  a 
remote  period.  It  is,  therefore,  in  modern,  not  ancient, 
times  that  we  must  seek  an  explanation  of  the  device  of  the 
Rose-Cross.  A  passage  contained  in  "  The  Chymical  Mar- 
riage of  Christian  Rosencreutz  "  will  assist  in  the-  solution 
of  this  important  point. 

1  "  The  origin  of  our  present  hospitals  must  be  looked  for  in 
monastic  arrangements  for  the  care  of  the  sick  and  indigent.  Every 
monastery  had  its  infirmaria,  managed  by  an  infirmarius,  in  which 
not  only  were  sick  and  convalescents  treated,  but  also  the  aged,  the 
blind,  the  weak,  &c.,  were  housed." — "Encyc.  Brit.,"  9th  ed.,  s.  v, 
"Hospitals." 

O 


CHAPTER  VII. 

ANTIQUITY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIAN  FRATERNITY. 

THE  antiquity  of  the  Rose  in  symbolism  and  of  the  Cross 
in  symbolism,  as  I  have  already  said,  is  no  proof  whatso- 
ever of  the  antiquity  of  a  society  which  we  find  to  be  using 
them  at  a  period  subsequent  to  the  Renaissance ;  but,  ac- 
cording to  John  Heydon,  the  Rosicrucians  "  have  been  since 
Christ; "  they  "  inhabite  the  suburbs  of  Heaven,"  and  are  "as 
the  eyes  and  ears  of  the  great  King,  seeing  and  hearing  all 
things."  The  existence  of  a  "divine  Fraternity"  on  the 
astral  plane,  or  in  the  fourth  dimension,  however  "  seraphic- 
ally  illuminated,"  and  with  whatever  powers  they  may  be 
invested  by  the  "  Generalissimo  of  the  world,"  is  a  point 
which  transcends  the  investigations  of  the  merely  human 
historian.  His  researches,  however,  have  determined  that, 
within  his  own  limits — that  is,  on  the  physical  plane 
of  time  and  space — there  are  no  vestiges  of  the  Rosicrucians 
traceable  before  the  beginning  of  the  seventeenth  century, 
and  that  the  belief  in  their  antiquity  originates  in  a  priori 
considerations  which  are  concerned  with  the  predilections 
and  prejudices  of  thinkers  whose  faith  and  imagination  have 
been  favoured  by  evolution  or  environment  at  the  expense 
of  their  judgment,  and  who  determine  historical  questions 
by  the  illumination  of  their  own  understandings  rather  than 
by  the  light  of  facts. 

Such  persons  are  beyond  the  reach  of  criticism,  and,  as 


ANTIQUITY  OF  ROSICRUCIAN  FRATERNITY.    211 

they  are  neither  numerous  nor  important,  may  be  left  bask- 
ing in  the  sunshine  of  a  pleasing  aberration,  which  is  inte- 
resting in  days  of  disillusion.  But  the  existence  and 
occasional  prevalence  in  all  ages  of  the  world  of  those 
theosophical  ideas,  which  are  at  the  root  of  Rosicrucian 
philosophy,  have  caused  even  serious  students  to  consider  the 
Fraternity  of  an  almost  incredible  antiquity — a  hypothesis 
which  wins  golden  opinions  from  those  who  delight  in  con- 
necting the  invisible  threads  of  the  secret  societies  and 
tracing  them  to  a  single  primal  source,  of  which  one  and 
all  are  ramifications  more  or  less  identical  in  ceremonies, 
secrets,  and  purposes. 

Addressing  myself  to  these  students,  I  would  say  with 
Buhle  that  whoever  adopts  this  hypothesis  "  is  bound  to 
show,  in  the  first  place,  in  what  respect  the  deduction  of 
this  order  from  modern  history  is  at  all  unsatisfactory ;  and 
secondly,  upon  his  own  assumption  of  a  far  elder  origin, 
to  explain  how  it  happened  that  for  sixteen  entire  centuries 
no  contemporary  writers  have  made  any  allusion  to  it." 

Solomon  Semler  is  one  of  the  few  writers  whose  erudition 
is  unquestionable,  and  who  have  supported  this  view ;  but 
the  facts  which  he  cites  are  entirely  inconclusive.  He 
proves  the  existence  in  the  fourteenth  century  of  "  an  asso- 
ciation of  physicians  and  alchemists  who  united  their 
knowledge  and  their  labours  to  attain  the  discovery  of  the 
Philosophic  Stone."  It  is  this  association  to  which  the 
alchemist  Raymond  Lully1  apparently  refers  in  his  "  Thea- 

1  This  personage  is  not  to  be  confused  with  the  author  of  the  ' '  Ars 
Magna  Sciendi,"  the  illuminated  philosopher  and  evangelist  of  Parma 
in  Majorca,  who  united  the  saint  and  the  man  of  science,  the  meta- 
physician and  the  preacher,  the  apostle  and  the  itinerant  lecturer, 
the  dialectician  and  the  martyr,  in  one  remarkable  individuality. 
The  alchemist  Raymond  Lully,  "one  of  the  grand  and  sublime 


212  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

trum  Chymicum,"1  printed  at  Strasbourg  in  1 613,  as  a  sec 
society  existing  during  the  fourteenth  century  in  Italy,  and 
the  chief  of  which  was  called  Eex  Pliysicorum.  Figulus2 
states  it  to  have  been  founded  in  1410,  and  asserts  it  to 
have  merged  in  the  Kosicrucian  Order  about  the  year 
1607.  The  same  careful  investigator  cites  an  anonymous 
letter,  published  at  the  end  of  the  sixteenth  century,  and 
stating  the  age  of  a  certain  secret  society  to  be  above  two 
thousand  years.  It  is  also  asserted  that  the  alchemist 
Nicholas  Barnaud  conceived  in  1591  a  project  of  establish- 
ing a  secret  convention  of  theosophical  mystics,  who  were 
to  devote  themselves  to  a  determined  investigation  of  all 
Kabbalistic  sciences,  and  that  he  scoured  both  Germany 
and  France  with  this  object.  Finally,  the  "Echo  of  the 
God-illuminated  Order  of  the  Brethren  E.  C."  tells  us  that 
in  1597  an  attempt  was  actually  made  to  found  such  a 
society,  apparently  on  the  lines  laid  down  by  Barnaud, 
and  it  is  a  remarkable  fact  that  the  preface  to  the  Christian 
Reader  which  is  prefixed  to  this  curious  publication,  is 
dated  June  1597,  while  that  which  is  addressed  to  the 

masters  of  the  science,"  according  to  Eliphas  Le>i,  lived  after  1315, 
the  date  of  the  martyr's  death,  and  nothing  is  known  of  his  history, 
except  his  astounding  transmutations.  He  is  said  to  have  been  a 
native  of  Ferrago,  and  has  been  described  as  "a  Jewish  neophyte." 
John  Cremer,  the  abbot  of  Westminster,  describes  his  reception  by 
Edward  I,  King  of  England,  who  gave  him  an  apartment  in  the 
Tower  to  perform  his  transmutations,  but  the  welcome  guest  soon 
found  himself  a  prisoner,  and  with  difficulty  effected  his  escape.  See 
"Cremeri  Abatis  Westmonasteriensis  Testamentum,"  in  the 
"  Museum  Hermeticum,"  4to,  Francfurt,  1677-78.  Camden,  in 
his  ' '  Ecclesiastical  Monuments, "  gives  also  some  details  of  Lully's 
sojourn  in  England. 

1  C.  87,  p.  139. 

-  Benedictus  Figulus  was  the  author  of  "  Pandora  Magnalium," 
"Paradisus  Aureolus  Hermeticus,"  "Rosarium  Novum  Olympicum 
et  JBenedictum,"  "  Thesaurinella  Olympica,"  all  published  in  1608. 


ANTIQUITY  OF  ROSICRUCIAN  FRATERNITY.  213 

Brotherhood  is  dated  1  Nov.  1615,  the  book  itself  not 
having  appeared  till  1620. 

These  facts  and  statements  are  of  the  highest  interest  and 
of  very  considerable  importance  within  their  own  sphere, 
but  the  existence  of  secret  associations  even  two  thousand 
years  old,  much  less  the  attempts  occasionally  made  to 
establish  others,  affords  no  proof  that  they  were  in  any  way 
connected,  or  are  to  be  identified,  with  the  Rosicrucian 
Brotherhood,  whose  violent  anti-Papal  prejudices  and  ultra- 
Protestant  principles  are  sufficient  proof  of  a  post-Lutheran 
origin. 

The  only  sect  or  association  with  which  the  Rosicrucians 
may  be  pertinently  compared,  and  which  we  hear  of  before 
the  year  1610,  is  the  Militia  Crucifera  Evangelica  which 
assembled  atLunenburg  in  1598  under  the  auspices  of  the 
mystic  and  theosophist,  Simon  Studiqn.  Its  proceedings 
are  reported  in  an  unprinted  work  from  his  pen  entitled 
'•'  Naometria,  seu  nuda  et  prima  libri,  intus  et  foris  scripti, 
per  clavem  Davidis  et  calamum  (virgee  similem)  apertio  ;  in 
quo  non  tantum  ad  cognoscenda  tarn  S.  Scriptures  totius, 
quam  naturae  quoque  universse,  mysteria,  brevis  fit  intro- 
ductio — verum  etiam  Prognosticus  (stellse  illius  matutinse, 
Anno  Domini  1572,  conspectae  ductu)  demonstratur  Ad- 
ventus  ille  Christi  ante  diem  novissimum  secundus  per 
quern  homine  peccati  (Papa)  cum  filio  sur  perditionis 
(Mahomedo)  divinitus  devestato,  ipse  ecclesiam  suam  et 
priricipatus  mundi  restaurabit,  ut  in  iis  post  hac  sit  cum 
ovili  pastor  unus.  In  cruciferse  militise  Evangelicse  gratiam. 
Authore  Simone  Studione  inter  Scorpiones.  Anno  1604." 
As  this  work  exists  only  in  manuscript,  and  as  there  is  no 
transcript  of  this  manuscript  to  be  found  in  the  English 
public  libraries,  my  chief  knowledge  of  its  contents,  and  of 


2I4  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

the  sect  which  it  represents,  is  derived  from  an  unsatisfac- 
tory notice  by  Professor  Buhle,  who  describes  the  Militia 
as  a  Protestant  sect  heated  by  apocalyptic  dreams,  and  de- 
clares the  object  of  the  assembly  to  have  been  apparently 
"  exclusively  connected  with  religion."  But  it  is  clear  from 
the  life  of  Studion  that  he  was  passionately  devoted  to 
alchemy,  and  the  spiritual  side  of  the  magnum  opus  was 
probably  the  aim  of  these  enthusiasts,  who  are  otherwise 
identified  in  their  views  with  the  illuminati  of  the  Eose- 
Cross.  Like  these  they  believed  that  the  books  of  Eevela- 
tion  and  of  Nature  were  intus  et  foris  scripti,  written  within 
and  without,  that  is,  they  contain  a  secret  meaning  for 
the  initiates  of  mystical  wisdom ;  that  the  unaccountable 
appearance  of  new  stars  in  the  sky  was  significant  of  im- 
portant events  in  the  approximate  future  ;  that  the  last  day 
was  at  hand ;  that  the  Pope  was  Anti-Christ  and  the  Man 
of  Sin  ;  and  finally,  as  Buhle  himself  confesses,  the  "  Nao- 
metria  "  contains  a  great  deal  of  mysticism  and  prophecy 
about  the  Rose  and  the  Cross. 

These  points  of  resemblance  are,  I  think,  insufficient  to 
establish  a  connection  between  the  Militia  Crucifera  Evan- 
gelica  and  the  Eosicrucians  in  a  logical  mind,  but  they  are 
certainly  curious  and  interesting.  It  will  be  shown  in  the 
next  chapter  why  the  symbolism  of  the  Eose  and  the  Cross 
was  common  to  both  associations. 

The  antiquity  of  the  Eosicrucians,  as  I  have  hinted,  finds 
few  supporters  at  the  present  day,  this  view  being  chiefly 
confined  to  the  members  of  pseudo-Eosicrucian  societies,  and 
to  the  pseudo-historian  of  the  order,  Mr  Hargrave  Jennings. 
From  the  fictitious  importance  unaccountably  ascribed  to 
the  ill-considered  and  worthless  work  of  this  writer,  it  seems 
nece  ssary  to  conclude  with  a  short  notice  of  the  incoherent 


ANTIQUITY  OF  ROSICRUCIAN  FRATERNITY.  215 

and  visionary  ramblings  in  "  The  Rosicrucians  :  their  Rites 
and  Mysteries."  Mr  Jennings  may  congratulate  himself 
on  being  "that  distinguished  esoteric  litterateur,"  who 
writes  the  worst  English  of  this  or  any  century,  but  he  is 
a  great  man,  a  magician  of  the  first  order,  in  the  important 
matter  of  titles.  I  freely  confess  that  his  work  on  this 
subject  is  so  attractively  labelled  that  it  exercises  an  irre- 
sistible charm  over  the  student.  "  The  Rosicrucians  :  their 
Rites  and  Mysteries,  with  chapters  on  the  ancient  Fire  and 
Serpent  Worshippers,  and  explanations  of  the  Mystic  Sym- 
bols represented  on  the  monuments  and  talismans  of  the 
Primeval  Philosophers,"  is  a  label  not  otherwise  than 
superb.  It  is  a  "  strong  delusion  "  which  tempts  the  hesi- 
tating purchaser,  and  has  often  prompted  the  too  credulous 
reader,  by  the  subtlety  of  its  mystic  charm,  "  to  believe  " 
— at  least  the  very  opposite  of  what  is  true. 

The  book,  so  far  as  the  Rosicrucians  are  concerned, 
begins  with  an  account  of  an  "  historical  adventure  in  Staf- 
fordshire," which  is  curiously  distorted  in  the  interests 
of  an  inexpensive  sensationalism,  and  after  much  loquacity 
on  "  the  insufficiency  of  worldly  objects,"  we  are  introduced 
in  the  seventh  chapter,  without  preface  or  apology,  to  the 
"  Mythical  history  of  the  Fleur-de-lys"  Druidic  Cromlechs, 
and  Gnostic  Abraxas  Gems.  The  rest  of  the  work  is  Rosi- 
crucian  certainly,  so  far  as  the  titles  of  the  chapters  are 
concerned,  but  not  further.  Thus  we  have  "The  Rosy- 
Cross  in  Indian,  Egyptian,  Greek,  Roman,  and  Medieval 
monuments,"  "  Presence  of  the  Rosicrucians  in  Christian 
Architecture,"  &c.,  but  the  chapters  themselves  are  devoted 
to  the  lingam  and  the  great  pyramid,  Persian  fire-worship, 
phallic  and  serpent  symbolism,  and  etymological  specula- 
tions which  would  have  astonished  even  Godfrey  Higgins, 


216  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

and  which  Kenealy  himself  would  disown.  Doubtless  these, 
things  are  connected  in  the  mind  of  Mr  Hargrave  Jennings 
with  his  mysterious  and  ubiquitous  Brotherhood,  for  his 
diseased  imagination  perceives  Kosicrucianism  everywhere, 
"  as  those  who  believe  in  witchcraft  see  sorcery  and  en- 
chantment everywhere."  This  connection,  however,  he 
nowhere  attempts  to  establish,  and  it  is  incredible  to  sup- 
pose that  the  shallow  pretence  has  ever  imposed  on  anyone. 
The  few  statements  which  he  makes  concerning  the  Fra- 
ternity must  be  rejected  as  worthless  ;  for  example,  he  tells 
us  that  the  alchemists  were  a  physical  branch  of  the  Rosi- 
crucians,  whereas  the  Rosicrucians  were  a  theosophical  sect 
among  the  alchemists. 

I  have  deemed  it  unnecessary  to  consider  the  alleged 
connection  between  the  Templars  and  the  Brethren  of  the 
Rose-Cross,  for  this  hypothesis  depends  upon  another,  now 
generally  set  aside,  namely,  the  connection  of  the  Free- 
masons with  the  foregoing  orders.  It  is  sufficient  to  say 
that  the  Templars  were  not  alchemists,  that  they  had  no 
scientific  pretensions,  and  that  their  secret,  so  far  as  can  be 
ascertained,  was  a  religious  secret  of  an  anti-Christian  kind. 
The  Rosicrucians,  on  the  other  hand,  were  pre-eminently  a 
learned  society,  and  they  were  also  a  Christian  sect. 


ARSIS  OF  ANDKEAS. 

CHAPTER  VIII. 

THE  CASE  OF  JOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS. 

MOST  existing  theories  as  to  the  authorship  of  the  Rosi- 
crucian  manifestoes  are  founded  upon  plausible  assumptions 
or  ingenious  conclusions  drawn  from  the  doubtful  materials 
of  merely  alleged  facts.  Each  investigator  has  approached 
the  subject  with  an  ambitious  determination  to  solve  the 
problem  connected  with  the  mysterious  Order,  but,  in  the 
absence  of  adequate  materials,  has  evolved  a  new  hypothesis, 
where  the  supposititious  has  transfigured  what  is  certain  for 
the  satisfaction  of  individual  bias.  As  a  simple  historian 
working  in  the  cause  of  truth,  it  is  neither  my  inclination 
nor  my  duty  to  contrive  a  fresh  theory,  but  rather  to  state 
the  facts  which  are  in  conflict  with  all  theories,  and  to  draw 
no  conclusion  unwarranted  by  the  direct  evidence  in  hand. 
The  Rosicrucian  theorists  may  be  broadly  divided  into 
three  bands — I.  Those  who  believe  that  the  history  of 
Christian  Rosencreutz  is  true  in  fact,  and  that  the  society 
originated  in  the  manner  recounted  in  the  "  Fama  Frater- 
nitatis."  II.  Those  who  regard  both  the  society  and  its 
founder  as  purely  mythical,  and  consider  with  Liebnitz, 
"  que  tout  ce  que  Von  a  dit  des  Freres  de  la  Croix  de  la  fiose, 
est  une  pure  invention  de  quelque  personne  ingenieuse."  III. 
Those  who,  without  accepting  the  historical  truth  of  the  story 


218  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

of  Eosencreutz,  believe  in  the  existence  of  the  Eosicrucians 
as  a  secret  society,  which  drew  attention  to  the  fact  of  its 
existence  by  a  singular  and  attractive  fiction. 

In  the  first  division  are  gathered  the  men  of  large  imagi- 
nation and  abundant  faith,  who,  unawed  by  historical  diffi- 
culties, unaffected  by  discrepancies  of  fact,  and  despising 
the  terra  damnata  of  frigid  critical  methods,  are  bewitched 
by  romantic  associations  and  the  glamour  of  impenetrable 
mystery.  They  love  to  contemplate  the  adepts  of  the  Rose- 
Cross  moving  silently  among  the  ignorant  and  vulgar  mul- 
titude, diffusing  light  and  healing,  masters  of  terrific  secrets, 
having  nothing  in  appearance  and  yet  possessing  all  things, 
ever  inscrutable,  ever  intangible,  ever  vanishing  suddenly. 
The  sublime  dreams  produced  by  their  mystical  hachish  are 
undisturbed  by  the  essential  shallowness  and  commonplace 
of  Eosicrucian  manifestoes,  for  they  reject  authoritative 
documents,  or  interpret  objectionable  passages  in  an  inverted 
sense. 

Insuperable  difficulties  prevent  us  from  supposing  that 
the  "  Fama  "  and  "  Confessio  Fraternitatis  "  emanated  from 
a  secret  society  whose  literal  history  is  contained  in  them. 
These  difficulties  are,  for  the  most  part,  inherent  in  the 
nature  of  the  alleged  history,  which  I  undertook  in  the  in- 
troduction to  prove  mythical.  It  will  be  unnecessary  for 
this  purpose  to  consider  the  scientific  foundation  of  Eosi- 
crucian claims.  The  purse  of  Fortunatus  —that  is,  the  Stone 
of  the  Philosophers — the  power  of  transmutation,  the  exist- 
ence of  elementary  spirits,  the  doctrine  of  signatures,  ever- 
burning lamps,  and  vision  at  a  distance,  may  be  possibilities, 
however  remote  on  the  horizon  of  natural  science.  There 
are  many  things  in  heaven  and  on  earth  which  are  un- 
dreamed of  in  the  philosophy  of  Horatio,  and  occultism 


THE  CASE  OFJOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.   219 

is  venerable  by  its  antiquity,  interesting  from  its  romantic 
associations,  and  replete  with  visionary  splendours ;  but  for 
all  this,  the  fiction  of  the  "  Fama  "is  "  monstrous,  and  be- 
trays itself  in  every  circumstance."1 

Suspicion  is  immediately  raised  by  the  suppression  of  all 
names,  and  the  concealment  of  the  headquarters  and  all 
"  local  habitations  "  of  the  supposed  Society.  C.  E.  C.,  the 
hero  of  the  history,  journeys  to  a  fabulous  Oriental  city, 
called  Damcar,  which  is  not  Damascus,  though  the  German 
originals  continually  confuse  it  therewith.  A  great  part  of 
this  journey  is  performed  alone  by  a  boy  of  sixteen,  who  is 
described  as  possessing  such  "  skill  in  physic  "  that  he  "  ob- 
tained much  favour  of  the  Turks,"  and  who,  after  five  years' 
travelling,  returns  at  the  age  of  twenty-one  years  to  Europe, 
fired  with  an  inextinguishable  ambition  to  correct  the  errors 
of  all  the  arts  and  to  reform  the  whole  philosophia  moralis. 
In  Germany  he  erects  a  mysterious  House  of  the  Holy  Spirit, 
situated  apparently  in  space  of  three  dimensions,  besieged 
by  the  "  unspeakable  concourse  of  the  sick."  and  yet,  for  the 
space  of  nearly  two  hundred  years,  completely  unknown  and 
unseen  by  the  "  wicked  world."  When  the  Society  was  in- 
corporated, and  its  members  despatched  on  their  wander- 
ings, two  brethren  always  remained  with  the  founder,  and 
eight  of  them  were  present  at  his  death,  yet  the  secret  of 
his  burial-place  was  completely  unknown  to  the  third  gene- 
ration, till  its  discovery  by  a  newly-initiated  member  when 
he  was  repairing  his  house,  which,  nevertheless,  does  not 
appear  to  be  the  House  of  the  Holy  Spirit.  The  sepulchre 
has  been  closed  for  one  hundred  and  twenty  years,  and  it 
is  found  to  contain  the  Vocabularium,  Itinerarium,  and  Life 
of  Paracelsus.  Taking  1614  as  the  year  when  the  "  Fama  " 
1  De  Qiiincey,  "  Rosicrucians  and  Freemasons,"  c.  iii. 


220  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

was  published,  and  supposing  the  discovery  of  the  burial- 
place  to  have  ante-dated  the  manifesto  by  the  shortest  pos- 
sible period,  we  are  brought  back  to  the  year  1494,  one 
year  after  the  birth  of  Paracelsus,  whose  books  it  is  sup- 
posed to  contain.  This  point  is,  of  course,  conclusive,  and 
it  is  unnecessary  to  comment  on  the  mystery  which  sur- 
rounds the  ultimate  fate  of  the  corpse  of  that  "  godly  and 
high-illuminated  Father,  Brother  C.  R.  C." 

Thus  it  is  obvious  that  the  history  of  Christian  Rosen- 
creutz  is  not  historically  true,  and  that  the  Society  did  not 
originate  in  the  manner  which  is  described  by  the  "  Fama." 

The  theorists  of  the  second  and  third  divisions  are  in 
agreement  upon  several  important  points,  and  may,  there- 
fore, be  considered  together.  Most  of  them  unite  in  seek- 
ing the  author  of  the  Rosicrucian  manifestoes  among  the 
literati  of  the  period.  On  the  one  side  they  consider  him  a 
satirist,  or  the  perpetrator  of  an  imposture  or  elaborate 
jest ;  on  the  other,  they  hold  him  to  be  the  founder  of  a 
secret  society,  or  the  mouthpiece  of  one  which  was  already 
in  existence,  and  to  which  they  ascribe  a  various  antiquity 
in  accordance  with  their  predilections  and  their  knowledge 
of  the  true  state  of  the  case.  The  question  of  this  anti- 
quity has  been  discussed  in  the  last  chapter. 

Several  authors  have  been  suggested,  for  the  most  part  on 
very  slender  evidence.  Some  maintain  that  the  manifestoes 
were  written  by  Taulerus,  the  author  of  the  German  Theologia, 
an  obscure  writer  not  to  be  identified  with  the  author  of  the 
Spiritual  Letters,  "  Institutions  Divinae,"  &c.,  others  by 
Luther,  others  again  by  Wiegel.  Joachim  Junge,1  the  cele- 

1  This  writer  is  not  to  be  confused  with  Jung  Stilling,  whose  real, 
name  was  Johannes  Heinrich  Jung,  and  who  is,  perhaps,  more  cele- 
brated in  England  for  his  works  on  Pneumatology  than  is  the  rector 
of  Hamburg  for  his  contributions  to  mathematical  science. 


THE  CASE  OFJOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.   221 

brated  philosopher  of  the  seventeenth  century,  has  secured 
several  partisans.  He  was  born  at  Lubeck  in  1587,  and 
became  anM.A.  of  Giessen  in  1609.  At  the  very  period 
when  the  "Fama  Fraternitatis"  first  appeared,  about  1614, 
he  was  holding  numerous  conferences  with  his  friends  on 
the  methods  of  hastening  the  progress  of  philosophy,  but 
his  plans  are  supposed  to  have  been  without  any  immediate 
result.  Subsequently,  he  sought  to  establish  at  Rostock  an 
academy  for  the  advancement  of  natural  sciences ;  "  but  the 
rumour  spread  that  this  project  concealed  some  evil  designs, 
and  people  went  so  far  as  to  accuse  him  of  being  one  of  the 
chiefs  of  the  famous  order  of  the  Brothers  of  the  Red-Cross, 
and  he  was  forced  to  renounce  a  plan  whose  execution  could 
only  have  had  good  results  for  his  adopted  country."1  He 
became  rector  of  the  University  of  Hamburg,  and  died  of 
apoplexy,  September  23,  1657.  He  was  the  author  of  "  Geo- 
metria  Empirica,"  "  Harmonica  Theoretica,"  &c.,  and  ap- 
pears to  have  been  wholly  unconnected  with  the  alchemical 
pursuits  of  the  period.  A  secretary  of  the  Court  of  Heidel- 
berg (according  to  Heidegger,  the  biographer  of  Johannes 
Ludovicus  Fabricius)  being,  it  is  supposed,  in  the  secret,  is 
said  to  have  confirmed  in  conversation  the  current  report 
that  Junge  was  the  founder  of  the  Fraternity  and  the  writer 
of  the  "Fama  Fraternitatis."5  No  reference  is  made  to  this 
matter  in  the  "  Historia  Vitse  et  Mortis  Joachimi  Jungii 
Mathematici  summi  ceteraque  Incomparabilis  Philosophi," 

1  "  Biographic  Universelle,"  s.v.  Joachim  Junge. 

2  In  the  "Acta  Eruditorum  Lipsise,"  1698,  4to,  p.   172,  there  is 
the  following  passage: — "  Natus  est  Jo.  Ludovicus  Fabricius  Sca- 
phulsi,  Helvetiorum  Pago  primario,  die  29  Julii  anni  seculi  hujus  tri- 
gesimi  secundi,  patre  Jo.  Fabricio  anno  1630  vi  externa  e  Palatinatu 
in  exilium  ejecto,  et  a  Scaphusanis  promtissime  recepto.     Fuit  vir 
ille  sic  satis  excultus,  quique  ut  Fabricius  noster  faniiliari  in  ser- 


222  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

which  was  written  by  Martinus  Fogelitis  in  1658.  It  con- 
tains, however,  some  account  of  his  attempt  to  found  a  philo- 
sophical society,  but  the  Leges  Societatis  Ereuneticce  which  are 
to  be  found  at  the  end  of  the  pamphlet,  sufficiently  distin- 
guish it  from  the  Eosicrucian  Brotherhood.  The  theoso- 
phist,  ^Egidius  Gutmann,  is  claimed  as  the  true  author  of 
the  anonymous  manifestoes  by  others — on  what  grounds  I 
have  not  been  able  to  ascertain ;  but,  according  to  Buhle, 
this  opinion  is  "  supported  by  no  other  argument  than  that 
he  was  a  distinguished  mystic  in  that  age  of  mysticism." 

All  these  views  have  manifestly  little  to  recommend  them, 
but  that  which  attributes  the  composition  of  the  Kosicrucian 
manifestoes  to  Johann  Valentin  Andreas  is  supported  by  an 
extraordinary  mass  of  evidence,  which  calls  for  very  careful 
and  impartial  consideration.  This  interesting  and  singular 
personage,  who  is  described  by  Brucker1  as  very  learned 
and  of  a  very  elegant  genius,  whom  the  "  Bibliotheque  IJni- 
verselle  " 2  considers  one  of  the  most  useful  men  which  Ger- 
many produced  in  the  seventeenth  century,  and  whom  all 
authorities  unite  in  admiring  for  his  talents  and  virtues, 
was  a  renowned  theologian  of  Wirtemberg,  and  a  multi- 
farious litterateur  not  uncelebrated,  even  at  this  day,  in 
his  own  country,  as  a  poet  and  a  satirist.  He  was  born  at 
Herrenberg,  a  town  in  the  duchy  of  Wirtemberg,  on  the 
17th  of  August  1586.  He  was  the  grandson  of  Jacob 
Andreas,  also  a  celebrated  theologian.  His  father  was  the 

mone  retulit,  adversus  Rosese  Crucis  Fratres  calami  quoque  telum 
strinxit,  cujus  quidem  Sectce  auctoremfuisseJungium,  Mathematicam 
Hamburgi  profession,  eumque  librum,  cui  titulus  est  Fama  Frabium 
Eosece,  Crucis  cudisse,  pariter  ex  ore  Secretarii,  rei  illius  conscii,  con- 
firmavit. 

1  "  Brukeri  Historia  Grit.  Philosophise,"  tome  ii. ,  p.  740. 

2  Tome  ii.,  p.  126. 


THE  CASE  OF  JOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.   223 

pastor  of  Herrenberg,  his  mother,  Mary  Moseria.  The 
delicacy  of  his  early  years  characterised  his  maturer  life, 
but  he  was  of  a  shrewd  and  cheerful  disposition.  He  re- 
ceived the  rudiments  of  his  education  from  Michael  Beum- 
ler.1  Subsequently  he  pursued  his  studies  at  Tubingen, 
Buhle  informs  us  that,  "  besides  Greek  and  Latin  (in  which 
languages  he  was  distinguished  for  the  elegance  of  his  style), 
he  made  himself  master  of  the  French,  Italian,  and  Spanish  ; 
was  well  versed  in  Mathematics,  Natural  and  Civil  History, 
Geography,  and  Historical  Genealogy,  without  at  all  neglect- 
ing his  professional  study  of  divinity."2  "  I  so  divided  my 
time,"  he  tells  us,  "  that  during  the  day  I  devoted  myself 
to  instruction  in  the  arts ;  thereto  I  added  long  nocturnal 
studies,  passed  in  the  reading  of  various  authors,  and  car- 
ried to  such  an  extravagant  extent  that  not  only  my  eyesight 
suffered,  but  I  made  myself  subject  to  the  horrors  of  sleep- 
lessness, and  weakened  the  strength  of  memory." 

He  travelled  much  within  the  limits  of  his  own  country, 
visited  France,  Switzerland,  Italy,  including  Venice,  and 
twice  journeyed  into  Austria.  He  was  married  on  the 
second  of  August  1614,  to  Agnes  Elizabeth,  daughter  of 
Josua  Griiminger.3  He  passed  through  various  grades  of 
ecclesiastical  dignity,  and  became  chaplain  to  the  court  at 
Stuttgart.  "  Here,"  says  Buhle,  "  he  met  with  so  much 
thwarting  and  persecution,  that,  with  his  infirm  constitu- 
tion of  body  and  dejection  of  mind  from  witnessing  the 

1  "  Primam  infantiam  afflictissimam  habui,  ardeo  est  non  nisi 
bimus  in  pedes  primus  erigerer,  quam  etiam  valetudinis  tenuitatem 
omni  vita  tolerari,  ingenio  interim  sagaci  et  festive,  ut  propinquis 
et  amicis  voluptati  essem  ....  Literarum  rudimenta  a  Michaele 
Beumlero  accessi  viro  optimo." — "  Vita  ab  ipso  Coiiscripta, "  lib.  i. 

2  De  Quincey,  "  Rosicrucians  and  Freemasons,"  c.  iii. 

3  See  additional  notes,  No.  5, 


224  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

desolation  of  Germany,"  the  redress  of  the  abuses  and  evils 
in  which  had  been  the  main  object  of  his  life — "  it  is  not 
to  be  wondered  that  he  ...  sank  into  deep  despondency 
and  misanthropy."  At  his  own  earnest  importunity  he  was 
permitted  to  resign  his  post,  and  died  abbot  of  Adelberg  and 
Lutheran  almoner  to  the  Duke  of  Wirtemberg  in  the  year 
1654,  "after  a  long  and  painful  illness." 

All  authorities  are  agreed  upon  one  important  point  in 
the  character  of  Andreas,  and  that  is  his  predilection  in 
favour  of  secret  societies  as  instruments  in  the  reformation 
of  his  age  and  country.  According  to  Buhle,  he  had  a  pro- 
found and  painful  sense  of  the  gross  evils  and  innumerable 
abuses  which  afflicted  the  German  fatherland,  and  which 
were  revealed,  not  eradicated,  by  the  lurid  fire-brand  of 
Luther's  reformation.  These  abuses  he  sought  to  redress 
by  means  of  "secret  societies."  The  ambition  of  his  boy- 
hood appears  to  have  been  the  labour  of  his  after  days. 
"The  writings  of  Andreas,  issued  during  his  life-time,  are 
full  of  arguments  on  the  necessity  of  forming  a  society  solely 
devoted  to  the  reformation  of  sciences  and  manners.  .  .  . 
Three  of  his  works,  namely,  '  Reipublicse  Christianopoli- 
tanse  Descriptio ' ;  '  Turris  Babel,  sive  Judiciorum  de 
Fraternitate  Kosacese  Crucis  Chaos  ' ;  '  Christianse  Socie- 
tatis  Idea/  all  published  at  Strasbourg  in  the  years  1619 
and  1620,  offer  the  clearest  indications  of  his  project  to 
form  a  secret  society.  It  is  impossible  not  to  perceive  that 
he  is  always  aiming  at  something  of  the  kind.  Some  also 
appeal  to  his  frequent  travels  as  having  no  other  object.1 
A  writer  in  the  "  Dictionnaire  des  Sciences  Occultes " 
speaks  with  even  greater  emphasis.  "The  works  of 
Andreas,  to  the  number  of  one  hundred,  preach  promiscu- 
1  "  Biblioth&que  Universelle,"  tome  ii.,  pp.  126-128. 


THE  CASE  OF  JOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.    22$ 

ously  the  necessity  of  secret  societies,"1  and  Louis  Figuier, 
whose  work,  entitled  "Alchemy  and  the  Alchemists," 
though  it  does  not  betray  much  original  research,  repre- 
sents in  a  French  vestment  the  opinions  and  arguments  of 
some  high  German  authorities,  calls  Andreas  "  a  fanatical 
partisan "  of  the  doctrines  of  Paracelsus,2  declares  him  to 
have  been  fired  with  the  ambition  to  fulfil  certain  predic- 
tions of  his  master  which  have  been  before  referred  to,  and 
that  he  took  upon  himself  to  decide  that  the  "Elias 
Artista,"  the  robust  child,  to  whom  the  magician  refers, 
must  be  understood  not  of  an  individual  but  of  a  collective 
body  or  association. 

It  seems  clear  from  these  authorities,  and  from  the  facts 
of  the  case,  that  the  mature,  long-planned  purpose  of  An- 
dreas was  the  foundation  of  a  society  for  the  reformation 
of  the  age,  and  we  find  him  cherishing  this  hope  and  ap- 
parently elaborating  his  designs  at  the  very  period  when 
the  first  rumours  of  the  Eosicrucian  Fraternity  began  to  be 
heard  in  Europe.  It  is,  therefore,  obviously  and  incontest- 
ably  clear  that  if  he  had  any  hand  in  the  foundation  of 
this  society,  or  in  the  authorship  of  the  documents  con- 
nected with  it,  that*  both  were  undertaken  in  all  earnest- 
ness, and  that  the  "  Fama  "  and  "  Confessio  Fraternitatis  " 
are  not  pieces  of  frolicsome  imposture,  and  satires  on  the 
credulity  of  the  period.  Such  a  supposition  is  wholly  in- 
compatible with  Andreas'  zeal  and  enthusiasm. 

This  point  being  definitely  settled,  I  proceed  to  lay  before 

1  ' '  Dictionnaire    cles    Sciences    Occultes "    in   the  Abbe"  Migne's 
"  Troisieme  Encyclopedic  The"ologique,"  t.  i.,  p.  90. 

2  With   the    characteristic    carelessness   of    a    French    reasoner, 
Figuier  stultifies  himself  on  this  point  by  stating  a  few  pages  subse- 
quently  that    Andreas   was   devoid   of    any  doctrinal   fanaticism. 
"  L'Alchimie  et  les  AlchimUtes,"  pp.  293-29". 

P 


226  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

my  readers  an  abstract  of  those  considerations  which  have 
induced  several  erudite  investigators  to  accept  Andreas  as 
the  author  of  the  Rosicrucian  documents. 

I.  I  have  said  in  the  fifth  chapter  that  the  whole  contro- 
versy to  some  extent  centres  in  the  "Chymical  Marriage  of 
Christian  Rosen  creutz,"  and  since  the  publication  of  Sey- 
bold's  "Autobiographies  of  Celebrated  Men"  in  1796,  and 
which  printed  for  the  first  time,  albeit  in  a  German  version, 
the  posthumous  autobiography  of  Johann  Valentin  An- 
dreas,1 there  has  been  no  room  for  doubt  as  to  its  author- 
ship. There  he  includes  it  among  his  earliest  productions, 
states  that  it  was  written  at  the  age  of  fifteen,  and  that  it 
was  one  of  a  series  of  similar  juvenilia  which,  for  the  most 
part,  had  perished.2  Now  the  "  Chyniical  Marriage,"  hav- 
ing remained  several  years  in  manuscript,  was  printed  at 
Strasbourg  in  1616.  The  C.  R.  C.  of  the  preceding  mani- 
festoes was  immediately  identified  with  the  Christian  Rosen- 
creutz  of  the  allegorical  romance,  and  albeit  the  first 

1  The  original  Latin  text  was  not  printed  till  1849,  when  it  appeared 
in  octavo  at  Berlin  under  the  editorship  of  F.  H.  Rheinwald. 

2  For  the  information  of  students  of  the  Rosicrucian  mystery  I 
append  the  whole  passage  which  refers  to  the  juvenile  productions 
of  Andreas.     "  Jam  a  secundo  et  tertio  post  millesimum  sexcentesi- 
mum  coeperam  aliquid  exercendi  ingenii  ergo  pangere,  cujus  facile 
prima  fuere   Esther    et    Hyacinthus   comoediae  ad  aemulationem 
AngUcorum  histrionum  juvenili  ansu  factae,  e  quibus  posterior,  quae 
mihi  reliqua  est,  pro  aetate  non  displicet.    Secuta  sunt  Veneris  detes- 
tatio  et  Lachrymae  tribus  dialogis  satis  prolixis,  ob  infelicem,  de 
quo  postea,   casmn  meum   expressae,   quae    invita  me  perierunt. 
Superfuerunt  e  contra  Nuptiae  Chymicae,  cum  monstrorum  foecundo 
foetu,  ludibrium,  quod  mireris  a  nonullia  aestimatum  et  subtili  in- 
dagine  explicatum,  plane  futile  et  quod  inanitatem  curiosorum  pro- 
dat.     Invenio  etiam  in  chartis  meis  titulos  Julii  Sive  Politiae  libros 
tres,   Judicium  astroligicum  contra    astrologiam,   Iter,   sed   quod 
dudum  interierunt,  quid  iis  consignarim,  non  memini. "— Vita  Lib., 
i.  p.  10,  Ed.  Rheinwald,  1849. 


THE  CASE  OF  JOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.   227 

edition  of  the  "Confessio  Fraternitatis,"  and  seemingly 
also  of  the  "Fama,"1  do  not  describe  the  society  as  that  of 
the  Rosie  Cross,  the  edition  of  1615,  printed  at  Francfurt, 
calls  it  the  Bruderschafft  des  Rosen-Creutzes  and  it  is, 
therefore,  argued  that  the  three  works  must  have  origin- 
ated from  a  single  source. 

II. .  The  "  Chymical  Marriage  "  contains  the  following 
passage  : — "  Hereupon  I  prepared  myself  for  the  way,  put 
on  my  white  linnen  coat,  girded  my  loyns,  with  a  blood-red 
ribbon  bound  cross-ways  over  my  shoulder  :  In  my  hat  I 
stuck  four  roses."  Elsewhere,  he  describes  himself  as  a 
"  brother  of  the  Red-Rosie  Cross,"  and  a  "Knight  of  the 
Golden  Stone  " — eques  aurei  lapidis. 

Now,  the  armorial  bearings  of  the  family  of  Andreas 
contain  a  St  Andrew's  Cross  with  four  roses,  one  in  each  of 
.  its  angles,  which  interesting  piece  of  internal  evidence  indi- 
cates the  authorship  of  this  romance  independently  of  the 
autobiographical  statement,  and  points  irresistibly,  it  is  said, 
to  the  conclusion  that  the  founder  of  the  Rose-Cross  Society 
was  the  man  whose  heraldic  device  was  also  the  Rose  and 
Cross. 

III.  The  identity  of  the  principles  contained  in  the  ac- 
knowledged work  of  Andreas,  and  in  the  pamphlets  which 
it  is  sought  to  attribute  to  him,  are  considered  too  obvious 
to  need  enumeration,  and  it  is  sufficient  to  point  out  that 
all  are  equally  directed  against  the  charlatanic  professors  of 
the  magnum  opus,  thriving  in  countless  numbers  upon  the 
credulity  and  infatuation  of  the  age. 

IV.  Arnold,    in    his    "History    of  the  Church  and   of 

1  The  title  of  one  of  the  earliest  editions  is  quoted  by  Arnold  as 
follows  : — "  Fama  Fraternitatis,  or  Discovery  of  the  Brotherhood  of 
the  Worshipful  Order  of  the  R,  C." 


228  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Heretics,"  states  that  a  comparison  between  Andreas'  un- 
doubtedly authentic  writings  and  those  of  the  Rosicruciau 
manifestoes  do  not  allow  any  doubt  that  he  is  their  author. 

V.  The   earliest   edition   of  Boccalini's    "  Ragguagli  di 
Parnasso  "  was  published  at  Venice  in  1612.     Andreas  is 
known  to  have  been  an  Italian  scholar;  he  was  also  an  omnivo- 
rous reader;  he  is  said  to  have  admired  Boccalini,  and  to  have 
imitated  his  style  ;  and  thence  it  is  argued  that  he  it  was 
who   translated   Advertisement   77  of  the  first  centuria, 
under  the  title  of  the  "  Universal  Reformation  of  the  Whole 
Wide  World." 

VI.  An  intimate  friend  of  Andreas,  Professor  Besoldt, 
positively  declares  that  the  character  of  the  Rosicrucian 
manifesto  is  plain  enough,  and  considers  it  a  marvellous 
and  unexplainable  circumstance  that  so  many  persons  had 
mistaken  that  object.     From  this  it  is  concluded  that  he 
was  a  repository  of  the  secret  concerning  their  authorship, 
and  as  he  was  in  the  confidence  of  Andreas,  that  Andreas 
was  the  author. 

In  this  case,  the  question  discussed  in  the  introduction 
is,  of  course,  definitely  set  at  rest.  The  symbolism  of  the 
Rose-Cross  is  of  no  high  significance  as  a  badge  of  the 
secret  society.  It  does  not  give  expression  to  the  arcana  of 
the  alchemical  and  celestial  Dew  of  the  Wise,  nor  contain 
the  secret  of  the  menstruum  of  the  Red  Dragon.  It  is 
simply  the  hereditary  device  of  the  founder,  and  its  mean- 
ing is  to  be  sought  in  German  heraldry,  and  not  in 
mysticism. 

Those  who  accredit  Andreas  with  the  authorship  of  the 
Rosicrucian  manifestoes  interpret  his  reasons  very  variously. 
According  to  Arnold,  he  had  already  written  many  satirical 
pamphlets  upon  the  corruptions  and  hypocrisy  of  the  period 


THE  CASE  OFJOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.    229 

and  he  considers  that  the  "  Fama  "  and  "  Confessio  "  were 
penned  with  the  same  purpose,  namely  to  lay  bare  the  follies 
of  men's  lives,  and  to  set  before  them  patterns  of  good  and 
pious  living.  He  quotes  an  unmentioned  writer  as  stating 
that  it  was  necessary  that  the  brethren  should  be  men  of 
unblemished  lives,  and  zealous  preachers,  who,  under  the 
appearance  of  a  society,  would  try  to  lead  the  people  to  God. 
According  to  Figuier,  as  we  have  seen,  Andreas  established 
the  order  to  fulfil  certain  prophecies  of  Paracelsus,  and 
to  pursue  scientific  researches  on  purely  Paracelsian  prin- 
ciples. But  Buhle,  with  all  his  shortcomings,  and  weighted 
as  he  is  by  an  extravagant  Masonic  hypothesis,  is  the  best 
exponent  of  these  views,  and  it  will  be  necessary  to  cite  his 
arguments  at  considerable  length. 

"  From  a  close  review  of  his  life  and  opinions,  I  am  not 
only  satisfied  that  Andrea  wrote  the  three  works  which  laid 
the  foundation  of  Eosicrucianism,  but  I  see  clearly  ivhy  he 
wrote  them.  The  evils  of  Germany  were  then  enormous, 
and  the  necessity  of  some  great  reform  was  universally 
admitted.  As  a  young  man  without  experience,  Andrea 
imagined  that  this  reform  would  be  easily  accomplished. 
He  had  the  example  of  Luther  before  him,  the  heroic  re- 
former of  the  preceding  century,  whose  memory  was  yet 
fresh  in  Germany,  and  whose  labours  seemed  on  the  point 
of  perishing  unless  supported  by  corresponding  efforts  in 
the  existing  generation.  To  organise  these  efforts  and 
direct  them  to  proper  objects,  he  projected  a  society  com- 
posed of  the  noble,  the  enlightened,  and  the  learned— 
which  he  hoped  to  see  moving,  as  under  the  influence  of 
one  soul,  towards  the  redressing  of  public  evils.  Under 
this  hope  it  was  that  he  travelled  so  much :  seeking  every- 
where, no  doubt,  for  the  coadjutors  and  instruments  of  his 


230  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICJRUCIANS. 

designs.  These  designs  he  presented  originally  in  the  shape 
of  a  Rosicrucian  society ;  and  in  this  particular  project  he 
intermingled  some  features  that  were  at  variance  with  its 
gravity  and  really  elevated  purposes.  Young  as  he  was  at 
that  time,  Andrea  knew  that  men  of  various  tempers  and 
characters  could  not  be  brought  to  co-operate  steadily  for 
any  object  so  purely  disinterested  as  the  elevation  of  human 
nature  :  he  therefore  addressed  them  through  the  common 
foible  of  their  age,  by  holding  out  promises  of  occult  know- 
ledge which  should  invest  its  possessor  with  authority  over 
the  powers  of  Nature,  should  lengthen  his  life,  or  raise  him 
from  the  dust  of  poverty  to  wealth  and  high  station.  In 
an  age  of  Theosophy,  Oabbalism,  and  Alchemy,  he  knew 
that  the  popular  ear  would  be  caught  by  an  account,  issuing 
nobody  knew  whence,  of  a  great  society  that  professed  to 
be  the  depository  of  Oriental  mysteries,  and  to  have  lasted 
two  centuries.  Many  would  seek  to  connect  themselves 
with  such  a  society  :  from  these  candidates  he  might  gradu- 
ally select  the  members  of  the  real  society  which  he  pro- 
jected. The  pretensions  of  the  ostensible  society  were  in- 
deed illusions  ;  but  before  they  could  be  detected  as  such 
by  the  new  proselytes,  those  proselytes  would  become  con- 
nected with  himself,  and  (as  he  hoped)  moulded  to  nobler 
aspirations.  On  this  view  of  Andrea's  real  intentions,  we 
understand  at  once  the  ground  of  the  contradictory  lan- 
guage which  he  held  about  astrology  and  the  transmutation 
of  metals  :  his  satirical  works  show  that  he  looked  through 
the  follies  of  his  age  with  a  penetrating  eye.  He  speaks 
with  toleration  then  of  these  follies — as  an  exoteric  conces- 
sion to  the  age ;  he  condemns  them  in  his  own  esoteric 
character  as  a  religious  philosopher.  Wishing  to  conciliate 
prejudices,  he  does  not'forbear  to  bait  his  scheme  with  these 


THE  CASE  OFJOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.    231 

delusions :  but  he  is  careful  to  let  us  know  that  they  are 
with  his  society  mere  vapspya  or  collateral  pursuits,  the 
direct  and  main  one  being  true  philosophy  and  religion." 

I  fully  concede  the  almost  overwhelming  force  of  some  of 
the  arguments  I  have  enumerated,  but,  as  a  partisan  of  no 
particular  theory,  it  is  my  duty  to  set  before  my  readers  a 
plain  statement  of  certain  grave  difficulties. 

I.  The  "  Chymical  Marriage  "  is  sailed  a  ludibrium  by  its 
author,  and  Professor  Buhle  describes  it  as  a  comic  romance, 
but  those  of  my  readers  who  are  acquainted  with  alchemical 
allegories  will  discern  in  this  singular  narrative  by  a  pre- 
pared student  or  artist  who  was  supernaturally  and  magi- 
cally elected  to  participate  in  the  accomplishment  of  the 
magnum  opus,  many  matters  of  grave  and  occult  signifi- 
cance. They  will  recognise  that  the  comic  episodes  are 
part  of  a  serious  design,  and  that  the  work  as  a  whole  is  in 
strict  accordance  with  the  general  traditions  of  alchemy. 
They  will  question  the  good  faith  of  the  author  in  the  ap- 
plication of  a  manifestly  incongruous  epithet.  Perhaps  they 
will  appear  to  be  wise  above  what  is  written,  but  the  posi- 
tion is  not  really  unreasonable,  for  the  passage  in  which 
reference  is  made  by  Andreas  to  the  "  Nuptiae  Chymicse  "  is 
calculated  to  raise  suspicion.  He  was  a  shrewd  and  keen 
observer ;  he  had  gauged  the  passions  and  the  crazes  of  his 
period ;  he  was  fully  aware  that  the  rage  for  alchemy 
blinded  the  eyes  and  drained  the  purses  of  thousands  of 
credulous  individuals,  who  were  at  the  mercy  of  the  most 
wretched  impostors,  and  that  no  pretence  was  too  shallow 
and  no  recipe  too  worthless  to  find  believers.  He  could 
not  be  ignorant  that  a  work  like  the  "  Chymical  Marriage 
of  Christian  Rosencreutz  "  was  eminently  liable  to  impose 
upon  every  class  of  theosophists.  When,  therefore,  he  sup- 


232  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

poses,  and,  by  implication,  expresses,  astonishment  that  his 
so-called  ludibrium  became  the  object  of  earnest  investigation 
and  of  high  esteem,  I  freely  confess  that  I,  for  one,  cannot 
interpret  him  seriously ;  in  other  words,  that  I  reject 
the  statement.  This,  however,  is  only  the  initial  difficulty. 
The  same  passage  of  the  "  Vita  ab  ipso  Conscripta  "  con- 
tains another  piece  of  incredible  information,  namely  that 
Andreas  wrote  the  "Nuptiae  Chymicse"  before  he  was 
sixteen.  This  story  gives  evidence  of  an  acquaintance 
with  the  practice  and  purposes  of  alchemy  which  was 
absolutely  impossible  to  the  most  precocious  lad.  More- 
over, the  boldness  of  its  conception  and  the  power  which 
is  displayed  in  its  execution,  setting  aside  the  debateable 
question  of  its  occult  philosophical  character,  are  things 
utterly  transcending  the  cacoethes  scribendi  of  a  youngster 
barely  attained  to  the  age  of  puberty.  I  appeal  to  the  dis- 
crimination of  my  readers  whether  the  curious  and  in- 
genious perplexities  propounded  at  the  supper  on  the  third 
day  are  in  any  way  suggestive  of  "  the  light  fire  in  the 
veins  of  a  boy."  The  romance  supposed  to  have  been 
written  in  1602-3  did  not  see  the  light  till  1616,  when  it 
appeared  in  the  full  tide  of  the  Rosicrucian  controversy. 
Why  did  it  remain  in  manuscript  for  the  space  of  thirteen 
years  at  a  period  when  everything  treating  of  alchemy  was 
devoured  with  unexampled  avidity  1  The  "  Chymical  Mar- 
riage," in  its  original  draft,  may  have  been  penned  at  the 
age  of  fifteen,  but  it  must  have  been  subjected  to  a  searching 
revision,  though  I  confess  that  it  betrays  no  trace  of  subse- 
quent manipulation.  These  grave  difficulties  are  enhanced 
by  a  fact  which  is  wholly  unknown  to  mostEosicrucian  critics, 
and  which  was  certainly  not  to  be  expected  in  the  jest  of  a 
schoolboy,  namely,  that  the  barbarous  enigmatical  writings 


THE  CASE  OFJOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.    233 

which  are  to  be  found  in  several  places  of  "  The  Hermetick 
Wedding "  are  not  an  unmeaning  hoax,  but  contain  a  de- 
cipherable and  deciphered  sense.  The  secretary  of  an 
English  Rosicrucian  Society  says  that  the  Supreme  Magus 
of  the  Metropolitan  College  can  read  all  three  of  the 
enigmas,  and  that  he  himself  has  deciphered  two.  Their 
secret  is  not  a  tradition,  but  the  meaning  dawns  upon  the 
student  after  certain  researches.  The  last  point  is  curious, 
and,  outside  the  faculty  of  clairvoyance,  the  suggested 
method  does  not  seem  probable,  but  I  give  it  to  be  taken 
at  its  worth,  and  have  no  reason  to  doubt  the  statement. 

From  these  facts  and  considerations,  the  conclusion  does 
not  seem  unreasonable,  and  may  certainly  be  tolerated  by 
an  impartial  mind,  that  in  spite  of  the  statement  of 
Andreas,  and  partly  because  of  that  statement,  the 
"  Chymical  Marriage"  is  not  a  ludibrium,  that  it  betrays  a 
serious  purpose,  and  conceals  a  recondite  meaning. 

II.  With  this  criticism  the  whole  theory  practically 
breaks  down.  We  know  that  the  "Fama  Fraternitatis " 
was  published  in  1615  as  a  manifesto  of  the  Bruderscliafft 
des  loUiclien  Ordens  des  Rosen  Creutses.  We  have  good 
reason  to  suppose  that  the  original  draft  of  the  "  Chymical 
Marriage "  was  tampered  with ;  we  do  not  know  that 
previous  to  the  year  1615  such  a  work  was  in  existence  as 
the  "  Chymical  Marriage  of  Christian  Rosencreutz."  What 
we  know  to  have  existed  was  simply  the  "Nuptise  Chymicae." 
Now,  supposing  the  "Fama  Fraternitatis"  to  have  emanated 
from  a  source  independent  of  Andreas,  he  would  be  natu- 
rally struck  by  the  resemblance  of  the  mysterious  Rosicru- 
cian device  to  his  own  armorial  bearings,  and  when  in  the 
year  1616  he  published  his  so-called  comic  romance,  this 
analogy  may,  not  inconceivably,  have  led  him  to  re-christen 


234  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

his  hero,  and  to  introduce  those  passages  which  refer  to  the 
Eose  Cross.  This,  of  course,  is  conjectural,  but  it  is  to  be 
remarked  that  so  far  as  can  be  possibly  ascertained,  the 
acknowledged  symbol  of  the  Fraternity  never  was  a  St 
Andrew's  Cross  with  four  Eoses,  but  was  a  Cross  of  the 
ordinary  shape,  with  a  Eed  Eose  in  the  centre,  or  a  Cross 
rising  out  of  a  Eose.  There  is  therefore  little  real  warrant 
for  the  identification  of  the  mystical  and  the  heraldic 
badge.  It  is  on  this  identification,  however,  that  the 
Andrean  claim  is  greatly  based. 

III.  We  find  the  "  Chymical  Marriage,"  like  the  "Fama" 
and    "  Confessio    Fraternitatis,"    crusading    against     the 
"vagabond  cheaters,"  "runagates  and  roguish  people,"  who 
debased  alchemical  experiments  in  the  interest  of  dishonest 
speculation;  yet  the  one,  under  a  thin  veil  of  fiction,  de- 
scribes  the   proceedings   in    the   accomplishment   of   the 
magnum  opus,  while  the  other  terms  transmutation  a  great 
gift  of  God.     These  points  of  resemblance,  however,  do  not 
necessarily  indicate  a  common  authorship,  for  a  general  belief 
in  the  facts  of  alchemy  was  held  at  that  period  by  many 
intelligent  men,  who  were  well  aware,  and  loud  in  their 
condemnation,  of  the  innumerable  frauds  which  disgraced 
the  science.    On  the  other  hand,  it  is  plain  that  the  history 
of  C.  E.G.,  as  it  is  contained  in  the  "  Fama,"  is  not  the  his- 
tory, equally  fabulous,  of  that  Knight  of  the  Golden  Stone, 
who  is  the  hero  of  the  "  Chymical  Marriage." 

IV.  It  is  obviously  easy  to  exaggerate  the  philological 
argument,  or  rather  the  argument  from   the  identity  of 
literary  style,  in  the  documents  under  consideration.     This 
point  indeed  can  only  be  adequately  treated  by  a  German. 
At  present  it  rests  on  a  single  assertion  of  Arnold,  which 
is  uncorroborated  by  any  illustrative  facts.     I  think  it  will 


THE  CASE  OFJOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.    235 

also  be  plain,  even  to  the  casual  reader,  that  the  "Chymical 
Marriage  "  is  a  work  of  "  extraordinary  talent,"  as  Buhle 
justly  observes,  but  that  the  "  Fama  Fraternitatis "  is  a 
work  of  no  particular  talent,  either  inventive  or  otherwise, 
while  the  subsequent  "Confession,"  both  in  matter  and 
manner,  is  simply  beneath  contempt.  Yet  we  are  required 
to  believe  that  the  first  was  produced  at  the  age  of  fifteen, 
while  the  worthless  pamphlets  are  the  work  of  the  same 
writer  from  seven  to  thirteen  years  subsequently. 

V.  The   connection   of    the   "Universal   Reformation" 
with  the  other  Rosicrucian  manifestoes  is  so  uncertain,  that 
if  Andreas  could  be  proved  its  translator,  his  connection 
with  the  society  would  still  be  doubtful.     The  appearance 
of  the  "  Fama  Fraternitatis  "  and  the  "  Universal  Reforma- 
tion"  in   one   pamphlet   no   more   proves   them  to   have 
emanated  from  a  single  source,  than  the  publication  of  the 
"  Confessio  "  in  the  same  volume  as  the  "  Secretioris  Philo- 
sophise Consideratio "  proves  Philippus  a  Gabella  to  have 
been  the  author  of  that  document.     The  practice  of  issuing 
unconnected  works  within  the  covers  of  a  single  book  was 
common  at  the  period.    But  the  argument  which  ascribes  the 
"  Universal  Reformation  "  to  Andreas  is  entirely  conjectural. 

VI.  There  is  nothing  conclusive  in  the  statement  of  Pro- 
fessor Besoldt ;  it  may  "have  been  simply  an  expression  of 
personal  opinion ;  those  who  interpret  it  otherwise  in  sup- 
port of  the  claim  of  Andreas,  to  some  extent  base  their  in- 
pretation  on  the  very  point  which  is  in  question,  for  unless 
Andreas  were  the  author  of  the  manifestoes,  it  is  clear  that 
Professor  Besoldt  is  a  person  of  no  authority. 

These  difficulties  are  of  themselves  sufficient  to  cast  grave 
doubt  upon  the  Andrean  theory,  but  when  we  pass  to  the 
consideration  of  the  motives  which  are  attributed  to  the 


236  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

reputed  author  by  the  chief  supporter  of  his  claims,  we 
find  them  indefinitely  multiplied.  Buhle  represents  him 
as  a  young  man  without  experience  who  imagined  that  the 
evils  of  his  country,  enormous  as  they  confessedly  were, 
could  be  eradicated  easily.  But  if,  by  courtesy,  we  allow 
that  the  "  Fama  Fraternitatis  "  was  published  so  early  as 
1612,  then  Andreas  was  twenty-six  years  of  age,  when  a 
man  of  education  and  travel  would  be  neither  inexperienced 
nor  Utopian. 

What,  however,  is  by  implication  assumed  in  this  hypo- 
thesis is  that  the  Rosicrucian  manifestoes  were  written  at 
the  same  age  as  the  "  Nuptise  Chymicae,"  for  which  there  is 
not  a  particle  of  evidence,  and  that  the  object  of  Andreas' 
travels  was  to  find  "  coadjutors  and  instruments  for  his 
designs,"  which  is  also  wholly  unsupported.  The  scheme 
which  is  fathered  upon  Andreas  is  a  monstrous  and  in- 
credible absurdity ;  it  involves,  moreover,  a  pious  fraud 
which  is  wholly  at  variance  with  the  known  character  of  the 
supposed  author.  No  sane  person,  much  less  a  man  who 
"  looked  through  the  follies  of  his  age  with  a  penetrating 
eye,"  could  expect  anything  but  failure  to  result  from  a 
gross  imposition  practised  on  the  members  of  a  projected 
association,  who  being  assured  of  the  possession  of  the 
Philosophical  Stone,  the  life-elixir,  and  initiation  into  the 
secret  mysteries  of  nature,  were  destined  to  receive,  instead 
of  these  prizes,  a  barren  and  impossible  commission  to  re- 
form the  age.  What  moral  reformation  could  result  from 
any  scheme  at  once  so  odious  and  impracticable "? 

Let  us  accept  however,  for  a  moment,  the  repulsive  hypo- 
thesis of  Buhle.  Suppose  the  Rosicrucian  manifestoes  to  have 
been  written  in  1602.  Suppose  Andreas  to  have  scoured  Ger- 
many and  also  to  have  visited  other  countries  in  search  of  ap- 


THE  CASE  OF  J  OH  ANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.    237 

propriate  members  for  his  society.  It  would  then  be  naturally 
concluded  that  the  publication  of  the  "Fama  Fraternitatis  " 
signified  that  his  designs  were  matured.  The  subsequent 
conduct  of  Andreas  is,  nevertheless,  so  completely  in  the  face 
of  this  conclusion,  that  Buhle  is  obliged  to  assume  that  the 
manifestoes  were  printed  without  the  author's  consent,  than 
which  nothing  could  be  more  gratuitous,  and  that  the  up- 
roar of  hostility  which  followed  their  publication  made  it 
necessary  for  Andreas  to  disavow  them  if  he  would  succeed 
in  his  ultimate  designs.  The  hostility  provoked  by  the 
manifestoes  bears  no  comparison  with  the  welcome  they 
received  among  all  those  classes  to  whom  they  were  indi- 
rectly addressed,  namely,  the  alchemists,  theosophists,  etc. 
Had  Andreas  projected  a  society  upon  the  lines  laid  down 
by  Buhle,  nothing  remained  but  to  communicate  with  the 
innumerable  pamphleteers  who  wrote  in  defence  of  the 
order  during  the  years  immediately  succeeding  the  publica- 
tion of  the  "  Fama  Fraternitatis,"  as  well  as  with  those  other 
persons  who  in  various  printed  letters  offered  themselves 
for  admission  therein,  after  which  he  could  have  proceeded 
in  the  accomplishment  of  his  heartless  design.  That  he  did 
not  do  so  when  the  circumstances  were  so  favourable  is 
proof  positive  that  he  had  no  such  intention.  In  fact,  at 
this  very  period,  namely,  in  the  year  1614,  we  find  Andreas 
immersed  in  no  dark  and  mysterious  designs  for  the  refor- 
mation of  the  age  by  means  of  a  planned  imposture,  but 
simply  celebrating  his  nuptials,  and  settling  down  into 
a  tranquil  domestic  life. 

One  more  gross  and  ineradicable  blemish  upon  this  hypo- 
thesis remains  to  be  noticed.  Not  only  is  Andreas  repre- 
sented relinquishing  his  design  at  the  very  moment  when  it 
was  possible  to  put  it  in  force,  but  diverted  at  the  uni- 


238  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSJCRUCIANS. 

versal  delusion  he  had  succeeded  in  creating,  he  is  repre- 
sented as  endeavouring  to  foster  it,  "  to  gratify  his  satirical 
propensities,"  and  when  even  in  after  life  he  becomes 
"  shocked  to  find  that  the  delusion  had  taken  firm  root  in 
the  public  mind,"  he  adopts  no  adequate  measures  to  dispel  it. 
Thus  not  only  does  Andreas  wilfully  turn  the  long-planned 
purpose  of  his  life  into  a  wretched  fiasco,  but  to  complete 
the  libel  on  the  character  of  a  great  and  good  man,  he  is 
supposed  to  delude  his  fellow  creatures  no  longer  for  a  lofty 
purpose,  but  from  the  lowest  motive  which  it  is  possible  to 
attribute  to  anyone, — a  motive  indefinitely  meaner  than 
any  of  personal  gain. 

The  facts  of  the  case  untortured  by  any  theory  are  these. 
The  "Fama  Fraternitatis "  was  published,  say,  in  1612. 
In  1613  a  brief  Latin  epistle  addressed  to  the  venerable 
Fraternity  E.  C.  is  supposed  to  have  appeared  at  Francfurt, 
supplemented  the  following  year  by  an  "  Assertio  Fraterni- 
tatis R.  C.  a  quodam  Fraterni  ejus  Socio  carmine  expressa." 
These  two  publications  I  have  been  unable  to  trace,  though 
both  are  mentioned  by  Buhle,  and  are  included  by  Langlet 
du  Fresnoy  in  the  Rosicrucian  bibliography  which  is  to  be 
found  in  the  third  volume  of  his  "  Histoire  de  la  Philoso- 
phic Herm^tique."  In  1615,  the  Latin  original  of  the 
"  Confessio  Fraternitatis  "  appeared,  as  we  have  seen,  in 
the  alchemical  quarto  of  Philip  a  Gabella.  All  these  works 
are  attributed  to  Andreas,  and  the  year  1616  saw  the  pub- 
lication of  the  "  Chymical  Nuptials  of  Christian  Rosen- 
creutz,"  which  work  is  undoubtedly  his.  Taking  this  view, 
and  comparing  these  persistent  and  successive  attempts  to 
draw  attention  to  the  secret  society  with  the  known 
character  and  the  known  ambitions  of  Andreas,  we  are 
evidently  face  to  face  with  an  earnest  and  determined  pur- 


THE  CASE  OF  JOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.   239 

pose,  not  to  be  arrested  by  a  little  hostility  and  not  likely 
to  degenerate  into  a  matter  for  jest  and  satire.  We  must 
therefore  reject  the  Buhlean  hypothesis,  because  it  fails  all 
along  the  line,  "  and  betrays  itself  in  every  circumstance." 
We  must  reject  also  that  view  which  attributes  the  mani- 
festo to  Andreas,  but  considers  them  an  ingenious  jest.  It 
is  universally  admitted  that  this  jest  had  a  seriously  evil 
effect,  and  Andreas,  on  this  hypothesis,  lived  to  see  some  of 
the  best  and  acutest  minds  of  his  time,  to  say  nothing  of  an 
incalculable  number  of  honest  and  earnest  seekers,  misled 
by  the  vicious  and  wanton  joke  which  had  been  hatched  by 
the  perverted  talents  of  his  youth.  The  wickedness  and 
cruelty  of  persisting  in  concealment  of  the  true  nature  of 
the  case  through  all  his  maturer  life,  through  all  his 
age,  and  not  even  making  a  posthumous  explanation  in  the 
"  Vita  ab  ipso  Conscripta,"  is  enough  to  raise  indignation 
in  every  breast,  and  is  altogether,  and  too  utterly,  vile  and 
mean  to  ascribe  to  any  right-minded  and  honourable  per- 
son, much  less  to  a  man  of  the  known  intellectual  nobility  of 
Johann  Valentin  Andreas.  Buhle  says  that  to  have  avowed 
the  three  books  as  his  own  composition  would  have  defeated 
his  scheme,  and  that  "  afterwards  he  had  still  better  reasons 
for  disavowing  them."  He  had  no  such  reasons.  The 
bluntest  sense  of  duty  and  the  feeblest  voice  of  manliness 
must  have  provided  him  with  urgent  and  unanswerable 
reasons  for  acknowledging  them — a  course  to  which  no 
serious  penalties  could  possibly  attach. 

To  dispose  of  the  Andrean  claim,  a  third  hypothesis  must 
be  briefly  considered.  If  Andreas  was  a  follower  of  Para- 
celsus, a  believer  in  alchemy,  an  aspirant  towards  the 
spiritual  side  of  the  magnum  opus,  or  an  adept  therein,  he 
would  naturally  behold  with  sorrow  and  disgust  the  trickery 


240  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

and  imposture  with  which  alchemy  was  then  surrounded, 
and  by  which  it  has  been  indelibly  disgraced,  and  it  is  not 
unreasonable  to  suppose  that  he  may  have  attempted  to 
reform  the  science  by  means  of  a  secret  society,  whose 
manifestoes  are  directed  against  those  very  abuses.  But  in 
spite  of  the  statement  of  Louis  Figuier,  I  can  find  no 
warrant  in  the  life  or  writings  of  Andreas  for  supposing 
that  he  was  a  profound,  student,  much  less  a  fanatical 
partisan  of  Paracelsus,  and  it  is  clear  from  his  "Tunis 
Babel,"  "  Mythologia  Christiana,"  and  other  works,  that  he 
considered  the  Eosicrucian  manifestoes  a  reprehensible  hoax. 
In  the  twenty-fifth  chapter  of  the  first  of  these  books,  the 
author  proposes  to  supply  the  place  of  the  fabulous  Eosi- 
crucian  Society  by  his  own  Christian  Fraternity.  Indeed, 
wherever  he  speaks  of  it  in  his  known  writings,  it  is  either 
with  contempt  or  condemnation.  Niliil  cum  hac  Fraternitatt 
commune  habeo,  says  Truth  in  the  "  Mythologia  Christiana." 
"  Listen,  ye  mortals,"  cries  Fama  in  the  "  Turris  Babel," 
"  you  need  not  wait  any  longer  for  any  brotherhood  ;  the 
comedy  is  played  out ;  Fama  has  put  it  up,  and  now 
destroys  it.  Fama  has  said  Yes,  and  now  utters  No." 

My  readers  are  now  in  possession  of  the  facts  of  the 
case,  and  must  draw  their  own  iConclusions.  If  in  spite  of 
the  difficulties  which  I  have  impartially  stated,  Andreas 
has  any  claim  upon  the  authorship  of  the  Eosicrucian 
manifestoes,  it  must  be  viewed  in  a  different  light.  Accord- 
ing to  Herder,  his  purpose  was  to  make  the  secret  societies 
of  his  time  reconsider  their  position,  and  to  shew  them 
how  much  of  their  aims  and  movements  was  ridiculous,  but 
not  to  found  any  society  himself.  According  to  Figuier,  he 
really  founded  the  Eosicrucian  Society,  but  ended  by  entire 
disapproval  of  its  methods,  and  therefore  started  his 


THE  CASE  OF  JOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.    241 

Christian  Fraternity.  But  the  facts  of  the  case  are  against 
this  hypothesis,  for  the  "  Invitatio  Fraternitatis  Christi  ad 
Sacri  amoris  Candidates"  was  published  as  early  as  1617, 
long  before  the  Eosicrucian  Order  could  have  degenerated 
from  the  principles  of  its  master.  It  is  impossible  that 
Andreas  should  have  projected  two  associations  at  the  same 
time. 

But  in  the  face  of  the  failure  of  all  these  hypotheses,  one 
fact  in  the  life  of  their  subject  remains  unexplained.  If 
Andreas  did  not  write  the  "  Fama "  and  "  Confessio 
Fraternitatis,"  if  he  had  no  connection  with  the  secret 
society  from  which  they  may  be  supposed  to  have 
emanated,  if  he  did  not  study  Paracelsus,  and  did  not  take 
interest  in  alchemy,  how  are  we  to  account  for  the  exist- 
ence of  the  "  Chymical  Marriage,"  for  its  publication  in  the 
centre  and  heart  of  the  Rosicrucian  controversy,  and  for  its 
apparently  earnest  purpose  when  he  describes  it  as  a  jest 
or  ludibrium  ?  Without  elaborating  a  new  hypothesis,  can 
we  suggest  a  possible  reason  for  this  misnomer  1  Supposing 
Andreas  to  have  been  actually  connected  in  his  younger 
days  with  a  certain  secret  society,  which  may  have  published 
the  more  or  less  misleading  Rosicrucian  manifestoes,  the  oath 
which  all  such  societies  impose  upon  their  members,  would 
for  ever  prevent  him  from  divulging  anything  concerning 
it,  though  he  may  have  withdrawn  from  its  ranks  at  an 
early  period.  This  society  may  have  been  identical,  or 
affiliated,  with  the  Militia  Crucifera  Evangelica,  which,  from 
the  known  character  of  its  founder  was  probably  saturated 
with  alchemical  ideas,  in  which  case  it  offers  at  the  end  of 
the  sixteenth  century  a  complete  parallel  in  its  opinions 
with  the  Rosicrucian  Fraternity.  Both  associations  were 
ultra-Protestant,  both  were  "  heated  with  Apocalyptic 


242  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


dreams,"  both  sought  the  magnum  opus  in  its  transfigured 
or  spiritual  sense,  both  abhorred  the  Pope,  both  called  him 
Antichrist,  both  coupled  him  with  the  detested  name 
of  Mahomet,  both  expected  the  speedy  consummation  of 
the  age,  both  studied  the  secret .  characters  of  nature,  both 
believed  in  the  significance  of  celestial  signs,  both  adopted 
as  their  characteristic  symbols  the  mystic  Rose  and  Cross, 
and  the  reason  which  prompted  this  choice  in  the  one 
probably  guided  it  in  the  other.  This  reason  is  not  to  be 
sought  in  the  typology  of  a  remote  period,  nor  even  in  the 
alchemical  enigmas  of  mediaeval  times.  It  is  not  to  be 
sought  in  the  armorial  bearings  of  Johann  Valentin 
Andreas.  They  bore  the  Rose  and  Cross  as  their  badge,  not 
because  they  were  Brethren  of  the  Concocted  and  Exalted 
Dew,  not  because  they  had  studied  the  book  called  Zohar, 
not  because  they  were  successors  and  initiates  of  the  ancient 
Wisdom-Eeligion  and  the  sublime  hierarchies  of  Eld,  but 
because  they  were  a  narrow  sect  of  theosophical  dissidents, 
because  the  monk  Martin  Luther  was  their  idol,  prophet, 
and  master,  because  they  were  rabidly  and  extravagantly 
Protestant,  with  an  ultra-legitimate  violence  of  abusive 
Protestantism,  because,  in  a  single  word,  the  device  on  the 
seal  of  Martin  Luther  was  a  Cross-crowned  heart  rising 
from  the  centre  of  a  Kose,  thus — 


I  am  in  a  position  to  maintain  that  this  was  the  true  and 
esoteric  symbol  of  the  Society,  as  the  Crucified  Rose  was 


THE  CASE  OF  JOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.    243 

the  avowed,  exoteric  emblem,  because  in  a  professedly 
authoritative  work  on  the  secret  figuren  of  the  Order — 
"  Geheime  Figuren  der  Rosenkreuzer  ans  dem  16ten  und 
17ten  Jahrhundert" — I  find  the  following  remarkable 
elaboration  of  the  Lutheran  seal,  which  practically  decides 
the  question. 


Taking  into  consideration  that  the  "  Naometria  "  of  Simon 
Studion  and  the  original  draft  of  the  "  Nuptise  Chymicse  " 
both  belong  to  nearly  the  same  period,  and  that  Andreas 
was  undoubtedly  acquainted  with  the  work  of  the  mystical 
teacher  of  Marbach,  as  a  passage  in  the  "  Turris  Babel" 
makes  evident,  it  is  not  an  impossible  supposition  that  the 
young  student  of  Tubingen  came  into  personal  communi- 
cation with  Studion,  who  was  only  some  fifty  miles  distant 
in  the  cheapest  days  of  travelling,  and  having  a  natural  in- 
clination to  secret  societies,  became  associated  with  the 
Militia  Crucifera  Evangelica.  Out  of  this  connection  the 
"  Nuptise  Chymicse  "  might  naturally  spring,  and  the  subse- 
quent Rosicrucian  society  was  the  Militia  transfigured  after 
the  death  of  Studion,1  and  after  the  travels  and  experience 

1  There  is  one  fact  which  is  too  remarkable  to  be  a  mere  coinci- 
dence, and  which  seems  to  have  been  unnoticed  Jay  previous  investi- 
gators, namely,  that  Sigmund  Richter,  who  claims  to  speak 


244  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

of  Andreas  had  divested  him  of  his  boyish  delusions. 
Having  proved  the  hollowness  of  their  pretensions,  but  still 
bound  by  his  pledge,  he  speaks  of  them  henceforth  as  a 
deception  and  a  mockery,  and  attempts  to  replace  them  by 
a  practical  Christian  association  without  mysticism  and 
symbols,  making  no  pretension  to  occult  knowledge,  or  to 
transcendant  powers. 

This  view  is  not  altogether  a  new  one,  and  undoubtedly 
has  its  difficulties.  It  cannot  account  for  the  publication 
of  the  "  Nuptiae  Chymicse"  in  1616,  nor  for  the  revision 
which  it  apparently  underwent  at  the  very  period  when 
Andreas  was  projecting  the  unalchemical  Christian  Frater- 
nity ;  but  so  far  as  it  extends,  it  does  not  torture  the  facts 
with  which  it  professes  to  deal.  I  present  it  not  in  my 
character  as  a  historian,  but  simply  as  a  hypothesis  which 
may  be  tolerated.  To  my  own  mind  it  is  far  from  satisfac- 
tory, and,  from  a  careful  consideration  of  all  the  available 
materials,  I  consider  that  no  definite  conclusion  can  be 
arrived  at.  There  is  nothing  in  the  internal  character  of 
the  "  Fama "  and  "  Confessio  Fraternitatis  "  to  shew  that 
they  are  a  jest.  On  the  other  hand,  they  embody  a  fabulous 
story.  There  is  no  proof  that  they  did  or  did  not  emanate 
from  a  secret  society.1  The  popular  argument  that  the 
manifestoes  were  addressed  to  "  the  learned  of  Europe,"  but 

authoritatively,  declares  in  the  year  1710  that  one  of  the  Rosi- 
crucian  headquarters  is  at  Nurenberg  ;  that  is,  at  the  very  place 
where  the  Militia  Crucifera  Evangdica  originally  met  in  1586. 

1  For  the  sake  of  perspicuity,  and  to  avoid  forestalling  arguments, 
I  have  spoken  throughout  of  the  Rosicrucians-as  of  a  secret  society. 
In  the  universal  uncertainty,  this  view  is  as  good  as  another,  but  it 
does  not  necessarily  represent  my  personal  opinion.  By  the  term 
"  Rosicrucian  Fraternity  "  I  simply  mean  to  indicate  the  unknown 
source  of  the  "  Fama  "  and  "  Confessio  Fraternitatis." 


THE  CASE  OF  JOHANN  VALENTIN  ANDREAS.   245 

the  earnest  entreaties  of  the  flower  of  theosophical  literati 
for  admission  into  the  ranks  of  the  Fraternity  remained 
unanswered,  is  no  proof  that  the  Society  itself  did  not  exist, 
for  the  statement  is  vicious  in  the  extreme.  We  have 
absolutely  no  means  of  ascertaining  with  whom  it  may  have 
come  into  communication,  or  what  letters  and  applications 
were  answered,  because  inviolable  secrecy  would  cover  the 
whole  of  the  proceedings,  and  those  who  might  have  the 
best  reason  to  know  that  the  Society  existed  would  be  most 
obliged  to  hold  their  peace.  Thus  "the  meritorious  Order 
of  the  R.  C."  still  remains  shrouded  in  mystery,  but  this 
mystery  is  destitute  of  romance  and  almost  of  interest.  The 
avowed  opinions  of  the  Fraternity  for  ever  prevent  us  from 
supposing  that  they  were  in  possession  of  any  secrets  which 
would  be  worth  disentombing.  To  have  accomplished  the 
magnum  opus  of  the  veritable  adept,  is  to  be  master  of  the 
Absolute  and  the  heir  of  Eternity,  is  to  be  above  all  pre- 
judices, all  fears,  and  all  sectarian  bitterness.  By  the  aid 
of  an  ultra-Horatian  philosophy  we  may  conceive  that  such 
men  have  been,  and  still  are,  but  they  have  passed  above 
"  material  forms  "  and  the  clouded  atmosphere  of  terrestrial 
ideas;  they  inhabit  the  ideal  "city  of  intelligence  and  love." 
They  have  left  the  brawling  gutter  of  religious  squabbling, 
the  identification  of  Antichrist,  the  destruction  of  the  Pope 
by  means  of  nails,  and  the  number  of  the  beast,  to  Baxter 
and  Guinness,  Gumming  and  Brothers  the  prophet,  who 
may  share  its  squalors  and  wretchedness  with — the  Eosi- 
crucian  Fraternity. 


CHAPTER  IX. 

PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY. 

THE  immediate  result  of  the  "Fama"  and  "Confessio 
Fraternitatis  "  in  Germany  has  been  so  well  described  by 
Professor  Buhle  that  I  cannot  do  better  than  transcribe  this 
portion  of  his  work  as  it  is  interpreted  by  Thomas  De 
Quincey. 

"  The  sensation  which  was  produced  throughout  Germany 
...  is  sufficiently  evidenced  by  the  repeated  editions  ...  (of 
the  manifestoes)  which  appeared  between  1614  and  1617, 
but  still  more  by  the  prodigious  commotion  which  followed 
in  the  literary  world.  In  the  library  at  Gottingen  there  is 
a  body  of  letters  addressed  to  the  imaginary  order  of 
Father  Rosy  Cross,  from  1614  to  1617,  by  persons  offer- 
ing themselves  as  members.  These  letters  are  filled  with 
complimentary  expressions  and  testimonies  of  the  highest 
respect,  and  are  all  printed,  the  writers  alleging  that,  being 
unacquainted  with  the  address  of  the  society,  they  could 
not  send  them  through  any  other  than  a  public  channel. 
As  certificates  of  their  qualifications,  most  of  the  candidates 
have  enclosed  specimens  of  their  skill  in  alchemy  and  cab- 
balism.  Some  of  the  letters  are  signed  with  initials  only, 
or  with  fictitious  names,  but  assign  real  places  of  address. 
Many  other  literary  persons  there  were  at  that  day  who 
forbore  to  write  letters  to  the  society,  but  threw  out  small 
pamphlets  containing  their  opinions  of  the  Order,  and  of  its 


PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY.  247 

place  of  residence.  Each  successive  writer  pretended  to  be 
better  informed  on  that  point  than  all  his  predecessors. 
Quarrels  arose ;  partisans  started  up  on  all  sides ;  the 
uproar  and  confusion  became  indescribable  ;  cries  of  heresy 
and  atheism  resounded  from  every  corner  •  some  were  for 
calling  in  the  secular  power ;  and  the  more  coyly  the  in- 
visible society  retreated  from  the  public  advances  so  much 
the  more  eager  and  amorous  were  its  admirers,  and  so  much 
the  more  bloodthirsty  its  antagonists.  Meantime,  there 
were  some  who,  from  the  beginning,  had  escaped  the 
general  delusion,  and  there  were  many  who  had  gradually 
recovered  from  it.  It  was  remarked  that  of  the  many 
printed  letters  to  the  society,  though  courteously  and  often 
learnedly  written,  none  had  been  answered ;  and  all 
attempts  to  penetrate  the  darkness  in  which  the  order  was 
shrouded  by  its  unknown  memorialist  were  successfully 
baffled.  Hence  arose  a  suspicion  that  some  bad  designs 
lurked  under  the  ostensible  purposes  of  these  mysterious 
publications.  Many  vile  impostors  arose,  who  gave  them- 
selves out  for  members  of  the  Rosicrucian  order ;  and  upon 
the  credit  which  they  thus  obtained  for  a  season,  cheated 
numbers  of  their  money  by  alchemy,  or  of  their  health  by 
panaceas.  Three  in  particular  made  a  great  noise  at 
Watzlar,  at  JSTuremburg,  and  at  Augsburg;  all  were 
punished  by  the  magistracy — one  lost  his  ears  in  running 
the  gauntlet,  and  one  was  hanged.  At  this  crisis  stepped 
forward  a  powerful  writer,  who  attacked  the  supposed 
order  with  much  scorn  and  homely  good  sense.  This  was 
Andrew  Libau.  He  exposed  the  impracticability  of  the 
meditated  reformation,  the  incredibility  of  the  legend  of 
Father  Rosy  Cross,  and  the  hollowness  of  the  pretended 
sciences  which  they  professed.  He  pointed  the  attention 


248  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

of  governments  to  the  confusions  which  these  impostures 
were  producing,  and  predicted  from  them  a  renewal  of  the 
scenes  which  had  attended  the  fanaticism  of  the  Ana- 
baptists." 

Andreas  Libavius  was  born  at  Halle  in  Saxony  about  the 
year  1560.     He  was  appointed  professor  of  history  and 
poetry  at  Jena  in  1588,  practised  as  a  physician  at  Eotem- 
bourg  on  the  Tauber  from  1591  till  1605,  when  he  became 
rector  of  the  college  of  Casimir  at  Coburg  in  Franconia, 
where   he   died  in  1616.     He  was  the  first  writer  who 
mentioned  the  transfusion  of  blood  from  one  animal  to 
another,  and  the  property  of  oxide  of  gold  to  colour  glass 
red.     He  also  invented  a  chemical  preparation,  called  the 
liquor  of  Libavius,  "a  highly  concentrated  muriatic  acid, 
much  impregnated  with  tin,"  and  which  has  been  long  used 
in  laboratories.     He  has  been  falsely  represented  by  M. 
Hoefer  as  a  follower  of  Paracelsus,  but  appears  to  have 
believed  in  the  transmutation  of  metals,  and  in  the  medical 
virtues  of  various  auriferous  preparations.     He  is  considered 
to  rank  among  the  first  students  of  chemistry  who  pursued 
experimental    researches    upon    the    true   method.      His 
"Alchymia  Eecognita"  and  his  "History  of  Metals  "are 
among  the  best  practical  manuals  of  the  period.     Though 
seeking  the  Philosophick  Stone,  he  attached  no  credit  to 
the  Eosicrucian  manifestoes,  and  was  one  of  the  first  writers 
who  attacked  them,  in  two  Latin  folios  dated  1615,  and 
in  a  smaller  German  pamphlet  which  appeared  in  the  fol- 
lowing year.     The  first  of  these  works  contains  an  exhaus- 
tive criticism  of  the  Harmonico-Magical  Philosophy  of  the 
mysterious    Brotherhood.      It    is    entitled    "Exercitatio 
Paracelsica  nova  de  notandis  ex  scripto  Fraternitatis  de 
1  De  Quincey,  "  Rosicrucians  and  Freemasons,"  c.  ii. 


PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY.  249 

Eosea  Cruce,"  and  forms  part  of  a  larger  "  Examen  Philo- 
sophise Novas,  quse  veteri  abrogandae  Opponitur." 

Professor  Buhle  is  one  of  those  interesting  literary  cha- 
racters, by  no  means  uncommonly  met  with,  whose  luminous 
hypotheses  completely  transfigure  every  fact  which  comes 
within  the  range  of  their  radiation.  Few  persons  who  have 
taken  the  pains  to  labour  through  the  ponderous  folios  of 
Libavius  would  dream  of  terming  him  a  powerful  writer, 
and  personally  I  have  failed  to  discern  much  of  that 
"  homely  good  sense  "  which  manifested  itself  so  gratuitously 
before  the  discerning  eyes  of  the  acute  German  savant.  The 
criticisms,  on  the  contrary,  are  weak,  verbose,  and  tedious, 
and  the  investigations,  as  a  whole,  appear  to  have  little 
raison  d'etre.  It  may,  in  fact,  be  impartially  declared  that 
there  is  only  one  thing  more  barren  and  wearisome  than  the 
host  of  pamphlets,  elucidations,  apologies,  epistles,  and 
responses  written  on  the  Rosicrucian  side,  and  that  is  the 
hostile  criticism  of  the  opposing  party,  and  the  dead  level 
of  unprofitable  flatness  which  characterises  its  prosaic  com- 
monplace is  an  infliction  which  I  honestly  trust  will  be 
spared  to  all  my  readers. 

Master  Andreas  Libavius,  though  he  wrote  upon  Azoth, 
was  a  practical  thinker,  and  he  refused  to  contemplate  the 
projected  universal  reformation  through  the  magic  spec- 
tacles of  the  Rosicrucian.  He  had  not  read  Wordsworth, 
and  he  had  no  definite  opinions  as  to  "  the  light  that  never 
was  on  land  or  sea."  So  he  penned  what  Professor  Buhle 
might  call  a  searching  criticism  ;  he  was  right  in  so  far  as 
the  reformation  is  still  to  come,  but  in  these  days  we  have 
read  Wordsworth,  and  we  prefer  the  vague  poetry  of  Rosi- 
crucian aspirations  to  the  perditional  dulness  of  Master 
Libavius'  prose.  Still  we  respect  Professor  Buhle,  chiefly 


250  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

because  we  love  De  Quincey,  and  we  have  a  thin  streak  of 
kindly  feeling  for  his  alchemical  proUg^  so  we  recommend 
him  as  an  antidote  to  Mr  Hargrave  Jennings,  who  has 
doubtless  never  read  him,  and  seems  only  to  have  heard  by 
report  of  such  documents  as  the  Fame  and  Confession  of 
the  meritorious  order  of  the  Brethren  R.  C. 

Though  he  disbelieved  in  the  universal  reformation, 
Libavius  did  not  reject  the  signs  of  the  times.  "  No  one 
doubts  that  we  are  in  the  last  age  of  the  world,  by  reason 
of  the  signs  which  have  preceded  nearly  every  important 
event,  and  are  still  at  this  day  repeatedly  appearing."  He 
takes  exception  to  the  philosophical  peregrination  of  the 
high  illuminated  C.  R.  C.  in  Arabia,  because  it  was  super- 
fluous to  seek  magicians  in  the  east  when  they  abounded  at 
home.  Some  of  his  objections  are,  however,  sufficiently 
pertinent.  "  If  the  society  hath  been  ordained  and  com- 
missioned of  God,  it  ought  to  be  in  a  position  to  prove  its 
vocation  in  some  conclusive  manner."  Incidentally  he  de- 
nounces astrology.  "  We  have  heard  and  read  innumerable 
astrological  theories,  but  we  have  not  discovered  their 
rational  basis.  On  the  contrary,  we  are  daily  deceived  by 
lying  predictions."  With  regard  to  the  secrecy  of  the 
Order,  he  flings  at  it  the  following  text — Omnis  qui  male  agil, 
odit  lucem  et  non  venit  ad  lucem,  ne  arguantur  opera  ejus. 
Condemning  their  anonymous  mystery,  he  asks — "  Is  their 
danger  greater  than  Luther's,  threatened  by  the  proscrip- 
tion of  the  Pope  and  the  Ernperor  both  ?  "  Representing 
the  Rosicrucians  as  promising  a  new  Theologia,  Physica, 
and  Mathematica,  he  asks — "  What  manner]  of  new 
theology  is  this,  seeing  there  is  nothing  new  under  the  sun  1 
Again,  where  is  its  novelty,  if  it  be  that  of  the  primitive 
Church  ?  Is  it  of  the  Gentile,  Mahometan,  Jew,  Papist, 


PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY.  251 

Arian,  Anabaptist,  Lutheran,  or  disciple  of  Paracelsus  1 
Make  unto  yourselves  also  a  new  God,  with  a  new  heaven, 
and  beware  lest  you  are  plunged  into  the  old  perdition  ! 
On  our  part,  we  will  cling  to  the  antiquity  of  the  canonical 
Scriptures."  And  then  in  regard  to  the  new  physics,  "  If 
it  be  after  the  fashion  of  Parcelsus,  chew  the  cud  of  your 
own  reflections  in  silence,  and  slumber  placidly  in  your 
absurdity.  ...  If  ye  come  with  the  cabalistic  calculations 
concerning  the  fifty  gates  of  understanding,  scrutinising 
the  mysteriarcham  Dei,  take  care  that  ye  are  not  consumed 
by  the  fire  which  is  therein,  for  those  who  will  become 
searchers  of  majesty  shall  be  overwhelmed  with  glory." 

The  "  Analysis  Confessionis  Fraternitatis  de  Eosea  Cruce 
pro  admonitione  et  Instructione  eorum,  qui,  quia  judican- 
dum  sit  de  ista  nova  factione  scire  cupiant,"  extracts,  after 
the  author's  own  fashion,  the  thirty-seven  "  reasons  of  our 
purpose  and  intention  "  which  are  to  be  found  hidden  in  that 
Rosicrucian  manifesto,  and  criticises  the  Vice  accedendi, 
or  methods  of  approaching  the  Order,  which  are — I.  By  a 
written  petition.  II.  By  the  study  of  the  Scriptures  and 
their  interpretation  in  the  cabilistico-magical  manner  of  the 
Paracelsists.  III.  By  the  writings  and  precepts  of  Para- 
celsus. IV.  By  the  symbolical  characters  inscribed  on  the 
Macrocosmos. 

These  two  Latin  treatises  were  supplemented  by  a  less 
tedious  German  pamphlet,  which  appeared  at  Francfurt  in 
1616  under  the  title  of  "Well-wishing  objections  concerning 
the  Fame  and  Confession  of  the  Brotherhood  of  the  R.  C., 
and  their  universal  reformation  of  the  whole  world  before 
the  day  of  Judgment,  and  transformation  thereof  into  an 
Earthly  Paradise,  such  as  was  inhabited  by  Adam  before 
the  fall,  and  the  restitution  of  all  arts  and  wisdom  as 


252  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

possessed  by  Adam,  Enoch,  Salomon,  &c.  Written  with 
great  care,  by  desire  and  command  of  some  superior 
persons,  by  Andrew  Libavius."  It  claims  to  be  inspired 
by  a  spirit  of  friendly  criticism,  decides  that  the  Order  does 
exist,  advises  the  accomplishment  of  a  limited  and  private 
reformation,  leaving  the  universal  one  to  God,  as  the 
world  is  far  too  corrupt  for  improvement  before  the  judg- 
ment day,  and  that  a  pretension  so  large  will  never  by  any 
possibility  be  carried  out.  Though  posing  as  a  critic,  he 
advises  all  persons  to  join  the  Order,  because  there  is  much 
to  be  learned  and  much  wisdom  to  be  attained  by  so  doing. 
He  praises  their  sound  doctrine  in  matters  of  religion, 
particularly  the  denunciation  of  the  Pope  and  Mahomet, 
the  value  they  set  upon  the  Bible,  &c.  It  is  evident,  in 
fact,  that  in  spite  of  his  "  homely  good  sense  "  he  had 
radically  changed  his  ground.  The  treatise  is  divided  into 
forty-three  chapters,  and  among  the  subjects  discussed  are 
the  Spheric  Art,  the  Lapis  Philosophorum,  and  the  Magical 
Language. 

What  we  seek  as  vainly  in  the  most  authoritative 
Eosicrucian  apologists  as  in  their  critics,  is  any  additional 
information  concerning  the  society,  its  members,  or  its 
whereabouts.  Such  information  is  promised  frequently  on 
the  title-pages  of  the  innumerable  pamphlets  of  the  period, 
but  it  is  not  given,  and  the  proffered  proofs  of  the  existence 
of  the  Order  are  confined  to  abstract  considerations  devoid 
of  historical  value. 

Professor  Buhle  considers  that  the  attacks  of  Libavius 
joined  to  other  writings  "  of  the  same  tendency  "  might 
possibly  have  dispelled  the  delusion,  except  for  the  conduct 
of  Andreas,  whom  he  represents  as  doing  his  best  to 
increase  it  by  the  publication  of  other  documents,  and  for 


PROGRESS  OF  ROS1CRUCIANTSM  IN  GERMANY.  253 

that  of  the  Paracelsists.  "  With  frantic  eagerness  they  had 
sought  to  press  into  the  imaginary  order ;  but,  finding 
themselves  lamentably  repulsed  in  all  their  efforts,  at  length 
they  paused  ;  and,  turning  suddenly  round,  they  said  to  one 
another,  'What  need  to  court  this  perverse  order  any 
longer  ?  We  are  ourselves  Eosicrucians  as  to  all  the 
essential  marks  laid  down  in  the  three  books.  We  also  are 
holy  persons  of  great  knowledge ;  we  also  make  gold,  or 
shall  make  it ;  we  also,  no  doubt,  give  us  but  time,  shall 
reform  the  world :  external  ceremonies  are  nothing :  sub- 
stantially it  is  clear  that  we  are  the  Rosicrucian  Order.' 
Upon  this  they  went  on  in  numerous  books  and  pamphlets 
to  assert  that  they  were  the  identical  Order  instituted  by 
Father  Eosycross,  and  described  in  the  'Fama  Frater- 
nitatis.'  The  public  mind  was  now  perfectly  distracted  ; 
no  man  knew  what  to  think  ;  and  the  uproar  became 
greater  than  ever." 

Here  is  a  dramatic  situation  well  conceived  and  described  ; 
its  only  fault  is  the  very  slender  foundation  of  actual  fact 
on  which  it  appears  to  be  based.  I  have  failed  altogether 
to  discover  those  numerous  books  and  pamphlets  wherein 
the  Paracelsists  assert  that  they  are  to  all  intents  and 
purposes  identical  with  the  invisible  and  unapproachable 
Brotherhood.  Their  anxiety  to  be  admitted  into  its  ranks 
may  be  freely  granted,  but  it  is  remarkable  how  few  of  the 
pamphleteers  who  wrote  favourably  on  the  Rosicrucian 
mystery  made  any  claim  to  be  personally  connected  there- 
with. 

In  the  pages  which  follow  I  shall  give  a  brief  account, 
arranged  in  chronological  order,  of  the  most  important  and 
interesting  publications  that  appeared  in  elucidation  of  this 
mystery. 


254  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

A  work  of  considerable  interest  was  printed  in  1615,  under 
the  title  "  Echo  of  the  God-illuminated  Brotherhood  of  the 
Worthy  Order  R.  C.,  to  wit,  an  absolute  proof  that  not 
only  all  which  is  stated  in  the  '  Fama '  and  '  Confessio '  of 
the  R.  C.  Brotherhood  is  possible  and  true,  but  that  it  has 
been  known  already  for  nineteen  years  and  more  to  a  few 
God-fearing  people,  and  has  been  laid  down  by  them  in 
certain  secret  writings ;  as  it  has  all  been  stated  and  made 
public  in  an  excellent  magical  letter  and  pamphlet  by  the 
Worshipful  Brotherhood  R.  C.,  in  print  in  the  German 
language."  The  accredited  author  was  Julius  Sperber  of  An- 
holt,  Dessau.  This  work  was  printed  at  Dantzig  by  An- 
dreas Huenfeldts.  It  maintains  that  there  have  been  only 
a  few  human  beings  who  have  been  worthy  to  become 
recipients  of  the  wisdom  of  God,  the  reason  being  that  so 
few  have  sought  it  with  the  necessary  earnestness.  When 
Christ  was  on  the  earth  he  had  innumerable  listeners,  of 
whom  only  a  small  portion  could  discern  the  significance  of 
His  teachings.  It  was  for  this  cause  that  He  said  to  his 
disciples — "To  you  it  is  given  to  know  the  mysteries  of 
the  Kingdom  of  Heaven,  but  to  them  it  is  not  given." 
Peter,  James,  and  John  were  the  only  three  of  His  apostles 
to  whom  he  revealed  these  mysteries,  and  to  them  He 
showed  the  same  sight  that  had  been  vouchsafed  by  God  to 
Elias  and  Moses.  Only  those  who  renounce  the  world  and 
their  own  fleshly  lusts  can  become  worthy  to  know  such 
secrets.  Nobody  who  is  addicted  to  mundane  wisdom  can 
ever  attain  them,  for  the  wisdom  of  God  and  the  wisdom 
of  this  world  are  contradictory. 

The  preface  is  addressed  to  the  E.G.  Brotherhood.  It 
admonishes  the  members  to  persevere  in  the  way  they  have 
chosen,  and  to  get  possessed  of  the  secrets  of  God.  It 


PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY.  255 

praises  their  wisdom  and  knowledge,  but  says  that  much  of 
what  is  stated  in  the  "Fama"  and  "  Confessio  "  must  appear 
foolish  to  the  worldly  wise.  It  calls  upon  the  Brethren  to 
meet  together  in  the  name  of  the  Holy  Trinity,  and  to 
teach  the  true  light  to  the  world,  as  it  is  contained  in  the 
secret  meaning  of  Holy  Scripture  and  of  Nature.  Some 
curious  information,  not  always  relevant  to  the  main  object, 
is  scattered  throughout  the  volume.  The  second  preface 
mentions  a  certain  Petrus  Wirtzigh  of  Presslau  as  one  of 
the  greatest  and  wisest  men  of  his  time,  who,  being  by 
profession  a  medical  man,  studied  the  secret  arts  with  such 
zeal  that  he  became  master  of  many  wonderful  mysteries. 
He  was  the  author  of  many  large  unpublished  volumes  which 
the  writer  of  the  "  Echo,"  being  his  great  friend,  has  been 
allowed  to  dip  into,  and  he  avers  that  they  contain  much 
wisdom  and  curious  lore.  Another  wise  and  God-loving 
man  was  ^Egidius  Guttmann  in  Suaria,  who  wrote  a  book 
which  he  divided  into  twenty-four  volumes.  The  author 
of  the  "  Echo  "  compares  this  work,  having  regard  to  the 
wisdom  of  its  contents,  with  the  seventy  volumes  which 
God  dictated  by  His  angel  to  the  prophet. 

Like  other  writers  on  the  Eosicrucian  side,  the  author 
of  the  "  Echo "  deals  in  vague  generalities,  and  even  the 
Laws  of  the  Fraternity  which  he  publishes  are  worthless  as 
regards  information.  They  run  as  follows  : — 

1.  Love  your  neighbour. 

2.  Talk  not  badly  of  him,  neither  hold  him  in  contempt. 

3.  Be  faithful. 

4.  Be  modest  and  obedient. 

5.  Do  not  ridicule  the  secret  studies. 

6.  Keep  silent  about  what  you  learn  from  these  studies. 

7.  Share  your  fortune  with  your  fellow-creatures. 


256  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

According  to  this  apologist  of  the  secret  order,  "  Adam 
was  the  first  Eosicrucian  of  the  Old  Testament  and  Simeon 
the  last."  The  golden  chain  of  the  esoteric  tradition  was  not 
broken  by  Christ,  who  established  "  a  new  college  of  magic." 

In  1615,  Julianus  de  Campis  published  an  "  open  letter  or 
report,"  addressed  to  all  who  have  read  anything  concern- 
ing the  new  Brotherhood  of  E.  C.,  or  have  heard  anything 
of  the  position  of  this  matter.  It  accounts  for  the  Eosi- 
crucians  not  revealing  their  whereabouts,  "  and  not  answer- 
ing the  letters  addressed  to  them.  He  was  himself,"  he  said, 
"  a  member  of  the  Order  ;  but  in  all  his  travels  he  had  met 
but  three  other  members,  there  being  (as  he  presumed)  no 
more  persons  on  the  earth  worthy  of  being  entrusted  with 
its  mysteries."  It  is  needless  to  say  that  an  initiate  of  the 
Fraternity  would  be  accurately  acquainted  with  its  numeri- 
cal strength,  and  that  the  writer's  statement  on  this  point 
contradicts  the  "  Fama  Fraternitatis."  The  pamphlet  other- 
wise is  not  of  great  importance.  "  There  are  many  who 
run  for,  but  few  who  gain,  the  jewel.  Therefore  I,  Julianus 
de  Campis,  admonish  all  who  are  governed  by  a  fortunate 
disposition  not  to  be  made  obstinate  by  their  own  diffidence, 
nor  by  the  judgments  of  ignorant  people."  Many  great 
secrets  are  concealed  by  Nature,  and  those  who  study  them 
are  worthy  of  every  praise.  The  E.  C.  are  defended  against 
various  accusations,  and  the  theologians  who  attack  them 
are  reminded  that  the  questions  raised  are  without  their 
province,  because  they  are  theologi  and  not  theosophi.  The 
secret  art  of  the  E.  C.  is  declared  to  be  a  matter  of  fact, 
and  not  an  abstract  or  fanciful  thing;  and  the  profanum 
vulgus  are  assured  that  those  who  are  in  the  possession  of 
such  an  imperial  secret  can  dispense  with  the  praise  of  the 
world. 


PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIAN1SM  IN  GERMANY.  257 

The  "  Fama  Remissa  ad  Fratres  Roseae  Crucis,"  which  ap- 
peared in  1616,  is  to  a  great  extent  an  anonymous  pamphlet 
written  against  the  pretensions  and  ideas  of  the  Brethren, 
principally  denouncing  their   impracticahle   and  Utopian 
ambition  to  reform  the  whole  world.     It  complains  bitterly 
of  their  religious  opinions,  and  absolutely  declines  to  ac- 
knowledge them  as  a  good  society  until  they  openly  accept 
and  subscribe  to  the  Confession  of  Augsbourg.      A  brief 
Latin  appendix  incidentally  discusses  the  doctrine  of  tran- 
substantiation  and  to  reconcile  the  words  of  Jesus,  "  Hoc 
est  corpus  meum"  with  the  statement  of  this  Evangelist,  et 
ascendit  in  codum,  it  speculates  on  the  distance  which  inter- 
venes between  the  earth  and  the  Empyrean.     According  to 
Pencerus  the  eighth  sphere  is  distant  20081^  semidiameters 
of  the  earth,  and  the  distance,  according  to  the  "  Fama 
Remissa,"  from  the  Mount  of  Olives   to   the   Empyrean 
Heaven  is,  in  its  summa  tota,  17,266,001  milliaria  Germania  I 
The  following  year  beheld  the  publication  of  Brotoffer's 
curious  and  perverse  alchemical  interpretation  of  the  Uni- 
versal  Reformation,   another   edition   of  the   Rosicrucian 
manifestoes,   with  additions  by  Julianus  de  Campis  and 
Georg  Molthers,  and  two  works  from  the  pen  of  Michael 
Maier,  which  will  be  noticed  in  the  next  chapter.     Among 
the  curious  pamphlets  of  this  year  professing  to  treat  of  the 
mysterious  Order,  must  be  included  the   " '  Fraternitatis 
Rosatse  Crucis  Confessio  Recepta,'  to  wit :  A  short  and 
well-wishing  report  concerning  the  Confession  or  Faith  of 
the  Brethren  of  the  Rosy  Cross,  useful  to  all  readers  who 
not  only  consider  their  well-being  in  this  world,  but  their 
salvation  in  the  next.      Written   by  A.   0.  M    T.   W." 
This  appeared  in  defence  of  the  Order,  and  maintains  that 
it  is  a  good  and  useful  Society,  which  is  not  merely  in  pos- 


258  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

session  of  many  and  great  secrets,  but  is  righteous  in  the 
eyes  of  Almighty  God.  The  author  distinguishes  at  length 
between  the  different  ways  whereby  God  makes  Himself 
known,  and  declares  that  it  requires  much  study  and  care- 
ful research,  as  well  as  personal  sacrifice,  to  become  the 
possessor  of  transcendental  secrets,  but  that  anyone  can  do 
so  by  following  the  Divine  counsels.  He  concludes  with 
an  admonition  to  "  the  highly- wise  and  God-beloved  E.  C." 
to  press  on  with  their  sublime  work. 

About  this  time  a  somewhat  vicious  attack  was  made  on 
the  supposed  Society  by  a  writer  calling  himself  Fredericus 
G.  Menapius,  but  whose  real  name  was  Johann  Valentin 
Alberti,  and  who  is  associated  by  Buhle  with  Irenseus 
Agnostus  as  a  personal  friend  of  Andreas.  It  is  clear,  how- 
ever, from  the  evidence  of  all  the  pamphlets,  that  Agnostus 
and  Menapius  are  one  and  the  same  person.  "  Epitimia, 
F.  E.  C.,  to  wit:  The  final  manifestation  or  discovery 
and  defence  of  the  worthy  and  worshipful  Order  E.  C. 
Also  of  the  true  and  well-known  confession  addressed  to 
all  classes  of  literati  and  illustrious  persons  in  Europe. 
Written  by  command  of  the  above-mentioned  society  by 
Irenaeus  Agnostus  (Menapius)."  The  only  edition  of  this 
work  which  I  have  seen  is  dated  1619,  but  it  seems  to 
have  been  originally  published  about  two  years  previously. 
It  is  a  skit  written  against  the  E.  C.  by  Menapius,  but  pre- 
tends to  be  printed  and  published  by  the  command  of  the 
Order.  The  principal  purpose  of  the  pamphlet  is  to  prove 
that  the  Eosicrucian  Fraternity  was  founded  by  the  Jesuits 
for  the  purpose  of  the  secret  propaganda  of  their  doctrines 
in  opposition  to  the  Protestant  religion.  It  begins  with  a 
lengthy  and  pseudo-authoritative  laudation  of  the  writer, 
who  is  declared  to  be  an  eminently  learned  and  godly  man, 


PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY.  259 

having  saved  the  lives  of  a  number  of  persons  in  a  miracu- 
lous  manner,   and   disputed  victoriously   with  the   most 
learned  Catholic  divines.     It  proceeds  to  a  vigorous  de- 
nunciation of  the  Roman  Church  for  its  manifold  corrup- 
tions and  abuses,  citing  a  good  many  historical  examples  of 
princes  who  have  expressed  themselves  in  similar  terms, 
and  concluding  with  an  admonition  to  live  well  and  act 
uprightly.    Speaking  in  his  own  person,  the  author  addresses 
his  supposed  confreres  in  the  following  fashion  : — "  I  know 
not,  my  Brothers  of  the  R  C.,  what  manner  of  men  to  con- 
sider you.     T  have  troubled  my  mind  about  you  this  long 
time,  but  can  attain  to  no  conclusion,  because  all  that  you 
set  down  in  your  writings  has  been  so  long  familiar.    Could 
you  tell  me  anything  of  the  unicorn,  or  anything  more 
trustworthy  than  has  emanated  from  Andreas  Baccius,1  your 
productions  would  be  much  more  valuable.     A  number  of 
books  have  been  written  by  you,  or  have  appeared  in  your 
name,  but  they  teem  with  such  violent  contradictions  that 
I  should  imagine  you  were  yourselves  in  doubt  as  to  who 
or  what  you  are,  and  as  to  your  own  performances."   After- 
wards he  very  reasonably  declares  that  if  the  Rosicrucians 
are  the  depositaries  of  a  beneficial  knowledge,  they  ought 
to  proclaim  it  publicly  in  their  own  persons  and  not  in 
anonymous  pamphlets.     He  upbraids  them  as  magicians 
who  falsely  pretend  to  great  power,  says  that  he  has  travel- 
led in  many  countries  without  hearing  anything  concern- 
ing them,  and  concludes  by  expressing  his  conviction  that 

i  A  voluminous  writer  on  medicine,  philosophy,  natural  history, 
and  antiquities.  The  reference  is  to  a  treatise  entitled  "  De  Mono- 
cerote  seu  Unicornu  ejusque  viribus  et  usu  tractatus  per  A.  B.," 
afterwards  published  in  Italian,  Fiorenza,  1573, 4to.  Bacci  flourished 
at  the  end  of  the  sixteenth  century  ;  he  was  physician  to  Sixtus  V. , 
and  professor  of  botany  at  Rome  from  1557  to  ItiOO. 


260  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

their  supposed  wisdom  is  a  shallow  pretence,  and  that  they 
are  in  reality  ignorant  people. 

This  attack  was  presently  followed  by  a  tract  entitled 
"  I.  Menapius  Roseae  Crucis,  to  wit :  Objections  on  the  part 
of  the  unanimous  Brotherhood  against  the  obscure  and  un- 
known writer,  F.  G.  Menapius,  and  against  his  being 
classed  among  the  true  brethren.  II.  A  Citation  of  the 
same  person  to  our  final  Court  at  Schmejarien  contra 
Florentinus  de  Valentia.  III.  Finally,  a  convocation  of 
the  R.  C.  Fratres  to  the  same  invisible  place.  By  order  of 
the  worshipful  society.  Written  and  published  by  Theo- 
philus  Stihweighart.  1619."  Here  Menapius  presents  him- 
self under  another  name,  and  poses  as  his  own  opponent. 
The  pamphlet  contains  a  sort  of  legal  process,  with  citation, 
defence,  &c.  One  of  the  arguments  used  against  the  Rosi- 
crucian  Fraternity,  who  believed  in  the  manufacture  of  gold 
from  ignoble  metals,  is  as  follows  : — "  A  grown  up  man  is 
a  reasoning  being ;  so  is  a  young  boy.  A  cow  is  an  un- 
reasoning being  ;  so  is  a  calf.  But  this  does  not  prove  that 
the  cow  is  a  calf ;  and  the  transmutation  of  ignoble  metals 
into  gold  is  just  as  easy  as  to  transform  a  cow  into  a  calf, 
of  you  ask  why  there  is  so  little  gold,  it  is  for  the  same 
reason  that  there  are  so  few  cows,  namely,  in  the  one  case, 
because  the  young  calves  are  killed,  and  in  the  other,  be- 
cause the  ignoble  metals  are  not  left  long  enough  in  the 
earth,  but  are  extracted  by  avaricious  people."  Menapius 
is  the  most  entertaining  of  the  dull  race  of  Rosicrucian 
critics,  but  his  analogical  arguments  are  not  of  a  convincing 
nature.  He  concludes  with  an  admonition  to  all  and 
several — literati,  nobles,  merchants,  peasants,  &c. — to  live 
well  and  to  do  their  duty. 

Menapius,  as  I  have  said,  is  represented  by  Buhle  as  a 


PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY.  261 

friend  of  Andreas,  and  Andreas  is  accredited  with  two 
Rosicrucian  pamphlets  which  appeared  under  the  name  of 
"  Florentinus  de  Valentia."  The  authority  may  be  ques- 
tionable or  not,  but  the  reference  is  somewhat  suicidal  to 
the  Buhle-Andrean  hypothesis,  for  not  only  do  we  discover 
the  pseudonymous  author  attacking  his  personal  friend,  but 
hurrying  forward  full  of  zeal  to  the  defence  of  the  Rosicru- 
cian pretensions.  "  Rosa  Florescens  contra  F.  G.  Menapii 
Calumniis,  to  wit :  A  short  notice  and  refutation  of  the 
libels  published  on  June  3,  1617,  in  Latin,  and  on  July  15 
of  the  same  year  in  German  by  F.  G.  Menapius,  against  the 
Rosicrucian  Society.  Written  by  Florentinus  de  Valentia 
in  great  zeal."  It  is  a  reply  to  the  first  pamphlet  of 
Menapius,  the  Latin  original  of  which  I  have  been  unable 
to  trace.  It  begins  by  blaming  Menapius  for  his  extrava- 
gant self-laudation,  then  refers  to  the  attack  on  the  secresy 
of  the  Society,  and  on  the  anonymous  publication  of  their 
manifestoes.  It  declares  any  other  method  than  that  of 
secresy  to  be  contrary  to  the  will  of  God,  and  in  other 
ways  dangerous,  asserting  that  nobody  suffers  by  the  con- 
cealment of  their  names  and  places  of  abode.  The  writer 
further  accuses  Menapius  of  blind  hatred  of  the  Rosicru- 
cians,  when  he  compares  them  to  the  devils,  for  the  whole 
intent  of  the  Society  is  the  welfare  of  all  humanity.  He 
says  : — "  The  opinion  of  the  Fraternity  is  not  that  all  men 
should  be  made  or  become  equal,  because  the  majority  are 
too  hard  and  sinful,  but  that  the  few  who  love  God,  and 
live  to  please  Him,  should  be  like  Adam  in  Paradise."  The 
desire  of  the  Order  is  to  serve  God  as  faithfully  as  possible, 
to  discover  the  secrets  of  Nature,  and  to  use  them  in  diffus- 
ing a  true  belief  in  Christ,  and  for  the  glory  of  God. 
Therefore,  the  author  requests  Menapius  to  desist  from 


262  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

blaming  and  libelling  the  members  of  the  Fraternity,  but 
rather  to  turn  round  and  to  love  them,  because  they  are 
true  seekers  of  the  veritable  wisdom. 

In  a  Latin  appendix  to  a  tract  entitled  "  Eons  Gratise,"  by 
Irenaeus  Agnostus,  Johann  Valentin  Alberti,  alias  F.  G. 
Menapius,  alias  Theophilus  Schweighart,  alias  Ireriaeus 
Agnostus,  published  a  short  rejoinder  in  prose  and  verse  to 
the  defence  of  Valentia. 

"  Judicia  de  Statu  Fraternitatis  de  Eosea  Cruce  "  is  a 
melange  of  prose  and  verse,  with  addresses  ad  venerandos, 
doctissimos,  et  illuminatissimos,  viros  Dnn.  Fratres  iS.  Rosece 
Crucis  conjunctissimos,  and  as  the  judgment  is  professedly 
that  of  an  outsider  seeking  initiation,  it  does  not  throw  any 
light  upon  the  proceedings  of  the  Society.  It  is  crammed 
with  extravagant  adulation  of  the  pious,  learned,  and  illu- 
minated Brothers,  but  is  otherwise  not  inelegantly  written, 
and  has  apt  classical  quotations.  A  lofty  ambition  is  claimed 
by  the  aspirant  to  association,  who  avers  that  he  is  in 
search  of  no  common  and  metallic  gold,  but  that  Philoso- 
phical and  Spiritual  Treasure,  one  particle  of  which  is  suffi- 
cient to  transmute  and  perfectionise  the  soul,  and  conduct 
it  from  illumination  to  illumination.  This  is  that  veritable 
gold,  says  the  alchemical  enthusiast,  none  other  than  the 
first  and  all- containing  knowledge,  whereby 

Mens  ptira  et  nullo  mortali  pondera  pressa, 
Libera  terrenis  affectibus,  atria  cceli 
Scandit,  et  aetherea  cum  diis  versatur  in  aula. 

None  can  expect  to  attain  it  unless  he  shall  first  have 
expelled — 

A  sese  omne  nefas,  purgatus  crimine  ab  omni, 
Quippe  habitare  negat  fcedum  Sapientia  pectus, 
Impurasque  odit,  cum  sit  purissima,  mentes. 


PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY.  263 

Those  who  believe  in  the  existence  and  magical  endow- 
ments of  the  Rosicrucian  Brethren  will  hope  that  this 
promising  pupil  received  the  recompense  so  undoubtedly 
due  to  the  beauty  of  his  aspirations.  The  Latin  Epistle  is 
supplemented  by  a  post  datum,  which  refers  to  the  "  Nuptise 
Chymicae  "  as  containing  "  the  whole  chymical  artifice  enig- 
matically delineated." 

"  Responsum  ad  Fratres  Rosaceae  Crucis  Illustres  "  is  a 
printed  letter  addressed  to  the  Fraternity  in  the  year  1618, 
by  Hercules  Ovallodius,  Alsatus ;  Heermannus  Condesyanus ; 
and  Martinus  a  Casa  Cegdessa  Marsiliensis.  It  is  a  piece  of 
piteous  pleading  for  admission  into  the  ranks  of  the 
Brethren  by  three  writers  who  believe  themselves  to  "have 
fallen  upon  evil  times,  and  know  that  there  is  no  entrance 
into  the  mystic  temple  which  is  filled  with  the  glory  and 
power  of  God,  till  the  seven  last  plagues  have  been  poured 
out  upon  the  earth.  They  acknowledge  the  Viri  Fratres 
as  the  instruments  of  the  Divine  vengeance  in  the  consum- 
mation of  the  age.  Ipse  est  malleus  noster  et  arma,  vos  ipsius 
servi. 

A  curious  Rosicrucian  reverie,  entitled  "  F.  R.  C.  Fama  e 
scanzia  Redux,"  written  in  execrable  Latin,  and  printed  in  a 
style  corresponding  with  its  literary  merits,  appeared  Anno 
Christi  M.DC.XVIII.,  as  the  title  has  it.  It  professes  to  be  the 
trumpet  Jubilei  ultimi,  that  is,  presumably,  of  the  last  jubilee 
year  among  the  Jews,  and  bears  for  one  of  its  mottoes,  "One 
woe  hath  passed ;  behold,  there  come  yet  two  other  woes 
after  this  one."  It  is  precisely  one  of  those  mysterious  and 
problematical  productions  which  are  sometimes  supposed 
to  conceal  deep  secrets,  because  they  are  completely  unin- 
telligible and  barbarous.  It  professes  to  contain  a  Judicium 
de  Fraternitatis  R.  C.  Sigillo  et  Buccina  etfuturce  Reformations 


264  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Mysterie,  and  is  mystically  separated  into  seven  parts  or 
chapters,  each  terribly  intituled.  Thus  the  seventh  is  the 
"  voice  of  the  dove  speaking  concerning  the  jawbone  of  the 
ass,"  and  the  "  Judgment "  itself  is  averred  to  proceed  from 
a  similar  quarter  "  ex  asini  mandibula."  The  statement  is 
apparently  serious,  for  this  extraordinary  local  habitation 
is  parenthetically  explained  to  be  the  fans  vitce,  or  fount  of 
life.  The  whole  pamphlet  is  a  raving  chaos  of  scriptural 
quotations  concerning  the  Corner  Stone,  the  Keys  of  David, 
and  the  proximity  of  the  Eegnum  Dei.  It  concludes  with 
the  following  triumphant  admonition  to  the  reader  :— 

Quisquis  de  Rosese  dubitas  Crucis  ordine  Fratrum, 
Hoc  lege,  perlecto  carmine  certus  eris. 

It  is  needless  to  say  that  the  whole  pamphlet  does  not 
contain  a  single  reference  to  the  Kosicrucians. 

"  <p\tvffdiovps$af.  Hoc  est  Eedintegratio,"  addressed  to 
the  "Brotherhood  of  the  Rose-Cross,"  appeared  in  1619, 
with  the  motto,  Omnes  de  Saba  veniunt,  aurum  et  thus  de- 
ferentes,  et  laudem  Domini  annunciantes,  and  prefaced  by  the 
following  lines : — 

0  Rosese  Fratres  crucis,  O  pia  turba  sophorum, 

Vestro  praesentes  esse  favore  mihi. 
Fama  velut  cunctis  vos  respondere  paratos 

Exhibet ;  Ah  ne  sint  irrita  vota  precor. 
Fidus  amicus  ero,  fidos  quoque  gestit  amicos 

Mens  mea  de  musis  conciliare  novem. 
At,  si  scripta  fient  qusedam  minus  apta,  flabello 

Fratrum  non  Momi  sint  abigenda,  pio. 
Usus  enim  Famse  potiori  ex  parte  loquelis 

Fratres  propitios  hinc  mage  spero  mihi. 

This  little  pamphlet  compares  different  expressions  of 
opinions  by  opposed  parties,  and  concludes  that  any  person 
may  take  part  with  a  good  conscience  in  the  Brotherhood, 


PROGRESS  OF  ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY.  265 

and  without  prejudice  to  their  Christianly  convictions.  It 
cites  the  common  reproaches  cast  at  the  Order,  to  wit : 
that  they  are  enemies  of  all  lawful  government,  Jesuits,  or 
Calvinists,  also  the  suspicion  that  there  is  no  order  at  all, 
but  that  the  whole  business  is  a  farce,  written  for  some  un- 
defined purpose.  It  maintains  that  there  is  such  an  order, 
and  that  it  is  in  possession  of  great  secrets,  because  it  con- 
sists of  pre-eminently  learned  men.  Finally,  the  author 
exhorts  all  to  join  it. 

Among  the  acknowledged  works  of  Andreas  which  con- 
tain satirical  references  to  the  Rosicrucian  mystery  may  be 
mentioned  "  Menippus,  sive,  Dialogorum  Satyricorum  Cen- 
turia,  inanitatum  nostratium  speculum,"  1673,  8vo;  "  In- 
stitutio  Magica  pro  curiosis,"  and  "  Turns  Babel,  sive, 
Judicium  de  Fraternitatis  Roseau  crucis  Chaos."  Argentorati, 
1619,  12mo.  They  contain  absolutely  nothing  which  can  be 
tortured  into  a  confession  of  the  authorship  of  the  mani- 
festoes, nor  any  gleam  of  light  on  any  subject  connected 
with  the  Society.  They  express  simply  the  personal 
opinions  of  Andreas,  and  those  who  make  a  contrary  asser- 
tion have  read  their  own  hypotheses  between  the  lines  of 
their  author. 

By  the  year  1620,  the  subject  of  the  Rosicrucians  was 
completely  exhausted  in  Germany.  It  had  been  discussed 
from  all  standpoints  by  men  of  the  most  various  character, 
but,  in  the  absence  of  ascertainable  facts,  no  man  was  wiser; 
and  as  the  Rosicrucians,  supposing  them  to  have  existed, 
kept  silent  amidst  the  confusion  of  opinions  and  the  unpro- 
ductive clamour  which  they  had  created,  making  no  further 
sign,  the  interest  concerning  them  gradually  died  away. 
Seekers  for  the  magnum  opus,  and  persons  imbued  with  the 
ambition  to  reform  the  world,  looked  elsewhere  for  light 


266  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

and  assistance.  Pseudo-Kosicrucian  societies,  of  course, 
appeared  on  the  field,  and  gangs  of  miserable  tricksters  who 
traded  on  individual  credulity  by  the  power  of  the  magical 
name.  Buhle  cites  from  the  "  Occulta  Philosophia"  of 
Ludovicus  Conradus  Orvius,  the  unhappy  personal  experi- 
ence of  that  writer  concerning  such  a  society,  "  pretending 
to  deduce  themselves  from  Father  Kosy-Cross,  and  who 
were  settled  at  the  Hague  in  1 622.  After  swindling  him 
out  of  his  own  and  his  wife's  fortune,  amounting  to  eleven 
thousand  dollars,  they  kicked  him  out  of  the  order,  with 
the  assurance  that  they  would  murder  him  if  he  revealed 
their  secrets,  '  which  secrets,'  says  he,  '  I  have  faithfully 
kept,  and  for  the  same  reason  that  women  keep  secrets— 
viz.,  because  I  have  none  to  reveal ;  for  their  knavery  is  no 
secret.' " 

Vague  rumours  of  veritable  Kosicrucian  adepts  were 
occasionally  heard,  but  in  spite  of  their  boasted  powers,  in 
spite  of  their  projected  reformation  of  all  the  world,  and  in 
spite  of  the  seven  years'  strife  of  tongues  which  they  occa- 
sioned, they  had  no  influence  whatsoever  upon  the  thought 
of  their  age.  An  isolated  and  doubtful  transmutation  is 
occasionally  ascribed  to  them,  which  is  the  sum  total  of 
their  alchemical  achievements.  They  posed  principally  as 
a  healing  fraternity,  yet  their  influence  on  the  medical 
science  of  their  century  is  less  still  than  that  which  they 
exerted  upon  alchemy.  "  In  medicine,"  says  Figuier, 
"  that  art  which  they  were  pledged  to  practise  wherever  they 
wandered,  according  to  the  first  commandment  of  their 
master,  the  catalogue  of  their  triumphs  is  speedily  exhausted. 
We  have  already  seen  that  they  boasted  of  having  cured  the 
leprosy  in  an  English  count.  They  also  claimed  to  have 
restored  life  to  a  Spanish  King  after  he  had  been  dead  for 


PROGRESS  OF  ROS1CRUCIANISM  IN  GERMANY.  267 

six  hours.  Apart  from  these  two  cures,  the  second  of 
which  is  doubtless  a  miracle,  but  can  boast  only  of  their 
own  testimony,  their  whole  medical  history  consists  in 
vague  allegations  and  a  few  unimportant  facts,  as,  for  in- 
stance, that  which  Gabriel  Naude  cites  in  the  following 
terms : — 

"In  the  year  1615  a  certain  pilgrim  suddenly  appeared 
in  a  German  town,  and  assisted,  as  a  doctor,  at  the  prog- 
nostication of  the  death  of  a  woman  whom  he  had  helped 
by  some  of  his  remedies ;  he  assumed  to  be  proficient  in 
several  languages,  related  what  had  occurred  in  the  town 
during  his  sojourn  at  this  house;  in  a  word,  apart  from 
the  doctrine  in  which  he  shone  still  more,  he  was  in  every 
way  similar  to  that  Wandering  Jew  described  by  Cayot  in 
his  "  Histoire  Septenaire  " — moderate,  reserved,  carelessly 
clad,  never  willingly  remaining  a  long  time  in  any  one 
place,  and  still  less  desirous  to  be  taken  for  what  he  never- 
theless claimed  to  be,  the  third  brother  of  the  R.C.,  as  he 
testified  to  the  doctor  Moltherus,  who  could  not  be  so 
certainly  persuaded  to  give  credence  to  his  statements,  but 
has  presented  us  with  this  history,  leaving  our  judgment 
free  to  decide  if  it  could  establish  a  certain  proof  of  the 
existence  of  this  Company."1 

According  to  Sprengel,  a  true  Rosicrucian  had  only  to 
gaze  fixedly  on  a  person,  and  however  dangerous  his  dis- 
ease, he  was  instantaneously  healed  ;  the  Brethren  claimed 
to  cure  all  diseases,  without  the  help  of  drugs,  by  means 
of  imagination  and  faith.  But  the  matter  remains  at  this 
day  just  where  the  claim  originally  left  it,  wholly  unsup- 
ported by  fact. 

1  "L'Alchimie  et  les  Alchimistes, "  p.  301. 


CHAPTER  X. 

ROSICRUCIAN   APOLOGISTS:    MICHAEL  MAIER. 

THIS  celebrated  German  alchemist  was  born  at  Ruidsburg, 
in  Holstein,  about  the  year  1658.  In  his  youth,  says  the 
"Biographic  Universelle,"  he  applied  himself  to  the  study  of 
medicine,  and  establishing  himself  at  Rostoch,  he  practised 
that  art  with  so  much  success  that  he  became  physician  to 
the  Emperor  Rudolph  II.,  by  whom  he  was  ennobled  for 
his  services.  Some  adepts,  notwithstanding,  succeeded  in 
wiling  him  from  the  practical  path  he  had  followed  so 
long ;  il  se  passionna  pour  le  grand  ceuvre,  and  scoured  all 
Germany  to  hold  conferences  with  those  whom  he  thought  to 
be  in  possession  of  transcendent  secrets.  Another  account 
declares  that  he  sacrificed  his  health,  his  fortune,  and  his  time 
to  these  "  ruinous  absurdities."  According  to  Buhle,  he 
travelled  extensively,  particularly  to  England,  where  he 
made  the  acquaintance  of  Robert  Fludd.  He  finished  by 
accepting  the  post  of  physician  at  Magdebourg,  where  he 
died  in  1622. 

Michael  Maier  is  one  of  the  most  important  and  inter- 
esting persons  connected  with  the  Rosicrucian  controversy. 
He  was  the  first  to  transplant  it  into  England,  "and  as  he 
firmly  believed  in  the  existence  of  such  a  sect,  he  sought 
to  introduce  himself  to  its  notice  \  but  finding  this  impos- 
sible," says  Buhle,  "he  set  himself  to  establish  such  an 
order  by  his  own  efforts  ;  and  in  his  future  writings  he 


ROSTCRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  MICHAEL  MAIER.  269 

spoke  of  it  as  already  existing — going  so  far  even  as  to  pub- 
lish its  laws."  He  was  a  voluminous  and  ingenious  writer, 
and,  according  to  Langlet  du  Fresnoy,  all  his  treatises  were 
excessively  rare,  even  in  the  eighteenth  century.  "  They 
contain  much  curious  material,"  says  this  writer,  "  and  I 
am  astonished  that  the  German  booksellers,  who  publish 
innumerable  worthless  works,  have  not  condescended  to 
perceive  that  a  complete  collection  of  the  writings  of 
Michael  Maier  would  be  more  useful  and  command  a  larger 
sale  than  the  trash  with  which  they  overwhelm  scholars 
and  the  public  generally." 

This  task  still  remains  to  be  accomplished,  and  considera- 
tions of  space  will  prevent  me  from  even  supplying  a 
bibliography  of  these  singular  works.  The  most  curious 
of  all  is  "  Atalanta  Fugiens,"  which  abounds  with  quaint 
and  mystical  copperplate  engravings,  emblematically  reveal- 
ing the  most  unsearchable  secrets  of  Nature.  This  pro- 
duction, with  the  "  Tripus  Aureus,"  or  three  tracts  of  Basil 
Valentin,  Thomas  Norton,  and  Cremer,  the  Abbot  of 
Westminster,  all  of  which  were  unearthed  by  the  diligence 
of  Maier,  seem  to  have  appeared  before  he  had  immersed 
himself  in  the  insoluble  Eosicrucian  mystery.  The 
"  Silentium  Post  Clamores,"  however,  published  at  Franc- 
furt  in  1 6 1 7,  professes  to  account  not  only  for  the  speech  in 
season  uttered  by  the  Fraternity  in  its  priceless  manifestoes, 
but  for  the  silence  which  followed  when  it  declined  even  to 
reply  to  the  pamphlets  and  epistles  of  persons  seeking 
initiation.  The  author  asserts  that  from  very  ancient 
times  philosophical  colleges  have  existed  among  various 
nations  for  the  study  of  medicine  and  of  natural  secrets,  and 
that  the  discoveries  which  they  made  were  perpetuated  from 
generation  to  generation  by  the  initiation  of  new  members, 


270  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

whence  the  existence  of  a  similar  association  at  that  present 
time  was  no  subject  for  astonishment.     The  philosophical 
colleges  referred  to  are  those  of  old  Egypt,  whose  priests  in 
reality  were  alchemists,  "  seeing  that  Isis  and  Osiris  are 
sulphur  and  argmtum  vivum "  ;  of  the  Orphic  and  Eleusi- 
nian  mysteries,  of  the  Samothracian  Cabiri,  the  Magi  of 
Persia,    the    Brachmans    of    India,    the    Gymnosophists, 
Pythagoreans,  £c.     He  maintains  that  one  and  all  of  these 
were  instituted,  not  for  the  teaching  of  exoteric  doctrines, 
but  the  most  arcane  mysteries  of  Nature.     Afterwards  he 
argues  that  if  the  German  Fraternity  had  existed,  as  it  de- 
clares, for  so  many  years,  it  was  better  that  it  should  reveal 
itself,  than  be  concealed  for  ever  under  the  veil  of  silence, 
and  that  it  could  not  manifest  itself  otherwise  than  in  the 
"  Fama "    and    "  Confessio   Fraternitatis,"   which   contain 
nothing   contrary   to   reason,   nature,    experience,   or   the 
possibility  of  things.    Moreover,  the  Order  rightly  observes 
that  silence  which  Pythagoras  imposed  on  his  disciples,  and 
which  alone  can  preserve  the  mysteries  of  existence  from  the 
prostitution  of  the  vulgar.     The  contents  of  the  two  mani- 
festoes are  declared  to  be  true,  and  we  are  further  informed 
that  we  owe  a  great  debt  to  the  Order  for  their  experimental 
investigations,   and   for   their  discovery   of  the  universal 
Catholicon.    The  popular  objections  preferred  against  it  are 
disposed  of  in  different  chapters,  e.g.,  the  charges  of  necro- 
mancy and   superstition.     The  explicit  statement  of  the 
Society,  that  all  communications  addressed  to  it  should 
not  fail  to  reach   their   destination,   although  they  were 
unknown  and  anonymous,  proving  apparently  false,  was  a 
special  cause  of  grievance  ;  those  who  sought  health  and 
those  who  coveted  treasures  at  their  hand  were  equally  dis- 
appointed, and,  according  to  Michael  Maier,  appear  to  have 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  MICHAEL  MAIER.vji 

been  equally  enraged.  He  expostulates  with  them,  saying 
Non  omnis  ad  omnia  omnibus  horispamtus  est,  but  his  arguments 
as  a  whole  can  hardly  be  deemed  satisfactory.  Locorum 
absentia,  personarum  distantia,  &c.,  could  scarcely  prove  ob- 
stacles to  men  who  were  bound  by  no  considerations  of  space 
and  time,  and  readers  of  the  inmost  heart  would  have  dis- 
covered some  who  were  worthy  among  the  host  of  applicants. 
A  much  larger  work,  "  Symbola  Aurese  Mensae," 
published  in  the  same  year  as  the  "  Silentium  Post 
Clamores "  also  contains  some  references  to  the  "  College 
of  German  Philosophers  of  E.  C."  The  story  of  the  founder 
is  reprinted,  and  Apollo  with  the  twin  muses  are  repre- 
sented as  contributing  various  vexatious  metrical  enigmas 
for  the  benefit  of  those  enquirers  who  desired  to  be  directed 
to  the  local  habitation  of  the  Order.  Neither  of  these 
works  represents  their  author  as  personally  connected  with 
the  Rosicrucians,  nor  do  they  convey  any  information 
respecting  them.  The  same  must  be  said  of  "  Themis 
Aurea,  hoc  est,  De  Legibus  Fraternitatis  R.  C.  Tractatus," 
which  Maier  published  at  Francfurt  in  1618.  It  main- 
tains that  the  laws  in  question  are  good,  dilates  upon 
the  pre-eminent  dignity  of  the  healing  art,  declares  that 
all  vices  are  intolerable  in  physicians,  and  that  the  Rosi- 
crucians  are  free  from  all.  The  most  curious  and  important 
point  in  the  whole  "  Apologia"  is  that  Maier  declares  the 
"  Universal  Reformation  "  to  have  no  connection  with  the 
manifestoes  of  the  Society,  but  to  be  a  tract  translated  from 
the  Italian,  and  simply  bound  up  with  the  "Fama." 
Moreover,  he  earnestly  endeavours  to  free  the  Order  from 
the  imputation  that  it  desired  to  reform  the  world. 
Reformatio  omnium  hercesum  potius  ad  Deum,  quam  hominem 
spectat,  nee  a  Fratribus  affectatur.  But  whether  the  Com- 


272  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

munis  et  Generalis  Reformatio  had  any  connection  with  the 
Rosicrucians,  or  not,  it  is  evident  from  the  documents 
about  which  there  is  no  doubt  or  question,  and  particularly 
from  the  "  Fama  Fraternitatis,"  that  they  believed  a 
general  revolution  to  be  at  hand,  and  that  they  would 
be  concerned  therein. 

A  posthumous  tract  of  Michael  Maier  was  published  in 
1624  by  one  of  his  personal  friends,  who  explicitly  states 
that  he  is  ignorant  whether  the  departed  alchemist,  who  so 
warmly  and  gratuitously  defended  the  cause  of  the  Rosi- 
crucians, was  ever  received  into  their  number,  but 

that  it  is  certain  he  was  a  Brother  of  the  Christian  Re- 
ft 

ligion,  or  a  Brother  of  the  Kingdom  of  Christ.  This  state- 
ment may  simply  mean  that  he  was  a  Christian  and  a  man 
of  God,  or,  on  the  other  hand,  it  may  signify  that  he  was  a 
member  of  the  Christian  Fraternity  of  Andreas.  However 
this  may  be,  two  Latin  tracts,  being  translations  from  the 
German  made  by  the  same  friend  of  Maier,  follow  the 
posthumous  pamphlet  of  the  alchemist.  The  first  is  a 
colloquy  on  the  Society  by  personages  respectively 
called  Quirinus,  Polydorus,  Tyrosophus,  Promptutus,  and 
Politicus.  The  second  is  an  "  Echo  Colloquii "  by  Benedict 
Hilarion,  who  professes  to  write  "  Mandato  superiorum/' 
to  represent  the  order,  and  to  be  himself  a  Rosicrucian. 
There  are  two  mottoes  on  the  title  page  of  this  work — the 
one  is  per  angusta  ad  augusta,  the  other 

Augustis,  Augusta,  viis  petit  ardua  virtus, 
Non  datur,  ad  ccelum  currere  lata  via. 

The  writer  refers  in  a  kindly  manner  to  the  propagandist 
labours  of  Michael  Maier,  and  assures  the  anonymous  but 
illustrious  Tyrosophus  that  his  Rosicrucian  apologies  were 
not  written  in  vain,  and  hints  broadly  that  he  was  at 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  MICHAEL  MAIER.  273 

length  admitted  into  their  Order,  which  still  holds  out  the 
promise  of  initiation  to  others  when  the  proper  time  shall 
have  arrived.  This  publication  is  singularly  free  from  the 
sectarian  bitterness  of  the  first  manifestoes.  It  recognises 
that  all  have  erred,  including  Luther  himself,  and  seems 
animated  by  a  reasonable  and  conciliatory  spirit.  At  the 
end  there  are  published  some  " Declaratory  Canons"  of 
the  Order,  which  define  God  to  be  the  Eternal  Father,  in- 
corruptible fire,  and  everlasting  light,  discuss  the  genera- 
tion of  the  invisible  and  incomprehensible  Word  of  God, 
and  the  tetradic  manifestation  of  the  elements. 

In  none  of  these  works  does  the  statement  of  Professor 
Buhle,  concerning  the  foundation  of  a  Rosicrucian  society, 
and  the  publication  of  its  laws,  receive  a  particle  of  corro- 
boration.  The  other  works  of  Michael  Maier  are  of  a 
purely  alchemical  nature,  save  and  except  some  obscure 
pamphlets  which  are  not  in  the  Library  of  the  British 
Museum,  which  I  have  therefore  been  unable  to  consult, 
and  which  may  contain  the  information  in  question;  but 
from  my  knowledge  of  Professor  Buhle  and  his  romantic 
methods,  I  suspect  his  imagination  has  been  unconsciously 
at  work  on  some  doubtful  passages  in  the  writings  which 
have  already  been  noticed,  more  especially  as  the  personal 
but  anonymous  friend  who  edited  Maier's  posthumous  tract 
entitled  "  Ulysses,"  knew  nothing  apparently  of  such  a 
pseudo-association,  nor  is  it  likely  that  the  author  of  the 
"Echo  Colloquii"  would  hint  at  his  initiation  into  the 
genuine  order  if  Maier  had  instituted  a  rival  society,  shin- 
ing by  the  borrowed  lustre  of  its  name  and  its  symbols. 

However  this  may  be,  with  the  death  of  Michael  Maier 
the  Eosicrucians  disappear  from  the  literary  horizon  of 
Germany  till  the  year  1710,  when  a  writer,  calling  himself 

s 


274  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS2CRUCTANS. 

S.    R,   that    is,   Sincerus    Eenatus,    otherwise    Sigmund 
Eichter,  published  at  Breslau  his  "  Perfect  and  True  Pre- 
paration of  the  Philosophical  Stone,  according  to  the  Secret 
of  the  Brotherhoods  of  the  Golden  and  Eosy  Cross,"  to 
which  is  annexed  the  "  rules  of  the  above-mentioned  Order 
for  the  initiation  of  new  members "  and  their  enrolment 
among  the  Sons  of  the  Doctrine.     This  extraordinary  pub- 
lication was  followed,  in  1785-88,  by  the  "  Secret  Symbols 
of  the  Eosicrucians  of  the  Sixteenth  and  Seventeenth  Cen- 
turies," which,  though  published  at  Altona,  seem  to  have 
emanated  from  the  same  source.     The  latter  work  is  also 
of  an  alchemical  nature,  and  no  information  of  a  historical 
kind  is  to  be  found  in  either.    I  shall  conclude  this  account 
of  the  results  of  the  Eosicrucian  manifestoes  in  Germany 
with  the 

Laws  of  the  Brotherhood,  as  published  by  Sincerus  Rmatus. 

It  is  certain,  says  Semler,  that  the  long  series  of  regula- 
tions enumerated  by  this  writer  were  not  adopted  before 
1622,  for  Montanus  (Ludov.  Conr.  von  Berger),  who  was 
supposed  to  have  been  expelled  from  the  Order  in  that 
year,  was  not  acquainted  with  them. 

I.  The  brotherhood  shall  not  consist  of  more  than  sixty- 
three  members. 

II.  The  initiation  of  Catholics  shall  be  allowed,  and  one 
member  is  prohibited  to  question  another  about  his  belief. 

III.  The  ten  years'  office  of  the  Eosicrucian  imperator 
shall  be  abolished,  and  he  shall  be  elected  for  life. 

IV.  The  imperator  shall  keep  the  address  of  every  mem- 
ber on  his  list,  to  enable  them  to  help  each  other  in  case  of 
necessity.     A  list  of  all  names  and  birthplaces  shall  like- 
wise be  kept.     The  eldest  brother  shall  always  be  impera- 


ROSICRUC1AN  APOLOGISTS:  MICHAEL  MAIER.  275 

tor.     Two  houses  shall  be  erected  at  Nurenberg  and  An- 
cona  for  the  periodical  conventions. 

V.  If  two  or  three  brethren  meet  together,  they  shall 
not  be  empowered  to  elect  a  new  member  without  the  per- 
mission  of   the   imperator.     Any  such   election   shall   be 
void. 

VI.  The  young  apprentice  or  brother  shall  be  obedient 
unto  death  to  his  master. 

VII.  The  brothers  shall  not  eat  together  except  on  Sun- 
days, but  if  they  work  together  they  shall  be  allowed  to 
live,  eat,  and  drink  in  common. 

VIII.  It  is  prohibited  for  a  father  to  elect  his  son  or 
brother,  unless  he  shall  have  proved  him  well.     It  is  better 
to  elect  a  stranger  so  as  to  prevent  the  Art  becoming 
hereditary. 

IX.  Although  two   or   three   of  the  brethren   may  be 
gathered  together,  they  shall  not  permit  anyone,  whomso- 
ever it  may  be,  to  make  his  profession  to  the  Order  unless 
he  shall  have  previously  taken  part  in  the  Practice,  and 
has  had  full  experience  of  all  its  workings,  and  has,  more- 
over, an  earnest  desire  to  acquire  the  Art. 

X.  When  one  of  the  brethren  intends  to  make  an  heir, 
such  an  one  shall  confess  in  one  of  the  churches  built  at 
our  expense,  and  afterwards  shall  remain  about  two  years 
as  an  apprentice.     During  this  probation  he  shall  be  made 
known  to  the  Congregation,  and  the  Imperator  shall  be 
informed  of  his  name,  country,  profession,  and  origin,  to 
enable  him  to  despatch  two  or  three  members  at  the  proper 
time  with  his  seal  to  make  the  apprentice  a  brother. 

XI.  When  the  brethren  meet  they  shall  salute  each  other 
in  the  following  manner : — The  first  shall  say,  Ave  Prater  ! 
The   second   shall  answer,  fiosece  et  Aurece.      Whereupon 


276  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

the  first  shall  conclude  with  Crucis.  After  they  have 
thus  discovered  their  position,  they  shall  say  one  to 
another,  Benedidus  Dominus  Deus  noster  qui  dedit  nobis 
signum,  and  shall  also  uncover  their  seals,  because  if  the 
name  can  be  falsified  the  seal  cannot. 

XII.  It  is  commanded  that  every  brother  shall  set  to 
work  after  he  has  been  accepted  in  our  large  houses,  and 
has  been  endowed  with  the  Stone  (he  receives  always  a 
sufficient  portion  to  ensure  his  life  for  the  space  of  sixty 
years).     Before  beginning  he  shall  recommend  himself  to 
God,  pledging  himself  not  to  use  his  secret  Art  to  offend 
Him,  to  destroy  or  corrupt  the  empire,  to  become  a  tyrant 
through  ambition  or  other  causes,  but  always  to  appear 
ignorant,  invariably  asserting  that  the  existence  of  such 
secret  arts  is  only  proclaimed  by  charlatans. 

XIII.  It  is  prohibited  to  make  extracts  from  the  secret 
writings,  or  to  have  them  printed,  without  permission  from 
the  Congregation ;  also  to  sign  them  with  the  names  or 
characters  of  any  brother.     Likewise,  it  is  prohibited  to 
print  anything  against  the  Art. 

XIV.  The  brethren  shall  only  be  allowed  to  discourse  of 
the  secret  Art  in  a  well-closed  room. 

XV.  It  is  permitted  for  one  brother  to  bestow  the  Stone 
freely  upon  another,  for  it  shall  not  be  said  that  this  gift 
of  God  can  be  bought  with  a  price. 

XVI.  It  is  not  permissible  to  kneel  before  any  one,  under 
any  circumstances,  unless  that  person  be  a  member  of  the 
Order. 

XVII.  The  brethren  shall  neither  talk  much  nor  marry. 
Yet  it  shall  be  lawful  for  a  member  to  take  a  wife  if  he 
very  much  desire  it,  but  he  shall  live  with  her  in  a  philoso- 
phical mind.     He  shall  not  allow  his  wife  to  practise  over- 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  MICHAEL  MATER.  277 

much  with  the  young  brethren.  With  the  old  members 
she  may  be  permitted  to  practise,  and  he  shall  value  the 
honour  of  his  children  as  his  own. 

XVIII.  The  brethren  shall  refrain   from    stirring    up 
hatred  and  discord  among  men.     They  shall  not  discourse 
of  the  soul,  whether  in  human  beings,  animals,  or  plants, 
nor  of  any  other  subject  which,  however  natural  to  them- 
selves, may  appear  miraculous  to  the  common  understand- 
ing.    Such  discourse  can  easily  lead  to  their  discovery,  as 
occurred  at  Rome  in  the  year  1620.     But  if  the  brethren 
be  alone  they  may  speak  of  these  secret  things. 

XIX.  It  is  forbidden  to  give  any  portion  of  the  Stone  to 
a  woman   in   labour,  as   she   would   be   brought  to   bed 
prematurely. 

XX.  The  Stone  shall  not  be  used  at  the  chase. 

XXI.  No  person  having  the  Stone  in  his  possession  shall 
ask  a  favour  of  any  one. 

XXII.  It  is  not  allowable  to  manufacture  pearls  or  other 
precious  stones  larger  than  the  natural  size. 

XXIII.  It  is  forbidden  (under  penalty  of  punishment  in 
one  of  our  large  houses)  that  anyone  shall  make  public  the 
sacred  and  secret  matter,  or  any  manipulation,  coagulation, 
or  solution  thereof. 

XXIV.  Because  it  may  happen  that  several  brethren 
are   present   together  in   the   same   town,   it   is   advised, 
but  not  commanded,  that  on  Whitsuntideday  any  brother 
shall  go  to  that  end  of  the  town  which  is  situated  towards 
sunrise  and  shall  hang  up  a  green  cross  if  he  be  a  Eosicru- 
cian,  and  a  red  one  if  he  be  a  brother  of  the  Golden  Cross. 
Afterwards,  such  a  brother  shall  tarry  in  the  vicinity  till 
sunset,  to  see  if  another  brother  shall  come  and  hang  up 
his  cross  also,  when  they  shall  salute  after  the  usual  man 


278  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

ner,  make  themselves  mutually  acquainted,  and  subsequently 
inform  the  imperator  of  their  meeting. 

XXV.  The  imperator  shall  every  ten  years  change  his 
abode,  name,  and  surname.     Should  he  think  it  needful 
he  may  do  so  at  shorter  periods,  the  brethren  to  be  in- 
formed with  all  possible  secresy. 

XXVI.  It  is  commanded  that  each  brother,  after  his  ini- 
tiation into  the  Order,  shall  change  his  name  and  surname, 
and  alter  his  years  with  the  Stone.     Likewise,  should  he 
travel  from  one  country  to  another,  he  shall  change  his 
name  to  prevent  recognition. 

XXVII.  No  brother  shall  remain  longer  than  ten  years 
out  of  his  own  country,  and    whenever  he  departs   into 
another  he  shall  give  notice  of  his  destination,  and  of  the 
name  he  has  adopted. 

XXVIII.  No  brother  shall  begin  to  work  till  he  has  been 
one  year  in  the  town  where  he  is  residing,  and  has  made 
the  acquaintance  of  its  inhabitants.     He  shall  have  no  ac- 
quaintance with  the  professores  ignorantes. 

XXIX.  No  brother  shall  dare  to  reveal  his  treasures, 
either  of  gold  or  silver,  to  any  person  whomsoever  ;  he 
shall  be  particularly  careful  with   members    of  religious 
societies,  two  of  our  brethren  having  been  lost,  anno  1641, 
thereby.     No  member  of  any  such  society  shall  be  accepted 
as  a  brother  upon  any  pretence  whatever. 

XXX.  While  working,  the  brethren  shall  select  persons 
of  years  as  servants  in  preference  to  the  young. 

XXXI.  When  the  brethren  wish  to  renew  themselves, 
they  must,  in  the  first  place,  travel  through  another  king- 
dom, and   after  their  renovation    is    accomplished,  must 
remain  absent  from  their  former  abode. 

XXXII.  When  brethren  dine  together,  the  host,  in  ac- 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  MICHAEL  MAIER.  279 

cordance  with  the  conditions  already  laid  down,  shall  en- 
deavour to  instruct  his  guests  as  much  as  possible. 

XXXIII.  The  brethren  shall  assemble  in  our  great  houses 
as  frequently  as  possible,  and  shall  communicate  one  to 
another  the  name  and  abode  of  the  imperator. 

XXXIV.  The  brethren  in  their  travels  shall  have  no 
connection  nor  conversation  with  women,  but  shall  choose 
one  or  two  friends,  generally  not  of  the  Order. 

XXXV.  When  the  brethren  intend  to  leave  any  place, 
they  shall  divulge  their  destination  to  no  one,  neither  shall 
they  sell  anything  which  they  cannot  carry  away,  but  shall 
direct  their  landlord  to  divide  it  among  the  poor,  if  they  do 
not  return  in  six  weeks. 

XXXVI.  A  brother  who  is  travelling  shall  carry  nothing 
in  oil,  but  only  in  the  form  of  powder  of  the  first  projection, 
which  shall  be  enclosed  in  a  metallic  box  having  a  metal 
stopper. 

XXXVII.  No  brother  should  carry  any  written  descrip- 
tion of  the  Art  about  him,  but  should  he  do  so,  it  must  be 
written  in  an  enigmatical  manner. 

XXXVIII.  Brethren  who  travel,  or  take  any  active  part 
in  the  world,  shall  not  eat  if  invited  by  any  man  to  his 
table  unless  their  host  has  first  tasted  the  food.     If  this  be 
not  possible,  they  shall  take  in  the  morning,  before  leaving 
home,  one  grain  of  our  medicine  in  the  sixth  projection, 
after  which  they  can  eat  without  fear,  but  both  in  eating 
and  drinking  they  shall  be  moderate. 

XXXIX.  No  brother  shall  give  the  Stone  in  the  sixth 
projection  to  strangers,  but  only  to  sick  brethren. 

XL.  If  a  brother,  who  is  at  work  with  anyone,  be  ques- 
tioned as  to  his  position,  he  shall  say  that  he  is  a  novice 
and  very  ignorant. 


280  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

XLI.  Should  a  brother  desire  to  work,  he  shall  only  em- 
ploy an  apprentice  in  default  of  securing  the  help  of  a 
brother,  and  shall  be  careful  that  such  an  apprentice  is  not 
present  at  all  his  operations. 

XLII.  No  married  man  shall  be  eligible  for  initiation  as 
a  brother,  and  in  case  any  brother  seeks  to  appoint  an  heir, 
he  shall  choose  some  one  unencumbered  by  many  friends. 
If  he  have  friends,  he  must  take  a  special  oath  to  com- 
municate the  secrets  to  none,  under  penalty  of  punishment 
by  the  imperator. 

XLIII.  The  brethren  may  take  as  an  apprentice  anyone 
they  have  chosen  for  their  heir,  provided  he  be  ten  years 
old.  Let  the  person  make  profession.  When  the  permis- 
sion of  the  imperator  is  obtained,  whereby  anybody  is  really 
accepted  as  a  member,  he  can  be  constituted  heir. 

XLIV.  It  is  commanded  that  a  brother  who  by  any 
accident  has  been  discovered  by  any  prince,  shall  sooner  die 
than  initiate  him  into  the  secret ;  and  all  the  other  brethren, 
including  the  imperator,  shall  be  obliged  to  venture  their 
life  for  his  liberation.  If,  by  misfortune,  the  prince  remain 
obstinate,  and  the  brother  dies  to  preserve  the  secret,  he 
shall  be  declared  a  martyr,  a  relative  shall  be  received  in 
his  place,  and  a  monument  with  secret  inscriptions  shall  be 
erected  in  his  honour. 

XLV.  It  is  commanded  that  a  new  brother  can  only  be 
received  into  the  Order  in  one  of  the  churches  built  at  our 
expense,  and  in  the  presence  of  six  brethren.  It  is  neces- 
sary to  instruct  him  for  three  months,  and  to  provide  him 
with  all  things  needful  Afterwards  he  must  receive  the 
sign  of  Peace,  a  palm-branch,  and  three  kisses,  with  the 
words — "Dear  brother,  we  command  you  to  be  silent." 
After  this,  he  must  kneel  before  the  imperator  in  a  special 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  MICHAEL  MAIER.  281 

dress,  with  an  assistant  on  either  side,  the  one  being  his 
magister,  and  the  other  a  brother.  He  shall  then  say : — 
"I,  N.  N.,  swear  by  the  eternal  and  living  God  not  to  make 
known  the  secret  which  has  been  communicated  to  me 
(here  he  uplifts  two  fingers l)  to  any  human  being,  but  to 
preserve  it  in  concealment  under  the  natural  seal  all  the 
days  of  my  life ;  likewise  to  keep  secret  all  things  connected 
therewith  as  far  as  they  may  be  made  known  to  me ;  likewise 
to  discover  nothing  concerning  the  position  of  our  brother- 
hood, neither  the  abode,  name,  or  surname  of  our  imperator, 
nor  to  shew  the  Stone  to  anyone ;  all  which  I  promise  to 
preserve  eternally  in  silence,  by  peril  of  my  life,  as  God 
and  His  Word  may  help  me." 

Afterwards  his  magister  cuts  seven  tufts  of  hair  from  his 
head  and  seals  them  up  in  seven  papers,  writing  on  each 
the  name  and  surname  of  the  new  brother,  and  giving  them 
to  the  imperator  to  keep.  The  next  day  the  brethren  pro- 
ceed to  the  residence  of  the  new  brother,  and  eat  therein 
without  speaking  or  saluting  one  another.  When  they  go 
away,  however,  they  must  say,  "Prater  Aurece  (vel  Rosece) 
Crucis  Dens  sit  tecum  cum  perpetuo  silentio  Deo  promisso  et 
nostrce  sanctcv  congregation^'  This  is  done  three  days-  in 
succession. 

XLVI.  When  these  three  days  are  passed,  they  shall 
give  some  gifts  to  the  poor,  according  to  their  intention 
and  discretion. 

XL VII.  It  is  forbidden  to  tarry  in  our  houses  longer 
than  two  months  together. 

XLVIII.  After  a  certain  time  the  brethren  shall  be  on  a 
more  familiar  footing  with  the  new  brother,  and  shall  in- 
struct him  as  much  as  possible. 

1  See  ''The  Mysteries  of  Magic,"  pp.  324,  325. 


282  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


XLIX.  No  brother  need  perform  more  than  three  pro- 
jections while  he  stays  in  our  large  house,  because  there  are 
certain  operations  which  belong  to  the  magisters. 

L.  The  brethren  shall  be  called,  in  their  conversation 
with  each  other,  by  the  name  they  received  at  their 
reception. 

LI.  In  presence  of  strangers  they  shall  be  called  by  their 
ordinary  names. 

LII.  The  new  brother  shall  invariably  receive  the  name 
of  the  brother  then  last  deceased ;  and  all  the  brethren 
shall  be  obedient  to  these  rules  when  they  have  been  ac- 
cepted by  the^Order,  and  have  taken  the  oath  of  fidelity  in 
the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus  Christus. 


CHAPTER  XI. 

ROSICRUCIAN   APOLOGISTS:   ROBERT  FLUDD. 

THE  central  figure  of  Eosicrucian  literature,  towering  as  an 
intellectual  giant  above  the  crowd  of  souffleurs,  theosophists, 
and  charlatanic  professors  of  the  magnum  opus,  who, 
directly  or  otherwise,  were  connected  with  the  mysterious 
Brotherhood,  is  Robertus  de  Fluctibus,  the  great  English 
mystical  philosopher  of  the  seventeenth  century,  a  man  of 
immense  erudition,  of  exalted  mind,  and,  to  judge  by  his 
writings,  of  extreme  personal  sanctity.  Ennemoser  de- 
scribes him  as  one  of  the  most  distinguished  disciples  of 
Paracelsus,  but  refuses  to  number  him  with  "  those  conse- 
crated theosophists  who  draw  all  wisdom  from  the  fountain 
of  eternal  light."  He  does  not  state  his  reasons  for  this 
depreciatory  judgment,  and  the  brief  and  inadequate  notice 
which  he  gives  of  Fludd's  system  displays  such  a  cursory 
acquaintance  with  the  works  in  which  it  is  developed,  that 
it  is  doubtful  whether  he  had  taken  pains  to  understand  his 
author.  I  should  rank  the  Kentish  mystic  second  to  none 
among  the  disciples  of  the  "  divine  "  Theophrastus,  while 
in  the  profundity  and  extent  of  his  learning,  there  can  be 
no  question  that  he  far  surpassed  his  master,  who  is  said  to 
have  known  little  but  to  have  divined  almost  everything, 
and  who  is,  therefore,  called  divinus,  in  the  narrower  sense 
of  that  now  much  abused  term. 


284  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Robert  Fludd  was  born  at  Milgate  House,1  in  the  parish 
of  Bersted,  Kent,  during  the  year  1574.  By  his  mother's 
side  he  was  descended  from  the  ancient  family  of  Andros 
of  Taunton  in  Somerset.  His  father,  Thomas  Fludd,  was  a 
representative  of  a  Shropshire  stock,  and  successively 
occupied  several  high  positions.  He  was  victualler  of 
Bewick,  and  then  of  JSTewhaven  in  France ;  afterwards  he 
was  made  Receiver  of  Kent,  Sussex,  and  Surrey,  and  being 
appointed  treasurer  of  the  army  sent  under  Lord 
Willoughby  to  Henry  IV.  of  France,  "he  behaved  so  honour- 
ably that  he  was  knighted,  and  on  his  return  to  England 
was  made  treasurer  of  all  her  Majesty's  forces  in  the  Low 
Countries." :  This  was  in  the  reign  of  Queen  Elizabeth ;  he 
was  constantly  a  justice  of  the  peace  where  he  resided,  and 
was  also  treasurer  of  the  Cinque  ports.  "  He  bore  for  his 
arms — vert,  a  chevron  between  three  wolves'  heads  erased, 
argent,  which  coat,  with  his  quarterings,  was  confirmed  to 
him  by  Robert  Cook,  Clar.,  Nov.  10,  1572."3 

I  have  succeeded  in  compiling  from  various  sources  the 
following  scanty  genealogy  of  the  Fludd  family  :— 

1  "  The  seat  of  Milgat  was  formerly  esteemed  a  manor.  It  was 
anciently  possessed  by  the  family  of  Coloigne,  one  of  whom,  Robert 
de  Coloigne,  died  feifed  of  it  in  the  35th  year  of  Edward  III.  In  pro- 
cess of  time  his  descendants  came  to  be  called  Coluney,  one  of  whom, 
Thomas  Coluney,  as  appears  by  an  old  survey  of  Bersted,  possessed 
it  in  the  14th  year  of  Edward  IV.  In  the  beginning  of  the  reign 
of  Henry  VII.  it  was  become  the  property  of  the  family  of  Stone- 
house,  whose  ancient  seat  was  at  Hazelwood,  Boughton  Malherbe 
(Philpot,  p.  68).  Robert  Stonehouse  was  of  Bersted,  Esquire,  at 
the  latter  end  of  Henry  VIII.  His  son  George,  at  the  beginning  of 
Queen  Elizabeth's  reign,  alienated  this  seat  to  Thomas  Fludd, 
Esquire,  afterwards  knighted,  and  who  considerably  improved  and 
augmented  it. "  One  corner  of  this  edifice  is  still  said  to  remain  built 
in  the  manor-house  erected  on  its  site  when  the  old  house  fell  into 
ruins. — Hasted,  "History  of  Kent,"  vol.  ii.,  pp.  486,  487. 

-  Hasted's  "History  of  Kent,"  vol.  ii.,  p.  486. 

;:  "  Visitation  of  County  of  Kent,  ir>74  and  1619." 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  ROBERT  FLUDD.   285 


o 

rd      O 


CO 

a 


5  2  2 

-53  .£143 

o  * 


<U 

$£* 

"T3  »O  -+3 


-fa 


i- 
J2 

•* 

.43"  -H  t-  8  9 


"rQ     Or^     fl 

O  ,J2        «S 


.2  a 


'S  o    . 

_g«8 

?  r?  S 


< 

,« 


a    . 


ill 

^Sl 
if  w  s 


*M 

PQ  o 


O  <N 


-I 

^1 

H 


286  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

According  to   this   genealogy,    Robert   Fludd   was   the 
youngest  of  five  sons.     He  was  entered  of  St  John's  College 
in  the  year  1591,  at  the  age  of  seventeen.     Having  gradu- 
ated both  in  arts  and  medicine,  he  appears  to  have  travelled 
extensively,  for  the  space  of  six  years,  in  France,  Germany, 
Italy,  and  Spain.     On  his  return  to  England,  he  was  made 
a  member  of  the  London  College  of  Physicians,  and  took 
his  degree  of  Master  in  Arts  in  the  year  1605.     His  first 
published  work  appeared  in  1616,  about  which  time  he  was 
visited  by  Michael  Maier,  by  whom  he  was  probably  ac- 
quainted with  the  Rosicrucian  controversy,  and  with  whom 
he  corresponded  after  the  renowned  German  alchemist  had 
returned  to  his  own  country.     Fludd  appears  to  have  re- 
sided chiefly  in  London,  then  as  now  the  great  intellectual 
centre  of  England.     He  had  a  house  in  Fenchurch  Street, 
according  to  Fuller,*  and  another  in  Coleman  Street,  where 
he  died  in  the  year  1637,  on  the  8th  day  of  September. 
He  was  buried  in  the  chancel  of  Bersted  Church,  under  a 
tomb  which  he  had  previously  erected — "  An  oblong  square 
of  dark,  slate- coloured  marble,  occupying  a  large  space  of 
the  chancel  wall  on  the  left  as  you  stand  before  the  altar, 
looking  up  the  body  of  the  small  church  towards  the  door. 
There  is  a  seated  half-length  figure  of  Fludd,  with  his  hand 
on  a  book,  as  if  just  raising  his  head  from  reading  to  look 
at  you.     Upon  the  monument  are  two  marble  books  in- 
scribed    Misterium    Cabalisticum    and    Philosophia    Sacra. 
There  were  originally  eight  books.     The  inscription  to  his 
memory  is  as  follows  : — 

"  'VIII.  Die  Mensis  VII.  A°  Dm,  M.D.C.XXXVII.    0  dori- 
bus  vrua  vaporat  crypta  tegit  cineres  nee  speciosa  tvos  ovod 
mortale  minvs  tibi.     Te  committimus  vnvm  ingenii  vivent 
1  "Worthies  of  Great  Britain,"  p.  78  of  the  second  part. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  ROBERT  FLUDD.  287 

hie  monumenta  tui  nam  tibi  qui  similis  scribit  moriturque 
sepulchrum  pro  tota  eternum  posteritate  facit.  Hoc  monu- 
mentum  Thomas  Flood  Gore  Court  in  oram  apud  Cantianos 
armiger  infoelissimam  in  charissimi  patrin  sui  memoriam 
nexit,  die  Mensis  Augusti  M.D.C.XXXVII.'  "  l 

Bersted  Church  is  situated  on  high  ground,  at  a  small 
distance  south  of  Bersted  Green.  It  is  dedicated  to  the 
Holy  Cross,  and,  according  to  Hasted,2  is  a  handsome 
building,  consisting  of  two  aisles  and  two  chancels,  with  a 
square  beacon  tower  at  the  west  end  of  it.  This  is  in  the 
Perpendicular  style,  and  at  three  angles  of  the  summit  are 
three  rude  figures,  said  to  be  three  dogs  or  bears  seiant,  but 
so  defaced  by  time  that  they  cannot  well  be  distinguished. 

The  list  of  Fludd's  works  is  as  follows  :— 

Apologia  Compendiaria  Fraternitatem  de  Eosea  Cruce 
suspicionis  et  infamise  maculis  aspersam,  veritatis  quasi 
Fluctibus  abluens  et  abstergens.  Leyden,  1616.  8vo. 

Tractatus  Apologeticus  integritatem  Societatis  de  Rosea 
Cruce  defendens.  Lugduni  Batavorum,  1617.  8vo.  A 
duplicate  of  the  preceding  with  a  new  title. 

Utriusque  Cosmi  majoris  scilicet  et  minoris  metaphysica, 
physica  atque  technica  historia  in  dua  volumina  secundum 
cosmi  difFerentiam  divisa.  2  torn.  Oppenheimii,  Franco- 
furti,  1617-24.  Fol. 

Veritatis  Proscenium  .  .  .  seu  demonstratio  quaedam 
analytica,  in  qua  cuilibet  comparationis  particulse,  in  appen- 
dice  quadam  a  J.  Kepplero,  nuper  in  fine  Harmonise  suae 
Mundanse  edita,  factae  inter  Harmoniam  suarn  mundanam  et 
illam  R.  F.  ipsissimis  veritatis  argumentis  respondetur. 
Francofurti,  1621.  Fol. 

1  Hargrave  Jennings,  "The  Rosicrucians,  &c.,"  p.  364. 

2  "History  of  Kent,"  vol.  ii.,  p.  489. 


288  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Monochordum  Mundi  Symphoniacum,  seu,  Eeplicatio  R. 
F.  ...  ad  apologiam  .  .  .  J.  Kepleri  adversus  demonstra- 
tionem  suam  analyticam  nuperrime  editam  in  qua  Robertas 
validioribus  Joannis  objectionibus  Harmonise  suse  legi  re- 
pugnantibus,  comiter  respondere  aggreditur.  Francofurti, 
1622.  4  to. 

Anatomise  Amphitheatrum  effigie  triplici,  more  et  condi- 
tione  varia  designatam.  Francfurte,  1623.  Fol. 

Philosophia  Sacra  et  vere  Christiana,  seu  Meteorologica 
Cosmica.  Francofurti,  1626.  Fol, 

Medecina  Catholica,  seu  mysticum  artis  medicandi  sac- 
rarium.  5  parts.  Francofurti,  1629-31. 

Sophise  cum  moria  certamen,  in  quo,  lapsis  Lydius  a 
falso  structore  .  .  .  M.  Mersemio  .  .  .  reprobatus,  cele- 
berrima  voluminis  sui  Babylonici  figmenta  accurate  ex- 
aminat  (Summum  bonum,  quod  est  verum  subjectum  verse 
magicse,  cabalse,  alchymise  fratrum  Rosese  Crucis  verorum 
in  dictarum  scientiarum  laudem,  et  insignis  calumniatoris 
.  .  .  M.  Mersenni  dedecus  publicatum,,  per  J.  Frizium). 
2  pt.  Francofurti,  1629.  Fol. 

Doctor  Fludd's  Answer  unto  M.  Foster,  or  the  squesing 
of  Parson  Foster's  Sponge,  ordained  by  him  for  the  wiping 
away  of  the  weapon-salve.  London,  1631.  4to. 

Clavis  Philosophise  et  Alchymise.  (A  Reply  to  Father 
Gassendi.)  Francofurti,  1633.  Fol. 

Phylosophia  Mosaica.  In  qua  Sapientia  et  Scientia 
creationis  et  creaturarum  sacra  vereque  Christiana  .  .  . 
ad  amussim  et  enuncleate  explicatur.  Goudse,  1638.  Fol. 

It  will  be  seen  from  this  list  that  the  Rosicrucian  mani- 
festoes found  an  immediate  defender  in  Robert  Fludd,  that 
is,  if  the  "  Apologia  "  which  bears  his  name  is  to  be  con- 
sidered his  work.  There  is  some  uncertainty  on  this  point, 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  ROBERT  FLUDD.  289 

but  it  has  been  disputed  on  insufficient  grounds.  As  a 
maiden  effort,  it  will  not  of  course  bear  comparison  with 
the  dialectical  skill  of  his  mature  productions,  but  the  prin- 
ciples it  propounds  are  those  of  the  "  Mosaicall  Philosophy  " 
and  the  "  Tractatus  Varii."  "  What  was  the  particular  occa- 
sion of  his  own  first  acquaintance  with  Kosicrucianism  is 
not  recorded,"  says  Buhle.  "  All  the  books  of  Alchemy  or 
other  occult  knowledge,  published  in  Germany,  were  at 
that  time  immediately  carried  over  to  England  —provided 
they  were  written  in  Latin  ;  and  if  written  in  German,  were 
soon  translated  for  the  benefit  of  English  students.  He 
may  therefore  have  gained  his  knowledge  immediately  from 
the  Eosicrucian  books,  but  it  is  more  probable  that  he 
acquired  it  from  his  friend  Maier.  ...  At  all  events,  he 
must  have  been  initiated  into  Eosicrucianism  at  an  early 
period." 

By  whomsoever  written,  the  "Tractatus  Apologeticus " 
is  an  exceedingly  curious  work,  so  astonishing  occasionally 
in  the  nature  of  its  arguments  that  it  is  difficult  to  suppose 
that  they  were  put  forward  seriously.  It  was  called  for  by 
Andrew  Libavius'  "  searching  and  hostile  analysis  "  of  the 
Eosicrucian  Confession,  and  was  written  to  clear  the  Society 
from  the  Infamies,  maculce  cast  on  it  by  the  accusations  then 
brought  forward,  and  above  all  from  the  charges  of  detest- 
able magic  and  diabolical  superstition.  It  is  divided  into 
three  parts,  and  various  chapters  are  illustrated  by  appro- 
priate quotations  from  the  manifesto  it  is  defending,  whose 
underlying  principles  are  developed  and  explained.  The 
first  part  treats  of  the  various  departments  of  magical 
science,  of  the  Cabala,  of  the  Books  of  God,  both  visible 
and  invisible,  of  the  secret  characters  of  Nature,  and  of  the 
value  of  astrological  portents.  The  second  part  is  devoted 

T 


2QO  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

to  a  lugubrious  consideration  of  the  impediments  and  de- 
generacy of  the  arts  and  sciences  in  modern  times — de 
scientiarum  hodierno  die  in  scholis  mgentium  impedimentis.  It 
enlarges  on  the  urgent  necessity  for  a  reformation  in 
Natural  Philosophy,  Medicine,  and  Alchemy. 

Concerning  the  first,  the  author  declares  it  to  be  impossible 
for  any  one  to  attain  to  the  supreme  summit  of  the  natural 
sciences  unless  he  be  profoundly  versed  in  the  occult  mean- 
ing of  the  ancient  philosophers,  but  the  minute  and  most 
accurate  observer  who  does  achieve  this  height  will  not  find 
it  difficult  to  adapt  the  materials  which  are  prepared  by 
Nature  in  such  a  manner  as  to  produce,  by  the  application 
of  actives  to  passives,  many  marvellous  effects  before  the 
time  ordained  by  Nature ;  and  this,  he  adds,  will  be  mis- 
taken by  the  uninitiated  for  a  miracle. 

Like  others  of  his  school,  he  insists  on  the  uncertainty  of 
(L  posteriori  and  experimental  methods,  to  which  he  unhesi- 
tatingly attributes  all  the  errors  of  the  natural  sciences. 
"  Particulars  are  frequently  fallible,  but  universals  never. 
Occult  philosophy  lays  bare  Nature  in  her  complete  naked- 
ness, and  alone  contemplates  the  wisdom  of  universals  by 
the  eyes  of  intelligence.  Accustomed  to  partake  of  the 
rivers  which  flow  from  the  Fountain  of  Life,  it  is  unac- 
quainted with  grossness  and  with  clouded  waters." 

In  Medicine  he  laments  the  loss  of  that  universal  panacea 
referred  to  by  Hippocrates  : — "  But  absolutely  nothing  re- 
mains of  that  one  and  only  medicament  of  which  Hippo- 
crates makes  mention  (darkly  and  mystically,  I  admit)  in 
several  places,  and  still  less  are  its  operations  understood, 
inasmuch  as  no  one  now  searches  with  lynx-like  eyes  into 
the  profound  depths  of  true  natural  philosophy,  to  gain  an 
accurate  knowledge  of  its  composition  and  its  virtues." 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  ROBERT  FLUDD.  291 

Concerning  Arithmetic,  he  asks  mournfully,  and  with 
apparent  earnestness,  "  Which  of  us  has,  at  this  day,  the 
ability  to  discover  those  true  and  vivific  numbers  whereby 
the  elements  are  united  and  bound  to  one  another  1 "  And 
then,  with  regard  to  music,  which,  as  he  remarks,  non  aliter 
succedit  Arithmetical  quam  medicina  Philosophies  Naturali,  he 
cries  after  the  same  fashion : — "  But,  good  God,  what  is 
this  when  compared  with  that  deep  and  true  music  of  the 
wise,  whereby  the  proportions  of  natural  things  are  investi- 
gated, the  harmonical  concord  and  the  qualities  of  the  whole 
world  are  revealed,  by  which  also  connected  things  are 
bound  together,  peace  established  between  conflicting  ele- 
ments, and  whereby  each  star  is  perpetually  suspended  in 
its  appointed  place  by  its  weight  and  strength,  and  by  the 
harmony  of  its  lucent  spirit."  It  is  impossible  to  read  with- 
out a  smile  when  the  author  urges  the  necessity  for  a  musical 
reformation,  on  the  ground  that  we  have  lost  that  art  of 
Orpheus  by  which  he  moved  insensible  stones,  and  that  of 
Arion  by  which  the  fishes  were  charmed. 

The  cursory  review  of  alchemy  is  equally  gloomy  : — "  The 
art,  also,  of  alchemy  or  chemistry  is  surrounded  with  such 
insoluble  enigmas  that  we  can  scarcely  gain  anything  bub 
ignorance  therefrom,  and  ignotum  per  ignotius.^  He  enlarges 
on  its  fictitious  vocabulary,  and  quotes  Maricinus  as  fol- 
lows : — "  The  magisterium  of  the  philosophers  is  hidden  and 
concealed,  and  wherever  found  is  known  by  a  thousand 
names ;  moreover,  it  is  surrounded  by  symbols  and  is  re- 
vealed to  the  wise  alone,  yet  this  is,  notwithstanding,  the 
one,  only,  and  lineal  way  of  the  whole  operation."  Then 
he  himself  continues  : — "  Neither  common  fire,  but  Nature 
herself,  neither  artificial  furnaces,  but  natural  matrices,  are 
needed  in  this  work,  which  is  the  work  of  Nature  only,  and 


292  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

wherein  nothing  is  required  save  the  brief  co-operation  of 
her  minister,  by  whom  things  natural  to  things  also  natural, 
and  species  to  their  congruents,  are  duly  and  accurately 
applied."  Mathematics,  optics,  and  astronomy  he  treats 
after  the  same  fashion,  comparing  their  tame  and  common- 
place frivolities  with  the  sublime  knowledge  of  the 
ancients. 

The  third  part  is  entitled  "  De  Naturae  Arcanis,"  and 
treats  of  the  mysteries  of  Light,  &c.,  developing  in  a  small 
space  a  curious  and  profound  philosophy.  It  describes  God 
as  the  ens  entium,  eternal  form,  inviolable,  purely  igneous, 
without  any  intermixture  of  material,  unmanifested  before 
the  creation  of  the  universe,  according  to  the  maxim  of 
Mercurius  Trismegistus,  "  Monas  generat  molem,  et  in  seipsum 
refledit  ardor  em  suam"  Earth  is  defined  to  be  a  gross  water, 
water  a  gross  air,  air  a  gross  fire,  fire  a  gross  ether,  while 
the  ether  itself  is  the  grosser  part  of  the  empyrean,  which 
is  distinguished  from  the  ethereal  realm,  and  is  described  as 
a  water  of  extreme  tenuity,  constituted  of  three  parts  of 
luminous  substance  to  one  aqueous  part ;  it  is  the  purest 
essence  of  all  substances,  and  is  identical  with  the  luminifer- 
ous  ether  of  the  latest  scientific  hypothesis.  Its  place  is  the 
medium  mundi,  wherein  is  the  sphcera  cequalitatis,  in  which 
the  sun  performs  its  revolution.  The  sun  itself  is  composed 
of  equal  parts  of  light  and  water.  Light  is  the  cause  of  all 
energies — nihil  in  hoc  mundo  peradum  fuerit,  sine  lucis  media- 
tione  aut  actu  divino.  "It  is  impossible  for  man  to  desire 
more  complete  felicity  than  the  admirable  knowledge  of 
light  and  its  virtues,"  by  which  the  ancient  magi  constructed 
their  ever-burning  lamps,  forced  fire  out  of  stones  and  wood, 
kindled  tapers  from  the  rays  of  stars,  and  naturally,  by 
means  of  its  reflections,  produced  many  wonders  in  the  air, 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  ROBERT  FLUDD.  293 

such  as  phantom  writing,  and,  more  than  all,  by  the  true 
use  of  the  lux,  invisibilis,  made  men  themselves  invisible. 

The  information  scattered  through  the  various  parts  of 
the  apology  on  the  different  departments  of  magic  is  also 
noteworthy.      It    distinguishes   between    natural,   mathe- 
matical,  venific,    necromantic,   and    thaumaturgic    magic. 
"  That  most  occult  and  secret  department  of  physics  by 
which  the  mystical  properties  of  natural   substances  are 
extracted,  we  term  Natural  Magic.     The  wise  kings  who 
(led  by  the  new  Star  from  the  East)  sought  the   infant 
Christ,  are  called  Magi,  because  they  had  attained  a  perfect 
knowledge  of  natural  things,  whether  celestial  or  sublunar. 
This  branch  of  the  Magi  also  includes  Salomon,  since  he 
was  versed  in  the  arcane  virtues  and  properties  of  all 
substances,  and  is  said  to  have  understood  the  nature  of 
every  plant  from  the  cedar  to  the  hyssop.     Magicians  who 
are    proficient    in    the    mathematical    division    construct 
marvellous  machines  by  means  of  their  geometrical  know- 
ledge;  such  were  the  flying  dove  of  Archytas,   and  the 
brazen  heads  of  Roger  Bacon  and  Albertus  Magnus,  which 
are  said  to  have  spoken.     Venific  magic  is  familiar  with 
potions,  philtres,   and   with   the   various   preparations   of 
poisons ;    it   is    in    a   measure   included    in   the   natural 
division,  because  a  knowledge  of  the  properties  of  natural 
things   is   requisite  to  produce  its  results.     Necromantic 
Magic  is  divided  into  goetic,  maleficient,  and  Theurgic. 
The   first  consists   in   diabolical   commerce  with   unclean 
spirits,  in  rites  of  criminal  curiosity,  in  illicit  songs  and 
invocations,  and  in  the  evocation  of  the  souls  of  the  dead. 
The  second  is  the  adjuration  of  the  devils  by  the  Virtue  of 
Divine  Names.     The  third  pretends  to  be  governed  by 
good  angels  and  the  Divine  Will,  but  its  wonders  are  most 


294  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

frequently  performed  by  evil  spirits,  who  assume  the  names 
of  God  and  of  the  angels.  This  department  of  Necromancy 
can,  however,  be  performed  by  natural  powers,  definite 
rites  and  ceremonies,  whereby  celestial  and  divine  virtues 
are  reconciled  and  drawn  to  us ;  the  ancient  Magi  pro- 
mulgated in  their  secret  books  many  rules  of  this  doctrine. 
The  last  species  of  magic  is  the  thaumaturgic,  begetting 
illusory  phenomena ;  by  this  art  the  Magi  produced  their 
phantasms  and  other  marvels." 

When  speaking  of  the  wonders  wrought  mechanically  by 
Eoger  Bacon,  Albertus  Magnus,  and  Boetius,  the  apologist 
of  the  Rosicrucians  tells  us  that  he  himself,  by  his  assiduity 
in  mechanical  arts,  constructed  a  wooden  bull  which  lowed 
and  bellowed  after  the  fashion  of  the  living  animal ;  a 
dragon  which  flapped  its  wings,  hissed,  and  vomited  forth 
fire  and  flames  upon  the  bull ;  and  a  lyre  which  played 
melodies  without  human  intervention,  as  well  as  many 
other  things,  which  by  the  simple  mathematical  art,  apart 
from  natural  magic,  could  not  have  been  accomplished. 

The  scientific  and  philosophical  principles  of  Robert 
Fludd  were  attacked  by  Father  Mersenne,  with  special 
reference  to  his  belief  in  the  Rosicrucian  Society.  Some 
twelve  years  had  passed  since  the  appearance  of  the 
"Tractatus  Apologeticus,"  which  he  probably  no  longer 
valued.  He  replied  to  the  attack  in  the  work  entitled 
"  Sophise  cum  Moria  Certamen,"  without  mentioning  the 
Rosicrucians.  But  the  "  Summum  Bonum,"  by  Joachim 
Fritz,  which  accompanied  this  reply,  contains  an  elaborate 
defence  of  the  Order,  to  which,  in  one  of  its  phases,  Fludd 
is  said  to  have  belonged.  The  authorship  of  this  defence 
he  is  supposed  to  have  disavowed.  Buhle,  however,  points 
out  that  as  "  the  principles,  the  style,  the  animosity  towards 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  ROBERT  FLUDD.   295 

Mersenne,  the  publisher,  and  the  year,  were  severally  the 
same  as  in  the  '  Sophise  cum  Moria  Certamen '  which 
Fludd  acknowledged,  there  cannot  be  much  reason  to  doubt 
that  it  was  his."  But  as  I  am  unwilling  to  consider  that  a 
man  of  Fludd's  high  character  would  be  guilty  of  deliberate 
falsehood,  and  as  it  was  not  his  habit  to  write  either 
anonymously  or  pseudonymously,  I  prefer  the  alternative 
offered  by  the  German  critic  when  he  says,  "  If  not  Fludd's, 
it  was  the  work  of  a  friend  of  Fludd's."  In  either  case, 
his  opinions  are  represented.  On  the  title-page  of  the 
"  Summum  Bonum,"  there  is  a  large  Rose  on  which  two 
bees  have  alighted,  with  this  motto  above — Dat  Rosa  mel 
apibus.  The  book  treats  of  the  noble  art  of  magic,  the 
foundation  and  nature  of  the  Cabala,  the  essence  of  veritable 
alchemy,  and  of  the  Causa  Fratrum  Eosece  Crucis.  It 
identifies  the  palace  or  home  of  the  Rosicmcians  with  the 
Scriptural  house  of  wisdom.  Ascendamus  ad  montem 
rationabilem,  et  cedificemus  domum  Sapientice.  The  founda- 
tion of  the  mountain  thus  referred  to  is  declared  to  be  the 
Lapis  angularis,  the  corner-stone,  cut  out  of  the  mountain 
without  hands.  This  stone  is  Christ.  It  is  the  spiritual 
palace  which  the  Rosicrucians  desire  to  reveal,  and  is  there- 
fore no  earthly  or  material  abode.  There  is  a  long  dis- 
quisition on  the  significance  of  the  Rose  and  the  Cross,  a 
purely  spiritual  interpretation  being  adopted.  At  the 
conclusion,  the  writer  anticipates  the  question  whether  he 
himself  is  a  brother  of  the  Rose  Cross,  since  he  has  settled 
all  questions  as  to  their  religion  and  symbolism.  His 
answer  is  that  he  least  of  any  has  deserved  such  a  grace  of 
God ;  if  it  have  pleased  God  to  have  so  ordained  it,  it  is 
enough.  To  satisfy,  however,  the  curiosity  of  his  readers, 
he  supplies  them  with  a  curious  letter  supposed  to  have 


296  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

emanated  from  the  society,  and  which  has  been  quaintly 
translated  in  a  manuscript  of  the  seventeenth  century. 

This  Epistle  was  written  and  sent  by  ye  Brethren  of 
R.  C.  to  a  certaine  Germaine,  a  coppy  whereof  Dr  Flud 
obtained  of  a  Polander  of  Dantziche  his  friend,  which 
he  since  printed  in  Latin  at  ye  end  of  his  tract,  intituled, 
De  Summo  Bono. 

Venerable  and  Honourable  Sr- 

Seeing  that  this  will  be  ye  first  yeare  of  thy 
nativity,  wee  pray  that  thou  mayst  have  from  ye  Most  High 
God,  a  most  happy  entrance  into  and  departure  from  out  of 
thy  life,  and  because  thou  hast  hitherto  been  with  a  good 
mind  a  constant  searcher  of  holy  philosophy,  well  done ! 
Proceed,  fear  God,  for  thus  thou  mayest  gaine  Heaven. 
Get  to  thyself  the  most  true  knowledge,  for  it  is  God  who 
hath  found  out  every  way ;  it  is  God  who  alone  is  circum- 
ference and  centre.  But  draw  thee  neere,  listen,  take  this  to 
thee  W,  for  he  who  increaseth  knowledge  increaseth  sorrow, 

because  that  in  much  knowledge  is  much  griefe,  wee  speake 
by  experience.  For  all  worldlings,  and  vaine-glorious, 
vauntinge  boasters,  gorgious  men,  talkers,  and  vaine 
people  doe  unworthily  scandalize,  yea,  and  curse  us  for  an 
unknown  matter.  But  we  wonder  not  that  ye>  ungrateful 
world  doe  persecute  ye  professors  of  ye  true  Arts,  together 
with  ye  truth  itself.  Yett  for  thy  sake  wee  shall  briefly 
answer  to  these  questions,  viz.  :  What  wee  doe  ?  What 
can  wee  doe  *?  Or  whether  are  any  such  as  wee  ?  In  John, 
therefore,  wee  reade  that  God  is  ye  Supreme  Light,  and  in 
light  wee  walke,  so  that  wee  exhibit  light  (although  in  a 
lanthern)  to  ye  world.  But  thou  man  of  ye  world  that 
deniest  this,  thou  knowest  not  or  seest  not  it  behoves  thee 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  ROBERT  FLUDD.  297 

to  know  that  in  thy  vile  boddy  Jesus  dwelleth.  This  thou 
hast  from  ye  apostle.  "  And  Jesus  knew  all  their  thoughts," 
to  whom  if  thou  adherest,  thou  are  at  length  made  one 
spirit  with  Him,  and  being  such,  who  prohibeteth  thee  with 
Solomon  to  know  as  well  ye  wicked  as  good  contentions  of 
men.  And  this  thou  mayest  take  from  me  out  of  ye 
premises.  And  hence  it  is  that  wee  doe  not  answer  to  all, 
viz.,  because  of  the  deceitfull  minds  of  some.  For  whoso- 
ever are  alienated  from  God  are  contrary  to  us,  and  who  is 
so  foolish  as  to  permit  a  new-come  stranger  to  enter  into 
another  man's  house  1  But  if  thou  objectest  that  this  union 
is  onely  to  be  expected  in  ye  world  to  come,  behold  now  in 
this  thou  showest  thyself  for  a  worldling  who  extinguishest 
light  by  thy  ignorance.  Also  thou  are  not  ashamed  to 
make  ye  apostle  a  liar,  in  whom  those  things  are  more 
clearly  manifested  in  these  wordes— "  So  that  you  may  be 
wanting  in  no  grace,  expectinge  ye  Revelation  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ."  But  thou  sayest  that  this  is  not  to  be  un- 
derstood of  this  inferiour  life.  What  therefore  does  ye 
folio winge  verse  intend  1  "  Who  shall  confirme  you  even 
to  the  end,"  for  in  the  Kiugdome  of  God  there  is  noe  end, 
therefore  in  this  temporall  state  will  appear  ye  glory  of  ye 
Lord,  and  Jesus  glorified.  If  any  thinge  is  further  de- 
manded concerning  our  office,  our  endeavoure  is  to  leade 
backe  lost  sheepe  to  ye  true  sheepefold.  You  labore  there- 
fore in  vaine,  0  miserable  mortals,  who  enter  upon  another 
way  than  that  ye  apostle  wills  by  putinge  off  your  taber- 
nacle, which  way  is  not  walked  in  through  dyinge,  but  as 
Peter  willeth  when  he  saith  :  "As  Christ  hath  taught 
mee,"  viz.,  when  he  was  transfigured  in  ye  mount,  which 
laienge  down,  if  it  had  not  bine  secret  and  hidden,  ye 
apostle  had  not  saide,  "  as  Jesus  taught  mee,"  neither  had  ye 


298  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


Supreme  Truth  saide :  "  Tell  this  to  no  man,"  for  accord- 
inge  to  ye  vulgar  way,  vulgarly  to  die  was  known  to  all 
men  from  ye  beginninge  of  ye  world.  Be  yee  changed 
therefore,  be  yee  changed  from  dead  stones  into  livinge 
philosophical  stones.  The  apostle  shews  ye  way  when  he 
saith  :  "  Lett  the  same  minde  be  in  you  as  is  in  Jesus."  Also 
he  explains  that  minde  in  ye  followinge  words,  viz.,  when 
as  beinge  in  ye  form  of  God,  he  thought  it  no  robbery  to 
be  equal  to  God.  Behould  these  things,  0  all  you  that 
search  into  ye  abstruse  secrets  of  nature  !  Yee  heare  these 
matters,  but  you  believe  them  not,  0  miserable  mortals, 
who  doe  so  anxiously  run  into  youre  own  ruine,  but  wilt 
thou  be  more  happy,  0  thou  most  miserable,  wilt  thou  be 
elevated  above  ye  circles  of  ye  world,  0  thou  proud  one,  wilt 
thou  command  in  Heaven  above,  this  earth,  and  thy  darke 
body,  0  thou  ambitious,  will  yee  performe  all  miracles,  0 
yee  unworthy  ?  Know  yee,  therefore,  ye  rejected,  of  what 
nature  it  is,  before  it  is  sought.  But  thou,  0  Brother, 
hearken  !  I  will  speake  with  S.  John,  that  thou  mayest 
have  fellowshippe  with  us,  and  indeed  our  fellowshippe  is 
with  ye  Father  and  with  Jesus,  and  wee  write  unto  you 
that  yee  may  rejoyce  because  God  is  light,  and  in  Him  there 
is  no  darkness  at  all.  But  that  thou  mayest  come  unto  us, 
behould  this  light,  for  it  is  impossible  for  thee  to  see  us 
(unless  when  wee  will)  in  another  light.  In  this,  therefore, 
follow  us,  whereby  thou  mayest  be  made  happy  with  us,  for 
our  most  immoveable  pallace  is  ye  centre  of  all  things, 
likewise  is  it  much  obscured,  because  covered  with  many 
names.  Enter,  enter  into  ye  glory  of  God  and  thy  own 
salvation,  ye  gates  and  Schoole  of  Philosophicall  Love,  in 
which  is  taught  everlastinge  charity  and  fraternall  love, 
and  that  some  resplendent  and  invisible  castle  which  is 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  ROBERT  FLUDD.   299 

built  upon  the  mountaine  of  ye  Lord,  out  of  whose  roote 
goeth  forth  a  fountaine  of  livinge  waters,  and  a  river  of 
love  !  Drinke,  drinke,  and  againe  drinke,  that  thou  mayest 
see  all  hidden  things,  and  converse  with  us  !  Againe 
beware  !  But  what  1  For  thou  knowest  very  well  that 
nature  receives  nothing  for  nutriment  but  that  which  is 
subtile,  the  thick  and  foeculent  is  cast  out  as  excrements. 
It  is  also  well  disputed  by  thyself,  that  those  who  will  live 
in  ye  minde,  rather  than  in  ye  body,  take  in  nourishment 
by  ye  spirit,  not  by  ye  mouth.  As  for  example,  it  is  lawful 
to  know  Heaven  by  Heaven,  not  by  earth,  but  ye  virtues 
of  this  by  ye  other,  and  if  you  understand  me  aright,  no 
man  ascends  into  Heaven,  which  thou  seekest,  except  He 
who  descended  from  Heaven,  which  thou  seekest  not,  en- 
lighteneth  him  first.  Whatsoever  therefore  is  not  from 
Heaven  is  a  false  immage,  and  cannot  be  called  a  virtue. 
Therefore,  0  Brother,  thou  canst  not  be  better  confirmed 
then  by  virtue  itselfe,  which  is  ye  Supreame  Truth,  which 
if  thou  wilt  religiously,  and  with  all  thy  might,  endeavour 
to  follow  in  all  thy  wordes  and  workes,  it  will  confirm  thee 
daily  more  and  more,  for  it  is  a  fiery  spirite,  a  glisteninge 
sparke,  a  graine  impossible,  never  diinge,  subliminge  his 
own  body,  dwellinge  in  every  created  beeinge,  sustaininge 
and  governinge  it,  gold  burninge,  and  by  Christ  purged, 
pure  in  ye  fire,  allwaye  more  glorious  and  pure,  jubilatinge 
without  diminution,  this  shall  (I  say)  confirme  thee  daily, 
untill  (as  a  certaine  learned  man  saith)  thou  art  made  like 
a  lion  in  battle,  and  canst  take  away  all  ye  strength  of  ye 
world,  and  fearest  not  death,  nor  any  violence  whatsoever 
a  divellish  tyranny  can  invent,  viz.,  seeinge  thou  art  be- 
come such  a  one  as  thou  desirest,  a  stone  and  a  worke. 
And  that  God  may  bless  thy  labours  which  thou  shalt 


300  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

receive  in  most  approved  authors  under  a  shaddow,  for  a 
wise  man  reads  one  thinge  and  understands  another. 
Art  thou  imperfect  1  Aspire  after  a  due  perfection.  Art 
thou  foul  and  unclean  1  Purge  thyself  with  teares,  sublime 
thyselfe  with  good  manners  and  virtues,  adorn  and  beautify 
thyselfe  with  sacramentall  graces  !  Make  thy  soule  sublime 
and  subtile  for  ye  contemplation  of  heavenly  thinges,  and 
conformable  to  angelicall  spirits,  that  it  may  vivify  thy 
vile  ashes  and  vulgar  body,  and  make  it  white,  and  render 
it  altogether  incorruptible  and  impassible  by  ye  resurrec- 
tion of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  Doe  these  thinges,  and 
thou  wilt  confess  that  no  man  hath  wrote  more  plainly 
then  I.  These  thinges  the  Lady  Virtue  hath  commended 
should  be  told  to  thee,  from  (or  by)  whom,  accordinge  to 
thy  deserts,  thou  shalt  hereafter  be  more  largely  taught, 
these  read,  if  thou  wilt,  as  the  apostle  willeth,  keepe  that 
which  is  committed  to  thy  trust.  Farewell. 

F.  T.  F.,  in  Light  and  C. 

By  his  talents  and  intellectual  ability,  Eobert  Fludd  is  a 
character  so  important  in  English  Rosicrucian  literature, 
that  I  propose  to  give  a  short  sketch  or  syllabus  of  his  sin- 
gular cosmical  philosophy.  The  substance  will  be  taken  from 
the  "  Mosaicall  Philosophy,"  and  the  folio  volume  entitled 
Tmdatus  Varii,  and  it  will  be  rendered  as  far  as  possible 
in  the  philosopher's  own  words. 

The  author  distinguishes  in  several  places  between  the 
Divine  ffo<p/a,  the  eternal  sapience,  the  heavenly  wisdom, 
which  is  only  mystically  revealed  to  mankind,  and  the 
wisdom  which  is  derived  from  the  invention  and  tradition 
of  men.  He  declares  the  philosophy  of  the  Grecians,  or  the 
ethnick  philosophy,  to  be  based  only  on  the  second,  and  to 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  ROBERT  FLUDD.  301 

be  terrene,  animal,  and  diabolical,  not  being  founded  on  the 
deific  corner-stone,  namely,  Jesus  Christ,  who  is  the  essential 
substance  and  foundation  of  the  true  science. 

The  original  fountain  of  true  wisdom  is  in  God,  the 
natura  naturans,  the  infinite,  illimitable  Spirit,  beyond  all 
imagination,  transcending  all  essence,  without  name,  all 
wise,  all-clement,  the  Father,  the  Word,  and  the  ineffable, 
Holy  Spirit,  the  highest  and  only  good,  the  indivisible 
Trinity,  the  most  splendid  and  indescribable  light.  This 
Wisdom  is  the  vapor  virtutis  Dei,  and  the  stainless  mirror  of 
the  majesty  and  beneficence  of  God.  All  things,  of  what 
nature  and  condition  soever,  were  made  in,  by,  and  through 
this  Divine  Word  or  emanation,  which  is  God  Himself,  as 
it  is  the  Divine  Act,  whose  root  is  the  Logos,  that  is,  Christ. 
This  Eternal  Wisdom  is  the  fountain  or  corner-stone  of  the 
higher  arts,  by  which  also  all  mysterious  and  miraculous 
discoveries  are  effected  and  brought  to  light. 

Before  the  spagirical  separation  which  the  Word  of  God, 
or  divine  Elohim,  effected  in  the  six  days  of  creation,  the 
heavens  and  earth  were  one  deformed,  rude,  undigested 
mass,  complicitly  comprehended  in  one  dark  abyss,  but  ex- 
plicitly as  yet  nothing.  This  nothing  is  compared  by  St 
Augustine  to  speech,  which  while  it  is  in  the  speaker's  mind 
is  as  nothing  to  the  hearer,  but  when  uttered,  that  which  ex- 
isted complicitly  in  animo  loquentis,  is  explicitly  apprehended 
by  the  hearer.  This  nihihm  or  nothing  is  not  a  nihilum 
negativum.  It  is  the  First  Matter,  the  infinite,  informal, 
primordial  Ens,  the  mysterium  magnum  of  the  Paracelsists. 
It  existed  eternally  in  God.  If  God  had  not  produced  all 
things  essentially  out  of  Himself,  they  could  not  be  rightly 
referred  to  Him.  The  primeval  darkness  is  the  potentia 
dlvina  as  light  is  the  actus  divinus — theAleph  tenebrosum  and 


302  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCTANS. 

Aleph  lucidum.  Void  of  form  and  life,  it  is  still  a  material 
developing  from  potentiality  into  the  actual,  and  was  in- 
formed by  the  Maker  of  the  world  with  a  universal  essence, 
which  is  the  Light  of  Moses,  and  was  first  evolved  in  the 
empyrean  heaven,  the  highest  and  supernatural  region  of 
the  world,  the  habitaculum  fontis  lucidi,  the  region  not  of 
matter  but  of  form — form  simple  and  spiritual  beyond  all 
imagination.  There  is  a  second  spiritual  heaven,  partici- 
pating in  the  clarity  and  tenuity  of  the  first,  of  which  it  is 
the  base ;  this  is  the  medial  heaven,  called  the  sphcera 
cegualitatis  and  it  is  corporeal  in  respect  of  the  former.  The 
third  heaven  is  the  locality  of  the  four  elements.  The  pro- 
gression of  the  primordial  light  through  the  three  celestial 
spaces  was  accomplished  during  the  first  three  days  of  crea- 
tion. Christ  the  Wisdom  and  Word  of  God,  by  His  appari- 
tion out  of  darkness,  that  is,  by  the  mutation  of  the  first 
principle  from  dark  Aleph  to  light  Aleph,  revealed  the  waters 
contained  in  the  profound  bosom  of  the  abyss,  and  animated 
them  by  the  emanation  of  the  spirit  of  eternal  fire,  and  then 
by  his  admirable  activity  distinguished  and  separated  the 
darkness  from  the  light,  the  obscure  and  gross  waters  from 
the  subtle  and  pure  waters,  disposing  the  heavens  and 
spheres,  as  above  stated,  and  dividing  the  grosser  waters 
into  sublunary  elements.  These  elements  are  described  as 
follows  : — Earth  is  the  conglomeration  of  the  material 
darkness  and  the  refuse  of  the  heavens ;  Water  is  the  more 
gross  spirit  of  the  darkness  of  the  inferior  heaven,  nearly 
devoid  of  light ;  Air  is  the  spirit  of  the  second  heaven  j 
Fire,  the  spirit  of  the  darkness  of  the  Empyrean  heaven. 

Fludd's  theory  of  the  Macrocosmus  is  enunciated  in  the 
following  manner. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  ROBERT  FLUDD.  303 


rf  S  •**  *•    .  g 

l.§  o  g-Sg* 
d  <rH  _  d  o  S 


m 

i— i 
P-i. 

i— I 

O 

fc 

r— I 

P3 
Pn 
i— i 
a 

02 
O 

o 
o 

OH 
O 


-    <D 
t^^3 

a^ 

_.      ^*v    C^^    tf^       ^*/       ^/       •~3 

f  8^    0^5    ^« 

l^lif-f  H 
liiliiil 

o  ^^  d  ^  rt-5^ 
02  H 


o> 

g  S 
I  g? 

M 

O' 


tfil 


o 


aJI  1^1.3 

d     ^<4H     g     OJ     ^     S 


304 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


<J 

o 

I— I 

p^ 

W 
<1 
PH 


O 
PH 

§ 
S 

W 

P 


H 

0 


o>  o> 


C 

rS 


r«    O 

boo 


Hea 
He 
e  He 


mita 


SII3J 

o3    aT 
'•&    * 

S.gSS. 

£  z3  £  ^ 

Sj  >-^     02     >*"» 

K!    C3     O)  TH 
r*^-)J  f-l 

P, «  •£   ea 

,  S  £>  §  3  .-s 

3  w  o  a  §>.& 

i3J    0)    <U    O  '3    9/1 

^^^3^    °°    M 

HHHH<J 


(4 

-C3 

H 


-M 

P 

oT 

02 

E 

4-3 

<u 

> 

a 

cS 

02 

0) 

^_oj 

•73    O> 

0)    G 

•§ 

02 

0 

t-l 
<D 

^3 

-M 

'S 

^3 
H 
<v 
o 

'S 

1 

X    03 

$H 
O 

g 

& 

NPn 

_o 

43 

-U 

G 

O)    O> 

^5 

O 

'S 

O 
43 

^4^=1 
HH 

S 

'On 
W 

H 

rThe  Highest,  in  f 
which  two  things 
must  be  noted,  I 
viz.,  its  j 

i 

h 

O 

•s 

31  5P 

^  s  a 

w  «  S 
Si! 

|' 

.3 
1 

j§ 

H 

o>  ^§ 

p^S'i 

^    02  •"-! 
1  ^     3     fe 

-a  a  o 

^  .a  ° 

j 

II 

ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  ROBERT  FLUDD.  305 

According  to  .Fludd's  philosophy,  the  whole  universe  was 
fashioned  after  the  pattern  of  an  archetypal  world  which 
existed  in  the  Divine  ideality,  and  was  framed  out  of  unity 
in   a  threefold   manner.     The   Eternal  Monad  or  Unity, 
without  any  egression   from   his   own  central  profundity, 
compasses  complicitly  the  three  cosmical  dimensions,  namely, 
root,  square,  and  cube.     If  we  multiply  unity  as  a  root,  in 
itself,  it  will  produce  only  unity  for  its  square,  which  being 
again  multiplied  in  itself,  brings  forth  a  cube  which  is  one 
with   root   and   square.      Thus   we   have   three   branches 
differing  in  formal  progression,  yet  one  unity  in  which  all 
things  remain  potentially,  and  that  after  a  most  abstruse 
manner.     The  archetypal  world  was  made  by  the  egres- 
sion of  one  out  of  one,  and  by  the  regression  of  that  one, 
so  emitted,  into  itself  by  emanation.     According  to  this 
ideal  image,  or  archetypal  world,  our  universe  was  subse- 
quently fashioned   as  a  true   type   and   exemplar   of  the 
Divine  Pattern  ;  for  out  of  unity  in  his  abstract  existence, 
viz.,  as  it  was  hidden  in  the  dark  chaos,  or  potential  mass, 
the  bright  flame  of  all  formal  being  did  shine  forth,  and 
the  Spirit  of  Wisdom,  proceeding  from  them  both,  con- 
joined the  formal  emanation  with  the  potential  matter,  so 
that  by  the  union  of  the  divine  emanation  of  light  and  the 
substantial  darkness,  which  was  water,  the  heavens  were 
made  of  old,  and  the  whole  world. 

God,  according  to  these  abstruse  speculations,  is  that 
pure,  catholic  unity  which  includes  and  comprehends  all 
multiplicity,  and  which  before  the  objective  projection  of 
the  cosmos  must  be  considered  as  a  transcendent  entity,  re- 
served only  in  itself,  in  whose  divine  puissance,  as  in  a  place 
without  end  or  limit,  all  things  which  are  now  explicitly 

U 


306  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCTANS. 

apparent  were  then  complicitly  contained,  though  in  regard 
to  our  finite  faculties  it  can  only  be  conceived  as  nothing — 
nihil,  non  finis,  non  ens,  aleph  tenebrosum,  the  Absolute  Monad 
or  Unity. 

Joined  to  the  cosmical  philosophy  of  Eobert  Fludd, 
there  is  an  elaborate  system  of  spiritual  evolution,  and  the 
foundation  of  both  is  to  be  sought  in  the  gigantic  hypo- 
theses of  the  Kabbalah.  His  angelology  is  derived  from 
the  works  of  pseudo-Dionysius  on  the  celestial  hierarchies, 
and  he  teaches  the  doctrine  of  the  pre-existence  of  human 
souls,  which  are  derived  from  the  vivifying  emanation 
dwelling  in  the  Anima  Mundi,  the  world's  spiritual  vehicle, 
the  catholic  soul,  which  itself  is  inacted  and  preserved  by 
the  Catholic  and  Eternal  Spirit,  sent  out  from  the  foun- 
tain of  life  to  inact  and  vivify  all  things. 

These  mystical  speculations,  whatever  their  ultimate 
value,  are  sublime  flights  of  an  exalted  imagination,  but 
they  are  found,  in  the  writings  of  Robert  Fludd,  side  by 
side  with  the  crudest  physical  theories,  and  the  most  ex- 
ploded astronomical  notions.  He  denies  the  diurnal  revol- 
ution of  the  earth,  and  considers  the  light  of  all  the  stars 
to  be  derived  from  the  one  "  heavenly  candle  "  of  the  sun. 
Rejecting  the  natural  if  inadequate  explanations  of 
Aristotle  and  his  successors,  he  presents  the  most  extrava- 
gant definitions  of  the  nature  of  winds,  clouds,  snow,  &c. 
The  last  is  described  as  a  meteor  which  God  draweth  forth 
of  His  hidden  treasury  in  the  form  of  wool,  or  as  a  creature 
produced  out  of  the  air  by  the  cold  breath  of  the  Divine 
Spirit  to  perform  his  will  on  earth.  Thunder  is  a  noise 
which  is  made  in  the  cloudy  tent  or  pavilion  of  Jehovah, 
lightning  a  certain  fiery  air  or  spirit  animated  by  the 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  ROBERT  FLUDD.  307 

brightness  and  burning  from  the  face  or  presence  of 
Jehovah.  Literally  interpreting  the  poetic  imagery  of 
Scripture,  he  perceives  the  direct  interference  of  the  Deity 
in  all  the  phenomena  of  Nature,  and  denounces  more 
rational  views  as  "  terrene,  animal,  and  diabolical." 


CHAPTEE  XII. 

KOSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :   THOMAS  VATJGHAN. 

EUGENIUS  PHILALETHES,  the  author  of  the  renowned 
"Introitus  apertus  ad  occlusum  Regis  Palatium,"  the  "En- 
trance opened  to  the  Closed  Palace  of  the  King,"  is  so  far 
connected  with  the  Rosicrucians  that  he  published  a 
translation,  as  we  have  seen,  of  the  "Fama"  and  "Con- 
fessio  Fraternitatis,"  and  his  philosophical  doctrines  are 
very  similar  to  those  of  the  mysterious  Brotherhood,  of 
which  he  has  been  erroneously,  and  despite  his  express 
and  repeated  denials,  represented  as  a  member.  Like  them, 
he  expected  the  advent  of  the  artist  Elias  who  was  fore- 
told by  Paracelsus,  represents  his  most  important  alchemi- 
cal work  as  his  precursor,  and  declares  that  problematical 
personage  to  be  already  born  into  the  world.  The  entire 
universe  is  to  be  transmuted  and  transfigured  by  the 
science  of  this  artist  into  the  pure  mystical  gold  of  the  Spirit- 
ual City  of  God,  when  all  currencies  have  been  destroyed. 

"  A  few  brief  years,"  he  cries  in  his  prophetic  mood, 
"  and  I  trust  that  money  will  be  despised  as  completely  as 
dross,  and  that  we  shall  behold  the  destruction  of  this  vile 
invention,  so  opposed  to  the  spirit  of  Jesus  Christ.  The 
world  is  bewitched  by  it,  and  the  infatuated  nations  adore 
this  vain  and  gross  metal  as  a  divinity.  Is  it  this  which 
will  help  towards  our  coming  redemption  and  our  lofty 
future  hopes  1  By  this  shall  we  enter  that  New  Jerusalem 


THOMAS  VAUGHAN,  309 

when  its  ways  are  paved  with  gold,  and  its  gates  are  of 
pearls  and  precious  stones,  and  when  the  Tree  of  Life, 
planted  in  the  centre  of  Paradise,  will  dispense  health  to 
the  whole  of  humanity  1  I  foresee  that  my  writings  will 
be  esteemed  as  highly  as  the  purest  gold  and  silver  now 
are,  and  that,  thanks  to  my  works,  these  metals  will  "be  as 
despised  as  dung." 

The  date  of  this  author's  birth  was  1612;  he  is 
supposed  to  have  been  a  native  of  Scotland,  but  the  fact 
of  his  placing  a  Welsh  motto  on  the  title  of  one  of  his 
books,  together  with  his  true  name,  Thomas  Yaughan, 
which  is  pure  Welsh,  is  a  strong  argument  of  his  Welsh 
nationality.  He  adopted  various  pseudonyms  in  the 
different  countries  through  which  he  passed  in  his  wander- 
ings as  an  alchemical  propagandist.  Thus  in  America  he 
called  himself  Doctor  Zheil,  and  in  Holland  Carnobius. 
According  to  Herthodt,  his  true  name  was  Childe,  while 
Langlet  du  Fresnoy  writes  it  Thomas  Vagan,  by  a  char- 
acteristic French  blunder.  His  nom  de  plume  was  Eugenius 
not  Irenseus  Philalethes,  as  Figuier  states.1  The  life  of  this 
adept  is  involved  in  an  almost  Rosicrucian  uncertainty ;  he 
was  a  mystery  even  to  his  publishers,  who  received  his 
works  from  "  an  unknown  person."  Nearly  all  that  is  as- 
certained concerning  him,  and  concerning  his  marvellous 
transmutations,  rests  on  the  authority  of  Urbiger,  who  has 
been  proved  inaccurate  in  more  than  one  of  his  statements. 
His  sojourn  in  America  is  an  established  fact,  according  to 
Louis  Figuier,  and  the  projections  which  he  there  accom- 
plished in  the  laboratory  of  George  Starkey,  an  apothecary, 
were  subsequently  published  by  the  latter  in  London. 

1  Ireiiseus  Philalethes  was  the  pseudonym  of  George  Starkey,  the 
American  disciple  of  Thomas  Vaughan. 


310  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

His  writings  shew  him  to  be  a  supreme  adept  of  spiritual 
alchemy,  and  he  despised  the  gold  which  he  claimed  to  be 
able  to  manufacture.     The  history  of  this  man  who  roamed 
from  place  to  place,  performing  the  most  lavish  transmuta- 
tions, but  always  anonymous,  always  obliterating  his  per- 
sonality, often  disguised  to  conceal  his  identity,  by  his  own 
representation  in  continual  dangers  and  difficulties  through 
the  possession  of  his  terrific  secret,  and  gaining  nothing  by 
his  labours,  is  a  curious  study  of  the  perversity  of  human 
character  for  those  who  disbelieve  in  alchemy,  and  some 
ground  for  the  faith  of  those  who  believe  in  it.    The  essential 
elements  of  fraud  are  wanting,  and  the  intellectual  nobility 
of  the  man,  illuminated,  moreover,  by  lofty  religious  aspira- 
tions, is  conspicuous  in  all  his  works. 
The  list  of  his  writings  is  as  follows  :— 
"  Anthroposophia  Magica  ; "  or  a  Discourse  of  the  Nature 
of  Man  and  his  State  after  Death.     "  Anima  Magica  Ab- 
scondita ; "    or  a   Discourse   of  the   Universall   Spirit   of 
Nature.     London,  1650.     8vo. 

"  Magia  Adamica  ; "  or  the  Antiquities  of  Magic,  and  the 
descent  thereof  from  Adam  downwards  proved.  Where- 
unto  is  added  a  perfect  and  full  discovery  of  the  "  Ccelum 
Terrse."  London,  1650.  8vo. 

The  Man-Mouse  taken  in  a  Trap  ...  for  Gnawing 
the  Margins  of  Eugenius  Philalethes.  (A  satire  on  Henry 
More,  who  attacked  him  in  a  pamphlet  entitled  "  Observa- 
tions upon  'Anthroposophia  Magica,"1  etc.)  London, 
1650.  8vo. 

"  Lumen  de  Lumine ; "  or  a  New  Magicall  Light  dis- 
covered and  communicated  to  the  World,  with  the  "  Aphor- 
ismi  Magici  Eugenianii."  London,  1651.  8vo. 

The  Second  Wash ;  or  The  Moore  Scour'd  once  more, 


THOMAS  VAUGHAN.  311 

being  a  charitable  cure  for  the  distractions  of  Alazonomastix 
(i.e.,  Henry  More).  London,  1651.  8vo. 

The  Fame  and  Confession  of  the  Fraternity  of  R.  C., 
with  a  Preface  annexed  thereto,  and  a  short  declaration  of 
their  physicall  work.  London,  1652.  8vo. 

Euphrates ;  or  The  Waters  of  the  East ;  being  a 
short  discourse  of  that  great  fountain  whose  water  flows 
from  Fire,  and  carries  in  it  the  beams  of  the  Sun  and  Moon. 
London,  1655.  8vo. 

A  Brief  Natural  History,  intermixed  with  variety  of 
Philosophical  Discourses  and  Observations  of  the  Burnings 
of  Mount  Etna,  &c.  London,  1669.  8vo. 

Introitus  Apertus  ad  Occlusum  Regis  Palatium.  Phila- 
lethae  Tractatus  Tres.  I.  Metallorum  Metamorphosis.  II. 
Brevis  Manductio  ad  Rubrium  Coelestem.  III.  Fons  Chy- 
micse  Veritatis.  1678.  4to. 

It  is  only  in  the  introduction  to  the  "  Fame  and  Confes- 
sion "  that  Philalethes  makes  any  important  reference  to  the 
Rosier ucian  Society.  There  his  opinions  are  expressed  in 
the  following  manner : — "  I  am  in  the  humour  to  affirm  the 
essence  and  existence  of  that  admired  chimera,  the  Frater- 
nitie  of  R,  C.  And  now,  gentlemen,  I  thank  you,  I  have 
aire  and  room  enough  ;  methinks  you  sneak  and  steal  from 
me,  as  if  the  plague  and  this  Red  Cross  were  inseparable. 
Take  my  Lord  have  mercy  along  with  you,  for  I  pitty  your 
sickly  braines,  and  certainly  as  to  your  present  state  the 
inscription  is  not  unseasonable.  But  in  lieu  of  this,  some 
of  you  may  advise  me  to  an  assertion  of  the  Capreols  of  del 
Phsebo,  or  a  review  of  the  library  of  that  discreet  gentleman 
of  La  Mancha,  for  in  your  opinion  those  knights  and  these 
brothers  are  equally  invisible.  This  is  hard  measure,  but  I 
shall  not  insist  to  disprove  you.  If  there  be  any  amongst 


312  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

the  living  of  the  same  bookish  faith  with  myself,  they  are 
the  persons  I  would  speak  to." 

The  preface  proceeds   to  discourse  upon  the  contempt 
which  magic  has  undergone  in  all  ages,  and  then  the  author 
distinctly  denies  his  personal  acquaintance  with  the  Eosi- 
crucian  Society.     "  As  for  that  Fraternity,  whose  History 
and  Confession  I  have  here  adventured  to  publish,  I  have, 
for  my  own  part,  no  relation  to  them,  neither  do  I  much 
desire  their  acquaintance.     I  know  they  are  masters  of  great 
mysteries,  and  I  know  withal  that  nature  is  so  large  they 
may  as  wel  receive  as  give.     I   was  never  yet  so  lavish  an 
admirer  of  them  as  to  prefer  them  to  all  the  world,  for  it  is 
possible,  and  perhaps  true,  that  a  private  man  may  have 
that  in  his  possession  whereof  they  are  ignorant.     It  is 
not   their   title   and   the   noise   it   has   occasioned  which 
makes  me  commend  them.     The  acknowledgment  I  give 
them  was  first  procured  by  their  books,  for  there  I  found 
them  true  philosophers,  and  therefore  not  chimseras,  as  most 
think,  but  men.     Their  principles  are  every  way  correspon- 
dent to  the  ancient  and  primitive  wisedome — nay,  they  are 
consonant  to  our  very  religion,  and  confirm  every  point 
thereof.      I  question  not  but  most  of  their  proposals  may 
seem  irregular  to  common  capacities,  but  when  the  preroga- 
tive and  power  of  Nature  is  known,  there  they  will  quickly 
fall  even,  for  they  want  not  order  and  sobriety.     It  will  be 
expected,  perhaps,  that  I  should  speak  something  as  to  their 
persons  and  habitations,  but  in  this  my  cold  acquaintance 
will  excuse  me,  or,  had  I  any  familiarity  with  them,  I  should 
not  doubt  to  use  it  with  more  discretion.     As  for  their 
existence  (if  I  may  speak  like  a  schoolman),  there  is  great 
reason  we  should  believe  it ;  neither  do  I  see  how  we  can 
deny  it,  unless  we  grant  that  Nature  is  studied,  and  books 


THOMAS  VAUGHAN.  313 

also  written  and  published,  by  some  other  creatures  then 
men.  It  is  true,  indeed,  that  their  knowledg  at  first  was 
not  purchased  by  their  own  disquisitions,  for  they  received 
it  from  the  Arabians,  amongst  whom  it  remained  as  the 
monument  and  legacy  of  the  children  of  the  East.  Nor  is 
this  at  all  improbable,  for  the  eastern  countries  have  been 
always  famous  for  magical  and  secret  societies." 

He  compares  the  habitation  of  the  Brachmans,  as  it  is 
described  by  Philostratus  in  his  life  of  Apollonius,  with  the 
Rosicrucian  Locus  Sancti  Spiritus,  concerning  which  he  quotes 
the  following  curious  passage  by  a  writer  whom  he  does  not 
name  : — "  Vidi  aliquando  Olympicas  domes,  non  procul  a  Flu- 
violo  et  Civitate  notd,  quas  S.  Spiritus  vocari  imaginamur. 
Helicon  est  de  quo  loquor,  aut  biceps  Parnassus,  in  quo  Equuv 
Pegasus  fontem  aperuit  perennis  aquce  adliuc  stillantem,1  in  quo 
Diana  se  lavat,  cui  Venus  ut  Pedissequa  et  Saturnus  ut  Anteam- 
bulo,  conjunguntur.  Intelligent*  nimium,  inexperto  minimum 
hoc  erit  dictum"  Quoting  afterwards  the  description  of  the 
Elysium  of  the  Brachmans — "  I  have  seen  (saith  Apollonius) 
the  Brachmans  of  India  dwelling  on  the  earth  and  not  on 
the  earth ;  they  were  guarded  without  walls,  and  possessing 
nothing,  they  enjoyed  all  things" — this  is  plain  enough, 
says  Philalethes,  "  and  on  this  hill  have  1  also  a  desire  to 
live,  if  it  were  for  no  other  reason  but  what  the  sophist 
applyed  to  the  mountains — 

Hos  primum  sol  salutat,  ulti  mosque  deserit, 
Quis  locum  non  amet,  dies  longiores  habentem  ? 

But  of  this  place  I  will  not  speak  any  more,  lest  the  readers 
should  be  so  mad  as  to  entertain  a  suspicion  that  I  am  of 
the  Order."  He  attempts,  however,  to  show  "the  confor- 

1  See  Introduction,  ante,  p.  10. 


314  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

mity  of  the  old  and  new  professors," — namely,  the  Rosi- 
crucians  and  the  Indian  initiates.  "When  we  have  evi- 
dence that  magicians  have  been,  it  is  proof  also  that  they 
may  be.  .  .  .  I  hold  it  then  worth  our  observation  that 
even  those  magi  who  came  to  Christ  Himself  came  from  the 
East;  but  as  we  cannot  prove  they  were  Brachmans,  so 
neither  can  we  prove  they  were  not.  If  any  man  will  .  .  . 
contend  for  the  negative,  it  must  follow  that  the  East 
afforded  more  magical  societies  then  one.  .  .  .  The  learned 
will  not  deny  but  wisdom  and  light  were  first  manifested 
in  the  same  parts,  namely,  in  the  East.  From  this  foun- 
tain also,  this  living,  oriental  one  did  the  Brothers  of  R.  C. 
draw  their  wholesom  waters." 

He  concludes  by  reiterating  his  previous  statement — "  I 
have  no  acquaintance  with  this  Fraternity  as  to  their  per- 
sons." 


CHAPTER  XIII. 

ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  JOHN  HEYDON. 

THE  last  of  the  line  of  apologists  who  has  any  claim  on  our 
notice  is  the  extraordinary  Royalist  mystic  and  geomancer, 
John  Hey  don,  who,  in  the  preface  to  "  The  Holy  Guide," 
has  left  us  the  following  interesting  and  curious  fragment 
of  autobiography : — 

"  I  was  descended  from  a  noble  family  of  London  in 


England,  being  born  of  a  complete  tall  stature,  small  limbs, 
but  in  every  part  proportionable,  of  a  dark  flaxen  haire,  it 
curling  as  you  see  in  the  Effigies,1  and  the  above  figures  of 

1  The  portraits  prefixed  to  several  of  John  Heydon's  works  repre- 
sent him  as  a  young,  beardless  man,  of  an  amiable  but  melancholy 
countenance. 


316  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 


Astrologie  at  the  time  I  was  born :  this  is  also  the  Charac- 
ter of  my  Genius  Malhitriel,  and  Spirit  Taphza  Benezelthar 
Thascraphimarah.  I  had  the  small  pox  and  rickets  very 


young — Ascendent  to  Conjunction,  Mars,  and  Sol  to  the 
quartile  of  Saturn.  I  was  at  Tardebich  in  Warwickshire, 
neer  Hewel,  where  my  mother  was  borne,  and  there  I 
learned,  and  so  carefull  were  they  to  keep  me  to  the  book 
and  from  danger,  that  I  had  one  purposely  to  attend  me  at 
school  and  at  home.  For,  indeed,  my  parents  were  both  of 
them  honourably  descended.  They  put  me  to  learn  the 
Latine  tongue  to  one  Mr  George  Linacre,  the  minister  of  the 
Gospel  at  Golton ;  of  him  I  learned  the  Latine  and  Greek 
perfectly,  and  then  was  fitted  for  Oxford.  But  the  Warrs 
began,  and  the  Sun  came  to  the  body  of  Saturn  and  frus- 
trated that  design  ;  and  whereas  you  are  pleased  to  stile  me 
a  noble-natured,  sweet  gentleman,1  you  see  my  nativity  :— 
Mercury,  Venus,  and  Saturn  are  strong,  and  by  them  the 
Dragon's  head  and  Mars,  I  judge  my  behaviour  full  of 
rigour,  and  acknowledge  my  conversation  austere.  In  my 
devotion  I  love  to  use  the  civility  of  my  knee,  my  hat,  and 
hand,  with  all  those  outward  and  sensible  motions  which 
may  express  or  promote  invisible  devotion.  I  followed  the 
army  of  the  King  to  Edgehill,  aud  commanded  a  troop  of 
horse,  but  never  violated  any  man,  &c.,  nor  defaced  the 

1  This  account  is  addressed  to  the  high  priest  or  grand  master  of  the 
Rosicrucians,  in  whose  presence  he  represents  himself  to  be  standing. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    317 

memory  of  saint  or  martyr.  I  never  killed  any  man  wil- 
fully, but  took  him  prisoner  and  disarmed  him ;  I  did 
never  divide  myself  from  any  man  upon  the  difference 
of  opinion,  or  was  angry  with  his  judgment  for  not 
agreeing  with  me  in  that  from  which,  perhaps,  within 
a  few  dayes,  I  should  dissent  myself.  I  never  regarded 
what  religion  any  man  was  of  that  did  not  question  mine. 
And  yet  there  is  no  Church  in  the  world  whose  every 
part  so  squares  unto  my  conscience,  whose  articles,  con- 
stitutions, and  customs  seem  so  consonant  unto  reason, 
and,  as  it  were,  framed  to  my  particular  devotion  as 
this  whereof  I  hold  my  belief,  the  Church  of  England,  to 
whose  faith  I  am  a  sworn  subject,  and  therefore  in  a  double 
obligation  subscribe  unto  her  articles,  and  endeavour  to 
observe  her  constitutions.  Whatsoever  is  beyond,  as  points 
indifferent,  I  observe  according  to  the  rules  of  my  private 
reason,  or  the  humour  and  fashion  of  my  devotion,  neither 
believing  this  because  Luther  affirmed  it,  or  disproving  that 
because  Calvin  hath  disfavoured  it.  Now  as  all  that  dye  in 
the  war  are  not  termed  souldiers,  neither  can  I  properly 
term  all  those  that  suffer  in  matters  of  religion  martyrs. 
And  I  say,  there  are  not  many  extant  that  in  a  noble  way 
fear  the  face  of  death  lesse  than  myselfe ;  yet  from  the 
moral  duty  I  owe  to  the  commandement  of  God,  and  the 
natural  respects  that  I  tender  unto  the  conversation  of  my 
essoine  and  being,  I  would  not  perish  upon  a  ceremony, 
politique  points,  or  indifferency ;  nor  is  my  belief  of  that 
untractable  temper,  as  not  to  bow  at  their  obstacles  or 
connive  at  matters  wherein  there  are  not  manifest  impieties. 
The  leaves,  therefore,  and  ferment  of  all,  not  only  civil,  but 
religious  actions,  is  wisdome,  without  which  to  commit  our- 
selves to  the  flames  is  homicide,  and,  I  fear,  but  to  passe 
through  one  fire  into  another.  I  behold,  as  a  champion, 


318  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

with  pride  and  spirites,  and  trophies  of  my  victories  over 
my  enemies,  and  can  with  patience  embrace  this  life,  yet 
in  my  best  meditations  do  often  defie  death  ;  I  honour  any 
man  that  contemns  it,  nor  can  I  love  any  that  is  afraid  of 
it — this  makes  me  naturally  love  a  souldier  that  will  follow 
his  captain.  In  my  figure  you  may  see  that  I  am  naturally 
bashful.  Yet  you  may  read  my  qualities  on  my  counten- 
ance. About  the  time  I  travelled  into  Spain,  Italy,  Turkey, 
and  Arabia,  the  Ascendent  was  then  directed  to  the  Trine  of 
the  Moon,  Sextile  of  Mercury  and  Quartile  of  Venus.  I 
studied  philosophy  and  writ  this  treatise,1  and  the  *  Temple 
of  Wisdome,'  &c.  Conversation,  age,  or  travell  hath  not 
been  able  to  affront  or  enrage  me,  yet  I  have  one  part  of 
the  modesty  which  I  have  seldom  discovered  in  another, 
that  is  (to  speak  truly),  I  am  not  so  much  afraid  of  Death 
as  ashamed  thereof.  It  is  the  very  disgrace  and  ignominy 
of  our  natures,  that  in  a  moment  can  so  disfigure  us  that 
our  beloved  friends  stand  afraid  and  start  at  us  ;  the  birds 
and  beasts  of  the  field  that  before  in  a  naturall  feare  obeyed 
us,  forgetting  all  allegiance,  begin  to  prey  upon  us.  This 
very  thought  in  a  storm  at  sea  hath  disposed  and  left  me 
willing  to  be  swallowed  up  in  the  abyss  of  waters,  wherein 
I  had  perished  unseen,  unpitied,  without  wondering  eyes, 
tears  of  pity,  lectures  of  morality,  and  none  had  said  : — 
Quantum  mutatus  ab  illo.  Not  that  I  am  ashamed  of  the 
anatomy  of  my  parts,  or  can  accuse  Nature  of  playing  the 
pupil  in  any  part  of  me,  or  my  own  vibious  life  for  con- 
tracting any  shameful  disease  upon  me,  whereby  I  might 
not  call  myself  a  compleat  bodyed  man,  free  from  all 
diseases,  sound,  and,  I  thank  God,  in  perfect  health. 

"  I  writ  my  *  Harmony  of  the  World,'  when  they  were 
all  at  discord,  and  saw  many  revolutions  of  kingdomes, 
1  "The  Holy  Guide." 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEY  DON.    319 

emperours,  grand  signiours,  and  popes  ;  I  was  twenty  when 
this  book  was  finished,  but  me  thinks  I  have  outlived  my- 
self, and  begin  to  be  weary  of  the  Sun,  although  the  Sun 
now  applies  to  a  Trine  of  Mars.  I  have  shaken  hands  with 
delight  and  know  all  is  vanity,  and  I  think  no  man  can 
live  well  once  but  he  that  could  live  twice,  yet  for  my  part 
I  would  not  live  over  my  howres  past,  or  begin  again  the 
minutes  of  my  dayes,  not  because  I  have  lived  them  well, 
but  for  fear  I  should  live  them  worse.  At  my  death  I  mean 
to  take  a  total  adieu  of  the  world,  not  caring  for  the  burthen 
of  a  tombstone  and  epitaph,  nor  so  much  as  the  bare  memory 
of  my  name  to  be  found  anywhere,  but  in  the  Universal 
Register  of  God.  I  thank  God  that  with  joy  I  mention 
it,  I  was  never  afraid  of  Hell,  nor  never  grew  pale  at  the 
mention  of  Sheol,  or  Tophet,  &c.,  because  I  understand  the 
policy  of  a  pulpit,  and  fix  my  contemplations  on  Heaven. 

"  I  writ  the  '  Rosie  Crucian  Infallible  Axiomata,'  in  foure 
books,  and  study  not  for  my  own  sake  only  but  for  theirs 
that  study  not  for  themselves.  In  the  La\v  I  began  to  be  a 
perfect  clerk;  I  writ  the  'Idea  of  the  Law,'  &c.,  for  the  benefit 
of  my  friends  and  practice  in  the  King's  Bench.  I  envy  no 
man  that  knows  more  than  myself,  but  pitty  them  that  know 
lesse.  For  Ignorance  is  rude,  uncivill,  and  will  abuse  any 
man,  as  we  see  in  bayliffs,  who  are  often  killed  for  their 
impudent  attempts ;  they'll  forge  a  warrant  and  fright  a 
fellow  to  fling  away  his  money,  that  they  may  take  it  up ; 
the  devill,  that  did  but  buffet  St.  Paul,  playes  me  thinks  at 
sharpe  with  me.  To  do  no  injury  nor  take  none,  was  a 
principle  which  to  my  former  years  and  impatient  affection 
seemed  to  contain  enough  of  morality,  but  my  more  settled 
years  and  Christian  constitution  have  fallen  upon  severer 
resolutions.  I  hold  there  is  no  such  thing  as  injury,  and  if 
there  be,  there  is  no  such  injury  as  revenge,  and  no  such 


320 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


revenge  as  the  contempt  of  an  injury.  There  be  those  that 
will  venture  to  write  against  my  doctrine,  when  I  am  dead, 
that  never  durst  answer  me  when  alive.  I  see  Cicero  is 
abused  by  Cardan,  who  is  angry  at  Tully  for  praising  his 
own  daughter  ;  and  Origanus  is  so  impudent,  that  he  adven- 
tures to  forge  a  position  of  the  heavens  and  calls  it  Cornelius 
Agrippa's  nativity,  and  they  say  that  Cornelius  was  borne  to 
believe  lyes  and  to  broach  them.  Is  not  this  unworthiness  to 
write  such  lyes,  and  shew  such  reasons  for  them  1  His  na- 
tivity I  could  never  finde,  I  believe  no  man  knows  it,  but  by  a 
false  figure  thus  they  scandalize  him.  And  so  they  may  use 
me,  but  behold  the  scheam  of  my  nativity  in  Geomancy, 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  JOHN  HEYDON.    321 

and  the  character  of  my  spirit  Taphzabnezeltharthaseraphim 
arah, 


projected  by  a  learned  lord  for  the  honour  (?  hour)  of  birth. 
Now  let  any  astrologer,  geomancer,  philosopher,  &c.,  judge 
my  geniture ;  the  figures  are  right  according  to  the  exact 
time  of  my  birth,  rectified  by  accidents  and  verified  by  the 
effects  of  directions.  Now  in  the  midst  of  all  my  endeav- 
ours, there  is  but  one  thought  that  dejects  me — that  my 
acquired  parts  must  perish  with  myself,  nor  can  be  legacyed 
amongst  my  dearly  beloved  and  honoured  friends.  I  do  not 
fall  out  or  contemn  a  man  for  an  errour,  or  conceive  why  a 
difference  in  opinion  should  divide  an  affection;  for  a  modest 
reproof  or  dispute,  if  it  meet  with  discreet  and  peaceable 
natures,  doth  not  infringe  the  laws  of  charity  in  all  argu- 
ments. 

"  When  the  mid  heaven  was  directed  to  the  Trine  of  the 
Moon,  I  writ  another  book,  and  entituled  it,  '  The  Funda- 
mental Elements  of  Philosophy,  Policy,  Government  and  the 
Laws,'  &c.  After  this  time  I  had  many  misfortunes,  and 
yet  I  think  there  is  no  man  that  apprehends  his  own  miseries 
less  than  myself,  and  no  man  that  so  nearly  apprehends 
another's.  I  could  lose  an  arm  without  a  tear,  and  with  few 
groans,  methinks,  be  quartered  into  pieces,  yet  can  I  weep 
seriously,  with  a  true  passion,  to  see  the  mercilesse  Rebels 
in  England  forge  a  debt  against  the  King's  most  loyall  sub- 

x 


322  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

jects,  purposely  to  put  them  in  the  Marshalsey,  or  other 
Houses  of  Hell  to  be  destroyed  in  prison,  or  starved,  or 
killed  by  the  keepers,  and  then  two  or  three  poore  old 
women  for  as  many  shillings  shall  perswade  the  Crowner  and 
the  people  to  believe  the  men  dyed  of  consumptions.  It  is 
a  barbarous  part  in  humanity  to  add  unto  any  afflicted 
parties'  misery,  or  endeavour  to  multiply  in  any  man  a 
passion  whose  single  nature  is  already  above  his  patience. 

"The  Ascendent  to  the  Quartile  of  Saturn,  and  part  of 
Fortune  to  the  Sextile  of  the  Moon  came  next ;  and  it  is 
true  I  had  loved  a  lady  in  Devonshire,  but  when  I 
seriously  perused  my  nativity,  I  found  the  seventh  House 
afflicted,  and  therefore  never  resolve  to  marry ;  for,  behold, 
I  am  a  man,  and  I  know  not  how  :  I  was  so  proportioned 
and  have  something  in  me  that  can  be  without  me,  and 
will  be  after  me,  and  here  is  the  misery  of  a  man's  life ;  he 
eats,  drinks,  and  sleeps  to-day  that  he  may  do  so  to- 
morrow, and  this  breeds  diseases,  which  bring  death,  *  for 
all  flesh  is  grass.'  And  all  these  creatures  we  behold  are 
but  the  herbs  of  the  field  digested  into  flesh  in  them,  or 
more  remotely  carnified  in  ourselves ;  we  are  devourers  not 
onely  of  men  but  of  ourselves,  and  that  not  in  an  allegory 
but  a  positive  truth,  for  all  this  masse  of  flesh  which  we 
behold  came  in  at  our  mouths  ;  this  frame  we  look  upon 
hath  been  upon  our  trenchers,  and  we  have  devoured  our- 
selves, and  what  are  we?  I  could  be  content  that  we 
might  raise  each  other  from  death  to  life  as  Eosie  Crucians 
doe  without  conjunction,  or  that  there  were  any  way  to 
perpetuate  the  world  without  this  trivial  and  vain  way  of 
coition  as  Dr  Brown  calls  it.  It  is  the  foolishest  act  a  wise 
man  commits  all  his  life,  nor  is  there  anything  that  will  more 
deject  his  cold  imagination  than  to  consider  what  an  odd 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    323 

errour  he  hath  committed.1  Had  the  stars  favoured  me,  I 
might  have  been  happy  in  that  sweet  sex. 

"  I  remember  also  that  this  Quartile  of  Saturn  imprisoned 
me  at  a  messenger's  house  for  contending  with  Cromwell, 
who  maliciously  commanded  I  should  be  kept  close  in 
Lambeth  House,  as  indeed  I  was  two  years.  My  person 
he  feared,  and  my  tongue  and  pen  offended  him,  because, 
amongst  many  things,  I  said  particularly,  such  a  day  he 
would  die,  and  he  dyed.  It  is  very  true  Oliver  opposed  me 
all  his  life,  and  made  my  father  pay  seventeen-hundred 
pounds  for  his  liberty ;  besides,  they  stole,  under  pretence 
of  sequestering  him,  two  thousand  pounds  in  jewels,  plate, 
&c.,  and  yet  the  King's  noblest  servants  suffer  upon  suspi- 
tion  of  death. 

"  When  the  moon  was  directed  to  the  Quartile  of  Sol, 
and  the  M.  C.  to  the  opposition  of  Sol,  I  was  by  the  phan- 
atick  Committee  of  Safety  committed  to  prison,  and  my 
books  burnt,  yet  I  would  not  entertain  a  base  design,  or  an 
action  that  should  call  me  villain,  for  all  the  riches  in 
England ;  and  for  this  only  do  I  love  and  honour  my  own 
soul,  and  have,  methinks,  two  arms  too  few  to  embrace 
myself.  My  conversation  is  like  the  Sun  with  all  men,  and 
with  a  friendly  aspect  to  good  and  bad.  Methinks  there  is 
no  man  bad,  and  the  worst  best,  that  is,  while  they  are 
kept  within  the  circle  of  those  qualities  wherein  there  is 
good.  The  method  I  should  use  in  distributive  justice  I 

1  "  I  could  be  content  that  we  might  procreate  like  trees,  without 
conjunction,  or  that  there  were  any  way  to  perpetuate  the  world 
without  this  trivial  and  vulgar  way  of  coition  :  it  is  the  foolishest 
act  a  wise  man  commits  in  all  his  life,  nor  is  there  anything 
that  will  more  deject  his  cooled  imagination,  when  he  shall  consider 
what  an  odd  and  unworthy  piece  of  folly  he  hath  committed.  I  speak 
not  in  prejudice,  nor  am  averse  from  that  sweet  sex,  but  naturally 
amorous  of  all  that  is  beautiful." — Religio  Medici,  pt.  ii.  sec.  9. 


324  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS, 

often  observe  in  commutation,  and  keep  a  geometrical  pro- 
portion in  both,  whereby  becomming  equal  to  others,  I  be- 
come unjust  to  myself,  and  suberogate  in  that  common 
principle,  '  Doe  unto  others  as  thou  wouldst  be  done  unto 
thy  self ' ;  yet  I  give  no  alms  to  satisfie  the  hunger  of  my 
brother,  but  to  fulfil  and. accomplish  the  will  and  command 
of  God.  This  general  and  indifferent  temper  of  mine  doth 
nearly  dispose  me  to  this  noble  virtue  amongst  those  million 
of  vices  I  do  inherit  and  hold  from  Adam.  I  have 
escaped  one  and  that  a  mortal  enemy  to  charity,  the  first 
and  father  sin,  not  onely  of  man,  but  of  the  devil,  Pride — 
a  vice  whose  name  is  comprehended  in  a  monosyllable,  but 
in  its  nature  not  circumscribed  with  a  world.  I  have 
escaped  it  in  a  condition  that  can  hardly  avoid  it ;  these 
petty  acquisitions  and  reputed  perfections  that  advance  and 
elevate  the  conceits  of  other  men  add  no  feather  unto  mine. 
And  this  is  the  observation  of  my  life — I  can  love  and 
forgive  even  my  enemies." 

The  materials  supplied  in  this  singular  fragment  of  an 
autobiography  are  supplemented  by  a  "  Life  of  John 
Heydon,"  from  the  pen  of  Frederick  Talbot,  Esq.,  which 
was  prefixed  to  "  The  Wise  Man's  Crown,"  and  which  I 
shall  present  to  my  readers  in  a  compressed  form,  to  avoid 
the  prolixity  and  irrelevance  of  much  of  the  original. 

John  Heydon,  the  son  of  Francis  and  Mary  Heydon,  now 
of  Sidmouth  in  Devonshire,  is  not  basely  but  nobly  de- 
scended. Antiquaries  derive  them  from  Julius  Heydon, 
King  of  Hungary  and  Westphalia,  that  were  descended 
from  the  noble  family  of  Csesar  Heydon  in  Eome,  and  since 
this  royal  race  the  line  runs  down  to  the  Hon.  Sir  Chris- 
topher Heydon  of  Heydon,  near  Northwick ;  Sir  John 
Heydon,  late  lord-lieutenant  of  the  king's  Tower  of  Lon- 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    325 

don,  and  the  noble  Chandlers  in  Worcestershire  of  the 
mother's  side,  which  line  spread  by  marriage  into  Devon- 
shire, among  the  Collins,  Ducks,  Drues,  and  Bears.  He 
had  one  sister,  named  Anne  Heydon,  who  dyed  two  years 
since,  his  father  and  mother  being  yet  living.  He  was 
born  at  his  father's  house  in  Green-Arbour,  London,  and 
baptized  at  S.  Sepulchre's,  and  so  was  his  sister,  both  in 
the  fifth  and  seventh  years  of  the  reign  of  King  Charles  I. 
He  was  educated  in  Warwickshire,  among  his  mother's 
friends,  and  so  careful  were  they  to  keep  him  and  his  sister 
from  danger,  and  to  their  books,  that  they  had  one  continu- 
ally to  wait  upon  them,  both  to  the  school  and  at  home. 

He  was  commended  by  Mr  John  Dennis,  his  tutor  in 
Tardebick,  to  Mr  George  Linacre,  priest  of  Cougheton, 
where  he  learned  the  Latine  and  Greek  tongues.  The  war 
at  this  time  began  to  molest  the  universities  of  this  nation. 
He  was  then  articled  to  Mr  Michael  Petty,  an  attorney  at 
Clifford's  Inn,  with  eighty  pound,  that  at  five  years'  end  he 
should  be  sworn  before  Chief  Justice  Roll.  Being  very 
young,  he  apply ed  his  minde  to  learning,  and  by  his  happy 
wit  obtained  great  knowledge  in  all  arts  and  sciences. 
Afterwards  he  followed  the  armies  of  the  King,  and  for  his 
valour  commanded  in  the  troops.  When  he  was  by  these 
means  famous  for  learning  and  arms,  he  travelled  into 
Spain,  Italy,  Arabia,  ^Egypt,  and  Persia,  gave  his  minde 
to  writing,  and  composed,  about  twenty  years  since,  "  The 
Harmony  of  the  World,"  and  other  books,  preserved  by 
the  good  hand  of  God  in  the  custody  of  Mr  Thomas  Heydon, 
Sir  John  Hanmer,  Sir  Ealph  Freeman,  and  Sir  Richard 
Temple.  During  the  tyrant's  time  first  one  had  these  books, 
then  another,  and  at  last,  at  the  command  of  these  honour- 
able, learned,  and  valiant  knights,  they  were  printed. 


326  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

He  wrote  many  excellent  things,  and  performed  many 
rare  experiments  in  the  arts  of  astromancy,  geomancy,  &c., 
but  especially  eighty-one — the  first  upon  the  King's  death, 
predicted  in  Arabia  by  him  to  his  friends ;  the  second 
upon  the  losses  of  thej  King  at  Worcester,  predicted  at 
Thauris,  in  Persia  ;  the  third  predicted  the  death  of  Oliver 
Cromwell  in  Lambeth  House,  to  many  persons  of  honour, 
mentioned  in  his  books ;  the  fourth  he  wrote  of  the  over- 
throw of  Lambert,  and  of  the  Duke  of  Albymarle  his  bring- 
ing again  of  the  King  to  his  happy  countries,  and  gave  it 
to  Major  Christopher  Berkenhead,  a  goldsmith  at  the 
Anchor,  by  Fettes  Lane  End  in  Holborn  ;  the  fifth  precau- 
tion or  prediction  he  gave  to  his  Highness  the  Duke  of 
Buckingham,  two  months  before  the  evil  was  practised, 
and  his  enemy,  Abraham  Goodman,  lies  now  in  the  Tower 
for  attempting  the  death  of  that  noble  prince ;  the  sixth, 
for  Count  Grammont,  when  he  was  banished  into  England 
by  the  King  of  France ;  and  he  predicted,  by  the  art  of 
astromancy  and  geomancy,  the  King's  receiving  of  him 
again  into  favor,  and  his  marriage  to  the  Lady  Hamelton  ; 
the  seventh,  for  Duke  Minulaus,  a  peer  of  Germany,  that 
the  Emperour  sent  to  him  when  the  Turk  had  an  army 
against  him,  and  of  the  death  of  the  pope.  The  rest  are 
in  his  books.  By  these  monuments  the  name  of  Heydon, 
for  the  variety  of  his  learning,  was  famous  not  onely  in 
England,  but  also  in  many  other  nations  into  which  his 
books  are  translated.  He  hath  taught  the  way  to  happi- 
ness, the  way  to  long  life,  the  way  to  health,  the  way  to 
wax  young,  being  old  ;  the  way  to  resolve  all  manner  of 
questions,  present  and  to  come,  by  the  rules  of  astromancy 
and  geomancy,  and  how  to  raise  the  dead. 

He  is  a  man  of  middle  stature,  tending  to  tallness,  a 


ROSICRUC1AN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    327 

handsome  straight  body  ;  an  ovall,  ruddy  face,  mixed  with 
a  clear  white,  his  hair  of  a  dark  flaxen-brown  colour,  soft, 
and  curling  in  rings  gently  at  the  ends  of  the  locks ;  his 
hands  and  fingers  long  and  slender,  his  legs  and  feet  well 
proportioned,  so  that  to  look  upon  he  is  a  very  com- 
pleat  gentleman.  But  he  never  yet  cast  affection  on  a 
woman,  nor  do  I  find  him  inclined  to  marry.  He  is  very 
often  in  great  ladies'  chambers,  and,  I  believe,  his  modest 
behaviour  makes  them  the  more  delighted  in  his  company. 
The  princes  and  peers,  not  only  of  England  but  of  Spain, 
Italy,  France,  and  Germany,  send  to  him  dayly,  and  upon 
every  occasion  he  sheweth  strong  parts  and  a  vigorous 
brain.  His  wishes  and  aimes  speak  him  owner  of  a  noble 
and  generous  heart ;  his  excellent  books  are  admired  by 
the  world  of  lettered  men  as  prodigies  of  these  later  times  ; 
indeed  (if  I  am  able  to  judge  anything),  they  are  full  of 
the  profoundest  learning  I  ever  met  withall.  Tf  any  man 
should  question  my  judgement,  they  may  read  the  comen- 
dations  of  both  universities,  besides  the  learned  Thomas 
White  and  Thomas  Kevell,  Esquires,  both  famous  in  Rome 
and  other  parts  beyond  sea,  that  have  highly  honoured  this 
gentleman  in  their  books.  Yet  he  hath  suffered  many 
misfortunes.  His  father  was  sequestered,  imprisoned,  and 
lost  two  thousand  pounds  by  Cromwell ;  this  Oliver  im- 
prisoned this  son  also  two  years  and  a  half,  or  thereabout, 
in  Lambeth  House,  for  he  and  his  father's  family  were 
always  for  the  king,  and  endeavoured  to  the  utmost  his 
restoration ;  and  indeed  the  tyrant  was  cruel,  but  John 
Thurloe,  his  secretary,  was  kind  to  him,  arid  pittied  his 
curious  youth.  Joshua  Leadbeater,  the  messenger,  kept 
him  (at  his  request  and  Mr  John  Bradley's)  at  his  own 
house,  and  gave  him  often  leave  to  go  abroad,  but  being  yet 


328  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

zealous  and  active  for  the  king,  he  was  again  taken  and  clapt 
up  in  Lambeth  House.     In  these  misfortunes  it  cost  him 
£1000  and  upwards.  After  this,  some  envious  villains  forged 
actions  of  debt  against  him,  and  put  him  in  prison.    It  seems 
at  the  beginning  of  these  misfortunes  a  certain  harlot  would 
have  him  marry  her,  but  denying  her  suit,  or  that  he  ever 
promised  any  such  thing,  and  that  he  ever  spake  to  her  in 
his  life  good  or  evil,  she  devised,  with  her  confederates, 
abundance  of  mischief  against  him.     Many  courted  him  to 
marry,  but  he  denyed.     Now  there  was  left  amongst  a  few 
old  almanacks  and  scraps  of  other  men's  wits,  collected  and 
bequeathed   unto   the   world    by   Nicholas   Culpeper,   his 
widdow,  Alice  Culpeper ;    she  hearing  of  this  gentleman 
that  he  was  an  heir  to  a  great  fortune,  courts  him  by  letters 
of  love  to  no  purpose.     The  next  saint  in  order  was  she 
that  calls  herself  the  German  princess  ;  but  he  flies  high 
and  scorns  such  fowl,  great  beasts.     The  first  of  these  two 
blessed  birds  caused  Heath  to  arrest  him,  and  another  after 
him  laid  actions  against  him  that  he  never  knew  or  heard  of. 
In  this  perplexity  was  he  imprisoned  two  years,  for  they 
did  desire  nothing  but  to  get  money  or  destroy  him,  for  fear, 
if  ever  he  got  his  liberty,  he  might  punish  them ;  but  he, 
being  of  a  noble  nature,  forgave  them  all  their  malice,  and 
scorns  to  revenge  himself  upon  such  pittiful  things.     God 
indeed  hath  done  him  justice,  for  this  Heath  consumes  to 
worse  then  nothing  ;  and,  indeed,  if  I  can  judge  or  predict 
anything,  his  baudy-houses  will  be  pawned,  and  he  will  die 
a  miserable,  diseased  beggar.     Hey  don's  mistris,  when  he 
was  very  young,  and  a  clerk,  desired  him  to  lye  with  her ; 
but  he,  like  Joseph,  refusing,  she  hated  him  all  her  life. 
God   preserved   him,    although  one  of  these   three   lewd 
women   swore   this  gentleman  practised  the  art  magick. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  JOHN  HEYDON.    329 

She  told  Oliver  Cromwell  she  saw  familiar  spirits  come  and 
go  to  him  in  the  shape  of  conies,  and  her  maid  swore  she 
had  often  seen  them  in  his  chamber  when  he  was  abroad, 
and  sometimes  walking  upon  the  house  top  in  a  moon- 
shine night,  and  sometimes  vanishing  away  into  a  wall  or 
aire ;  yet  she  never  saw  him  in  her  life,  nor  could  she  tell 
what  manner  of  man  he  was.  These  stories  were  not 
credited,  and  for  all  these,  and  many  more,  afflictions  and 
false  accusations,  I  never  saw  him  angry,  nor  did  he  ever 
arrest  or  imprison  any  man  or  woman  in  all  his  life,  yet  no 
client  of  his  was  ever  damnyfied  in  his  suit. 

He  was  falsly  accused  but  lately  of  writing  a  seditious 
book,  and  imprisoned  in  a  messenger's  custody ;  but  his 
noble  friend,  the  duke  of  Buckingham,  finding  him  inno- 
cent and  alwaies  for  the  king,  he  was  discharged,  and 
indeed  this  glorious  duke  is  a  very  good  and  just  judge  ;  al- 
though some  speak  slightly  of  him,  he  studies  the  way  to 
preserve  his  king  and  country  in  peace,  plenty,  and  pros- 
perity. It  is  pitty  the  king  hath  no  more  such  brave  men 
as  he ;  a  thousand  such  wise  dukes  as  this, 

"Like  marshall'd  thunder,  back'd  with  flames  of  fire," 
would  make  all  the  enemies  of  the  King  and  Christendome 
quake,  and  the  Turk  fly  before  such  great  generals.     In  all 
submission  we  humbly  pray  for  this  great  prince,  and  leave 
him  to  his  pleasure,  and  return  to  our  subject. 

John  Heydon  hath  purposely  forsaken  Spittle-Fields,  and 
his  lodgings  there,  to  live  a  private  life,  free  from  the  con- 
course of  multitudes  of  people  that  daily  followed  him;  but  if 
any  desire  to  be  advised,  let  them  by  way  of  letter  leave  their 
business  at  his  booksellers,  and  they  shall  have  answer  and 
counsel  without  reward,  for  he  is  neither  envious  nor  enemie 
to  any  man ;  what  I  write  is  upon  my  own  knowledge. 


- 
330  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROStCRUClANS. 

He  writes  now  from  Hermeupolis,  a  place  I  was  never 
at.  It  seems,  by  the  word,  to  be  the  City  of  Mercury,  and 
truly  he  hath  been  in  many  strange  places,  among  the 
Rosie  Crucians,  and  at  their  castles,  holy  houses,  temples, 
sepulchres,  sacrifices ;  all  the  world  knows  this  gentleman 
studies  honourable  things,  and  faithfully  communicates 
them  to  others ;  yet,  if  any  traduce  him  hereafter,  they 
must  not  expect  his  vindication.  He  hath  referred  his 
quarrel  to  the  God  of  Nature ;  it  is  involved  in  the  con- 
cernments of  his  truths,  and  he  is  satisfied  with  the  peace 
of  a  good  conscience.  He  hath  been  misinterpreted  in  his 
writing ;  with  studied  calumnies,  they  disparage  his  person 
whom  they  never  saw,  nor  perhaps  will  see.  He  is  resolved 
for  the  future  to  suffer,  for  he  says,  "  God  condemns  no 
man  for  his  patience."  His  enemies  are  forced  to  praise  his 
vertue,  and  his  friends  are  sorry  he  hath  not  ten  thousand 
pounds  a  year.  He  doth  not  resent  the  common  spleen  ; 
and  when  the  world  shall  submit  to  the  general  tribunal, 
he  will  find  his  advocate  where  they  shall  find  their  judge. 
When  I  writ  this  gentleman's  life,  God  can  bear  me  witness, 
it  was  unknown  to  him,  and  for  no  private  ends.  I  was 
forced  to  it  by  a  strong  admiration  of  the  mistery  and 
majesty  of  Nature  written  by  this  servant  of  God  and 
secretary  of  Nature.  I  began  his  life  some  years  since,  and 
do  set  it  down  as  I  do  finde  it.  If  any  man  oppose  this  I 
shall  answer ;  if  you  are  for  peace,  peace  be  with  you ;  if 
you  are  for  war,  I  have  been  so  too  (Mr  Heydon  doth  re- 
solve never  to  draw  sword  again  in  England,  except  the 
King  command  him).  Now,  let  not  him  that  puts  on 
the  armour  boast  like  him  that  puts  it  off.  Gaudet 
patientia  duris  is  his  motto,  and  thus  I  present  myself  a 
friend  to  all  artists,  and  enemy  to  no  man. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEY  DON.    33! 

The  list  of  Heydon's  published  works  is  as  follows  : — 

Eugenius  Theodidactus,  The  Prophetical  Trumpeter  .  .  . 
illustrating  the  Fate  of  Great  Britain.  (A  celestial  vision 
in  heroic  verse)  ...  By  the  Muses'  most  unworthy  John 
Heydon.  London,  1655. 

A  New  Method  of  Rosie  Crucian  Physick ;  wherein  is 
shewed  the  cause  and  .  .  .  cure  of  all  diseases.  London, 
1658.  4to. 

Advice  to  a  Daughter  in  opposition  to  advice  to  a  Son, 
or  directions  for  your  better  conduct  through  the  various 
and  most  important  events  of  this  life.  London,  1658.  1 2mo. 

The  Idea  of  the  Law  charactered  from  Moses  to  King 
Charles.  London,  1660.  8vo. 

The  Rosie  Crucian  Infallible  Axiomata;  or,  generall 
rules  to  know  all  things  past,  present,  and  to  come.  Lon- 
don, 1660.  12ino. 

The  Holy  Guide,  Leading  the  Way  to  the  Wonder  of  the 
World  :  A  Compleat  Phisitian,  teaching  the  knowledge  of 
all  things,  past,  present,  and  to  come.  London,  1662.  8vo. 

Theomagia  ;  or,  The  Temple  of  Wisdome.  In  three  parts 
spirituall,  celestiall,  and  elemental!.  London,  1662-3-4.  8vo. 

The  Harmony  of  the  World,  being  a  discourse  of  God, 
Heaven,  Angels,  Stars,  Planets,  Earth,  &c.,  whereunto  is 
added  the  State  of  the  New  Jerusalem.  .  .  .  London, 
1662.  8vo. 

Psonthonpanchia ;  Being  a  Word  in  Season  to  the 
Enemies  of  Christians,  and  an  appeal  to  the  natural  facul- 
ties of  the  mind  of  man,  whether  there  be  not  a  God. 
London,  1664.  8vo. 

The  Wise  Man's  Crown  ;  or,  The  Glory  of  the  Rosie- 
Cross  .  .  .  with  the  full  discovery  of  the  true  Codum  Terrce, 
or  first  matter  of  the  Philosophers.  .  .  .  With  the  Eegio 


332  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Lucis,  and  Holy  Household  of  Rosie  Crucian  Philosophers. 
London,  1664.  8vo. 

El  Havarevna;  or,  the  English  Physitian's  Tutor  in  the  As- 
trobolismes  of  Mettals  Rosie  Crucian.  London,  1665.  8vo. 

The  philosophical  principles  of  John  Heydon  need 
hardly  detain  us  long.  That  Typhon  is  the  adversary  of 
Beata  Pulchra,  that  Hyle  is  the  spirit  of  the  cold  and  dry 
earth,  that  Beata  Pulchra  is  the  vivifying  spirit  of  Nature, 
that  the  bodies  of  the  dead  rebellious  angels  became  a  fruit- 
less and  unprofitable  chaos,  are  matters  which  will  scarcely 
interest  the  serious  student.  His  alchemical  theories  and 
experiments  belong  to  the  lowest  dregs  of  this  much  de- 
graded science,  except  in  those  parts  which  are  bodily  stolen 
from  Eugenius  Philalethes ; *  and  all  that  is  of  value  in  his 
numerical  mysticism,  geomantic  revelations,  astromancy, 
and  investigations  of  spiritual  mysteries,  is  derived  from 
anterior  writers.  His  medical  treatises  are  disfigured  by 
his  gross  superstition  and  credulity ;  but  the  unhc;ard  of 
experiments  and  recipes  which  they  occasionally  provide 
make  them  extremely  curious  reading.  Tres  rares,  trks  curieux, 
et  rtclierchts  des  amateurs,  his  books,  one  and  all,  command 
large  prices  in  the  market,  and  the  republication  of  his 
marvellous  Rosicrucian  reveries  and  romances,  is  a  venture 
that  deserves  well  at  the  hands  of  all  students  of  the  by- 
ways of  occultism. 

In  John  Heydon  we  find  the  names  Rosicrucian,  Rosi- 
crucianism,  &c.,  used  in  a  general  sense,  and  as  terms  to 
conjure  with.  The  supposed  brethren  are  confounded  with 
the  elder  alchemists,  theosophists,  etc.,  and  an  irrational 

1  Compare  the  "Temple  of  Wisdome,"  vol.  i.,  last  pages,  with 
the  Preface  to  Vaughan's  "  Euphrates,"  and  also  with  the  "  Occult 
Philosophy  "  of  Agrippa,  book  iv. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  JOHN  HE  YDON.    333 

antiquity  is  gratuitously  bestowed  on  them.  The  author 
denies  that  he  is  a  member  of  the  Fraternity,  but  he  inter- 
prets all  its  secrets,  and  expounds  all  its  doctrines,  in  an 
authoritative  manner,  and  he  claims  personal  acquaintance 
with  various  members  of  the  Society,  as  will  appear  from 
the  following : — 

Apologue  for  an  Epilogue. 

I  shall  here  tell  you  what  Rosie  Crucians  are,  and  that 
Moses  was  their  Father,  and  he  was  Qsou  ircuc, ;  some  say 
they  were  of  the  order  of  Elias,  some  say  the  Disciples 
of  Ezekiel ;  others  define  them  to  be  the  Officers  of  the 
Generalissimo  of  the  World,  that  are  as  the  eyes  and  ears  of 
the  Great  King,1  seeing  and  hearing  all  things :  they  are  sera- 
phically  illuminated,  as  Moses  was,  according  to  this  order  of 
the  Elements,  Earth  refined  to  Water,  Water  to  Air,  Air  to 
Fire,  so  of  a  man  to  be  one  of  the  Heroes,  of  a  Hero  a  Daemon, 
or  good  Genius,  of  a  Genius  a  partaker  of  Divine  things,  and 
a  companion  of  the  holy  company  of  unbodied  Soules  and 
immortal  Angels,  and  according  to  their  vehicles,  a  versatile, 
life,  turning  themselves,  Proteus-like,  into  any  shape. 

But  there  are  yet  arguments  to  procure  Mr  Wal- 
foord,  and  T.  Williams,  Eosie  Crucians  by  election,  and 
that  is  the  miracles  that  were  done  by  them  in  my  sight ; 
for  it  should  seem  Rosie  Crucians  were  not  only  initiated 
into  the  Mosaical  Theory,  but  have  arrived  also  to  the 
power  of  working  miracles,  as  Moses,  Elias,  Ezekiel,  and 
the  succeeding  Prophets  did,  being  transported  where  they 
please,  and  one  of  these  went  from  me  to  a  friend  of  mine 
in  Devonshire,  and  came  and  brought  me  an  answer  to 

1  This  is  stolen  from  a  treatise  on  the  Immortality  of  the  Soul  by 
Henry  More,  the  Platonist,  who  applies  it  to  the  beneficent  genii. 


334  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUC1ANS. 

London  the  same  day,  which  is  four  dayes  journey ;  they 
taught  me  excellent  predictions  of  Astrology  and  Earth- 
quakes ;  they  slack  the  Plague  in  Cities ;  they  silence  the 
violent  Winds  and  Tempests;  they  calm  the  rage  of  the 
Sea  and  Eivers ;  they  walk  in  the  Air ;  they  frustrate  the 
malicious  aspect  of  Witches  ;  they  cure  all  Diseases.  I  de- 
sired one  of  these  to  tell  me  whether  my  Complexion  were 
capable  of  the  society  of  my  good  Genius  ?  When  I  see 
you  again,  said  he,  I  will  tell  you,  which  is  when  he  pleases 
to  come  to  me,  for  I  know  not  where  to  go  to  him.  When 
I  saw  him  again,  then  he  said,  Ye  should  pray  to  God ;  for 
a  good  and  holy  man  can  offer  no  more  acceptable  sacrifice 
to  God  than  the  oblation  of  himself,  his  soul.1 

He  said  also,  that  the  good  Genii  are  as  the  benigne  eyes 
of  God,  running  to  and  fro  in  the  world,  with  love  and  pity 
beholding  the  innocent  endeavours  of  harmless  and  single- 
hearted  men,  ever  ready  to  do  them  good,  and  to  help 
them ;  at  his  going  away  he  bid  me  beware  of  my  seeming 
friends,  who  would  do  me  all  the  hurt  they  could,  and  cause 
the  Governours  of  the  Nations  to  be  angry  with  me,  and  set 
bounds  to  my  liberty  :  which  truly  happened  to  me.  Many 
things  more  he  told  me  before  we  parted,  but  I  shall  not 
name  them  here. 

This  Eosie  Crucian  Physick  or  Medecines,  I  happily  and 
unexpectedly  light  upon  in  Arabia,  which  will  prove  a 
restauration  of  health  to  all  that  are  afflicted  with  sickness 
which  we  ordinarily  call  natural,  and  all  other  diseases. 
These  men  have  no  small  insight  into  the  body  ;  Walfoord, 
Williams,  and  others  of  the  Fraternity  now  living,  may 
bear  up  in  the  same  likely  equipage  with  those  noble  Divine 

1  This  remark  is  also  pirated  from  the  same  treatise  by  Henry 
More. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS ;  JOHN  HE YDON.     335 

Spirits  their  Predecessors ;  though  the  unskilfulness  in  men 
commonly  acknowledges  more  of  supernatural  assistance  in 
hot,  unsettled  fancies,  and  perplexed  melancholy,  than  in 
the  calm  and  distinct  use  of  reason ;  yet  for  mine  own  part, 
I  look  upon  these  Eosie  Crucians  above  all  men  truly  in- 
spired, and  more  than  any  that  professed  themselves  so  this 
sixteen  hundred  years,  and  I  am  ravished  with  admiration 
of  their  miracles  and  transcendant  mechanical  inventions, 
for  the  salving  the  Phenomena  of  the  world ;  I  may  with- 
out offence,  therefore,  compare  them  with  Bezaliel  and 
Aholiab,  those  skilful  workers  of  the  Tabernacle,  who,  as 
Moses  testifies,  were  filled  with  the  Spirit  of  God,  and 
therefore  were  of  an  excellent  understanding  to  find  out 
all  manner  of  curious  work. 

NOT  is  it  any  more  argument  that  those  Rosie  Crucians 
were  not  inspired,  because  they  do  not  say  they  are,  then 
that  others  are  inspired,  because  they  say  they  are;  the 
suppression  of  what  so  happened  would  argue  sobriety  and 
modesty,  when  as  the  profession  of  it  with  sober  men  would 
be  suspected  of  some  piece  of  melancholy  and  distraction, 
especially  in  these  things,  where  the  grand  pleasure  is  the 
evidence  and  exercise  of  reason,  not  a  bare  belief,  or  an  in- 
effable sense  of  life,  in  respect  whereof  there  is  no  true 
Christian  but  he  is  inspired.  If  any  more  zealous  pre- 
tender to  prudence  and  righteousness,  wanting  either  leisure 
or  ability  to  examine  these  Rosie  Crucian  Medecines  to  the 
bottome,  shall  notwithstanding  either  condemn  them  or 
admire  them,  he  hath  unbecoming  ventured  out  of  his 
sphere,  and  I  cannot  acquit  him  of  injustice  or  folly.  Nor 
am  I  a  Rosie  Crucian,  nor  do  I  speak  of  spite,  or  hope  of 
gain,  or  for  any  such  matter ;  there  is  no  cause,  God  knows ; 
I  envie  no  man,  be  he  what  he  will  be ;  I  am  no  Physitian 


336  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

never  was,  nor  never  mean  to  be  :  what  I  am  it  makes  no 
matter  as  to  my  profession. 

Lastly,  these  holy  and  good  men  would  have  me  know 
that  the  greatest  sweet  and  perfection  of  a  vertuous  soul  is 
the  kindly  accomplishment  of  her  own  nature,  in  true  wis- 
dome  and  divine  love ;  and  these  miraculous  things  that 
are  done  by  them  are  performed  in  order  that  the  worth  and 
knowledge  within  them  may  be  taken  notice  of,  and  that 
God  thereby  may  be  glorified,  whose  witnesses  they  are  ; 
but  no  other  happiness  accrues  to  them,  but  that  hereby 
they  may  be  in  a  better  capacity  of  making  others  happy. 

This  "  Apologue  "  forms  a  sort  of  preface  to  the  sixth 
book  of  "The  Holy  Guide,"  which  is  thus  entitled — 

The  Bosie  Cross  Uncovered,  and  the  Places, 
Temples,  Holy  Houses,  Castles,  and 
Invisible  Mountains  of  the  Brethren 
discovered  and  communicated  to  the 
World,  for  the  full  satisfaction  of 
Philosophers,  Alchymists,  Astromancers, 
Geomancers,  Physitians,  and  Astronomers. 

By  John  Heydon,  Gent,  0tX<W/Aos,  a  Servant  of  God,  and 
a  Secretary  of  Nature. 

This  publication  is  a  sort  of  perverted  version  of  the 
"  Fama  Fraternitatis."  It  represents  the  Eosicrucians  as 
acknowledging  the  renewed  church  in  England,  and  its 
Christian  head  Carolus  Magnus  Secundus,  and  warning 
"  all  learned  men  to  take  heed  of  the  '  Aurum  Chymicum 
Britannicum,'  published  by  Elias  Ashmole,  Esquire/' 1  It 
contains  some  information  on  English  Rosicrucians,  which 
can  hardly  be  taken  seriously  even  by  an  enthusiastic 

1  A  reason  for  this  animosity  will  be  found  in  the  preface  of  Ash- 
mole's  "  Way  to  Bliss,"  which  states  that  work  to  have  been  pub- 
lished to  prevent  the  issue  of  an  imperfect  copy  by  Heydon,  which 
Heydon,  however,  denies. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    337 

believer,  but  which  is  worth  reprinting  on  account  of  the 
curiosity  of  its  details. 

The  Eosicrucians  in  England. 

At  this  day  the  Rosie  Crucians,  that  have  been  since 
Christ,  say  their  fraternity  inhabits  the  west  of  England, 
and  they  have  likewise  power  to  renew  themselves  and  wax 
young  again,  as  those  did  before  the  birth  of  Jesus  Christ, 
as  you  may  read  in  many  books. 

Dr  F.  saith,  somewhere  there  is  a  castle  in  the  west  of 
England,  in  the  earth  and  not  on  the  earth,  and  there  the 
Rosie  Crucians  dwell,  guarded  without  walls,  and  possessing 
nothing  they  enjoy  all  things.  In  this  castle  are  great 
riches,  the  halls  fair  and  rich  to  behold,  the  chambers  made 
and  composed  of  white  marble.  At  the  end  of  the  hall 
there  is  a  chimney,  whereof  the  two  pillars  that  sustain  the 
mantle  tree  are  of  fine  jasper,  the  mantle  is  of  rich  calcedony 
and  the  lintel  is  made  of  fine  emeralds  trailed  with  a  wing  of 
fine  gold,  the  grapes  of  fine  silver.  All  the  pillars  in  the 
hall  are  of  red  calcedoine,  and  the  pavement  is  of  fine  amber. 

The  chambers  are  hanged  with  rich  clothes,  and  the 
benches  and  bedsteads  are  all  of  white  ivory,  richly  gar- 
nished with  pretious  stones ;  the  beds  are  richly  covered ; 
there  are  ivory  presses,  whereon  are  all  manner  of  birds 
cunningly  wrought ;  and  in  these  presses  are  gowns  and 
robes  of  most  fine  gold,  most  rich  mantles  furred  with 
sables,  and  all  manner  of  costly  garments. 

And  there  is  a  vault,  but  it  is  bigger  then  that  in  Ger- 
many, which  is  as  clear  as  though  the  sun  in  the  midst  of 
the  day  had  entred  in  at  ten  windows,  yet  it  is  sevenscore 
steps  underground.  And  there  are  ten  servants  of  the 
Rosie  Crucians,  fair  young  men.  C.  B.  reports  this : — 
"  When  I  first  came  to  the  Society,  I  saw  a  great  oven  with 


338  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

two  mouths,  which  did  cast  out  great  clearness,  by  which 
four  young  men  made  paste  for  bread,  and  two  delivered 
the  loaves  to  other  two,  and  they  sit  them  down  upon  a  rich 
cloath  of  silk.  Then  the  other  two  men  took  the  loaves  and 
delivered  them  unto  one  man  by  two  loaves  at  once,  and  he 
did  set  them  into  the  oven  to  bake.  At  the  other  mouth  of 
the  oven^there  was  a  man  that  drew  out  the  white  loaves  and 
pasts,  and  before  him  was  another  young  man  that  received 
them,  and  put  them  into  baskets  which  were  richly  painted." 

C,  B.  went  into  another  chamber,  eighty-one  cubits  from 
this,  and  the  Rosie  Crucians  welcomed  him.  He  found  a 
table  ready  set  and  the  cloth  laid  ;  there  stood  pots  of  silver 
and  vessels  of  gold,  bordered  with  precious  stones  and 
pearle,  and  basons  and  ewers  of  gold  to  wash  their  hands. 
Then  we  went  to  dinner.  Of  all  manner  of  flesh,  fowl,  and 
fish,  of  all  manner  of  meat  in  the  world,  there  they  had 
plenty,  and  pots  of  gold,  garnished  with  precious  stones, 
full  of  wine.  This  chamber  was  made  of  chrystal,  and 
painted  richly  with  gold  and  azure ;  upon  the  walls  were 
written  and  engraven  all  things  past,  present,  and  to  come, 
and  all  manner  of  golden  medecines  for  the  diseased.  Upon 
the  pavement  was  spread  abroad  roses,  flowers,  and  herbs, 
sweet  smelling  above  all  savours  in  the  world ;  and  in  -this 
chamber  were  divers  birds  flying  about  and  singing  mar- 
vellous sweetly. 

In  this  place  have  I  a  desire  to  live,  if  it  were  for  no 
other  reason  but  what  the  sophist  sometimes  applied  to  the 
mountains — Hos  primum  sol  salutat,  ultimosque  deserit.  Quis 
locum  non  amet,  dies  longiores  habentem.  But  of  this  place  I 
will  not  speak  any  more,  lest  readers  should  mistake  me,  so 
as  to  entertain  a  suspition  that  I  am  of  this  Order.1 

1  This  passage  is  stolen  from  Eugenius  Philalethes.  Of.  p.  313  of 
this  history. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    339 

The  medical  and  other  recipes  which  are  given; on  the 
authority  of  the  Fraternity  may  be  judged  from  the  follow- 
ing specimens  :— 

The  Eosie  Crucians  say  pearl  helpeth  swoundings,  and 
withstands  the  plague  of  poysons  ;  and  smarge  and  jacinth 
help  the  plague,  and  heale  the  wounds  of  venomous  stings. 
The  water  of  Nile  makes  the  women  of  Egypt  quick    of 
conceite  and  fruitful :  sometimes  they  bear  seven  children 
at  a  birth,  and  this  is  salt-peter-water.     There  is  a  wonder- 
ful vertue  in  the  oyl  of  tobacco,  in  the  tincture  of  saffron, 
in  the  flower  of  brimston,  in  quicksilver,  in  common  salt ; 
and  coppress,  molten  and  made  a  water,  kills  the  poyson  of 
the  toadstool.     Juyce  of  poppy  and  amber,   which  is  no 
stone  but  a  hard,  clammy  juyce,  called  bitumen,  easeth  the 
labour  of  women  and  the  falling-sickness  in  children. 

Now  for  mettals,  if  it  be  true,  which  all  men  grant,  that 
precious  stones  show  such  power  and  vertue  of  healing, 
what  shall  the  mixtures  of  all  these  mettals  under  a  fortun- 
ate constellation,  made  in  the  conversion  of  their  own 
planets,  do.  This  mixture  they  call  electrum,  sigil,  telesme, 
saying  it  will  cure  the  cramp,  benumming,  palsie,  falling- 
sickness,  gout,  leprosie,  dropsie,  if  it  be  worn  on  the  heart- 
finger.  Others  they  make  to  cause  beauty  in  ladies,  &c. 

A  perfume  of  E.  C.  is  compounded  of  the  saphirick 
earth  and  the  sether.  If  it  be  brought  to  its  full  exaltation, 
it  will  shine  like  the  day-star  in  her  fresh  eastern  glories. 
It  hath  a  fascinating,  attractive  quality,  for  if  you  expose  it 
to  the  open  air,  it  will  draw  to  it  birds  and  beasts,  and 
drive  away  evil  spirits.  Astrum  Solis,  or  the  E.  C.  mineral 
sun,  is  compounded  of  the  aether,  and  a  bloody,  fiery- 
spirited  earth ;  it  appears  in  a  gummy  consistency,  but  with 
a  fiery,  hot,  glowing  complexion.  It  is  substantially  a  cer- 


340  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

tain  ^purple, 'animated,  divine  salt,  and  cureth  all  manner  of 
venereal  distempers,  consumptions,  and  diseases  of  the  mind. 

We  give  another  medecine,  which  is  an  azure  or  skie- 
coloured  water,  the  tincture  of  it  is  light  and  bright,  it  re- 
flects a  most  beautiful  rainbow,  and  two  drops  of  this  water 
keeps  a  man  healthy.  In  it  lies  a  blood-red  earth  of  great 
vertue. 

In  the  pages  that  immediately  follow,  I  shall  reprint 
the  stories,  and  allegories  which  are  to  be  found  in  the 
works  of  John  Heydon,  and  which  have  reference  to  the 
Eosicrucian  Order.  They  may  be  permitted  to  speak  for 
themselves.  It  is  obvious  that  they  are  devoid  of  historical 
value,  but  they  are  all  excessively  curious,  and  the  piece 
which  I  have  entitled,  "  Voyage  to  the  Land  of  the  Eosi- 
crucians,"  and  which  forms  the  general  preface  to  "  The  Holy 
Guide,"  is  an  interesting  romantic  fiction. 

A  very  true  Narrative  of  a  Gentleman  R.  G.,  who  hath  the 
continual  society  of  a  Guardian  Genius.1 

Oblation  of  itself  was  such  a  sacrifice  to  God,  that  a  good 
and  holy  man  could  offer  no  greater,  as  appears  by  the 
acceptance  of  a  gentleman  by  descent  from  the  lynes  of  the 
Plantaginets,  who  was  in  Egypt,  Italy,  and  Arabia,  and 
there  frequented  the  society  of  the  inspired  Christians,  with 
whom  he  became  acquainted  after  this  manner.  In  England, 
being  at  a  tavern  in  Cheap-side  more  to  hear  and  better 
his  judgment  of  the  reputed  wise  than  to  drink  wine,  their 
discourse  being  of  the  nature  and  dignity  of  Angels,  which 
was  interrupted  by  a  gentleman,  for  so  he  appeared,  that 
said  to  another  in  the  company — "  Sir,  you  are  not  far 

1  This  story  is  another  theft  from  the  works  of  Henry  More,  who  does 
not  state  that  the  subject  of  the  narrative  was  "a  gentleman  R.  C.'> 


ROSICRUCI AN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    341 

from  the  Kingdome  of  God."  At  this  many  were  silent, 
yet  several  thoughts  arose  ;  some  desired  this  strange  gentle- 
man to  stay,  but  he  refused,  and  being  pressed,  he  gave  the 
gentleman  a  paper  of  white  and  yellow  powder,  bade  him 
read  the  chapter  that  lay  open  in  the  Bible  in  his  chamber, 
and  sing  such  psalms  ;  then  the  window  flew  open  and  the 
gentleman  vanished. 

He  burnt  the  pouder  as  he  was  bid,  and  there  appeared 
a  shining  flye  upon  the  Bible  which  he  had  in  his  hand. 
This  vanished  whilest  he  slept,  which  was  then  about  eight 
in  the  morning,  Gemini  being  the  ascendant,  and  Mercury 
in  Virgo.  The  gentleman  conceived  that  this  spirit  had 
been  with  him  all  his  life-time,  as  he  gathered  from  certain 
monitory  dreams  and  visions,  whereby  he  Was  for  warned  as 
well  of  several  dangers  as  vices. 

Mr  Waters  and  two  gentlemen  more  were  at  his  house, 
and  desired  him  to  go  along  with  them  to  the  Exchange, 
and  dine  with  them  and  some  other  merchants,  which  he 
did,  and  going  along,  one  of  them  espied  a  ball  of  gold  upon 
his  breast  shining  so  gloriously  that  it  dazled  the  eyes  of 
them  all,  and  this  continued  all  the  rising  of  Mercury,  who 
was  then  in  Vergo.  This  spirit  discovered  himself  to  him 
after  he  had  for  a  whole  year  together  earnestly  prayed  to 
God  to  send  a  good  angel  to  him,  to  be  a  guide  of  his  life 
and  action ;  also  he  prayed  for  a  token  that  this  was  the 
will  and  pleasure  of  God,  which  was  granted,  for  in  a  bright 
shining  day,  no  cloud  appearing,  there  fell  a  drop  of  water 
upon  his  hat,  which  to  this  day  is  not  dry,  and,  I  think, 
never  will  be,  although  it  be  worne  in  this  hot  weather. 

He  prayes  God  to  defend  him  and  guide  him  in  the  true 
religion,  reading  two  or  three  hours  in  the  Holy  Bible. 

After  this,  amongst  many  other  divine  dreams  and  visions, 


342  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

he  once  in  his  sleep  seemed  to  hear  the  voice  of  God,  saying 
to  him,  "  I  will  save  thy  soul ;  I  am  He  that  before  appeared 
unto  thee."  Since  doth  the  spirit  every  day  knock  at  his 
doore  about  three  or  four  o'clock  in  the  morning.  He  rising, 
there  appeareth  a  child  of  faire  stature,  very  comely,  who 
gave  him  a  book  which  he  keepeth  very  well,  yet  letteth  many 
see  it  that  can  prevaile  with  him ;  this  book  is  full  of  divine 
things,  such  as  I  never  red  or  heard  of.  Another  time  his 
candle  did  fall  down  upon  the  ground  and  went  out,  and 
there  appeared  before  him  something  about  the  bignesse  of 
a  nut,  round  and  shining,  and  made  a  noyse ;  he  strived  to 
take  it  up,  but  it  turned  like  quicksilver,  so  that  he  could 
not  handle  it. 

Many  gentlemen  have  been  in  his  company  when  he  hath 
been  pulled  by  the  coat,  as  they  have  seen  but  could  not 
perceive  who  did  it ;  sometimes  his  gloves,  lying  at  one  end 
of  the  table,  have  been  brought  and  given  him,  but  they  see 
the  gloves,  as  they  thought,  come  of  themselves. 

Another  time,  being  with  some  merchants  at  dinner  that 
were  strangers  to  this  spirit,  and.  were  abashed  when  they 
heard  the  noise  but  saw  nothing,  presently  a  paper  was 
given  to  the  gentleman,  who  read  it,  and  so  did  the  others. 
It  said  that  he  should  serve  God  and  fear  nothing,  for  the 
enemies  of  his  father  which  hated  him  should  all  surely  die, 
and  so  should  all  that  sought  to  do  him  hurt,  and  to  be 
assured  he  named  such  a  man,  and  said  he  shall  die  such  a 
day,  and  he  died.  The  merchants  were  strucken  with  fear, 
but  he  bid  them  be  of  good  courage,  for  there  was  no  hurt 
towards  them,  and,  the  better  to  assure  them  of  it,  he  told 
the  truth  of  the  whole  matter. 

Ever  since  this  spirit  hath  been  alwaies  with  him,  and  by 
some  sensible  signe  did  ever  advertise  him  of  things,  as  by 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    343 

striking  his  right  eare,  if  he  did  not  well,  if  otherwise,  his 
left ;  if  any  danger  threatened,  he  was  foretold  of  it.  When 
he  began  to  praise  God  in  psalms,  he  was  presently  raised 
and  strengthened  with  a  spiritual  and  supernatural  power. 
He  daily  begged  of  God  that  He  would  teach  him  His  will, 
His  law,  and  His  truth ;  he  set  one  day  of  the  week  apart 
for  reading  the  Scripture  and  meditation,  with  singing  of 
Psalms  all  the  day  in  his  house,  but  in  his  ordinary  conver- 
sation he  is  sufficiently  merry,  if  he  like  his  company  and 
be  of  a  cheerful  minde  ;  if  he  talk  of  any  vain  thing,  or  in- 
discreetly, or  offer  to  discover  any  secret  he  is  forbidden,  or 
if  he  at  any  time  would  discover  any  inspired  secret,  he  is 
forthwith  admonished  thereof  in  his  eare.  Every  morning 
he  is  called  to  prayer.  He  often  goes  to  meet  the  Holy 
Company  at  certain  times,  and  they  make  resolution  of  all 
their  actions. 

He  gives  almes  secretly,  and  the  more  he  bestows  the 
more  prosperous  he  is ;  he  dares  not  commit  any  known 
fault,  and  hath  by  Providence  of  God  been  directed  through 
many  eminent  dangers ;  even  those  that  sought  his  life  died. 

At  another  time,  when  he  was  in  very  great  danger,  upon 
the  ascendant  coming  to  the  body  of  the  Sun,  and  the  con- 
junction of  Saturn  and  Jupiter  opposing  his  ascendant,  he 
being  newly  gone  tc  bed,  he  said  that  the  spirit  would  not 
let  him  alone  till  he  nad  raised  him  again  and  told  him  he 
was  falsely  accused,  wherefore  he  watched  and  prayed  all 
that  night.  The  day  after  he  escaped  the  hands  of  his  per- 
secutors in  a  wonderful  manner — one  died  and  the  other  is 
very  sick.  Then  came  a  voice  to  him,  saying,  "  Sing  Qui 
sedit  in  Latibulo  Altissimi." 

Many  other  passages  happen  to  this  party  daily,  as  a 
hundred  will  testifie  ;  but  it  is  an  endless  labour  to  recite 


344  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

them  all.  The  man  is  now  alive,  in  good  health,  and  well 
known  among  all  men  to  be  a  friend  to  all  and  desirous  to 
do  good. 

John  Heydon  encounters  the  Spirit  Euterpe. 

Walking  upon  the  plains  of  Bulverton  Hill  to  study 
numbers  and  the  nature  of  things  one  evening,  I  could  see, 
between  me  and  the  light,  a  most  exquisite  divine  beauty, 
her  frame  neither  long  nor  short,  but  a  main  decent 
stature ;  attired  she  was  in  thin  loose  silks,  but  so  green 
that  I  never  saw  the  like,  for  the  colour  was  not  earthly ; 
in  some  places  it  was  fancied  with  gold  and  silver  ribbands, 
which  looked  like  the  sun  and  lyllies  in  the  field  of  grass. 
Her  head  was  overcast  with  a  thin  floating  tiffany,  which 
she  held  up  with  one  of  her  hands,  and  looked,  as  it  were, 
from  under  it.  Her  eyes  were  quick,  fresh,  and  celestial, 
but  had  something  of  a  start,  as  if  she  had  been  puzzled 
with  a  suddain  occurrence.  From  her  vaile  did  her  locks 
break  out,  like  sun  beams  from  a  mist ;  they  ran  disheveld 
to  her  brest,  and  then  returned  to  her  cheeks  in  curls  and 
rings  of  gold.  Her  hair  behind  her  was  rowled  to  a  curious 
globe,  with  a  small  short  spire  flowered  with  purple  and 
skie-colour  knots.  Her  rings  were  pure  intire  emeralds, 
for  she  valued  no  metal,  and  her  pendants  of  burning  car- 
buncles. In  brief,  her  whole  habit  was  youthful  and 
flowery ;  it  smelt  like  the  East,  and  was  thoroughly  ayrd 
with  rich  Arabian  diapasms. 

Whilst  I  admired  her  perfections,  and  prepared  to  make 
my  addresses,  she  prevents  me  with  a  voluntary  approach. 
Here,  indeed,  I  expected  some  discourse  from  her,  but  she, 
looking  very  seriously  and  silently  in  my  face,  takes  me  by 
the  hand  and  softly  whispers  :  "  My  love  I  freely  give  you, 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  JOHN  HEYDON.    345 

and  with  it  these  tokens — mystery  and  signet ;  the  one 
opens,  the  other  shuts  ;  be  sure  to  use  both  with  discretion. 
As  for  the  mysteries  of  the  Eosie  Cross,  you  have  my 
Library  to  peruse  them  all.  There  is  not  anything  here 
but  I  will  gladly  reveal  it  unto  you ;  I  will  teach  you  the 
virtues  of  numbers,  of  names,  of  angels,  and  genii  of  men. 
I  have  one  precept  to  commend  to  you — you  must  be  silent. 
You  shall  not  in  your  writings  exceed  my  allowance ;  re- 
member that  I  am  your  love,  and  you  will  not  make  me  a 
prostitute.  But  because  I  wish  you  serviceable  to  those  of 
your  own  disposition,  I  give  you  an  emblematical  type  of 
my  sanctuary,  namely,  the  Axiomata  of  the  E.  C.,  the 
secrets  of  numbers,  with  a  full  priviledge  to  publish  it.  And 
now  I  am  going  to  the  invisible  region,  amongst  the 
ethereal  goddesses.  Let  not  that  proverb  take  place  with 
you,  Out  of  sight,  out  of  mind.  Eemember  me  and  be 
happy." 

I  asked  her  if  she  would  favour  me  with  her  name.  To 
this  she  replyed  very  familiarly,  as  if  she  had  known  me 
long  before : — "  My  dear  friend  H.,  I  have  many  names, 
but  my  best  beloved  is  Euterpe.  Observe  in  your  E.  C. 
Axiomata  that  the  genuine  time  of  impression  of  characters, 
names,  angels,  numbers,  and  genii  of  men,  is  when  the 
principles  are  Spermade  and  Callado ;  but  being  once 
coagulated  to  a  perfect  body,  the  time  of  stellification  is 
past.  Now  the  E.  C.  in  old  time  used  strange  astrological 
lamps,  images,  rings,  and  plates,  with  the  numbers  and 
names  engraven,  which  at  certain  hours  would  produce  in- 
credible extraordinary  effects.  The  common  astrologer  he 
takes  a  piece  of  metalls,  another  whining  associate  he  helps 
him  with  a  chrystal  stone,  and  these  they  figure  with 
ridiculous  characters,  and  then  expose  them  to  the  planets, 


346  HfSiTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

not  in  an  Alkemust,  but  as  they  dream  they  know  not 
what.  When  this  is  done,  all  is  to  no  purpose,  but  though 
they  faile  in  their  practice,  they  yet  believe  they  under- 
stand the  Axiomata  of  numbers  well  enough.  Now,  my 
beloved  J.  H.,  that  you  may  know  what  to  do,  I  will  teach 
you  by  example  : — Take  a  ripe  grain  of  corn  that  is  hard 
and  drye ;  expose  it  to  the  sun  beams  in  a  glass  or  other 
vessell,  and  it  will  be  a  dry  grain  for  ever ;  but  if  you  do 
bury  it  in  the  earth,  that  the  nitrous  saltish  moysture  of  the 
element  may  dissolve  it,  then  the  sun  will  work  upon  it 
and  make  it  sprout  to  a  new  body.  It  is  just  thus  with  the 
common  astrologer;  he  exposeth  to  the  planets  a  perfect 
compacted  body,  and  by  this  meanes  thinkes  to  perform  the 
Kosie  Crucian  Gamacea,  and  marry  the  inferiour  and 
superiour  worlds. 

"  It  must  be  a  body  reduced  into  sperme,  that  the  heavenly 
feminine  moisture,  which  receives  and  retains  the  impress 
of  the  Astrall  Agent,  may  be  at  liberty,  and  immediately 
exposed  to  the  masculine  fire  of  Nature.  This  is  the 
ground  of  the  Beril,  but  you  must  remember  that  nothing 
can  be  stellified  without  the  joynt  magnetism  of  three 
heavens — what  they  are  you  know  already." 

When  she  had  thus  said,  she  took  out  of  her  bosom  two 
miraculous  medalls  with  numbers  and  names  on  them ; 
they  were  not  metalline,  but  such  as  I  had  never  seen, 
neither  did  1  conceive  there  was  in  Nature  such  pure  and 
glorious  substances.  In  my  judgment,  they  were  two 
magical  Telesms,  but  she  called  them  Saphiricks  of  the  sun 
and  moon.  These  miracles  Euterpe  commended  to  my 
perusal,  and  stopt  in  a  mute  ceremony.  She  lookt  upon 
me  in  silent  smiles,  mixt  with  a  pretty  kind  of  sadness,  for 
we  were  unwilling  to  part,  but  her  hour  of  translation  was 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    347 

come,  and,  taking,  as  I  thought,  her  last  leave,  she  past 
before  my  eyes  into  the  ether  of  Nature,  excusing  herself 
as  being  sleepy — otherwise  she  had  expounded  them  to  me. 
I  lookt,  admired,  and  wearied  myself  in  that  contemplation  ; 
their  complexion  was  so  heavenly,  their  continuance  so 
mysterious,  I  did  not  well  know  what  to  make  of  them.  I 
turned  aside  to  see  if  she  was  still  asleep,  but  she  was 
gone,  and  this  did  not  a  little  trouble  me.  I  expected 
her  return  till  the  day  was  quite  spent,  but  she  did  not  ap- 
pear. At  last,  fixing  my  eyes  on  that  place  where  she 
sometimes  rested,  I  discovered  certain  pieces  of  gold,  full  of 
numbers  and  names,  which  she  had  left  behinde  her,  and 
hard  by  a  paper  folded  like  a  letter.  These  I  took  up,  and 
now  the  night  approaching,  the  evening  star  tinned  in  the 
West,  when  taking  my  last  survey  of  her  flowery  pillow,  I 
parted  from  it  in  these  verses— 

"  Pretty  green  bank,  farewel,  and  mayst  thou  wear 
Sun-beams,  and  rose,  and  lillies  all  the  year ; 
She  slept  on  thee,  but  needed  not  to  shed 
Her  gold,  'twas  joy  enough  to  be  her  bed. 
Thy  flowers  are  favourites,  for  this  loved  day 
They  were  my  rivals,  and  with  her  did  play  ; 
They  found  their  heaven  at  hand,  and  in  her  eyes 
Enjoy'd  a  copy  of  their  absent  skies. 
Their  weaker  paint  did  with  true  glories  trade, 
And  mingl'd  with  her  cheeks  one  posy  made  ; 
And  did  not  her  soft  skin  confine  their  pride, 
And  with  a  skreen  of  silk  her  flowers  divide, 
They  had  suck'd  life  from  thence,  and  from  her  heat 
Borrow'd  a  soul  to  make  themselves  compleat. 
,  O  happy  pillow  !  though  thou  art  laid  even 

With  dust,  she  made  thee  up  almost  a  heaven  ; 
Her  breath  rain'd  spices,  and  each  amber  ring 
Of  her  bright  locks  strew'd  bracelets  o'er  thy  spring. 
That  earth's  not  poor,  did  such  a  treasure  hold, 
But  thrice  inrich'd  with  amber,  spice,  and  gold." 

Thus  much  at  this  time  and  no  more  am  I  allowed  by  my 


348  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

mistress  Euterpe  to  publish.  Be,  therefore,  gentle  reader, 
admonished,  that  with  me  you  do  earnestly  pray  to  God, 
that  it  please  Him  to  open  the  hearts  and  ears  of  all  ill- 
hearing  people,  and  to  grant  unto  them  His  blessing,  that 
they  may  be  able  to  know  Him  in  His  omnipotency,  with 
admiring  contemplation  of  Nature,  to  His  honour  and 
praise,  and  to  the  love,  help,  comfort,  and  strengthening  of 
our  neighbours,  and  to  the  restoring  of  all  the  diseased  by 
the  medecines  above  taught. 

I  had  given  you  a  more  large  account  of  the  mysteries  of 
Nature  and  the  Rosie  Cross,  but  whilst  I  studyed  medecines 
to  cure  others,  my  deare  sister  Anne  Heydon  dyed,  and  I 
never  heard  she  was  sick  (for  she  was  one  hundred  miles 
from  mee),  which  puts  an  end  to  my  writings,  and  thus  I 
take  my  leave  of  the  world.  I  shall  write  no  more ;  you 
know  my  books  by  name,  and  this  I  write  that  none  may 
abuse  me  by  printing  books  in  my  name,  as  Cole  does  Cul- 
peper's.  1  return  to  my  first  happy  solitudes. 

Voyage  to  tlie  Land  of  the  Rosicrucians. 

We  travelled  from  Sydmouth  for  London  and  Spain  by 
the  south  sea,  taking  with  us  victuals  for  twelve  moneths, 
and  had  good  winds  from  the  East,  though  soft  and  weake, 
for  five  moneths'  space  and  more.  But  then  the  winds  came 
about  into  the  West,  so  as  we  could  make  little  way,  and 
were  sometimes  in  purpose  to  turn  back.  Then  again  there 
arose  strong  and  great  winds  from  the  South,  with  a  point 
East,  which  carried  us  up  towards  the  North,  by  which 
time  our  victuals  failed  us,  and  we  gave  ourselves  for  lost 
men,  and  prepared  for  death.  We  did  lift  up  our  hearts 
and  voices  to  God,  beseeching  Him  of  His  mercy  that  He 
would  discover  land  to  us,  that  we  might  not  perish.  The 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  JOHN  HEY  DON.    349 

next  day  about  evening  we  saw  before  us,  towards  the 
North,  as  it  were  thick  clouds,  which  did  put  us  in  hope  of 
land,  knowing  that  part  of  the  south  sea  was  utterly  un- 
known, and  might  have  islands  or  continents  hitherto  not 
come  to  light.  We  bent  our  course  thither  all  that  evening, 
and  in  the  dawning  of  the  next  day  discerned  a  land  flat 
and  full  of  boscage.  After  an  houre  and  a  half's  sayling, 
we  entred  into  a  good  haven,  the  port  of  a  faire  city,  not 
great  indeed,  but  well  built,  and  that  gave  a  pleasant  view 
from  sea.  We  came  close  to  shore,  and  offered  to  land,  but 
straight  way  es  we  saw  divers  people  with  bastons  in  their 
hands  forbidding  us,  yet  without  any  cryes  or  fierceness, 
but  onely  warning  us  off  by  signes  that  they  made,  where- 
upon, being  not  a  little  discomfitted,  we  were  advising  with 
ourselves  what  we  should  do,  during  which  there  made 
forth  to  us  a  small  boat,  with  about  eight  persons  in  it, 
whereof  one  had  in  his  hand  a  tipstaff  of  yellow  cane, 
tipped  at  both  ends  with  green,  who  came  aboard  without 
any  shew  of  distrust,  and  drew  forth  a  little  scroule  of 
parchment,  somewhat  yellower  than  our  parchment,  and 
shining  like  the  leaves  of  writing  tables,  but  otherwise  soft 
and  flexible,  and  delivered  it  to  our  foremost  man.  In  this 
scroule  were  written  in  antient  Hebrew,  antient  Greeke, 
good  Latine  of  the  School,  and  in  Spanish,  these  words  :— 
"  Land  ye  not,  none  of  you,  and  provide  to  be  gone  from 
this  coast  within  sixteen  dayes,  except  you  have  further 
time  given  you.  Mean  while,  if  you  want  fresh  water, 
victual,  or  help  for  your  sick,  or  that  your  ship  needeth  re- 
paire,  write  down  your  wants,  and  you  shall  have  that  which 
belongeth  to  mercy."  This  scroule  was  signed  with 
a  stamp  of  cherubin's  wings,  not  spread  but  hanging 
downwards,  and  by  them  a  crosse.  This  being  delivered, 


350  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

the  officer  returned,  and  left  onely  a  servant  to  receive  our 
answer.  Consulting  amongst  ourselves,  the  denial  of  land- 
ing, and  hasty  warning  us  away,  troubled  us  much  ;  on  the 
other  side,  to  finde  the  people  had  languages,  and  were  full 
of  humanity,  did  comfort  us ;  above  all,  the  signe  of  the 
crosse  was  to  us  a  great  rejoycing  and  a  certain  presage  of 
good.  Our  answer  was  in  the  Spanish  tongue — that  our 
ship  was  well,  our  sick  many,  and  in  very  ill  case,  so  that 
if  they  were  not  permitted  to  land,  they  ran  in  danger  of 
their  lives.  Our  other  wants  we  set  down  in  particular,  add- 
ing that  we  had  some  little  merchandize,  which,  if  it  pleased 
them  to  deale  for,  might  supply  our  wants  without  being 
chargable  unto  them.  We  offered  some  reward  in  pistolet 
unto  the  servant,  and  a  piece  of  crimson  velvet  for  the  officer, 
but  he  took  them  not,  nor  would  scarce  look  upon  them, 
and  so  left  us  in  another  boat  which  was  sent  for  him. 

About  three  hours  after  there  came  towards  us  a  person 
of  place.  He  had  a  gown  with  wide  sleaves  of  a  kinde  of 
water  chamolot,  of  an  excellent  green  colour,  farre  more 
glossie  than  ours.  His  under  apparel  was  green  azure,  and 
so  was  his  hat,  being  in  the  form  of  a  turban,  daintily  made 
and  not  so  large  as  Turkish  turbans.  The  locks  of  his 
haire  came  below  the  brims  of  it.  A  reverend  man  was  he 
to  behold.  He  came  in  a  boat  partly  gilt,  with  foure  per- 
sons more,  and  was  followed  by  another  boat,  wherein  were 
some  twenty.  When  he  was  within  a  flight-shot  of  our 
ship,  signes  were  made  that  we  should  send  some  to  meet 
him,  which  we  presently  did  in  our  ship  boat,  sending  the 
principall  man  amongst  us,  save  one,  and  foure  of  our  num- 
ber with  him.  When  [we  were  come  within  six  yards  of 
their  boat,  they  called  to  us  to  stay,  and  thereupon  the  man 
whom  I  before  described  stood  up,  and  with  a  loud  voice, 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    351 

in  Spanish,  asked,  "  Are  ye  Christians  ] "  We  answered  that 
we  were,  at  which  he  lift  up  his  right  hand  towards  Heaven, 
and  drew  it  softly  to  his  mouth  (which  is  the  gesture  they 
use  when  they  thank  God),  and  then  said,  "  If  ye  will 
swear  by  the  merit  of  the  Saviour  that  ye  are  no  pirates, 
nor  have  shed  blood,  lawfully  or  unlawfully,  within  forty 
dayes  past,  you  may  have  license  to  land."  We  said  that 
we  were  all  ready  to  take  that  oath,  whereupon  one  of  those 
with  him,  being,  as  it  seemed,  a  notarie,  made  an  entrie  of 
this  act,  which  done,  another,  after  his  lord  had  spoken  a 
little  to  him,  said  : — "  My  lord  would  have  you  know  that 
it  is  not  of  pride  that  he  commeth  not  aboard  your  ship, 
but  for  that  you  declare  that  you  have  many  sick  amongst 
you,  he  was  warned  by  the  conservation  of  health  that  he 
should  keep  a  distance."  We  were  his  humble  servants, 
and  accounted  for  great  honour  and  singular  humanity  to- 
wards us  that  which  had  been  already  done,  but  hoped  that 
the  nature  of  the  sickness  was  not  infectious.  So  he  re- 
turned, and  a  while  after  came  the  notary  aboard,  holding 
a  fruit  like  an  orange,  but  of  colour  between  orange-tawney 
and  scarlet,  which  cast  a  most  excellent  odour.  He  used  it 
for  a  preservative  against  infection.  He  gave  us  our  oath, 
"  by  the  name  of  Jesus  and  His  merits,"  and  told  us  that 
next  day,  by  six  in  the  morning,  we  should  be  sent  to  and 
brought  to  the  strangers'  house,  where  we  should  be  accom- 
modated both  for  our  whole  and  our  sick.  When  we  offered 
him  some  pistolets,  he  smiling  said  he  must  not  be  twice 
paid  for  one  labour. 

The  next  morning  there  came  the  same  officer  that 
came  to  us  at  first  with  his  cane,  to  conduct  us  to  the 
strangers'  house.  "  If  you  will  follow  my  advice,"  said  he, 
"  some  few  will  first  go  with  me  and  see  the  place,  and  how 


352  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

it  may  be  made  convenient  for  you ;  then  you  may  send  for 
your  sick  and  the  rest  of  your  number."  We  thanked  him, 
and  said  that  this  care  which  he  took  of  desolate  strangers 
God  would  reward,  and  six  of  us  went  ashore  with  him. 
He  led  us  thorow  three  faire  streets,  and  all  the  way  there 
were  gathered  some  people  on  both  sides  in  a  row,  but  in 
so  civill  a  fashion  as  if  it  had  been  not  to  wonder  at  us,  but 
to  welcome  us.  Divers  of  them  as  we  passed  put  their 
arms  a  little  abroad,  which  is  their  gesture  when  they  bid 
any  welcome.  The  strangers'  house  is  faire  and  spacious, 
built  of  brick,  and  with  handsome  windows,  some  of  glass, 
some  of  a  kind  of  cambrick  oyled.  He  brought  us  into  a 
faire  parlour  above  staires,  and  then  asked  what  number  of 
persons  we  were,  and  how  many  sick  1  We  answered  that 
we  were  in  all  250,  whereof  our  sick  were  seventeen.  He 
desired  us  to  stay  till  he  came  back,  which  was  about  an 
houre  after,  and  then  he  led  us  to  see  the  chambers  pro- 
vided for  us,  being  in  number  250.  They  cast  it  that  foure 
of  those  chambers,  which  were  better  than  the  rest,  might 
receive  foure  of  our  principal  men ;  the  rest  were  to  lodge 
us.  The  chambers  were  handsome,  cheerful,  and  furnished 
civilly.  Then  he  led  us  to  a  long  gallery,  where  he  showed 
us  along  one  side  seventeen  cells,  having  partitions  of  cedar, 
which  gallery  and  cells,  being  in  all  900,  were  instituted  as 
an  infirmary.  He  told  us  withall  that  as  any  one  sick  waxed 
well  he  might  be  removed  to  a  chamber,  for  which  purpose 
there  were  set  forth  ten  spare  chambers.  This  done,  he 
brought  us  back  to  the  parlour,  and  lifting  up  his  cane  a 
little,  as  they  doe  when  they  give  any  command,  said  to 
us  : — "  Ye  are  to  know  that  the  custom  of  the  land  requireth 
that,  after  this  day  and  to-morrow,  which  we  give  you  for 
removing  your  people  from  your  ship,  you  are  to  keep  within 


ROSJCRUC1AN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEY  DON.    353 

doores  for  three  dayes ;  do  not  think  yourselves  restrained, 
but  rather  left  to  your  rest.     You  shall  want  nothing ;  there 
are  six^'of  our  people  appointed  to   attend  you   for  any 
businesse  you  may  have  abroad."     We  gave  him  thanks 
with  all  affection  and  respects,  and  said  : — "  God  surely 
is  manifested  in  this  land."     We  offered  him  also  twenty 
pistolets,  but  he  smiled,  and  said: — "What!  twice  paid!" 
and    so    left    us.      Soon   after    our    dinner    was    served 
in,  which  was  right  good  viands  both  for  bread,  meat, 
wine,  &c.,  better  than  any  diet  that  I  have  known  in 
Europe.     We  had  drink  of  three  sorts,  ale,  beer,  syder,  all 
wholesome ;  wine  of  the  grape,  and  another  drink  of  grain, 
like  our  mum  but  more  clear,  and  a  kinde  of  perry,  like  the 
peare  juice,  made  of  a  fruit  of  that  countrey,  a  wonderful  1 
pleasing  and  refreshing  drink.     Besides,  there  were  brought 
in  great  store  of  those  scarlet  oranges  for  our  sick,  which 
were  an  assured  remedy  for  sicknesse  taken  at  sea.     There 
was  given  us  also  a  box  of  small  grey  pills  which  they  wished 
our  sick  should  take,  one  every  night  before  sleeping,  to 
hasten  their  recovery.     The  next  day,  after  that  our  trouble 
of  carriage  of  our  men  and  goods  out  of  our  ship  was  some- 
what settled,  I  thought  good  to  call  our  company  together, 
and  said  unto  them  ; — "  My  dear  friends,  let  us  know  our- 
selves, and  how  it  standeth  with  us.     We  are  cast  on  land, 
as  Jonas  was  out  of  the  whale's  belly,  when  we  were  as 
buried  in  the  deep,  and  now  we  are  on  land,  we  are  but 
between  death  and  life,  for  we  are  beyond  both  the  old 
world  and  the  new.     Whether  ever  we  shall  see  Europe 
God  onely  knoweth.     A  kinde  of  miracle  hath  brought  us 
hither,  and  it  must  be  little  lesse  that  shall  take  us  hence. 
Thereforejin  regard  of  our  deliverance  past,  and  danger 
present,  let  us  look  to  God  and  every  man  reform  his  own 

Z 


354  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

wayes.  We  are  come  amongst  a  Christian  people,  full  of 
piety  and  humanity.  Let  us  not  bring  confusion  of  face 
upon  ourselves  by  shewing  our  vices  or  unworthinesse. 
They  have  cloistered  us  for  three  daies ;  who  knoweth 
whether  it  be  not  to  take  some  taste  of  our  manners  and 
conditions,  and  if  they  find  them  bad  to  banish  us  straight 
wayes,  if  good  to  give  us  further  time  1  For  God's  love  let 
us  so  behave  ourselves  as  we  may  be  at  peace  with  God 
and  may  finde  grace  in  the  eyes  of  this  people."  Our 
company  with  one  voice  thanked  me  for  my  good  admon- 
ition, and  promised  to  live  soberly  and  civilly,  without 
giving  the  least  occasion  of  offence.  We  spent  our  three 
dayes  joyfully,  during  which  time  we  had  every  houre  joy 
of  the  amendment  of  our  sick. 

The  morrow  after  our  three  dayes,  there  came  to  us  a  new 
man,  cloathed  in  azure,  save  that  his  turban  was  white 
with  a  small  red  crosse  at  the  top.  He  had  also  a  tippet 
of  fine  linnen.  He  did  bend  to  us  a  little,  and  put  his  arms 
broad ;  we  saluting  him  in  a  very  lowly  manner.  He  de- 
sired to  speak  with  some  few  of  us,  whereupon  six  onely 
stayed,  and  the  rest  avoided  the  room.  He  said: — "I  am 
by  office  governour  of  this  house  of  strangers,  and  by  voca- 
tion a  Christian  priest  of  the  Order  of  the  Kosie  Crosse, 
and  am  come  to  offer  you  my  service,  as  strangers  and 
chiefly  as  Christians.  The  State  hath  given  you  licence  to 
stay  on  land  for  the  space  of  six  weeks,  and  let  it  not 
trouble  you  if  your  occasions  ask  further  time,  for  the  law 
in  this  point  is  not  precise.  Ye  shall  also  understand  that 
the  strangers'  house  is  at  this  time  rich  and  much  afore- 
hand,  for  it  hath  laid  up  revenue  these  36000  years — so 
long  it  is  since  any  stranger  arrived  in  this  part.  There- 
fore take  ye  no  care  ;  the  State  will  defray  you  all  the  time 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  JOHN  HE  YDON.    355 

you  stay.  As  for  any  merchandize  ye  have  brought,  ye 
shall  be  well  used,  and  have  your  return  either  in  merchan- 
dize or  gold  and  silver,  for  to  us  it  is  all  one.  If  you  have 
any  other  request  to  make,  hide  it  not,  onely  this  I  must 
tell  you  that  none  of  you  must  go  above  a  juld,  or  karan 
(that  is  with  them  a  mile  and  an  half),  from  the  walls  of  the 
city  without  especiall  leave."  We  answered,  admiring  this 
gracious  and  parent-like  usage,  that  we  could  not  tell  what 
to  say  to  expresse  our  thanks,  and  his  noble  free  offers  left 
us  nothing  to  ask.  It  seemed  that  we  had  before  us  a 
picture  of  our  salvation  in  Heaven,  for  we  that  were  awhile 
since  in  the  jaws  of  death  were  now  brought  into  a  place 
where  we  found  nothing  but  consolations.  For  the  com- 
mandement  laid  on  us,  we  would  not  faile  to  obey  it,  though 
it  was  impossible  but  our  hearts  should  be  enflamed  to  tred 
further  upon  this  happy  and  holy  ground.  Our  tongues 
should  cleave  to  the  roof  of  our  mouth  ere  we  should  forget 
either  his  reverend  person  or  this  whole  nation  in  our 
prayers.  We  also  humbly  besought  him  to  accept  us  as  his 
true  servants,  presenting  both  our  persons  and  all  we  had 
at  his  feet.  He  said  he  was  a  priest  and  looked  for  a 
priest's  reward,  which  was  our  brotherly  love,  and  the  good 
of  our  souls  and  bodies.  So  he  went  from  us,  not  without 
tears  of  tendernesse  in  his  eyes,  and  left  us  confused  with 
joy  and  kindness,  saying  amongst  ourselves  that  we  were 
come  into  a  land  of  angels. 

The  next  day,  about  ten  of  the  clock,  the  governour  came 
to  us  again,  and,  after  salutation,  said  familiarly  that  he 
was  come  to  visit  us,  called  for  a  chair,  and  sat  him  down. 
We,  being  some  ten  of  us  (the  rest  were  of  the  meaner  sort, 
or  else  gone  abroad),  sat  down  with  him,  when  he  began 
thus  : — "  We  of  this  island  of  Apanua  or  Chrisse  in  Arabia 


356  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

(for  so  they  call  it  in  their  language),  by  means  of  our 
solitary  situation,  the  laws  of  secresy  which  we  have  for 
our  travellers,  and  our  rare  admission  of  strangers,  know 
well  most  part  of  the  habitable  world  and  are  ourselves 
unknown.  Therefore,  because  he  that  knoweth  least  is 
fittest  to  ask  questions,  it  is  more  reason,  for  the  entertain- 
ment of  the  time,  that  ye  ask  me  questions  than  that  I  ask 
you."  We  humbly  thanked  him,  and  answered  that  we 
conceived,  by  the  taste  we  had  already,  that  there  was  no 
worldly  thing  more  worthy  to  be  known  than  the  state  of 
that  happy  land,  but  since  we  were  met  from  the  several 
ends  of  the  world,  and  hoped  assuredly  that  we  should  meet 
one  day  in  the  Kingdome  of  Heaven,  we  desired  to  know 
(in  respect  that  land  was  so  remote,  divided  by  vast,  un- 
known seas  from  where  our  Saviour  walked  on  earth)  who 
was  the  apostle  of  that  nation,  and  how  it  was  converted  to 
the  faith.  It  appeared  in  his  face  that  he  took  great  con- 
tentment in  this  question  in  the  first  place,  "  for  (said  he) 
it  sheweth  that  you  first  seek  the  Kingdome  of  Heaven. 

<:  About  20  years  after  the  Ascension  of  our  Saviour,  it 
came  to  passe  that  there  was  seen  by  the  people  of  Damcar, 
on  the  eastern  coast  of  our  island,  within  night,  as  it  might 
be  some  mile  into  the  sea,  a  great  pillar  of  light,  in  form  of 
a  column  or  cylinder  rising  from  the  sea  a  great  way  towards 
Heaven.  On  the  top  was  a  large  crosse  of  light,  more  re- 
splendent than  the  body  of  the  pillar,  upon  which  so  strange 
a  spectacle  the  people  of  the  city  gathered  upon  the  sands 
to  wonder,  and  after  put  into  a  number  of  small  boats  to  go 
neerer  this  marvellous  sight.  But  when  the  boats  were  come 
within  about  60  yards  of  the  pillar  they  found  themselves 
bound  and  could  go  no  further.  They  stood  all  as  in  a 
theatre,  beholding  this  light  as  an  heavenly  signe.  There 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    357 

was  in  one  of  the  boats  one  of  the  wise  men  of  the  Society 
of  the  Rosie  Crucians,  whose  house  or  colledge  is  the  very 
eye  of  this  Kingdome,  who,  having  awhile  devoutly  con- 
templated this  pillar  and  crosse,  fell  down  upon  his  face, 
then  raised  himself  upon  his  knees,  and,  lifting  up  his 
hands  to  Heaven,  made  his  prayers  in  this  manner : 

"  '  Lord  God  of  Heaven  and  earth,  Thou  hast  vouchsafed 
of  Thy  grace  to  those  of  our  order  to  know  Thy  works  of 
creation  and  the  secrets  of  them,  and  to  discern  (as  far  as 
appertaineth  to  the  generation  of  men)  between  divine 
miracles,  works  of  Nature,  works  of  art,  and  impostures 
and  illusions  of  all  sorts.  I  do  here  acknowledge  and 
testifie  before  this  people,  that  the  thing  which  we  now  see 
is  Thy  finger  and  a  true  miracle.  And  for  as  much  as  we 
learn  in  our  books  that  Thou  never  workest  miracles  but  to 
a  divine  and  excellent  end  (for  the  laws  of  Nature  are  Thine 
own  laws,  and  Thou  exceedest  them  not  but  upon  great  cause), 
we  most  humbly  beseech  Thee  to  prosper  this  great  signe,  and 
to  give  us  the  interpretation  and  use  of  it  in  mercy,  which 
Thou  doest  in  some  part  promise  by  sending  it  unto  us.' 

"  When  he  had  made  his  prayer,  he  presently  found  the 
boat  he  was  in  unbound,  whereas  the  rest  remained  still 
fast.  Taking  that  for  leave  to  approach,  he  caused  the  boat 
to  be  softly  rowed  towards  the  pillar,  but  ere  he  came  near 
the  pillar  and  crosse  of  light  brake  up,  and  cast  itself  abroad 
into  a  firmament  of  many  stars,  which  also  soon  vanished, 
and  there  was  nothing  left  but  a  small  ark  of  cedar,  not 
wet  at  all  with  water,  though  it  swam.  In  the  fore-end  of 
it  grew  a  small  green  branch  of  palme,  and  when  the  Rosie 
Crucian  had  taken  it  with  all  reverence  into  his  boat,  it 
opened  of  itself,  and  there  were  found  a  book  and  letter, 
both  written  in  fine  parchment,  and  wrapped  in  suidons  of 


358  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

linnen,  the  book  containing  all  the  canonical  books  of  the 
Old  and  New  Testament,  according  as  you  have  them, 
while  the  Apocalypse  itself,  and  some  other  books  of  the 
New  Testament,  not  at  that  time  written,  were,  neverthe- 
less, therein.  And  for  the  letter,  it  was  in  these  words  :— 

"  '  I  John,  a  servant  of  the  Highest  and  Apostle  of  Jesus 
Christ,  was  warned  by  an  angell,  that  appeared  to  me  in  a 
vision  of  glory,  that  I  should  commit  this  ark  to  the  floods 
of  the  sea.  Therefore  I  do  testifie  and  declare  unto  that 
people  where  God  shall  ordain  this  ark  to  come  to  land, 
that  in  the  same  day  is  come  unto  them  salvation  and  peace 
and  goodwill  from  the  Father  and  from  the  Lord  Jesus.' 

"  There  was  also  as  well  in  the  book  as  the  letter  a  great 
miracle  wrought,  conform  to  that  of  the  apostles  in  the 
originall  gift  of  tongues,  for  there  being  at  that  time  in  this 
land  Hebrews,  Persians,  and  Indians,1  besides  the  natives, 
every  one  read  upon  the  book  and  the  letter  as  if  they  had 
been  written  in  his  own  language.  Thus  was  this  land 
saved  from  infidelity  through  the  apostolicall  and  miraculous 
evangelism  of  S.  John." 

Here  he  paused,  and  a  messenger  called  him  from  us,  so 
this  was  all  that  passed  in  that  conference.  The  next  day 
the  same  Governour  came  again  to  us  immediately  after 
dinner,  and  after  we  were  set,  he  said : — "  Well,  the  ques- 
tions are  on  your  part."  One  of  our  number  said,  after  a 
little  pause,  that  there  was  a  matter  we  were  no  less  desirous 
to  know  than  fearful  to  ask,  but  encouraged  by  his  rare 
humanity  towards  us,  we  would  take  the  hardiness  to  pro- 
pound it.  We  well  observed  those  his  former  words,  that 
this  happy  island  was  known  to  few,  and  yet  knew  most  of 

1  The  island,  notwithstanding,  had  been  unvisited  by  strangers 
for  the  space  of  36,000  years.  See  p.  354. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    359 

the  nations  of  the  world,  which  we  found  to  be  true,  con- 
sidering they  had  the  languages  of  Europe,  and  knew  much 
of  our  state  and  business,  yet  we,  notwithstanding  the  re- 
mote discoveries  of  this  last  age,  never  heard  the  least  ink- 
ling of  this  island ;  we  never  heard  tell  of  any  ship  of  theirs 
that  had  been  seen  to  arrive  upon  any  shore  of  Europe. 
And  yet  the  mar  veil  rested  not  in  this,  for  its  scituation  in 
the  secret  conclave  of  such  a  vast  sea  mought  cause  it,  but 
that  they  should  have  knowledge  of  the  languages,  books, 
affaires  of  those  that  lye  such  a  distance  from  them,  was  a 
thing  we  could  not  tell  what  to  make  of,  for  it  seemed  a 
propriety  of  divine  powers  and  beings  to  be  hidden  to  others, 
and  yet  to  have  others  open  as  in  a  light  to  them.  At  this 
speech  the  Governour  gave  a  gratious  smile,  and  said  that 
we  did  well  to  ask  pardon  for  a  question  which  imported  as 
if  we  thought  this  a  land  of  magicians,  that  sent  forth  spirits 
of  the  aire  into  all  parts  to  bring  them  intelligence  of  other 
countries.  It  was  answered  by  us  in  all  possible  humble- 
nesse,  but  yet  with  a  countenance  takeirig  knowledge  that 
he  spake  it  but  merrily,  that  we  were  apt  enough  to  think 
there  was  something  supernaturall  in  this  island,  but  rather 
as  angelicall  than  magicall ;  but  to  let  his  lordship  know 
truly  what  made  us  doubtful  to  ask  this  question,  was  be- 
cause we  remembred  he  had  given  a  touch  in  his  former 
speech  that  this  land  had  laws  of  secresy  touching  strangers. 
To  this  he  said  : — "  You  remember  aright,  and  in  that  I  shall 
say  I  must  reserve  particulars  which  it  is  not  lawful  to  reveal, 
but  there  will  be  enough  left  to  give  you  satisfaction.  You 
shall  understand  that  about  three  thousand  years  agoe,  the 
navigation  of  the  world  (specially  for  remote  voyages)  was 
greater  than  it  is  now.  Whether  it  was  that  the  example 
of  the  Ark  that  saved  the  remnant  of  men  from  the  univer- 


36o  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

sail  deluge,  gave  confidence  to  adventure,  or  what  it  was, 
but  such  is  the  truth.  The  Phoenicians  and  Tyrians  had 
great  fleets,  so  had  the  Carthaginians,  their  colony.  To 
ward  the  East  the  shipping  of  ^Egypt  and  Palestina  was 
likewise,  great.  China  also  and  America  abounded  in  tall 
ships  This  island  had  fifteen  hundred  of  great  content. 
At  that  time  this  land  was  known  and  frequented  by  ships 
and  vessels  of  all  the  nations  before  named,  and  they  had 
many  times  men  of  other  countries  that  were  no  saylers, 
that  came  with  them — as  Persians,  Chaldeans,  Egyptians, 
and  Grecians,  so  as  almost  all  nations  resorted  hither,  of 
whom  we  have  some  stirps  with  us  at  this  day.  Our  own 
ships  went  sundry  voyages. 

"  At  the  same  time,  the  inhabitants  of  the  Holy  Land  did 
flourish.  For  though  the  narration  and  discription  made 
by  a  great  man  with  you,  that  the  descendants  of  Neptune 
planted  there,  and  of  the  magnificent  temple,  palace,  city, 
and  hill  (see  my  Rosie  Crucian  Infallible  Axiomata\  and  the 
manifold  navigable  rivers  (which  as  so  many  chains  en- 
vironed the  site  and  temple),  and  the  severall  degrees  of 
ascent  whereby  men  did  climb  up  to  the  same  as  if  it  had 
been  a  Scala  Cceli,  be  all  poeticall  and  fabulous,  yet  so 
much  is  true  that  the  said  country  of  Judea,  as  well  as  Peru, 
then  called  Coya — Mexico,  then  named  Tyrambel — were 
mighty,  proud  kingdomes  in  arms,  shipping,  and  riches. 
At  one  time  both  made  two  great  expeditions,  they  of 
Tyrambel  through  Judea  to  the  Mediterrane  sea,  and  they 
of  Coya  through  the  South  Sea  upon  this  our  island.  For 
the  former  of  these,  which  was  into  Europe,  the  same  author 
amongst  you  had  some  relations  from  his  Beata  (see  the 
"  Harmony  of  the  World,"  lib.  i.,  the  Preface).  Assuredly 
such  a  thing  there  was,  but  whether  the  ancient  Athenians 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  JOHN  HE  YD  ON.    361 

had  the  glory  of  the  repulse  of  those  forces  I  can  say 
nothing;  but  certain  it  is  there  never  came  back  either 
ship  or  man  from  that  voyage.  Neither  had  those  of  Coya 
had  better  fortune  if  they  had  not  met  with  enemies  of 
great  clemency.  The  King  of  this  island,  by  name  Phroates, 
who  was  raised  three  times  from  death  to  life,  a  wise  man 
and  great  warrior,  knowing  his  own  strength  and  that  of  his 
enemies,  handled  the  matter  so  as  he  cut  off  their  landforces 
from  their  ships,  and  entoyled  both  their  navy  and  camp 
with  a  greater  power  than  theirs,  compelling  them  to  render 
themselves  without  striking  stroke.  After  they  were  at  his 
mercy,  contenting  himself  only  with  their  oath  that  they 
should  no  more  beare  armes  against  him,  he  dismissed  them 
in  all  safety ;  but  the  Divine  revenge  overtook,  not  long 
after,  these  proud  enterprises,  for  within  less  than  the  space 
of  one  hundred  years  the  island  was  utterly  destroyed  by 
a  particular  deluge  or  inundation,  these  continents  then 
having  far  greater  rivers  and  far  higher  mountaines  to  pour 
down  waters  than  any  part  of  the  Old  World.  The  inun- 
dation was  not  past  forty  foot  deep  in  most  places,  so  that, 
although  it  destroyed  man  and  beast  generally,  yet  some 
few  wilde  inhabitants  of  the  wood  escaped.  Birds  also 
escaped  by  flying  to  the  high  trees  and  woods.  As  for  men, 
although  they  had  buildings  in  many  places  higher  than 
the  waters,  yet  that  inundation  had  a  long  continuance, 
whereby  they  of  the  vaile  that  were  not  drowned  perished 
for  want  of  food.  So  marvel  you  not  at  the  thin  popula- 
tion of  America,  nor  at  the  rudeness  of  the  people,  younger 
a  thousand  years,  at  the  least,  then  the  rest  of  the  world, 
for  there  was  so  much  time  between  the  universal  flood  and 
their  particular  inundation.  The  poor  remnant  of  humane 
seed  which  remained  in  their  mountaines  peopled  the  country 


362  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

again  slowly,  and,  being  simple  and  savage,  were  not  able 
to  leave  letters,  arts,  and  civility  to  their  posterity.  Having 
likewise  in  their  mountainous  habitations  been  used  (in 
respect  of  the  exbream  cold)  to  cloathe  themselves  with 
skins  of  tygers,  bears,  and  great  hairy  goates,  when  they 
came  down  into  the  valley  and  found  the  intolerable  heats 
which  are  there,  they  were  forced  to  begin  the  custome  of 
going  naked,  which  continueth  at  this  day,  onely  they  take 
great  pride  in  the  feathers  of  birds.  ...  By  this  main  acci- 
dent of  time  we  lost  our  traffique  with  the  Americans,  with 
whom,  in  regard  they  lay  nearest  to  us,  we  had  most  com- 
merce. As  for  other  parts  of  the  world,  navigation  did  every- 
where greatly  decay,  so  that  part  of  entercourse  which  could 
be  from  other  nations  to  sayle  to  us  hath  long  since  ceased. 
But  now  of  the  cessation  of  intercourse  which  mought 
be  by  our  sayling  to  other  nations,  I  cannot  say  but  our  ship- 
ping for  number,  strength,  marriners,  pilots,  and  all  things 
is  as  great  as  ever ;  and,  therefore,  why  we  should  set  at 
home  I  shall  now  give  you  an  account  by  itself.  There 
raigned  in  this  island,  about  nineteen  hundred  years  agoe, 
a  King  whose  memory  of  all  others  we  most  adore,  not 
superstitiously,  but  as  a  divine  instrument,  though  a  mortall 
man.  His  name  was  Eugenius  Theodidactus  (you  may  read 
this  at  large  in  our  "  Idea  of  the  Law "),  and  we  esteem 
him  as  the  lawgiver  of  our  nation.  This  Xing  had  a  large 
heart,  inscrutable  for  good,  and  was  wholly  bent  to  make 
his  kingdome  and  people  happy.  He,  therefore,  takeing 
into  consideration  how  sufficient  this  land  was  to  maintain 
itself  without  any  aid  of  the  forrainer,  being  5600  miles  in 
circuit  and  of  rare  fertility  in  the  greatest  part  thereof; 
finding  also  the  shipping  might  be  plentifully  set  on  worke 
by  fishing  and  by  transportation  from  port  to  port,  and 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    363 

likewise  by  sayling  unto  some  small  islands  not  farr  from 
us,  and  under  the  Crown  and  laws  of  this  State ;  recalling 
the  flourishing  estate  wherein  this  land  then  was,  though 
nothing  wanted  to  this  noble  and  heroicall  intention  but  to 
give  perpetuity  to  that  which  was  so  happily  established. 
Amongst  other  fundamentall  laws  of  this  kingdome,  he  did 
ordaine  the  interdicts  and  prohibitions  which  we  have 
touching  entrance  of  strangers,  doubting  novelties  and  com- 
mixture of  manners.  Nevertheless,  he  preserved  all  points 
of  humanity  in  making  provision  for  the  relief  of  strangers 
distressed,  whereof  you  have  tasted,"  at  which  speech  we 
all  rose  up  and  bowed  ourselves. 

He  went  on  : — "  That  King  also  still  desiring  to  joyn 
humanity  and  policy,  and  thinking  it  against  humanity  to 
detaine  strangers  against  their  will,  and  against  policy  that 
they  should  return  to  discover  their  knowledge  of  this 
state,  did  ordain  that  of  the  strangers  permitted  to  land, 
as  many  at  all  times  mought  depart  as  would,  but  as  many 
as  would  stay  should  have  very  good  conditions,  wherein 
he  saw  so  farr  that  in  so  many  ages  since  the  prohibition, 
we  -have  memory  not  of  one  ship  that  ever  returned,  and 
but  of  thirteen  persons,  at  severall  times,  that  chose  to  re- 
turn in  our  bottoms.  What  those  few  may  have  reported 
abroad,  I  know  not,  but  whatever  they  said  could  be  taken 
but  for  a  dream.  For  our  travelling  hence,  our  law-giver 
thought  fit  altogether  to  restrain  it,  but  this  restraint  hath 
one  admirable  exception,  preserving  the  good  which  com- 
meth  by  communication  with  strangers,  and  avoiding  the 
hurt.  Ye  shall  understand  that  among  the  excellent  acts 
of  that  King  one  hath  the  pre-eminence — the  erection  and 
institution  of  an  Order,  or  Society,  which  we  call  the 
Temple  of  the  Rosie  Crosse,  the  noblest  foundation  that 


364  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

ever  was  upon  earth,  and  the  lanthorne  of  this  Kingdome. 
It  is  dedicated  to  the  study  of  the  works  and  creatures  of 
God.  Some  think  it  beareth  the  founder's  name  a  little 
corrupted,  as  if  it  should  be  F.  H.  R.  C.  his  house,  but  the 
records  write  it  as  it  is  spoken.  I  take  it  to  be  denomin- 
ate of  the  King  of  the  Hebrews,  which  is  famous  with  you, 
and  no  stranger  to  us,  for  we  have  some  parts  of  his  works 
which  you  have  lost,  namely,  that  Rosie  Crucian  M  which 
he  wrote  of  all  things  past,  present,  or  to  come,  and  of  all 
things  that  have  life  and  motion.  This  maketh  me  think 
that  our  King  finding  himself  to  symbolize  with  that  King 
of  the  Hebrews,  honoured  him  with  The  Title  of  this 
Foundation,  and  I  finde  in  ancient  records  this  Order  or 
Society  of  the  Rosie  Crosse  is  sometimes  called  the  Holy 
House,  and  sometimes  the  Colledge  of  the  Six  Days'  Works, 
whereby  I  am  satisfied  that  our  excellent  King  had  learned 
from  the  Hebrews  that  God  had  created  the  world  and  all 
therein  within  six  days,  and  therefore  he  instituting  that 
House  for  the  finding  out  of  the  one  nature  of  things  did 
give  it  also  that  second  name.  When  the  King  had  for- 
bidden to  all  his  people  navigation  into  any  part  not  under 
his  crown,  he  had,  nevertheless,  this  ordinance,  that  every 
twelve  years  there  should  be  set  forth  two  ships  appointed 
to  severall  voyages ;  that  in  either  of  these  ships  there 
should  be  a  mission  of  three  of  the  Fellows  or  Brethren  of  the 
Holy  House,  whose  errand  was  to  give  us  knowledge  of  the 
affaires  and  state  of  those  countries  to  which  they  were  de- 
signed, and  especially  of  the  sciences,  arts,  manufactures, 
and  inventions  of  all  the  world,  and  withall  to  bring  unto 
us  books,  instruments,  and  patterns  in  every  kinde ;  that 
the  ships  after  they  had  landed  the  Brethren  of  the  Rosie 
Crosse  should  return,  and  that  the  Brethren  R.  C.  should 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    365 

stay  abroad  till  the  new  mission.  These  ships  were  not 
otherwise  fraught  than  with  store  of  victualls,  and  treasure 
to  remaine  with  the  Brethren  for  buying  such  things  and 
rewarding  such  persons  as  they  should  think  fit.  Now  for 
me  to  tell  you  how  the  vulgar  sort  of  marriners  are  con- 
tained from  being  discovered  at  land,  and  how  they  that 
must  be  put  on  shore  colour  themselves  under  the  name  of 
other  nations,  and  to  what  places  these  voyages  have  been 
designed,  and  what  rendezvous  are  appointed  for  the  new 
missions,  and  the  like  circumstances,  I  may  not  do  it,  but 
thus,  you  see,  we  maintain  a  trade,  not  for  gold,  silver,  or 
jewels,  nor  any  commodity  of  matter,  but  onely  for  God's 
first  creature,  which  was  light,  to  have  light,  I  say,  of  the 
growth  of  all  parts  of  the  world." 

When  he  had  said  this  he  was  silent,  and  so  were  we  all, 
for  we  were  astonished  to  hear  so  strange  things  so  probably 
told.  He  perceiving  that  we  were  willing  to  say  some- 
what, but  had  it  not  ready,  descended  to  aske  us  questions 
of  our  voyage  and  fortunes,  and  in  the  end  concluded  that 
we  mought  do  well  to  think  what  time  of  stay  we  would 
demand  of  the  State,  for  he  would  procure  such  time  as  we 
desired.  Whereupon  we  all  rose  up  and  presented  our- 
selves to  kisse  the  skirt  of  his  tippet,  but  he  would  not 
suffer  us,  and  so  took  his  leave.  When  it  came  once 
amongst  our  people  that  the  State  used  to  offer  conditions 
to  strangers  that  would  stay,  we  had  worke  enough  to  get 
any  of  our  men  to  look  to  our  ship,  and  to  keep  them  from 
going  to  the  Government  to  crave  conditions. 

We  took  ourselves  now  for  freemen,  and  lived  most  joy- 
fully, going  abroad  and  seeing  what  was  to  be  seen  in  the 
city  and  places  adjacent,  obtaining  acquaintance  with  many 
in  the  city,  at  whose  hands  we  found  such  humanity  as 


366  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

was  enough  to  make  us  forget  all  that  was  dear  to  us  in 
our  own  countries.  Continually  we  met  with  things  right 
worthy  of  observation  and  relation,  as  indeed  if  there  be  a 
mirrour  in  the  world  worthy  to  hold  men's  eyes,  it  is  that 
countrey.  One  day  there  were  two  of  our  company  bidden 
to  a  feast  of  the  fraternity,  as  they  call  it,  and  a  most 
naturall,  pious,  and  reverend  custome  it  is,  shewing  that 
nation  to  be  compounded  of  all  goodnesse.  It  is  granted 
to  any  man  who  shall  live  to  see  thirty  persons  descended 
of  his  body  alive  together,  and  all  above  three  years  old, 
to  make  this  feast,  which  is  done  at  the  cost  of  the  State. 
The  Father  of  the  fraternity,  whom  they  call  the  R.  C., 
two  days  before  the  feast  taketh  to  him  three  of  such 
friends  as  he  liketh  to  chuse,  and  is  assisted  also  by 
the  governour  of  the  city  where  the  feast  is  celebrated, 
and  all  the  persons  of  the  family,  of  both  sexes,  are  sum- 
moned to  attend  upon  him.  Then,  if  there  be  any  dis- 
cords or  suits,  they  are  compounded  and  appeased.  Then, 
if  any  of  the  family  be  distressed  or  decayed,  order  is 
taken  for  their  relief  and  competent  means  to  live. 
Then,  if  any  be  subject  to  vice,  they  are  reproved  and 
censured.  So,  likewise,  direction  is  given  touching 
marriage  and  the  courses  of  life.  The  governour  assisteth 
to  put  in  execution  the  decrees  of  the  Tirsan  if  they  should 
be  disobeyed,  though  that  seldome  needeth,  such  reverence 
they  give  to  the  order  of  Nature.  The  Tirsan  doth  also 
then  chuse  one  man  from  amongst  his  sons  to  live  in  house 
with  him,  who  is  called  ever  after  the  Sonne  of  the  Vine. 
On  the  feast  day  the  father,  or  Tirsan,  commeth  forth  after 
Divine  Service  in  to  a  large  room,  where  the  feast  is  cele- 
brated, which  room  hath  an  half-pace  at  the  upper  end. 
Against  the  wall,  in  the  middle  of  the  half-pace,  is  a  chaire 


nOSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS  :  JOHN  HEYDON.    367 

placed  for  him,  with  a  table  and  carpet  before  it.  Over  the 
chaire  is  a  slate,  made  round  or  ovall,  and  it  is  of  an  ivie 
somewhat  whiter  than  ours,  like  the  leaf  of  a  silver  aspe, 
but  more  shining,  for  it  is  green  all  winter.  The  slate  is 
curiously  wrought  of  silver  and  silk  of  divers  colours, 
broyding  or  binding  in  the  ivie.  It  is  the  work  of  some  of 
the  daughters  of  the  family,  and  is  vailed  over  at  the  top 
with  a  fine  net  of  silk  and  silver,  but  the  substance  of  it  is 
true  ivie,  whereof,  after  it  is  taken  down,  the  friends  of  the 
family  are  desirous  to  have  some  leaf  to  keep.  The  Tirsan 
commeth  forth  with  all  his  generation  or  linage,  the  males 
before  him  and  the  females  following  him,  and  if  there  be  a 
mother  from  whose  body  the  whole  linage  is  descended,  there 
is  a  traverse  placed  in  a  loft  above,  on  the  right  hand  of  the 
chaire,  with  a  privie  doore  and  a  carved  window  of  glass, 
leaded  with  gold  and  blew,  where  she  sitteth  but  is  not 
seen.  When  the  Tirsan  is  come  forth,  he  sitteth  down  in 
the  chaire,  and  all  the  linage  place  themselves  against  the 
wall,  both  at  his  back  and  upon  the  return  of  the  hall,  in 
order  of  their  yeares,  without  difference  of  sex,  and  stand 
upon  their  feet.  When  he  is  set,  the  roome  being  alwayes 
full  of  company,  but  without  disorder,  after  some  pause 
there  commeth  in  from  the  lower  end  of  the  room  a  Taratan, 
or  herald,  and  on  either  side  of  him  two  young  lads,  whereof 
one  carrieth  a  scrowle  of  their  shining  yellow  parchment, 
and  the  other  a  cluster  of  grapes  of  gold,  with  a  long  foot 
or  stalke.  The  heralds  and  children  are  cloathed  with 
mantles  of  sea- water  green  sattin,  but  the  herald's  mantle 
is  streamed  with  gold  and  hath  a  traine.  Then  the  herald 
with  three  curtsies,  or  rather  inclinations,  commeth  up  as 
far  as  the  half-pace,  and  taketh  into  his  hand  the  scrowle. 
This  is  the  King's  charter,  containing  gifts  of  revenue  and 


. 


368  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

many  priviledges,  exemptions,  and  points  of  honour,  granted 
to  the  father  of  the  fraternity ;  it  is  stiled  and  directed, 
"  To  such  an  one,  our  well  beloved  friend  and  Creditour," 
which  is  a  title  proper  only  to  this  case,  for  they  say  the 
King  is  debtor  to  no  man  but  for  propagation  of  his  sub- 
jects. The  seal  set  to  the  King's  charter  is  R.  C.,  and  the 
King's  image  embossed  or  mouled  in  gold.  This  charter  the 
herald  readeth  aloud,  the  father,  or  Rosie  Crucian,  standing 
up,  supported  by  two  of  his  sons.  Then  the  herald  mounteth 
the  half- pace  and  delivereth  the  charter  into  his  hands,  and 
with  that  there  is  an  acclamation — "  Happy  are  the  people 
of  Apanua !  "  Then  the  herald  taketh  into  his  hand,  from 
the  other  childe,  the  cluster  of  grapes,  which  are  daintily 
enamelled.  If  the  males  of  the  Holy  Island  are  the  greater 
number,  the  grapes  are  enamelled  purple,  with  a  sun  set  on 
the  top.  If  the  females  prevaile,  they  are  enamelled  into  a 
greenish  yellow,  with  a  crescent  on  the  top.  The  grapes 
are  in  number  as  many  as  the  descendants  of  the  fraternity. 
This  golden  cluster  the  herald  delivereth  also  to  the  Rosie 
Crucian,  who  presently  delivereth  it  to  that  sonne  formerly 
chosen  to  be  in  his  house  with  him,  who  beareth  it  before 
his  father  as  an  ensign  of  honour  when  he  goeth  in  publick 
ever  after.  After  this  ceremony,  the  father,  or  Rosie 
Crucian,  retireth,  and  after  some  time  commeth  forth  again 
to  dinner,  where  he  sitteth  alone  under  the  slate — none  of 
his  descendants  sit  with  him,  except  he  happ  to  be  of  the 
Holy  House.  He  is  served  only  by  his  own  male  children 
upon  the  knee ;  the  women  stand  about  him,  leaning 
against  the  wall.  The  room  below  the  half-pace  hath  tables 
on  the  sides  for  the  ghests,  who  are  served  with  great  and 
comely  order.  Towards  the  end  of  dinner  (which  in  their 
greatest  feasts  never  lasteth  above  an  hour  and  an  half) 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEYDON.    369 

there  is  an  hynme  sung,  varied  according  to  the  invention 
of  him  that  composeth  it  (for  they  have  an  excellent  poasie), 
but  the  subject  is  alwayes  the  praise  of  Adam,  Noah,  and 
Abraham,  whereof  the  two  former  peopled  the  world,  and 
the  last  was  the  father  of  the  faithfull,  concluding  with  a 
thanksgiving  for  the  nativity  of  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ, 
in  whose  birth  only  the  births  of  all  are  blessed.  Dinner 
being  done,  the  K.  Crucian,  having  withdrawne  himself  into 
a  place  where  he  maketh  some  private  prayers,  commeth 
forth  the  third  time  to  give  the  blessing  with  all  his  de- 
scendants, who  stand  about  him  as  at  first.  He  calls  them 
forth  by  one  and  by  one  as  he  pleaseth,  though  seldome  the 
order  of  age  be  inverted.  The  person  called  (the  table 
being  before  removed)  kneeleth  down  before  the  chaire,  and 
the  father  layeth  his  hand  upon  his  or  her  head,  and  giveth 
the  blessing  in  these  words : — "  Son  (or  daughter)  of  the 
Holy  Island,  thy  father  saith  it ;  the  man  by  whom  thou 
hast  breath  and  life  speaketh  the  words ;  the  blessing  of 
the  Everlasting  Father,  the  Prince  of  Peace,  and  the  Holy 
Spirit  be  upon  thee,  and  make  the  dayes  of  thy  pilgrimage 
good  and  many."  If  there  be  any  of  his  sons  of  eminent 
merit  and  vertue  (so  they  be  not  above  two),  he  calleth  for 
them  again,  and  saith,  laying  his  arm  over  their  shoulders, 
they  standing : — "Sons,  it  is  well  ye  are  borne;  give  God 
the  praise,  and  persevere  to  the  end  ! "  withall  delivering 
to  either  a  jewel  made  in  the  figure  of  an  eare  of  wheat, 
which  they  ever  after  doe  wear  in  the  front  of  their  turban, 
or  hat.  This  done,  they  fall  to  musick  and  dances,  and 
other  recreations.  This  is  the  full  order  of  that  Feast  of 
the  Rosie  Cross. 

By  that  time  six  or  seven  dayes  were  spent,  and  I  was 
fallen  into  a  straight  acquaintance  with  a  merchant  of  that 


37o  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

city,  whose  name  was  Nicholas  Walford,  and  his  man,  Sede 
John  Booker.  He  was  a  Jew  and  circumcised,  for  they 
have  some  few  stirps  of  Jews  yet  among  them,  whom  they 
leave  to  their  own  religion,  which  they  may  the  better  doe, 
because  they  are  of  a  farr  differing  disposition  from  the 
Jews  in  other  parts,  giving  unto  our  Saviour  many  high 
attributes,  and  loving  the  nation  of  Chassalonia  extreamly. 
This  man  of  whom  I  speak  would  ever  acknowledge  that 
Christ  was  born  of  a  Virgin,  and  was  more  than  man  ;  he 
would  tell  how  God  made  Him  ruler  of  the  Seraphims 
which  guard  His  throne  (read  the  "  Harmony  of  the 
World  ").  They  call  Him  also  the  mil  ken  way  Emepht,  and 
the  Eliah  of  the  Messiah,  and  many  other  high  names, 
which,  though  they  be  inferior  to  His  Divine  Majesty,  are 
farr  from  the  language  of  other  Jews.  For  the  country  of 
Apamia,  the  Holy  Island,  or  Chassalonia,  for  it  is  all  one 
place,  this  man  would  make  no  end  of  commending  it,  being 
desirous,  by  tradition  amongst  the  Jews  there,  to  have  it 
believed  that  the  people  were  of  the  generations  of  Abraham 
by  another  son,  whom  they  call  Nachoran,  and  that  Moses 
by  a  secret  Cabala  (read  the  "Temple  of  Wisdome,"  lib.  4) 
ordained  the  Laws  of  Jerusalem  which  they  now  use,  and 
that  when  Messiah  should  come  and  sit  in  His  throne  at 
Hierusalem,  the  King  of  Chassalonia  should  sit  at  his  feet, 
whereas  other  kings  should  keep  a  great  distance.  Setting 
aside  the  Jewish  dreamer,  the  man  was  wise  and  learned, 
excellently  seen  in  the  laws  and  customs  of  that  nation. 
Amongst  other  discourses  I  told  him  I  was  much  affected 
with  the  relation  from  some  of  the  company  of  their  Feast 
of  the  Fraternity,  and  because  propagation  of  families  pro- 
ceeded from  nuptial  copulation,  I  desired  to  know  what 
laws  they  had  concerning  marriage,  and  whether  they  were 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    371 

tyed  to  one  wife.  To  this  he  said  : — "  You  have  reason  to 
commend  that  excellent  institution  of  the  Feast  of  the 
Family.  Those  families  -that  are  partakers  of  its  blessing 
flourish  ever  after  in  an  extraordinary  manner.  You  shall 
understand  that  there  is  not  under  the  Heavens  so  chast  a 
nation  as  this  of  Apamia.  It  is  the  virgin  of  the  world.  I 
have  read  in  one  of  your  books  of  an  holy  hermit  that  de- 
sired to  see  the  spirit  of  fornication,  and  there  appeared  to 
him  a  little  foule  ugly  sethiope.  But  if  he  had  desired  to 
see  the  spirit  of  chastitie  of  the  Holy  Island,  it  would  have 
appeared  in  the  likenesse  of  a  faire  beautiful  cherubin,  for 
there  is  nothing  amongst  mortall  men  more  admirable  than 
the  chaste  mindes  of  this  people.  There  are  no  stewes,  no 
dissolute  houses,  no  curtisans.  They  wonder  with  detesta- 
tion at  you  in  Europe  which  permit  such  things ;  they  say 
ye  have  put  marriage  out  of  office,  for  marriage  is  a  remedy 
for  unlawfull  concupiscence,  and  naturall  concupiscence 
seemeth  as  a  spur  to  marriage;  but  when  men  have  at 
hand  a  remedy  more  agreeable  to  their  corrupt  will,  mar- 
riage is  almost  expulsed.  And  therefore  there  are  seen  with 
you  infinite  men  that  marry  not,  but  choose  a  libertine  and 
impure  single  life ;  and  many  that  do  marry,  marry  late, 
when  the  prime  and  strength  of  their  years  is  past.  When 
they  do  marry,  what  is  marriage  to  them  but  a  very  bargain, 
wherein  is  sought  alliance,  or  portion,  or  reputation,  with 
some  indifferent  desire  of  issue,  and  not  the  faithfull  nuptial 
union  of  man  and  wife  that  was  first  instituted  1  Neither 
is  it  possible  that  those  who  have  cast  away  so  basely  so 
much  of  their  strength  should  greatly  esteeme  children 
(being  of  the  same  matter)  as  chaste  men  doe.  So  likewise 
during  marriage  is  the  case  much  amended,  as  it  ought  to 
be,  if  those  things  were  tolerated  only  for  necessity  ?  The 


372  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

haunting  of  dissolute  places,  or  resort  to  curtizans,  are  no 
more  punished  in  married  men  than  in  batchelors ;  the  de- 
praved custome  of  change  and  the  delight  in  meretricious 
embracements  (where  sin  is  turned  into  art),  make  marriage 
a  dull  thing,  and  a  kinde  of  imposition,  or  tax.  They  hear 
you  defend  these  things  as  done  to  avoid  greater  evills,  as 
advoutries,  deflowering  of  virgins,  unnaturall  lust,  and  the 
like,  but  these  vices  and  appetites  do  still  remain  and 
abound,  unlawfull  lusts  being  like  a  furnace ;  if  you  stopp 
the  flames  altogether,  it  will  quench  ;  but  if  you  give  it  any 
vent,  it  will  rage.  As  for  masculine  love,  they  have  no 
touch  of  it,  and  yet  there  are  not  so  faithfull  and  inviolate 
friendships  in  the  world  as  are  there.  Their  usual  saying 
is,  that  whosever  is  unchaste  cannot  reverence  himself,  and 
that  the  reverence  of  a  man's  self  is,  next  religion,  the 
chiefest  bridle  of  all  vice." 

I  confessed  the  righteousnesse  of  Aquanna  was  greater 
than  the  righteousnesse  of  Europe,  at  which  he  bowed  his 
head,  and  went  on  in  this  manner.  "  They  have  also  many 
wise  and  excellent  laws  touching  marriage.  They  allow  no 
polygamie.  They  have  ordained  that  none  doe  intermarrie 
or  contract  until  a  month  be  past  from  their  first  interview. 
Marriage  without  consent  of  parents  they  do  not  make 
void,  but  they  mulct  it  in  the  inheritours,  for  the  children 
of  such  marriages  are  not  admitted  to  inherit  above  a  third 
their  parents'  inheritance.  I  have  read,  in  a  book  of  one 
of  your  men,  of  a  fained  commonwealth,  where  the  married 
couple  are  permitted  before  the  contract  to  see  one  another 
naked.  This  they  dislike,  for  they  think  it  a  scorn  to  give 
a  refusall  after  so  familiar  knowledge;  but  because  of 
many  hidden  defects  in  men  and  women's  bodies,  they  have 
neare  every  towne  a  couple  of  pooles  (which  they  call  Adam 


ROSTCRUC1AN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    373 

and  Eve's  pooles),  where  it  is  permitted  to  one  of  the 
friends  of  the  man  and  one  of  the  woman  to  see  them 
severally  bathe  naked." 

As   we  were  thus  in  conference,  there  came   one  that 
seemed  to  be  a  messenger,  in  a  rich  huke,  that  spake  with 
the  Jew,  whereupon  he  turned  to  me  and  said,  "  You  will 
pardon  me,  for  I  am  commanded  away  in  haste."     The 
next  morning  he  came  to  me  joyfully,  and  said — "  There  is 
word  come  to  the  Governour  of  the  city  that  one  of  the 
Fathers  of  the  Temple  of  the  Rosie  Crosse,  or  Holy  House, 
will  be  here  this  day  seven-night.     We  have  seen  none  of 
them  this  dozen  years.     His  comming  is  in  state,  but  the 
cause  is  secret.     I  will  provide  you  and  your  fellows  of  a 
good  standing  to  see  his  entry."     T  thanked  him  and  said 
I  was  most  glad  of  the  news.     The  day  being  come,  he 
made  his  entry.     He  was  a  man  of  middle  stature  and  age, 
comely  of  person,  and  had  an  aspect  as  if  he  pittied  men. 
He  was  cloathed  in  a  robe  of  fine  black  cloth,  with  wide 
sleeves  and  a  cape.     His  under  garment  was  of  excellent 
white  linnen,  down  to  the  foot,  with  a  girdle  of  the  same, 
and  a  sindon  or  tippet  of  the  same  about  his  neck.     He  had 
gloves  that  were  curious  and  set  with  stones,  and  shoes  of 
peach-coloured  velvet.     His  neck  was  bare  to  the  shoulders ; 
his   hat   was   like  a  helmet,  or  Spanish  montem,  and  his 
locks,   of  brown   colour,   curled   below  it   decently.     His 
beard  was  cut  round  and  of  the  same  colour  with  his  haire, 
somewhat  lighter.     He  was  carried  in  a  rich  chariot,  with- 
out  wheels,   litter-wise,    with   two   horses   at  either  end, 
richly  trapped  in  blew  velvet  embroydered,  and  two  foot- 
men on  each  side  in  the  like  attire.     The  chariot  was  of 
cedar,  gilt  and  adorned  with  chrystall,  save  that  the  fore- 
end  had  pannells  of  sapphire,  set  in  borders  of  gold,  and 


374  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

the  hinder-end  the  like  of  emerauds  of  the  Peru  colour. 
There  was  also  a  sun  of  gold  radiant  upon  the  top  in  the 
midst,  and  on  the  top  before  a  small  cherub  of  gold  with 
wings  displayed.  The  chariot  was  covered  with  dotts  of 
gold  tissued  upon  blew.  He  had  before  him  fifty  attend- 
ants, young  men,  all  in  white  satten  loose  coats  to  the  mid 
legg,  stockings  of  white  silk,  shoes  of  blew  velvet,  and  hats 
of  the  same,  with  fine  plumes  of  divers  colours  set  round 
like  hat-bands.  Next  before  the  chariot  went  two  men 
bare-headed,  in  linnen  garments  down  to  the  foot,  girt,  and 
shoes  of  blew  velvet,  who  carried  the  one  a  crosier,  the 
other  a  pastorall  staff  like  a  sheep-hooke,  the  crosier  being 
of  palme-wood,  the  pastorall  staff  of  cedar.  Horsemen  he 
had  none,  as  it  seemed,  to  avoid  all  tumult  and  trouble. 
Behinde  his  chariot  went  all  the  officers  and  principals  of 
the  companies  of  the  city.  He  sat  alone  upon  cushions,  of 
a  kinde  of  excellent  blew  plush,  and  under  his  feet  curious 
carpets  of  silk  of  divers  colours,  like  the  Persian  but  fair 
finer.  He  held  up  his  bare  hand,  blessing  the  people  in 
silence.  The  street  was  wonderfully  well  kept ;  the  win- 
dows likewise  were  not  crouded,  but  everyone  stood  in 
them  as  if  they  had  been  placed.  When  the  shew  was 
past,  the  Jew  said  to  me — "  I  shall  not  be  able  to  attend 
you  as  I  would,  in  regard  of  some  charge  the  city  hath 
layd  upon  me  for  the  entertainment  of  this  Rosie  Crucian." 
Three  days  after  he  came  to  me  again,  and  said — "  Ye  are 
a  happy  man  ;  the  Father  of  the  Temple  of  the  Rosie 
Cross  taketh  notice  of  your  being  here,  and  commands  me 
to  tell  you  that  he  will  admit  all  your  company  to  his 
presence,  and  have  private  conference  with  one  of  you  that 
ye  shall  choose,  and  for  this  hath  appointed  the  day  after 
to-morrow.  And  because  he  meaneth  to  give  you  his 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.     375 

blessing,  he  hath  appointed  it  in  the  forenoon."  We  came 
at  our  day,  and  I  was  chosen  for  the  private  accesse.  We 
found  him  in  a  faire  chamber,  richly  hanged,  and  carpeted 
underfoot,  without  any  degrees  to  the  state.  He  was  set 
upon  a  low  throne,  richly  adorned,  and  a  rich  cloth  of  state 
over  his  head,  of  blew  sattin  embroydered.  He  had  two 
pages  of  honour,  on  either  hand  one,  finely  attired  in  white. 
His  under  garments  were  like  that  he  wore  in  the  chariot, 
but,  instead  of  his  gown,  he  had  on  him  a  mantle  with  a 
cape,  of  the  same  fine  black,  fastned  about  him.  We 
bowed  low  at  our  entrance,  and  when  we  were  come  neare 
his  chair,  he  stood  up,  holding  forth  his  hand  ungloved,  in 
posture  of  blessing,  and  every  one  of  us  stooped  down  and 
kissed  the  hem  of  his  tippet.  That  done,  the  rest  de- 
parted, and  I  remained.  Then  he  warned  the  pages  forth 
of  the  roome,  caused  me  to  sit  down  beside  him,  and  spake 
thus  in  the  Spanish  tongue:— 

"  God  bless  thee,  my  son ;  I  will  give  thee  the  greatest 
jewel  I  have ;  I  will  impart  unto  thee,  for  the  love  of  God 
and  men,  a  relation  of  the  true  state  of  the  Rosie  Crosse. 
First,  I  will  set  forth  the  end  of  our  foundation  ;  secondly, 
the  preparations  and  instruments  we  have  for  our  workes  ; 
thirdly,  the  several  functions  whereto  our  fellows  are 
assigned ;  and  fourthly,  the  ordinances  and  rights  which 
we  observe.  The  end  of  our  foundation  is  the  knowledge 
of  causes  and  secret  motions  of  things,  and  the  enlarging  of 
the  bounds  of  Kingdomes  to  the  effecting  of  all  things 
possible.  The  preparations  and  instruments  are  these.  We 
have  large  caves  of  several  depths,  the  deepest  sunke  36,000 
feet.  Some  are  digged  under  great  hills  and  mountaines, 
so  that,  if  you  reckon  together  the  depths  of  the  hill  and  of 
the  cave,  some  are  above  seven  miles  deep.  These  caves 


376  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

we  call  the  lower  region,  and  we  use  them  for  all  coagu- 
lations, indurations,  refrigerations,  and  conservations  of 
bodies.  We  use  them  likewise  for  the  imitation  of  natural 
mines,  and  the  production  of  new  artificial  mettalls  by  com- 
positions and  materials  which  we  lay  there  for  many  years. 
We  use  them  also  sometimes  for  cureing  some  diseases,  and 
for  prolongation  of  life  in  hermits  that  choose  to  live  there, 
well  accomodated  of  all  things  necessary,  by  whom  also 
we  learn  many  things  (read  our  '  Temple  of  Wisdome '). 
We  have  burialls  in  several  earths,  where  we  put  diverse 
cements,  as  the  Chineses  do  their  borcellane ;  but  we  have 
them  in  greater  variety,  and  some  of  them  more  fine.  We 
have  also  great  variety  of  composts  and  soyles  for  the 
making  of  the  earth  fruitfull.  We  have  towers,  the  highest 
about  half  a  mile  in  height,  and  some  of  them  set  upon 
high  mountaines,  so  that  the  vantage  of  the  hill  with  the 
tower  is,  in  the  highest  of  them,  three  miles  at  least.  These 
places  we  call  the  upper  region,  accounting  the  aire  between 
the  highest  places  and  lowest  as  a  middle  region.  We  use 
these  towers,  according  to  their  severall  heights  and  situa- 
tions, for  insolation,  refrigeration,  conservation,  and  the 
view  of  divers  meteors — as  winds,  rain,  snow,  haile,  and 
some  of  the  fiery  meteors  also.  Upon  them,  in  some  places, 
are  dwellings  of  hermits,  whom  we  visite  sometimes,  and 
instruct  what  to  observe  (Read  our  '  Harmony  of  the 
World ').  We  have  great  lakes,  both  salt  and  fresh,  whereof 
we  have  use  for  the  fish  and  fowle.  We  use  them  also  for 
burials  of  some  naturall  bodies,  for  we  find  a  difference  in 
things  buried  in  earth,  or  in  aire  below  the  earth,  and 
things  buryed  in  the  water.  We  have  also  pooles,  of  which 
some  do  strain e  fresh  water  out  of  salt,  and  others  by  arts 
do  turne  fresh  water  into  salt.  We  have  also  some  rocks 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    377 

in  the  midst  of  the  seas,  and  some  bayes  upon  the  shore, 
for  works  wherein  are  required  the  aire  and  vapour  of  the 
sea.  We  have  likewise  violent  streams  and  cataracts  which 
serve  us  for  many  motions,  and  engines  for  multiplying  and 
enforcing  winds  to  set  on  going  divers  other  motions. 

"  We  have  a  number  of  artificiall  wells  and  fountaines,  in 
imitation  of  the  natural  sources ;  also  baths  tincted  upon 
vitrioll,  sulphur,  steell,  brasse,  lead,  nitre,  and  other  mine- 
rals. Again,  we  have  little  wells  for  infusion  of  many 
things,  where  the  waters  take  the  vertue  quicker  and  better 
than  in  vessels  or  basines ;  and  amongst  them  we  have 
water  which  we  call  water  of  Paradise,  being,  by  that  we 
do  to  it,  made  very  soveraign  for  health  and  prolongation 
of  life. 

"  We  have  also  great  and  spacious  houses,  where  we  imi- 
tate and  demonstrate  meteors — as  snow,  hail,  raine,  some 
artificiall  raines  of  bodies  and  not  of  water,  thunders,  light- 
nings ;  also  generation  of  bodies  in  the  aire — as  frogs,  flies, 
and  divers  others. 

"  We  have  certain  chambers,  which  we  call  Chambers  of 
Health,  where  we  qualify  the  aire  as  we  think  good  and 
proper  for  the  cure  of  divers  diseases  and  preservation  of 
health. 

"  We  have  also  faire  and  large  baths,  of  severall  mixtures, 
for  the  cure  of  diseases  and  the  restoring  of  man's  body 
from  arefaction,  and  others  for  the  confirming  of  it  in 
strength  of  sinews,  vitall  parts,  and  the  very  juyce  and 
substance  of  the  body. 

"  We  have  also  large  and  various  orchards  (see  the  epistle 
to  the  '  Harmony  of  the  World ')  and  gardens  (wherein  we 
do  not  so  much  respect  beauty  as  variety  of  ground  and 
soyle,  proper  for  diverse  trees  and  herbs),  some  very  spa- 


378  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

cious,  where  trees  and  berries  are  set,  whereof  we  make 
divers  kindes  of  drinks,  besides  the  vineyards.  In  these  we 
practise  likewise  all  conclusions  of  grafting  and  inoculating, 
as  well  of  wild  trees  as  fruit  trees,  which  produce  many 
effects.  We  make  by  art,  in  the  same  orchards  and  gar- 
dens, trees  or  flowers  to  come  earlier  or  later  than  their 
seasons,  and  to  beare  more  speedily  than  by  their  natural  1 
course  they  do.  We  make  them  also  by  art  much  greater 
than  their  nature,  and  their  fruit  greater,  sweeter,  and  of 
differing  taste,  smell,  colour,  and  figure  from  their  nature. 
Many  of  them  we  so  order  as  they  become  of  medicinall  use. 

"  We  have  also  means  to  make  divers  plants  rise  by  mix- 
tures of  earths  without  seeds,  and  to  make  divers  plants 
differing  from  the  vulgar,  and  to  make  one  tree  or  plant 
turn  into  another. 

"  We  have  also  parks  and  enclosures  of  all  sorts  of  beasts 
and  birds,  which  we  use  not  only  for  view  or  rarenesse,  but 
likewise  for  dissections  and  tryalls,  that  thereby  we  may  take 
light  what  may  be  wrought  upon  the  body  of  man.  Herein 
we  finde  many  strange  effects  as  the  continuing  life  in  them 
though  divers  parts,  which  you  account  vital),  be  perished 
and  taken  forth — resuscitation  of  some  that  seem  dead  in 
appearance — and  the  like.  We  try  also  all  poysons  and  other 
medecines  upon  them.  By  art,  likewise,  we  make  them 
greater  or  smaller  than  their  kinde  is.  We  make  them 
more  fruitfull,  and,  contrary-wise,  more  barren  than  their 
kinde  is.  We  make  them  differ  in  colour,  shape,  activity. 
We  have  commixtures  and  copulations  of  divers  kindes, 
which  have  produced  many  new  kinds,  and  them  not 
barren  as  the  generall  opinion  is.  We  make  a  number  of 
kindes  of  serpents,  worms,  flies,  fishes,  of  putrefaction, 
whereof  some  are  advanced  (in  effects)  to  perfect  creatures, 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    379 

and  have  sexes  and  propagate.  Neither  do  we  this  by 
chance,  but  know  beforehand  of  what  matter  and  commix- 
ture what  kinde  of  creatures  will  arise.  We  have  also 
particular  pooles  where  we  make  trialls  upon  fishes. 

"  We  have  also  places  for  breed  and  generation  of  those 
kinds  of  worms  and  flies  which  are  of  speciall  use,  such  as 
are  with  you  your  silkworms  and  bees. 

"  I  will  not  hold  you  long  with  recounting  of  our  brew- 
houses,  bake-houses,  and  kitchins,  where  are  made  divers 
drinks,  breads,  and  meats,  rare  and  of  speciall  effects. 
Wines  we  have  of  grapes,  and  drinks  of  other  juyces  of 
fruits,  graines,  and  roots;  also  of  mixtures  with  honey,  sugar, 
manna,  and  fruits  dryed  and  decocted ;  also  of  the  teares 
or  wounding  of  trees,  and  of  the  pulp  of  canes.  These 
drinks  are  of  several  ages,  some  to  the  age  or  last  of  forty 
yeares.  We  have  drinkes  also  brewed  with  severall  herbs, 
roots,  and  spices,  yea,  with  severall  fleshes  and  white  meats; 
some  of  the  drinks  are  in  effect  meat  and  drink  both,  so 
that  divers,  especially  in  age,  do  desire  to  live  with  them, 
with  little  or  no  meat  or  bread.  Above  all  we  strive  to 
have  drinks  of  extream  thin  parts,  to  insinuate  into  the 
body  without  biting  sharpnesse,  or  fretting,  insomuch  as 
some  of  them  put  upon  the  back  of  your  hand,  will,  with  a 
little  stay,  passe  through  to  the  palm  and  yet  taste  milde  to 
the  mouth.  We  have  waters  which  we  ripen  in  that  fashion 
as  they  become  nourishing.  Breads  we  have  of  severall 
grains,  roots,  and  kernels,  some  of  flesh  and  fish  dried  with 
divers  kindes  of  leavenings  and  seasonings  so  that  some  doe 
extreamly  more  appetite,  some  nourish  so  as  divers  doe 
live  of  them  very  long  without  any  other  meat.  For 
meats,  we  have  some  of  them  so  beaten,  made  tender,  and 
mortified,  yet  without  corrupting,  as  a  weake  heat  of  the 


380  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCTANS. 

stomach  will  turn  them  into  good  chylus.  We  have  some 
meats  also,  bread  and  drinks,  which  taken  by  men,  enable 
them  to  fast  long  after,  and  some  others  that  make  the  very 
flesh  of  men's  bodies  sensibly  more  hard  and  tough,  and 
their  strength  far  more  great  than  otherwise  it  would  be. 

"  We  have  dispensatories,  or  shops  of  medicines,  wherein 
you  may  easily  thinke  if  we  have  such  variety  of  plants 
and  living  creatures,  more  than  you  have  in  Europe,  the 
simples,  drugs,  and  ingredients  of  medecines,  must  like- 
wise be  in  so  much  the  greater  variety.  We  have  them  of 
divers  ages  and  long  fermentations ;  for  these  preparations 
we  have  not  only  all  manner  of  exquisite  distillations  and 
separations,  especially  of  gentle  heats  and  percolations 
through  divers  strainers,  but  also  exact  formes  of  composi- 
tions, whereby  they  incorporate  almost  as  they  were 
naturall  simples. 

"  We  have  also  divers  mechanicall  arts  which  you  have 
not,  and  stuffs  made  by  them,  as  papers,  liniien,  silks, 
tissues,  dainty  works  of  feathers  of  wonderfull  lusture,  ex- 
cellent dies,  and  many  others — shops  likewise,  as  well  for 
such  as  are  not  brought  into  vulgar  use  amongst  us  as  for 
those  that  are,  for  you  must  know  that  of  the  things  fore- 
cited  many  of  them  are  grown  into  use  throughout  the 
kingdome,  but  yet  if  they  did  flow  from  our  invention,  we 
have  of  them  also  for  paterns  and  principals. 

"  We  have  furnaces  of  great  diversities,  fierce  and  quick, 
strong  and  constant,  soft  and  milde,  blowne  quite  dry, 
moist,  and  the  like.  Above  all  we  have  heats  in  imitation 
of  the  sun's  and  heavenly  bodies'  heats,  that  pass  divers  in- 
equalities, and,  as  it  were  arts,  progresses  and  returns, 
whereby  we  produce  admirable  effects.  Besides  we  have 
heats  of  dungs,  and  of  bellies  and  maws  of  living  creatures, 


ROS1CRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.    381 

of  their  bloods  and  bodies,  of  hayes  and  herbs  layed  up 
moist,  of  brine  unquenched,  and  such  like — instruments 
also  which  generate  heat  only  by  motion,  places  for  strong 
insolations,  places  under  the  earth  which  by  nature  or  art 
yeeld  heat. 

"  We  have  also  perspective-houses  where  we  make  demon- 
strations of  all  lights  and  radiations,  and  of  all  colours ;  out 
of  things  uncoloured  and  transparent  we  can  represent  unto 
you  severall  colours,  not  in  rain-bows,  as  it  is  in  gemms  and 
prismes,  but  of  themselves  single.  We  respect  also  all  mul- 
tiplications of  light,  which  we  carry  to  great  distances,  and 
make  so  sharpe  as  to  discern  small  points  and  lines,  all 
colourations  of  light,  all  delusions  and  deceits  of  the  sight 
in  figures,  magnitudes,  motions,  colours,  all  demonstrations 
of  shadows.  We  finde  also  divers  means,  yet  unknown  to 
you,  of  producing  light  originally  from  divers  bodies.  We 
procure  means  of  seeing  bodies  afar  off,  as  in  the  heaven,  and 
represent  things  near  as  farr  off,  and  things  afarr  off  as 
near.  We  have  also  helps  for  the  sight  farr  above  spec- 
tacles and  glasses,  and  means  to  see  minute  bodies  dis- 
tinctly, as  the  shapes  and  colour  of  small  flies  and  wormes, 
observation  in  urine  and  bloods.  We  make  artificial  Rain- 
bowes,  halos,  and  circles  about  light.  We  represent  also 
all  manner  of  reflections,  refractions,  and  multiplications  of 
visuall  beams  of  objects. 

"  We  have  also  pretious  stones  of  all  kinds,  many  of  great 
beauty,  and  to  you  unknown,  crystals  likewise  and  glasses 
of  divers  kinds,  amongst  them  some  of  mettals  vitrificated, 
and  other  materials  besides  those  of  which  you  make  glasse ; 
also  a  number  of  fossiles  and  imperfect  minerals  which  you 
have  not,  likewise  loadstones  of  prodigious  vertue,  and  other 
rare  stones,  both  naturall  and  artificial!.  We  have  sound- 


382  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIAhS. 

houses,  where  we  practise  and  demonstrate  all  sounds  and 
their  generation.  We  have  harmonies  (read  the  '  Harmony 
of  the  World ')  which  you  have  not,  of  quarter  and  lesser 
kindes  of  sounds — divers  instruments  of  musick  to  you  un- 
known, some  sweeter  than  any  you  have,  together  with 
bells  and  rings  that  are  dainty  and  sweet.  (See  my  book 
of  'Geomancy  and  Telesmes.')  We  represent  small  sounds 
as  great  and  deep,  great  sounds  as  extenuate  and  sharpe ; 
we  make  divers  tremblings  and  warblings  of  sounds  which 
in  their  originall  are  entire.  We  represent  and  imitate  all 
articulate  sounds  and  letters  (read  my  l  Cabbala,  or  Art,  by 
which  Moses  shewed  so  many  signs  in  ^Egypt '),  and  the 
voices  and  notes  of  many  beasts  and  birds.  We  have  cer- 
tain helps  which,  set  to  the  ear,  do  further  the  hearing 
greatly.  We  have  strange  and  artificiall  ecchos,  reflecting 
the  voice  many  times,  and,  as  it  were,  to  sing  it,  some  that 
give  back  the  voice  louder  than  it  came,  some  shriller,  some 
deeper,  some  rendring  the  voice  differing  in  the  letters,  or 
articular  sound,  from  that  they  receive.  We  have  also 
means  to  convey  sounds  in  trunks  and  pipes,  in  strange 
lines  and  distances. 

"We  have  also  perfume  houses,  wherewith  we  joyne  all 
practices  of  taste.  We  multiply  smells  which  may  seem 
strange.  We  imitate  smells,  making  them  breathe  out  other 
mixtures  than  those  that  give  them.  We  make  divers  imi- 
tations of  taste,  so  that  they  will  deceive  any  man's  tastes ; 
and  in  this  Temple  of  the  Eosie  Crosse  we  contain  also 
a  confiture-house,  where  we  make  all  sweet-meats,  dry  and 
moist,  and  pleasant  wines,  milks,  broaths,  and  sallets,  in 
farr  greater  variety  than  you  have. 

"  We  have  also  engine-houses,  where  are  prepared  engines 
and  instruments  for  all  sorts  of  motions.  There  we  imitate 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS:  JOHN  HEYDON.     383 

and  practise  swifter  motions  than  any  you  have,  and  make 
and  multiply  them  more  easily  and  with  small  force,  by 
wheels  and  other  means.  We  make  them  stronger  than 
yours  are,  exceeding  your  cannons  and  basilisks.  We  re- 
present also  ordinance,  instruments  of  warr,  and  engines  of 
all  kinds,  likewise  new  mixtures  and  compositions  of  gun- 
pouder,  wild-fire  burning  in  water  and  unquenchable,  also 
fire-works  of  all  variety,  both  for  pleasure  and  use.  We 
imitate  also  nights  of  birds  ;  we  have  some  degrees  of  flying 
in  the  aire  (read  the  '  Familiar  Spirit ').  We  have  ships 
and  boats  for  going  under  water,  also  swimming  girdles  and 
supporters.  We  have  curious  clocks  and  other  like  motions 
of  returne,  and  some  perpetuall  motions.  We  imitate  also 
motions  of  living  creatures,  by  images  of  men,  beasts,  birds, 
fishes,  and  serpents.  We  have  also  a  great  number  of  other 
various  motions,  strange  for  equality,  finenesse,  and  subtility. 

"  We  have  also  a  mathematicall  pallace,  where  are  repre- 
sented all  instruments,  as  well  of  geometry,  as  astronomy, 
geomancy,  and  telesmes. 

"  We  have  also  houses  of  deceits  of  the  senses,  where  we 
represent  all  manner  of  feats  of  jugling,  false  apparitions, 
impostures,  illusions,  and  their  fallacies ;  and  surely  you  will 
easily  believe  that  we,  that  have  so  many  things  truly  naturall 
which  induce  admiration,  could  in  a  world  of  particulars 
deceive  the  senses,  if  we  would  disguise  those  things  and 
labour  to  make  them  seem  more  miraculous.  But  we  do 
hate  all  impostures  and  lyes,  insomuch  as  we  have  severaly 
forbidden  it  to  all  our  brethren,  under  pain  of  ignominy 
and  fines,  that  they  do  not  show  any  naturall  worke  or 
thing  adorned  or  swelling,  but  only  pure  as  it  is,  and 
without  all  affectation  or  strangenesse. 

"  These  are,  my  son,  the  riches  of  the  Rosie  Crucians 


384  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

(read  our  '  Temple  of  Wisdome ').  For  the  several  em- 
ployments and  offices  of  our  fellowes,  we  have  twelve  that 
sayle  into  forrain  countries  under  the  names  of  other 
nations,  for  our  own  we  conceal ;  but  our  seal  is  R.  C.,  and 
we  meet  upon  a  day  altogether.  These  bring  us  the  books, 
abstracts,  and  patterns  of  experiments  of  all  other  parts. 
These  we  call  merchants  of  light. 

"  We  have  three  that  collect  the  experiments  in  all  books. 
These  we  call  depredatours.  We  have  three  that  collect 
the  experiments  of  all  mechanicall  arts,  liberall  sciences,  and 
practices  which  are  not  brought  into  arts.  These  we  call 
mystery  men.  We  have  three  that  try  new  experiments, 
such  as  themselves  think  good.  These  we  call  pioners  or 
miners.  We  have  three  that  draw  the  experiments  of  the 
former  foure  [divisions]  into  titles  and  tables,  to  give  the 
better  light  for  the  drawing  of  observations  and  of  axioms 
out  of  them.  These  we  call  compilers.  We  have  three 
that  band  themselves,  looking  into  the  experiments  of  their 
fellowes,  and  cast  about  how  to  draw  of  them  things  useful 
for  man's  life  and  knowledge,  as  well  for  works  as  for 
strange  demonstration  of  causes,  means  of  natural  divina- 
tions, and  the  easie  and  cleare  discovery  of  the  vertues  and 
parts  of  bodies.  These  we  call  dowry  men  or  benefactors. 
Then,  after  diverse  meetings  and  consults  of  our  whole 
number,  to  consider  of  the  former  labours  and  collections, 
we  have  three  that  take  care  out  of  them  to  direct  new  ex- 
periments of  a  higher  light,  more  penetrating  into  Nature 
than  the  former.  These  we  call  lamps.  W^e  have  three 
others  that  doe  execute  the  experiments  so  directed  and 
report  them.  These  we  call  inoculators.  Lastly,  we  have 
three  that  raise  the  former  discoveries  by  experiments  into 
greater  observations,  axiomes,  and  aphorismes.  These  we 
call  interpreters  of  Nature. 


ROSICRUCIAN  APOLOGISTS :  JOHN  HEY  DON.    385 

'  We  have  also  novices  and  apprentices,  that  the  succes- 
sion of  the  former  employed  men  of  our  fraternity  of  the 
Rosie  Crosse  do  not  faile ;  also  great  numbers  of  servants 
and  attendants,  men  and  women.  We  have  consultations 
which  of  the  inventions  and  experiences  shall  be  published 
and  which  not.  We  take  all  an  oath  of  secrecy  for  the  con- 
cealing ©f  those  which  we  think  fit  to  keep  secret,  though 
some  of  those  we  doe  reveale  sometimes  to  the  State.  (Read 
our  l  Temple  of  Wisdom.') 

"  For  our  ordinances  and  rites  we  have  two  very  long  and 
faire  galleries  in  the  Temple  of  the  Rosie  Crosse.  In  one 
of  these  we  place  patterns  and  samples  of  all  manner  of  the 
more  rare  and  excellent  inventions ;  in  the  other  we  place 
the  statues  of  all  principal  inventours.  There  we  have  the 
statues  of  the  discoverer  of  the  West  Indies,  also  the  invention 
of  ships,  and  the  monk  that  was  the  inventour  of  ordinance 
and  gunpowder;  the  inventours  of  musick,  letters,  printing; 
observations  of  astronomy,  astromancy,  and  geomancy ;  the 
invention  of  works  in  mettal,  of  glasse,  of  silke  of  the  worme; 
of  wine,  corn,  and  bread ;  the  inventour  of  sugars,  and  all 
these  by  more  certain  tradition  than  you  have.  Then  have 
we  divers  inventours  of  our  own.  Upon  every  invention 
of  value  we  erect  a  statue  to  the  inventour,  and  give  him  a 
liberal  and  honourable  reward.  These  statues  are  some  of 
brasse,  some  of  marble  and  touchstone,  some  of  cedar  and 
other  speciall  woods  gilt  and  adorned,  some  of  iron,  some 
of  silver,  some  of  gold,  telesmatically  made. 

"We  have  certain  hymnes  and  services,  which  we  say  daily, 
of  laud  and  thanks  to  God  for  His  marvellous  works ;  also 
formes  of  prayers  imploring  His  ayde  and  blessing  for  the 
illumination  of  our  labours,  and  the  turning  of  them  into 
good  and  holy  uses. 

2s 


386  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

"  Lastly,  we  have  circuits  or  visits  of  divers  principal 
cities  of  the  kingdome,  where  we  doe  publish  such  news, 
profitable  inventions,  as  we  think  good,  and  we  doe  also 
declare  natural  divinations  of  diseases,  plagues,  swarms  of 
hurtfull  creatures,  scarcity,  tempests,  earthquakes,  great 
inundations,  comets,  temperature  of  the  year,  and  divers 
other  things,  and  we  give  counsel  thereupon  for  the  preven- 
tion and  remedy  of  them." 

When  he  had  said  this,  he  desired  me  to  give  him  an 
account  of  my  life,  that  he  might  report  it  to  the  Brethren 
of  the  Eosie  Crosse,  after  which  he  stood  up ;  I  kneeled 
down,  and  he  laid  his  right  hand  upon  my  head,  saying,  "  God 
blesse  thee,  my  son,  and  God  blesse  these  relations  which 
we  have  made  !  I  give  thee  leave  to  publish  them  for  the 
good  of  other  nations,  for  we  are  here  in  God's  bosome,  a 
land  unknown." 

And  so  he  left  me,  having  assigned  a  value  of  about  two 
thousand  pounds  in  gold  for  a  bounty  to  me  and  my  fellows, 
for  they  give  great  largesses  where  they  come  upon  all 
occasions. 


CHAPTER  XIV. 

ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  FRANCE. 

WHEN  the  documents  of  the  Fraternity  were  first  pub- 
lished, Professor  Buhle  tells  us  that  France  "  had  greatly 
the  start  of  Germany  and  England "  in  general  illumina- 
tion, that  she  was  consequently  protected  against  the 
delusion  of  her  neighbours,  and  that  Rosicrucianism  "  never 
had  even  a  momentary  success "  therein.  On  the  other 
hand,  Gabriel  Naude  published  in  1623  his  "Instruction 
a  la  France  sur  la  verite  de  PHistoire  des  Freres  de  la  Roze- 
Croix,"  which  opens  by  asserting,  without  apology  of  any 
kind,  that  the  French  by  their  disposition  are  quick  to 
embrace  and  to  follow  every  species  of  novel  and  ridicu- 
lous opinion.  They  are  accused  of  excessive  credulity,  and 
are  the  laughing-stock  of  more  sober  nations.  They  have 
credited  every  absurdity  from  Postel  the  resuscitated  and 
mere  Jeanne  to  the  rejuvenating  Fountain  of  Borico  and  the 
immortality  and  return  of  Paracelsus.  The  history  of  the 
Brethren  R.  C.  is  declared  to  be  the  most  outrageous  of  all ; 
their  books  are  useless  and  completely  incomprehensible, 
even  when  stripped  of  their  enigmas.  None  but  impostors 
have  claimed  to  be  initiated  members,  and  the  false  reports 
spread  abroad  by  the  society  are  prejudicial  to  all  king- 
doms, and  all  forms  of  government. 

This  book,  though  dull  and  verbose,  was  undoubtedly 
instrumental  in  preventing  the  spread  of  the  new  doctrines. 


388  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

De  Quincey  affirms  that  France  was  never  wanting  in  the 
"  ignobler  elements  of  credulity,"  but  that  she  has  always 
lacked  its  nobler  or  imaginative  part.  "  On  this  account 
the  French  have  always  been  an  irreligious  people.  And 
the  scheme  of  Father  Eosycross  was  too  much  connected 
with  religious  feelings,  and  moved  too  much  under  a  reli- 
gious impulse,  to  recommend  itself  to  the  French." 

The  first  appearance  of  Eosicrucianism  in  France1  was  in 
the  year  1623,  when  the  following  mysterious  placard  was 
affixed  to  the  walls  of  Paris  : — "  We,  the  deputies  of  our 
chief  college  of  the  Brethren  of  the  Eosy  Cross,  now  so- 
journing, visible  and  invisible,  in  this  town,  do  teach,  in 
the  name  of  the  Most  High,  towards  whom  the  hearts  of 
the  Sages  turn,  every  science,  without  either  books,  symbols, 
or  signs,  and  we  speak  the  language  of  the  country  in 
which  we  tarry,  that  we  may  extricate  our  fellow-men  from 
error  and  destruction." 

There  are  at  least  four  different  versions  of  this  mani- 
festo. Gabriel  Naude  reads — "By  the  grace  of  the  Most 
High  ...  we  teach,  without  the  assistance  of  books  or 
signs,  how  to  speak  the  language  of  every  country  where 
we  elect  to  stay,  in  order  that  we  may  rescue  our  fellow- 
men  from  the  error  of  death."  A  French  brochure,  pub- 
lished in  1623,  and  entitled  "Effroyables  pactions  faites 
entre  le  diable  et  les  pretendus  invisibles,  avec  leur  dam- 
nables  instructions,  perte  deplorable  de  leurs  escoliers,  et 
leur  miserable  fin,"  presents  still  more  important  variations. 
"  We,  the  deputies  of  the  College  of  the  Eosie-Cross, 
advise  all  those  who  seek  entrance  into  our  society  and 
congregation,  to  become  initiated  into  the  knowledge  of 
the  Most  High,  in  whose  cause  we  are  at  this  day  assembled, 
1  See  Additional  Notes,  No.  VI. 


ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  FRANCE.  389 

and  we  will  transform  them  from  visible  beings  into  in- 
visible, and  from  invisible  into  visible,  and  they  shall  be 
transported  into  every  foreign  country  to  which  their 
desire  may  lead  them.  But,  to  arrive  at  the  knowledge  of 
these  marvels,  we  warn  the  reader  that  we  can  divine  his 
thoughts,  that  if  mere  curiosity  should  prompt  the  wish  to 
see  us,  he  will  never  communicate  with  us,  but  if  an  earnest 
determination  to  inscribe  himself  on  the  register  of  our 
confraternity  should  actuate  him,  we  will  make  manifest  to 
such  an  one  the  truth  of  our  promises,  so  that  we  by  no 
means  expose  the  place  of  our  abode,  since  simple  thought, 
joined  to  the  determined  will  of  the  reader,  will  be  suffi- 
cient to  make  us  known  to  him,  and  reveal  him  to  us." 

To  this  proclamation,  in  his  "  Histoire  de  la  Magie," 
Eliphas  Levi  adds  :  "  Public  opinion  concerned  itself  about 
this  mysterions  manifestation,  and  if  any  demanded  openly 
who  were  the  Rose-Cross  brethren,  an  unknown  personage 
frequently  took  the  inquirer  apart,  and  said  to  him 
gravely  : — 

"  Predestined  to  the  reformation  which  must  soon  be 
accomplished  in  the  whole  universe,  the  Rosicrucians  are 
the  depositaries  of  supernatural  wisdom,  and  undisturbed 
possessors  of  all  Nature's  gifts,  they  can  dispense  them  at 
pleasure. 

"  In  whatsoever  place  they  may  be,  they  know  all  things 
which  are  going  on  in  the  rest  of  the  world  better  than  if 
they  were  present ;  they  are  not  subject  to  hunger  or  thirst, 
and  have  neither  age  nor  disease  to  fear. 

"  They  can  command  the  most  powerful  spirits  and  genii. 

"  God  has  covered  them  with  a  cloud  to  defend  them 
from  their  enemies,  and  they  cannot  be  beheld  except  by 
their  own  consent,  had  any  one  eyes  more  piercing  than  are 
the  eagle's. 


390  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

"  Their  general  assemblies  are  held  in  the  pyramids  of 
Egypt  j  but,  like  the  rock  whence  the  spring  of  Moses  issued, 
these  pyramids  proceed  with  them  into  the  desert,  and 
follow  them  into  the  '  Land  of  Promise.' ' 

No  authority  is  given  for  this  statement,  and  it  is  in  all 
probability  one  of  those  romantic  falsifications  with  which 
Eliphas  Levi  took  pleasure  in  mystifying  his  readers,  and 
which  make  him  absolutely  worthless  as  a  sober  historian. 

This  manifesto,  whatever  its  original  form,  attracted 
general  and  chiefly  hostile  attention,  and  it  was  accounted 
for  in  various  ways  by  the  pamphleteers  of  the  period. 
Naud6  considers  it  a  hoax.  "If  we  seek  for  the  precise 
origin  of  this  squall  of  wind  which  now  whistles  over  our 
country,  we  shall  find  that  the  report  of  this  fraternity 
having  been  spread  abroad  some  short  time  since  in  Ger- 
many, certain  professors,  doctors,  and  students  of  this  city 
were  moved  by  curiosity  to  investigate  the  matter  by  means 
of  the  new  books  which  were  made  known  to  them  by  pub- 
lishers after  their  return  from  the  Frankfort  fair ;  but  dis- 
covering nothing  except  chimeras  and  rodomontade  therein, 
they  preferred,  while  awaiting  the  farce,  to  divert  them- 
selves by  this  comedy — 

Quam  protinus  urbi 
Pandere,  res  alta  sylva  et  caligine  mersas, 

and  compromise  their  reputation  by  becoming  its  first  de- 
nouncers, judging  that  there  were  fools  enough  in  Paris  to 
prevent  this  folly  from  stagnating.  And,  in  fact,  about 
three  months  ago  one  of  these  individuals,  knowing  that 
the  King  being  at  Fontainebleau,  the  realm  tranquil,  and 
Mansfield  too  remote  for  daily  news,  there  was  a  scar- 
city of  topics  on  'Change,  as  well  as  in  all  circles,  con- 
cluded to  supply  you  with  gossip  by  placarding  the  public 


ROSICRUCIAN1SM  IN  FRANCE.  391 

places  with  this  notice,  containing  six  lines  of  manu- 
script." 1 

On  the  other  hand,  the  anonymous  author  of  an  "  Examin- 
ation of  the  unknown  and  novel  Caballa  of  the  Brethren 
of  the  Eose-Cross  "  accepts  the  manifesto  as  authentic,  and 
denounces  it  with  terrible  earnestness.  "  Flagrant  blas- 
phemies are  to  be  found  in  these  few  lines.  In  the  first 
place,  these  sacrilegious  wretches  pretend  to  have  enrolled 
themselves  under  the  banner  of  that  cross,  which  their 
master,  the  prince  of  darkness,  abhors  beyond  anything. 
In  the  second  place,  they  assert  that  they  can  become  in- 
visible at  pleasure,  a  quality  incommunicable  to  any  natural 
body  which  consists  of  matter  and  form,  and  one  which  can 
never  be  acquired  by  any  legitimate  science.  In  the  third 
place,  they  boast  that  they  can  teach  every  branch  of  learn- 
ing in  a  moment,  without  books  or  signs,  which  evidently 
transcends  the  possibilities  of  the  human  intellect,  for, 
though  the  acquisition  of  the  sciences  may  be  certainly 
facilitated  by  means  of  abridgements  and  epitomes,  it  can 
only  be  accomplished  by  degrees  and  with  time.  In  the 
fourth  place,  they  claim  to  be  acquainted  with  all  dialects 
and  with  every  variety  of  language — a  prerogative  never 
conferred  except  on  the  apostles,  whose  lives  were  very 
different  from  theirs.  It  remains  to  be  concluded  that 
such  persons  are  not  commissioned  by  God  to  save  us  from 
error  and  destruction,  but  are  raised  up  by  Satan  to  drag 
into  the  abyss  those  souls  which  are  carried  away  by  an 
overweening  curiosity." 

The  most  copious  information  with  regard  to  the  strange 
manifesto  is  to  be  found  in  the  "  Frightful  Compacts 
between  the  Devil  and  the  so-called  Invisibles,"  a  pamphlet 
1  "  Instruction  &  la  France,"  c.  iii.,  p.  26. 


392  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

full  of  malicious  libels,  which,  however,  are  so  curious  that 
some  of  them  are  worth  reproducing  as  briefly  as  possible. 
According  to  this  account,  the  manuscript  placard  was 
posted  in  several  parts  of  Paris,  and  awakened  the  curiosity 
of  the  learned  and  illiterate  alike.  Every  one  was  astounded 
at  the  asserted  invisibility  of  the  Brethren,  and  at  their 
gift  of  tongues.  According  to  some,  they  must  be  the 
messengers  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  others  said  that  they  were 
persons  of  eminent  sanctity,  the  rest,  that  the  whole 
business  was  one  of  illusions  and  of  magic.  By  many  the 
power  of  discerning  the  inmost  thoughts  was  admired 
beyond  the  other  privileges,  but  that  such  a  faculty  was 
inherent  in  Deity  only,  and  they  were  incredulous  in  this 
respect.  Then  it  was  urged  that  the  devil  had  knowledge 
of  things  both  past  and  present,  but  that  if  he  had  knowledge 
of  things  present,  thoughts  must  be  included  in  this  class,  and 
that,  therefore,  the  devil  might  not  only  know  them,  but 
might  impart  the  same  knowledge  to  his  emissaries. 

A  certain  lawyer  of  Paris,  says  this  mendacious  chronicle, 
conceived  a  violent  desire  to  be  enrolled  in  the  new  order, 
on  account  of  the  obvious  advantages  of  occasional  invisi- 
bility, and  he  had  no  sooner  formed  the  project  than  one 
of  the  Invisibles  appeared  before  him,  and  informing  him 
that  he  could  read  his  thoughts,  directed  his  petrified 
listener  to  meet  him  that  evening  at  eight  o'clock  opposite 
a  certain  market,  when  he  should  attain  his  desire.  This 
said,  the  mysterious  being  disappeared  as  miraculously  as 
he  had  come  thither ;  and  the  lawyer,  convinced  by  his  own 
senses  that  there  was  some  truth  in  the  claims  of  the  placard, 
did  not  fail  to  repair  to  the  appointed  place,  where  the  same 
personage  met  him,  bandaged  his  eyes,  whirled  him  through 
a  maze  of  alleys,  and  brought  him  to  the  abode  of  the 


ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  FRANCE.  393 

Invisibles.  There  his  eyes  were  uncovered,  and  he  found 
himself  in  the  presence  of  five  senatorial  persons,  who 
gravely  informed  him  that  they  too  were  well  acquainted 
with  his  aspirations,  but  before  they  could  gratify  them  he 
must  be  prepared  to  take  the  oath  of  fidelity,  and  to  write 
four  words  upon  a  paper,  namely,  "  I  renounce  my  self."  The 
appropriate  preliminary  to  a  new  faith  was  to  blindfold  one's 
eyes  to  the  teachings  of  all  the  old  beliefs.  The  neophyte 
complied,  after  which  one  of  them  breathed  in  his  ear,  and 
this  breathing  he  believed  to  be  the  wind  of  the  Holy  Spirit 
instead  of  the  devil's  respiration.  They  caused  him  to 
behold  innumerable  illusions  by  the  operation  of  the  fiends, 
instructed  him  in  the  magical  utterances  by  which  he  could 
become  invisible  at  pleasure,  in  the  imprecations  which  he 
must  pronounce  against  the  Roman  Church,  and  in  the 
homage  which  he  must  pay  both  morning  and  evening  to 
their  master  Satan,  in  recognition  of  the  marvels  he  had 
lavished  for  the  benefit  of  the  men  of  that  time.  This 
finished,  they  caused  the  lawyer  to  strip,  the  magic  ointment 
was  rubbed  over  his  body,  and  having  been  enjoined  to 
bathe  in  the  river  at  daybreak,  he  sat  down  with  them  to  a 
sumptuous  repast  at  his  own  expense,  after  which  his  eyes 
were  again  bandaged,  and  he  was  led  back  to  the  meeting- 
place  of  the  previous  evening.  Though  partially  drunk,  he 
determined  to  fulfil  his  duty  and  plunge  at  once  into  the 
river,  wherein  he  attempted  to  swim,  in  order  to  cleanse 
himself  more  thoroughly,  but  the  unfortunate  man  was 
drowned,  and  thus,  says  the  anonymous  historian,  he  was 
truly  changed  from  a  visible  into  an  invisible  being,  yet  not, 
also,  from  one  invisible  into  one  visible,  for  to  this  day 
hath  his  body  been  discovered  by  none,  though  sought  for 
with  diligent  anxiety.  "Such  are  the  first  fruits  of  the 
study  of  the  invisible  doctors  at  the  end  of  last  July." 


394  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Other  stories  equally  credible  are  told  by  the  same  writer 
to  illustrate  the  tragical  consequences  of  a  voluntary  con- 
nection with  the  infamous  Invisibles.  A  soldier  was  com- 
manded by  them,  on  his  initiation,  to  enrol  himself  among 
a  band  of  assassins,  when  he  was  speedily  assassinated.  A 
magistrate  of  Picardy,  in  answer  to  his  unexpressed  wish, 
was  miraculously  visited  by  one  of  the  mystic  six  in  his 
own  closet,  was  initiated  into  the  Order,  and  in  two  days 
committed  suicide.  An  Anglo-Frenchman  who  had  entered 
upon  the  same  unhappy  course,  wishing  to  revisit  England, 
was  instantaneously  translated  to  Boulogne  :  and  requesting 
the  demon  who  had  brought  him  to  bear  him  across  the 
Straits  to  London,  he  was  seized  with  fury  and  cast  into 
the  sea  between  Calais  and  Dover  with  a  frightful  noise. 
This  occurred  in  the  presence  of  two  hundred  Dutch  ships 
on  a  voyage  from  Amsterdam  to  India. 

According  to  this  singular  and  scurrilous  pamphlet,  the 
Eosicrucians  or  Invisibles,  who  are  identical  in  the  mind  of 
the  writer,  but  whom  he  distinguishes  from  the  Spanish 
illuminati,  numbered  in  all  thirty-six,  and  they  were  divided 
into  six  bands.  Their  general  assembly  was  held  at  Lyons 
on  June  23,  1623,  at  10  P.M.,  which  was  two  hours  before 
the  Grand  Sabbath  of  the  Witches.  There,  by  the  power 
of  an  anthropophagous  necromancer,  Astaroth,  one  of  the 
princes  of  the  infernal  hordes,  appeared  in  light  and  splen- 
dour, and  was  represented  by  the  magician  as  a  messenger 
of  the  Most  High.  All  prostrated  themselves  before  the 
demon,  who  asked  what  they  desired,  and  was  informed  by 
their  spokesman  that  they  were  a  little  flock  which  he  had 
assembled,  in  the  name  of  the  master  of  Astaroth,  to  serve 
him  henceforth  on  such  conditions  as  were  laid  down  in  the 
paper  which  he  now  offered  to  the  emissary  of  the  king.  It 


ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  FRANCE.  395 

contained  the  "  Articles  of  Agreement  between  the  Necro- 
mancer Eespuch  and  the  Deputies  for  the  establishment  of 
the  College  of  the  Eosicrucians."  The  subscribers  certified 
before  the  most  high  to  have  entered  into  the  following 
compacts,  namely,  they  promised  to  receive  with  submis- 
sion the  orders  of  the  supreme  sacrificer,  Eespuch,  renounc- 
ing baptism,  chrism,  and  unction  received  in  the  name  of 
Christ ;  detesting  and  abhorring  all  forms  of  prayer,  confes- 
sion, sacraments,  and  all  faith  in  the  resurrection  of  the 
body;  promising  to  proclaim  the  teachings  imparted  to 
them  by  Eespuch  through  all  quarters  of  the  globe  ;  and 
pledging  their  honour  and  their  life,  without  any  hope  of 
pardon,  grace,  or  absolution,  to  perform  all  this ;  in  proof 
of  which  they  had  opened  each  of  them  a  vein  in  the  left 
arm,  and  had  signed  this  parchment  each  with  his  own 
blood.  The  magician,  on  his  part,  promised  to  the  depu- 
ties, severally  and  collectively,  that  he  would  transport  them 
at  any  moment  from  east  to  west,  or  from  north  to  south, 
and  cause  them  to  speak  naturally  every  language  in  the 
universe.  By  this  agreement  he  bound  himself  to  enable 
them  to  enter  and  leave  all  palaces,  houses,  chambers,  and 
cabinets,  through  closed  and  locked  doors,  to  endue  them 
with  the  most  persuasive  eloquence,  to  enable  them  to  cast 
horoscopes  and  to  read  the  most  secret  thoughts,  to  make 
them  admired  by  the  learned,  sought  after  by  the  curious, 
magnified  above  the  prophets  of  old,  and  to  give  each  of 
them,  on  his  signing  the  parchment,  a  golden  ring  enriched 
by  a  precious  sapphire,  under  which  there  should  be  a 
demon  who  would  act  as  their  guide.  Astaroth,  assuming 
the  likeness  of  a  radiant  youth,  caressed  and  embraced  his 
victims,  who  blindly  mistook  him  for  the  apparition  of  a 
powerful  deity,  and,  being  promised  his  continual  provi- 


396  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

dence,  they  solemnly  bound  themselves  never  to  derogate 
from  the  articles  to  which  they  had  subscribed,  whatever 
might  happen,  to  turn  a  deaf  ear  to  the  Gospel  of  Christ, 
and  to  publish  among  all  the  nations  to  whom  they  were 
transported  the  truth  of  the  mighty  dominion  whereof 
he  was  the  emissary,  in  order  that  by  their  preach- 
ing they  might  dissipate  the  errors  of  those  men  who 
believed  in  the  immortality  of  the  soul.  The  articles  were 
then  ratified,  confirmed,  and  approved  by  Astaroth  on  the 
part  of  his  master,  after  which  the  demon  vanished  to 
assist  at  the  Sabbath,  which  was  held,  from  eleven  at  night 
to  one  in  the  morning,  on  the  vigil  of  S.  John  the  Baptist, 
in  the  vicinity  of  the  labyrinth  among  the  Pyrenees.  The 
necromancer  was  left  alone  with  the  invisibles,  who  were  to 
receive  the  powers  promised  by  being  breathed  on  in  the 
following  manner  : — All  stripped  naked  and  prostrated 
themselves  with  their  faces  flat  upon  the  earth ;  the  magi- 
cian, with  a  pot  of  grease  and  unguents,  rubbed  each  of 
them,  after  the  ancient  fashion  of  Thessalian  sorcery,  on 
the  upper  part  of  the  neck,  the  arm  pits,  the  lower  portion 
of  the  spine,  the  parts  of  generation,  and  the  fundament ; 
then  he  breathed  in  the  right  ear  of  each  deputy,  saying : 
"Depart  and  rejoice  in  the  result  of  my  promises."  He 
gave  the  demoniacal  ring  to  all  of  them,  and  then  a  sudden 
blast  of  wind  transported  them,  at  the  command  of  the 
magician,  an  hundred  leagues,  to  the  great  assembly  of  the 
sorcerers.  Here,  as  new  comers,  they  received  from  Satan 
the  mark  of  magicians ;  six  of  them  were  sent  into  Spain, 
six  into  Italy,  six  into  France,  six  into  Germany,  four  to 
Sweden,  two  into  Switzerland,  two  into  Flanders,  two  into 
Lorraine,  and  the  remaining  two  into  Burgoyne.  Thus 
they  were  commissioned  only  to  go  into  Catholic  countries, 


ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  FRANCE.  397 

and  not  into  the  lands  of  the  heretic  and  the  infidel,  who 
without  the  pale  of  the  Church,  saith  the  zealous  chronicler, 
are  already  in  the  claws  of  hell.  The  six  who  were  de- 
spatched to  France  reached  Paris  on  July  14th,  each 
lodged  separately  to  avoid  suspicion,  and  met  daily  where 
the  first  wish  carried  them, — sometimes  on  Parnassus,  on 
the  columns  of  Montfaucon,  in  the  quarries  of  Montmatre, 
&c.  Recognising  the  difficulties  of  evangelising  Paris,  they 
spent  much  time  in  deliberation;  their  hotel  expenses 
increased,  and  the  devil  already  failed  in  his  promise  that 
their  purses  should  always  be  well  supplied.  They  sold 
their  horses  in  order  to  buy  furniture  and  hire  lodgings, 
where  they  would  have  more  liberty  to  go  in  quest  of 
pupils.  After  the  sale,  however,  they  changed  their  mind, 
and  took  two  furnished  rooms  in  the  Marais  du  Temple, 
which  is  actually  mentioned  in  the  "  Apologia  "  of  Robert 
Fludd,  as  the  abode  of  a  Rosicrucian,  and  it  was  at  this 
period  that  the  manuscript  placard  was  affixed  by  them  to 
the  walls  of  Paris. 

The  "  Examination  of  the  unknown  and  novel  Caballa 
of  the  Brethren  of  the  Rose-Cross"  agrees  with  the  "  Fright- 
ful Compacts,"  in  asserting  that  the  chief  of  this  "  execrable 
college "  is  Satan,  that  its  first  rule  is  the  denial  of  God, 
blasphemy  against  the  most  simple  and  undivided  Trinity, 
trampling  on  the  mysteries  of  the  redemption,  spitting  in  the 
face  of  the  mother  of  God  and  at  all  the  saints.  The  second 
is  the  abhorrence  of  the  name  Christian,  renunciation  of 
baptism,  the  intercession  of  the  Church,  and  the  sacra- 
ments. By  the  third  they  offer  sacrifice  to  the  devil,  make 
compacts  with  him,  commit  adultery  with  him,  offer  inno- 
cent children  to  him,  &c.  By  the  fourth  they  frequent  the 
Sabbaths,  cherish  toads,  make  poisonous  powders,  dance 


398  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

with  fiends,  raise  tempests,  ravage  fields,  destroy  orchards, 
assassinate  and  torture  their  neighbours  by  the  infliction  of 
innumerable  diseases. 

The  spirit  which  prompted  these  grotesque  calumnies, 
manufactured  from  the  foulest  gutters  of  black  magic,  is 
easily  discernible.  The  writers  were  Catholics  incensed  by 
the  Protestantism  of  the  Rosicrucian  manifestoes,  meeting 
violence  by  violence,  and  doctrines  of  Papal  extermination 
with  charges  of  blasphemy,  atheism,  and  devil-worship. 
Gabriel  Naude  is  the  most  reasonable  of  all  the  Franco- 
Rosicrucian  critics,  but  he  is  unendurably  stupid,  and 
splutters  in  a  seething  sea  of  classical  quotations. 

In  addition  to  the  privileges  and  powers  which  are  openly 
claimed  by  the  Rosicrucians,  Naude  enumerates  the  follow- 
ing, some  of  which  are  to  be  found  indirectly  in  their 
documents,  and  others  he  has  extracted  by  a  somewhat 
perverse  interpretation  : — 

"  They  affirm  that  the  contemplations  of  their  founder 
surpass  everything  which  has  been  ever  known,  discovered, 
or  understood,  since  the  creation  of  the  world,  through 
human  study,  divine  revelation,  or  the  ministration  of  angels. 

"  That  they  are  destined  to  accomplish  the  approaching 
restoration  of  all  things  to  an  improved  condition  before  the 
end  arrives. 

"That  they  possess  wisdom  and  piety  in  a  supreme 
degree,  are  undisturbed  owners  of  all  that  is  desirable 
among  the  bounties  of  Nature,  and  can  dispense  her  gifts 
at  will. 

"  That  in  whatsoever  place  they  may  be  they  know  all 
that  takes  place  elsewhere  better  than  if  they  were  present. 

"That  they  are  subject  neither  to  hunger,  thirst,  age, 
illness,  or  other  natural  inconvenience. 


ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  FRANCE.  399 

"  That  they  learn  by  revelation  of  those  persons  who  are 
worthy  of  admission  into  their  society. 

"  That  it  is  possible  for  them  always  to  live  as  if  they  had 
existed  from  the  beginning  of  the  world,  or  would  remain 
till  the  end  of  the  ages. 

"  That  they  possess  a  book  in  which  they  can  ascertain 
all  things  which  are  to  be  found  in  books  now  existing,  or 
will  be  found  in  the  books  of  the  future. 

"That  they  can  compel  the  most  mighty  spirits  and 
demons  into  their  service,  and  by  the  power  of  their  incan- 
tations can  draw  pearls  and  precious  stones  towards  them. 

"That  God  has  enveloped  them  in  a  cloud  to  conceal 
them  from  their  enemies,  unless,  at  least,  they  have  eyes 
more  penetrating  than  the  eagle's. 

"  That  the  first  eight  Brethren  of  the  Rose-Cross  had  the 
gift  of  healing  all  diseases  to  such  an  extent  that  they  were 
overwhelmed  by  the  concourse  of  sufferers,  and  that  one  of 
them,  who  was  an  adept  in  Kabbalistic  Mysteries,  witness 
his  book  called  H,  cured  the  young  Count  of  Norfolk  of 
the  leprosy  when  he  was  in  England. 

"That  God  has  determined  to  increase  the  number  of 
their  Fraternity. 

"That  they  have  discovered  a  new  language  to  give 
expression  to  the  nature  of  all  things. 

"  That  by  their  means  the  triple  crown  of  Peter  will  be 
ground  into  the  dust. 

"  That  they  confess  freely  and  publicly,  with  no  fear  of 
repression,  that  the  pope  is  Anti-Christ. 

"  That  they  denounce  the  blasphemies  of  East  and  West, 
meaning  Mahomet  and  the  Pope,  and  recognise  but  two 
sacraments,  with  the  ceremonies  of  the  early  Church, 
renewed  by  their  congregation. 


400  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

"That  they  acknowledge  the  fourth  monarchy  and  the 
Emperor  of  the  Komans  as  their  Lord,  and  as  the  head  of 
all  Christendom. 

"  That  they  will  furnish  him  with  more  gold  and  silver 
than  the  Spanish  King  derives  from  both  the  Indies,  the 
more  so  as  their  treasures  are  inexhaustible. 

"  That  their  college,  which  they  name  the  College  of  the 
Holy  Ghost,  can  suffer  no  injury ;  even  should  a  hundred 
thousand  persons  behold  and  remark  it. 

"  That  they  possess  several  mysterious  volumes  in  their 
library,  one  of  which,  that,  namely,  which  they  prize  next 
to  the  Bible,  is  that  which  the  revered  and  illuminated 
father  E.  C.  held  in  his  right  hand  after  death. 

"  Finally,  that  they  are  convinced  and  certain  that  the 
truth  of  their  maxims  will  abide  to  the  very  end  of  the 
world." 

No  voice  appears  to  have  been  raised  in  France  in  defence 
of  the  persecuted  Order.  "It  is  known  upon  the  contem- 
porary authority  of  the  Mercure  de  France"  says  a  writer  in 
"  Chambers'  Journal,"  "that  a  popular  panic  " — the  natural 
result  of  these  atrocious  calumnies — "  was  excited  by  the  fear 
of  this  mysterious  sect,  none  of  whose  members  had  ever  been 

seen The  most  absurd  stories  about  them  were  daily 

reported,  and  found  listeners.  An  innkeeper  asserted  that 
a  mysterious  stranger  entered  his  inn,  regaled  himself  on  his 
best,  and  suddenly  vanished  in  a  cloud  when  the  bill  was 
presented.  Another  had  been  served  as  scurvy  a  trick  by 
a  similar  stranger,  who  lived  upon  the  choicest  fare,  and 
drunk  the  best  wines  of  his  house  for  a  week,  and  paid  him 
with  a  handful  of  new  gold  coins,  which  turned  into  slates 
on  the  following  morning.  It  was  also  said  that  several 
persons  on  awakening  in  the  middle  of  the  night  found 


ROSICRUCIANISM  IN  FRANCE.  401 

individuals  in  their  bed  chambers,  who  suddenly  became 
invisible,  though  still  palpable,  when  the  alarm  was  raised. 
Such  was  the  consternation  in  Paris,  that  every  man  who 
could  not  give  a  satisfactory  account  of  himself  was  in 
danger  of  being  pelted  to  death  ;  and  quiet  citizens  slept 
with  loaded  muskets  at  their  bedsides,  to  take  vengeance 
upon  any  Rosicrucian  who  might  violate  the  sanctity  of 
their  chambers." 

In  two  years  the  excitement  died  away;  no  further 
manifestoes  were  attempted,  and  the  mysterious  Order  of 
the  Invisibles  of  the  Kose- Cross,  if  it  had  in  reality  ever 
visited  Paris,  migrated  to  more  tolerant  climes,  and  its 
very  existence  was  shortly  afterwards  forgotten  in  the 
interests  of  the  next  ephemeral  novelty. 


2  c 


CHAPTER  XV. 

CONNECTION   BETWEEN   THE  ROSICRUCIANS  AND 
FREEMASONS. 

PROFESSOR  BUHLE  affirms  as  the  "  main  thesis  "  of  his 
concluding  chapter  that  "  Freemasonry  is  neither  more  nor 
less  than  Rosicrucianism  as  modified  by  those  who  trans- 
planted it  into  England."  His  elegant  and  interesting 
hypothesis  rests  on  a  microscopical  foundation  of  actual 
fact.  A  passage  in  Fludd's  rejoinder  to  the  "  Exercitatio 
Epistolse"  of  Gassendi  states  that  the  Fatres  R.  C.  are 
thenceforth  to  be  called  sapientes  or  sopJios.  The  German 
critic's  discriminating  commentary  on  this  statement  is  that 
the  old  name  was  abolished,  but  as  yet  a  new  one  had  not 
been  conferred,  and  that  the  immediate  hint  for  the  name 
Masons  was  derived  from  the  Rosicrucian  legend  concerning 
the  "  House  of  the  Holy  Ghost,"  an  allegorical  building 
which  typified  the  secret  purpose  of  the  Society.  Having 
fathered  Freemasonry  on  the  renowned  Kentish  Rosicrucian, 
Professor  Buhle  enters  on  a  Quixotic  quest  through  the 
folios  of  his  victim  in  search  of  corroborating  passages,  and 
discovers  in  the  "  Summum  Bonum,"  which  Fludd  dis- 
owned, as  we  have  seen,  that  Jesus  was  the  lapis  angularis 
of  the  human  temple  in  which  men  are  stones,  and  that  the 
author  calls  upon  his  students  to  be  transformed  from  dead 
into  living  philosophical  stones.1  "  Transmutemini,  trans- 

1  This  passage  happens  to  occur  in  the  Epistle  from  the  Rosi- 
crucian Society  to  a  German  neophyte,  which  was  printed  in  the 
"  Summum  Bonum,"  but  for  which  neither  Fludd  nor  the  unknown 
Joachim  Fritz  are  responsible. 


ROSICRUCIANS  AND  FREEMASONS.         403 

mutemini,  de  lapidibus  mortals  in  lapides  vivos  philo- 
sophicos."  On  this  foundation  rests  his  whole  hypothesis 
concerning  the  transfiguration  of  the  Eosicrucian  Fraternity 
and  its  reappearance  as  the  Masonic  Brotherhood.  It  is 
needless  to  say  that  it  is  slender  and  unsatisfactory  in  the 
extreme. 

I  do  not  propose  to  discuss   the  origin  of  Freemasonry. 
That  vexatious  question  has  been  perpetually  debated  with 
singularly  unprofitable  results.     All  I  am  concerned  with 
proving  is  that  there  is  no  traceable  connection  between 
Masonry  and  Rosicrucianism.     The  former  is  defined  by  its 
initiates  to  be  "  a  science  of  morality,  veiled  in  allegory,  and 
illustrated  by  symbols,"  and  again  as  "  a  system  of  doctrines 
taught,  in  a  manner  peculiar  to  itself,  by  allegories  and  sym- 
bols. ...  Its  ceremonies  are  external  additions,  which  affect 
not  its  substance."     The  two  doctrines  of  the  unity  of  God 
and  the  immortality  of  the  soul  constitute  "  the  philosophy 
of  Freemasonry."     It  has  never  been  at  any  period  of  its 
history  an  association  for  scientific  researches  and  the  ex- 
perimental investigation  of  Nature,  which  was  a  primary 
object  with  the  Rosicrucian  Brotherhood.     It  has  not  only 
never  laid  claim  to  the  possession  of  any  transcendental 
secrets  of  alchemy  and  magic,  or  to  any  skill  in  medicine, 
but  has  never  manifested  any  interest  in  these  or  kindred 
subjects.     Originally  an  association  for  the   diffusion   of 
natural  morality,  it  is  now  simply  a  benefit  society.     The 
improvement  of  mankind  and  the  encouragement  of  philan- 
thropy were  and  are  its  ostensible  objects,  and  these  also 
were  the  dream  of  the  Rosicrucian,  but,  on  the  other  hand 
it  has  never  aimed  at  a  reformation  in  the  arts  and  sciences, 
for  it  was  never  at  any  period  a  learned  society,  and  a  large 
proportion  of  its  members  have  been  chosen  from  illiterate 


vs. 


404  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

classes.  It  is  free  alike  from  the  enthusiasm  and  the 
errors  of  the  elder  Order,  for  though  at  one  time  it  appears 
to  have  excluded  Catholics  from  its  ranks,  as  at  this  day 
the  Catholic  Church  excommunicates  and  denounces  its 
members,  it  has  been  singularly  devoid  of  prejudices  and 
singularly  unaffected  by  the  crazes  of  the  time.  It  has  not 
committed  itself  to  second  Advent  theories  ;  it  does  not  call 
the  Pope  Antichrist ;  it  does  not  expect  a  universal 
cataclysm.  It  preaches  a  natural  morality,  and  has  so  little 
interest  in  mysticism  that  it  daily  misinterprets  and  practi- 
cally despises  its  own  mystical  symbols. 

Those  who  believe  in  the  hypothesis  of  Professor  Buhle 
cannot  shew  that  Fludd  was  either  a  Rosicrucian  or  a  Free- 
mason. There  is  some  reason  to  believe  that  the  former 
Brotherhood  did  split  up  subsequently  into  different 
sections,  but  there  is  no  tittle  of  evidence  to  prove  that  they 
developed  into  Freemasons.  Mackey  says  that  they  pro- 
tracted their  existence  till  the  middle  of  the  eighteenth 
century,  and  then  ceased  to  meet  on  account  of  the  death 
of  one  of  their  chiefs  named  Burn,  but  he  does  not  state 
his  authority.  He  also  tells  us  that  out  of  the  Kosicrucian 
Fraternity  there  was  established  in  1777  that  association 
called  "  The  Brothers  of  the  Golden  Cross,"  whose  al- 
chemical processes  are  described  by  Sigmund  Eichter. 
"  This  Society  was  very  numerous  in  Germany,  and  even 
extended  into  other  countries,  especially  into  Sweden.  A 
second  schism  from  the  Rosicrucians  was  the  society  of 
'  The  Initiated  Brothers  of  Asia,'  which  was  organised  in 
1780,  and  whose  pursuits,  like  those  of  the  parent  institu- 
tion, were  connected  with  alchemy  and  the  natural  sciences. 
In  1785,  it  attracted  the  attention  of  the  police,  and,  two 
years  later,  received  a  fatal  blow,  in  the  revelation  of  all  its 


ROSICRUCIANS  AND  FREEMASONS.         405 

secrets  by  one,  Kolling,  a  treacherous  member  of  the  associa- 
tion." 

These  statements  must  be  taken  at  their  value,  but  even 
doubtful  facts  are  of  equal  weight  with  hypotheses  founded 
on  assumptions  of  the  most  gratuitous  kind,  and  supported 
by  tortured  quotations.  It  is,  however,  on  the  universal 
concensus  of  competent  Masonic  opinion  that  I  should 
found  the  rejection  of  the  Buhlean  view.  Mackey,  in  the 
"  Synoptical  Index  "  to  his  "  Symbolism  of  Freemasonry," 
says  that  the  Eosicrucian  Society  resembled  the  Masonic 
in  its  organization  and  in  some  of  the  subjects  of  its  inves- 
tigation, "  but  it  was  in  no  other  way  connected  with  Free 
Masonry."  In  the  "  Lexicon  "  he  again  tells  us  that  "  the 
Eosicrucians  had  no  connection  whatever  with  the  Masonic 
fraternity,"  and  that  it  is  only  malignant  revilers,  like 
Baruel  in  his  "  Memoirs  of  Jacobinism,"  who  attempt  to 
identify  the  two  institutions.  Other  authorities  are  not 
less  pronounced  in  their  opinions. 

It  is  to  the  institution  of  the  Eose-Cross  degree  in  Free- 
masonry that  the  confusion  of  opinion  on  this  point  is  to 
be  mainly  traced.  When  ill-informed  persons  happen  to 
hear  that  there  are  "  Sovereign  Princes  of  Eose-Croix," 
"  Princes  of  Eose-Croix  de  Heroden,"  &c.,  among  the  Ma- 
sonic Brethren,  they  naturally  identify  these  splendid  in- 
anities of  occult  nomenclature  with  the  mysterious  and  awe- 
inspiring  Eosicrucians.  The  origin  of  the  Eose-Cross  degree 
is  involved  in  the  most  profound  mystery.  Its  foundation 
has  been  attributed  to  Johann  Valentin  Andreas,  but  this 
is  an  ignorant  confusion,  arising  from  the  alleged  connec- 
tion of  the  theologian  of  Wirtemberg  with  the  society  of 
Christian  Eosencreutz.  There  is  no  trace  of  its  existence 
before  the  middle  of  the  eighteenth  century,  though  the 


406  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

11  Dictionnaire  Ma9onnique  " J  declares  that  it  was  created 
in  Palestine  by  Godfrey  de  Bouillon  in  the  year  1100, 
and  that  the  Kose  was  emblematic  of  secrecy  and  the  Cross 
of  immortality.  It  professes  to  deal  with  the  spiritual 
side  of  alchemy,  and  to  seek  that  same  mysterious  Stone 
which  was  the  object  of  Basil  Valentin,  Paracelsus,  Khun- 
rath,  and  the  true  turbo,  philosophorum  of  psycho-chemical 
transmutations.  But  the  shallow  pretence  has  deceived 
no  one,  for  the  sublime  tradition  of  the  veritable  magnum 
opus  exclusively  points  to  transcendent  spiritual  secrets, 
and  not  to  the  eternal  commonplace  of  moral  and  masonic 
platitudinarians — that  is  to  say,  the  illiterate  initiations 
of  Masonry,  ignorantly  adopting  a  garbled  alchemical  ter- 
minology, have  fallen  into  the  gross  and  porcine  error  of 
interpreting  alchemical  symbolism  morally  instead  of  pneu- 
matically. Sovereign  chapters  and  sovereign  princes  of 
Rose-Croix,  Knight  Princes  of  the  Eagle  and  the  Pelican, 
and  Prince  Perfect  Masters,  should  continue  to  dine  sumptu- 
ously ;  no  one  will  dispute  their  proficiency  as  initiates  of 
the  gastronomical  mystery,  but,  in  the  name  of  the  Grand 
Architect,  let  them  leave  the  morally  unsearchable  mystery 
of  the  philosophick  gold  to  the  true  Sons  of  the  Doctrine. 

The  Eose-Cross  degree  is  represented  by  Carlile  as  the 
ne  plus  ultra  of  Masonry.  It  has  three  points,  of  which  the 
two  first  are  called  Sovereign  Chapters,  and  the  third  the 
Mystic  Supper,  which  is  held  four  times  a  year.  The  pre- 
siding officer  is  dignified  with  the  sublime  title  of  "  Ever 
Most  Perfect  Sovereign ; "  the  two  Wardens  are  "  Most  Ex- 
cellent and  Perfect  Brothers."  There  is  also  a  Master  of 

1  ' '  Dictionnaire  Maconnique,  ou  Recueil  d'Esquisses  de  toutes  les 
parties  de  1'edifice  connu  sous  le  nom  de  Ma9onnerie."  A  Paris  : 
5825,  8vo. 


ROSfCRUClANS  AND  FREEMASONS.          407 

the  Ceremonies,  and  the  brethren  are  "  Most  Respectful 
Knights."  The  annual  festival  of  the  order  is  celebrated 
on  Shrove  Tuesday.  The  jewel  is  "  a  golden  compass,  ex- 
tended on  an  arc  to  the  sixteenth  part  of  a  circle,  or  twenty- 
two  and  a-half  degrees,"  according  to  Mackey.  Carlile 
describes  it  as  a  triangle  formed  by  a  compass  and  a  quarter 
of  a  circle.  "  Between  the  legs  of  the  compass  is  a  cross 
resting  on  the  arc  of  the  circle ;  its  centre  is  occupied  by  a 
full-blown  rose,  whose  stem  twines  around  the  lower  limb 
of  the  cross ;  at  the  foot  of  this  cross,  on  the  same  side  on 
which  the  rose  is  exhibited,  is  the  figure  of  a  pelican  wound- 
ing its  breast  to  feed  its  young,  which  are  in  a  nest  sur- 
rounding it ;  while  on  the  other  side  of  the  jewel  is  the 
figure  of  an  eagle,  with  wings  displayed.  On  the  arc  of  the 
circle  the  P  /.  W  /.  of  the  degree  is  engraved  in  the  cipher 
of  the  Order."1  A  triple  crown  surmounts  the  head  of  the 
Order.  This  symbolism  is  undoubtedly  borrowed  from  the 
Rosicrucians,  which  is  the  whole  extent  of  the  connection 
supposed  to  subsist  between  the  two  Orders.  The  Rose- 
Cross  degree  in  Freemasonry  is  admitted  to  be  "  a  modern 
invention."  The  ritual  of  the  receptions  in  the  three  points 
of  this  degree  will  be  found  in  Carlile's  "  Ritual  of  Free- 
masonry," and  in  the  first  volume  of  Heckethorn's  "  Secret 
Societies  of  all  Ages  and  Countries." 

1  Mackey 's  "Lexicon  of  Freemasonry,"  p.  2C9. 


CHAPTER  XVI. 

MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES. 

IT  is  an  opinion  entertained  by  the  elect  in  modern  theo- 
sophical  circles,  that  the  true  Rosicrucian  Brotherhood 
migrated  into  India,  and  this  notion  is  said  to  be  counten- 
anced by  a  Latin  pamphlet  of  Henricus  Neuhusius,  pub- 
lished in  1618,  under  the  title  "Pia  et  utilissima  Admonitio 
de  Fratribus  Rosae  Crucis,"  and  which  was  afterwards 
translated  into  French.  They  have  developed  into  Thibetan 
Brothers,  have  exchanged  Protestant  Christianity  for 
esoteric  Buddhism,  and  are  no  longer  interested  in  the 
number  of  the  beast.  Their  violent  antipathy  to  the  pope 
still  remains  :  they  have  not  yet  torn  him  in  pieces  with 
nails,  but  probably  expect  to  accomplish  this  long-cherished 
project  about  the  period  of  the  next  general  cataclysm. 

This  is  an  interesting  theory  which  might  be  debated 
with  profit.  I  have  not  personally  discovered  much  trace 
of  the  Rosicrucians  in  India,  but  the  absence  of  historical 
documents  on  this  point  affords  a  fine  field  for  the  imagina- 
tion, which  writers  like  Mr  Hargrave  Jennings  should  not 
allow  to  lie  fallow.  In  my  prosaic  capacity  as  a  historian, 
I  have  not  been  able  to  follow  in  the  footsteps  of  the 
Fraternity  further  than  the  Island  of  Mauritius.  Thanks 
to  the  late  Mr  Frederick  Hockley,  whose  valuable  library  of 
books  and  manuscripts,  treating  of  all  branches  of  occultism, 
has  been  recently  dispersed,  I  have  discovered  that  a  certain 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         409 

Comte  de  Chazal  accomplished  the  magnum  opus  in  that 
place  at  the  close  of  the  last  century,  and  that  he  initiated 
another  artist  into  the  mysteries  of  the  Eosicrucian  Frater- 
nity. The  Comte  de  Chazal  was  possessed  of  vision  at  a 
distance,  and  witnessed  the  horrors  of  the  French  Eevolu- 
tion  from  a  vast  distance,  with  amazing  perspicuity,  by 
means  of  the  mind's  eye.  The  following  curious  document 
will  be  read  with  no  ordinary  interest : — 

Copy  of  the  Admission  of  Dr  Bacstrom  into  the  Society  of  the 
Rosa  Croix  by  Le  Comte  de  Chazal  at  the  Island  of  Mauri- 
tius, with  the  Seal  of  the  Society. 

ISLE  or  MAURITIUS,  DISTRICT  OF  PAMPELAVUSO, 
12th  Sept.  1794. 

In  the  name  of  arnta  rnrv  the  True  and  only  God  Mani- 
fested in  Trinity. 

I,  Sigismund  Bacstrom,  do  hereby  promise,  in  the  most 
sincere  and  solemn  manner,  faithfully  to  observe  the  follow- 
ing articles,  during  the  whole  course  of  my  natural  life,  to 
the  best  of  my  knowledge  and  ability;  which  articles  I 
hereby  confirm  by  oath  and  by  my  proper  signature  here- 
unto annexed. 

One  of  the  worthy  members  of  the  august,  most  ancient, 
and  most  learned  Society,  the  Investigators  of  Divine, 
Spiritual,  and  Natural  Truth  (which  society  more  than  two 
centuries  and  a  half  ago  (i.e.,  in  1490)  did  separate  them- 
selves from  the  Free-Masons,  but  were  again  united  in  one 
spirit  among  themselves  under  the  denomination  of  Fratres 
Rosce  Crucis,  Brethren  of  the  Eosy  Cross,  i.e.  the  Brethren 
who  believe  in  the  Grand  Atonement  made  by  Jesus  Christ 
on  the  Eosy  Cross,  stained  and  marked  with  His  blood,  for 


410  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

the  redemption  of  Spiritual  Natures),  having  thought  me 
worthy  to  be  admitted  into  their  august  society,  in  quality 
of  a  Member  Apprentice  and  Brother,  and  to  partake  of 
their  sublime  knowledge,  I  do  hereby  engage  in  the  most 
solemn  manner— 

1.  That  I  will  always,  to  the  utmost  of  my  power,  con- 
duct myself  as  becomes  a  worthy  member,  with  sobriety 
and  piety,  and  to  endeavour  to  prove  myself  grateful  to  the 
Society  for  so  distinguished  a  favour  as  I  now  receive,  dur- 
ing the  whole  course  of  my  natural  life. 

2.  That  derision,  insult,  and  persecution  of  this  august 
society  may  be  guarded  against,  I  will  never  openly  pub- 
lish that  I  am  a  member,  nor  reveal  the  name  or  person 
of  such  members  as  I  know  at  present  or  may  know  here- 
after. 

3.  I  solemnly  promise  that  I  will  never  during  my  whole 
life  publicly  reveal  the  secret  knowledge  I  receive  at  present, 
or  may  receive  at  a  future  period  from  the  Society,  or  from 
one  of  its  members,  nor  even  privately,  but  will  keep  our 
Secrets  sacred. 

4.  I  do  hereby  promise  that  I  will  instruct  for  the  benefit 
of  good  men,  before  I  depart  this  life,  one  person,  or  two 
persons  at  most,  in  our  secret  knowledge,  and  initiate  and 
receive  such  person  (or  persons)  as  a  member  or  apprentice 
into  our   Society,  in  the   same   manner   as  I  have  been 
initiated  and  received ;  but  such  person  only  as  I  believe 
to  be  truly  worthy  and  of  an  upright,  well-meaning  mind, 
blameless  conduct,  sober  life,  and  desirous  of  knowledge. 
And  as  there  is  no  distinction  of  sexes  in  the  Spiritual 
World,  neither  among  the  Blessed  Angels,  nor  among  the 
rational  immortal  Spirits  of  the  human  race ;  and  as  we 
have  had  a  Semiramis,  Queen  of  Egypt ;  a  Myriam,  the 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         411 

prophetess ;  a  Peronella,  the  wife  of  Flammel ;  and,  lastly, 
a  Leona  Constantia,  Abbess  of  Clermont,  who  was  actually 
received  as  a  practical  member  and  master  into  our  Society 
in  the  year  1736;  which  women  are  believed  to  have  been 
all  possessors  of  the  Great  Work,  consequently  Sorores  Roseau 
Crucis,  and  members  of  our  Society  by  possession,  as  the 
possession  of  this  our  Art  is  the  key  to  the  most  hidden 
knowledge ;  and,  moreover,  as  redemption  was  manifested 
to  mankind  by  means  of  a  woman  (the  Blessed  Virgin),  and 
as  Salvation,  which  is  of  infinitely  more  value  than  our 
whole  Art,  is  granted  to  the  female  sex  as  well  as  to  the 
male,  our  Society  does  not  exclude  a  worthy  woman  from 
being  initiated,  God  himself  not  having  excluded  women 
from  partaking  of  every  felicity  in  the  next  life.  We  will 
not  hesitate  to  receive  a  worthy  woman  into  our  Society  as 
a  member  apprentice  (and  even  as  a  practical  member,  or 
master,  if  she  does  possess  our  work  practically,  and  has 
herself  accomplished  it),  provided  she  is  found,  like  Pero- 
nella, Flammel' s  wife,  to  be  sober,  pious,  discreet,  prudent, 
and  reserved,  of  an  upright  and  blameless  conduct,  and 
desirous  of  knowledge. 

5.  I  do  hereby  declare  that  I  intend,  with  the  permission 
of  God,  to  commence  our  great  work  with  mine  own  hands 
as  soon  as  circumstances,  health,  opportunity,  and  time  will 
permit;  1st,  that  I  may  do  good  therewith  as  a  faithful 
steward ;  2nd,  that  I  may  merit  the  continued  confidence 
which  the  Society  has  placed  in  me  in  quality  of  a  member 
apprentice. 

6.  I  do  further  most  solemnly  promise  that  (should  I 
accomplish  the  Great  Work)  I  will  not  abuse  the  great 
power  entrusted  to  me  by  appearing  great  and  exalted,  or 
seeking  to  appear  in  a  public  character  in  the  world  by 


412  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


hunting  after  vain  titles  of  nobility  and  vain  glory,  which 
are  all  fleeting  and  vain,  but  will  endeavour  to  live  a  sober 
and  orderly  life,  as  becomes  every  Christian,  though  not 
possessed  of  so  great  a  temporal  blessing ;  I  will  devote  a 
considerable  part  of  my  abundance  and  superfluity  (mul- 
tipliable  infinitely  to  work  of  private  charity),  to  aged  and 
deeply-afflicted  people,  to  poor  children,  and,  above  all,  to 
such  as  love  God  and  act  uprightly,  and  I  will  avoid  en- 
couraging laziness  and  the  profession  of  public  beggars. 

7.  I   will   communicate  every   new  or  useful  discovery 
relating  to  our  work  to  the  nearest  member  of  our  Society, 
and  hide  nothing  from  him,  seeing  he  cannot,  as  a  worthy 
member,  possibly  abuse  it,  or  prejudice  me  thereby ;  on  the 
other  hand,  I  will  hide  these  secret  discoveries  from  the 
world. 

8.  I  do,  moreover,  solemnly  promise  (should  I  become  a 
master  and  possessor)  that  I  will  not,  on  the  one  hand, 
assist,  aid,  or  support  with  gold  or  with  silver  any  govern- 
ment, King,    or   Sovereign,  whatever,  except   by   paying 
taxes,  nor,  on  the  other  hand,  any  populace,  or  particular 
set  of  men,  to  enable  them  to  revolt  against  the  government ; 
I  will  leave  public  affairs  and  arrangements  to  the  govern- 
ment of  God,  who  will  bring  about  the  events  foretold  in 
the  revelation  of  St  John,  which  are  fast  accomplishing  \  I 
will  not  interfere  with  affairs  of  government. 

9.  I  will  neither  build  churches,  chapels,  nor  hospitals, 
and  such  public  charities,  as  there  is  already  a  sufficient 
number  of  such  public  buildings  and  institutions,  if  they 
were  only  properly  applied  and  regulated.     I  will  not  give 
any  salary  to  a  priest  or  churchman  as  such,  to  make  him 
more  proud  and  insolent  than  he  is  already.     If  I  relieve  a 
distressed  worthy  clergyman,  I  will  consider  him  in  the  light 


•      MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         413 

of  a  private  distressed  individual  only.  I  will  give  no 
charity  with  the  view  of  making  my  name  known  to  the 
world,  but  will  give  my  alms  privately  and  secretly. 

10.  I  hereby  promise  that  I  will  never  be  ungrateful  to 
the  worthy  friend  and  brother  who  initiated  and  received 
me,  but  will  respect  and  oblige  him  as  far  as  lies  in  my 
power,  in  the  same  manner  as  he  has  been  obliged  to  pro- 
mise to  his  friend  who  received  him. 

11.  Should  I  travel  either  by  sea  or  by  land,  and  meet 
with  any  person  who  may  call  himself  a  Brother  of  the 
Rosy  Cross,  I  will  examine  him  whether  he  can  give  me  a 
proper  explanation  of  The  Universal  Fire  of  Nature,  and  of 
our  magnet  for  attracting  and  magnifying  the  same  under 
the  form  of  a  salt,  whether  he  is  well  acquainted  with  our 
work,  and  whether  he  knows  the  universal  dissolvent  and 
its  use.     If  I  find  him  able  to  give  satisfactory  answers,  I 
will  acknowledge  him  as  a  member  and  brother  of  our 
Society.     Should  I  find   him  superior  in  knowledge  and 
experience  to  myself,  I  will  honour  and  respect  him  as  a 
master  above  me. 

12.  If  it  should  please  God  to  permit  me  to  accomplish 
our  Great  Work  with  my  own  hands,  I  will  give  praise  and 
thanks  to  God  in  humble  prayer,  and  devote  my  time  to  the 
doing  and  promoting  all  the  good  that  lies  in  my  power, 
and  to  the  pursuit  of  true  and  useful  knowledge. 

13.  I  do  hereby  solemnly  promise  that  I  will  not  encour- 
age wickedness  and  debauchery,  thereby  offending  God  by 
administering  the  medicine  for  the  human  body,  or  the 
aurum  potabile,  to  a  patient,  or  patients,  infected  with  the 
venereal  disease. 

14.  I  do  promise  that  I  will  never  give  the  Fermented 
Metallic  Medecine  for  transmutation  to  any  person  living, 


HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

no,  not  a  single  grain,  unless  the  person  is  an  initiated  am 
received  member  and  Brother  of  the  Rosy  Cross. 

To  keep  faithfully  the  above  articles  as  I  now  re- 
ceive them  from  a  worthy  member  of  our  Society,  as 
he  received  them  himself,  I  willingly  agree,  and  sign 
this  with  my  name,  and  affix  my  seal  to  the  same. 
So  help  me  God.  Amen.  S.  BACSTROM,  L.S. 

I  have  initiated  and  received  Mr  Sigismund  Bacstrom, 
Doctor  of  Physic,  as  a  practical  member  and  brother 
above  an  apprentice   in   consequence   of   his   solid 
learning,  which  I  certify  by  my  name  and  seal,— 
Mauritius,  12  Sept.  1794.         DU  CHAZEL,  F.R.C. 


The  Philosophic  Seal  of  the  Society  of  the  Rosicrucians. 

Among  Mr  Hockley's  manuscripts  there  is  also  the 
"  Diary  of  a  Eosicrucian  Philosopher "  during  the  first 
period  of  the  work.  It  describes  the  preparation  of  the 
first  matter,  and  breaks  off  abruptly  after  a  few  leaves. 
Whether  this  unnamed  philosopher  was  a  true  Rosicrucian, 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         415 

and  whether  the  Comte  de  Chazal  could  lay  claim  to  that 
distinction,  are  problems  which  cannot  be  solved.  Indi- 
vidual pretenders  and  fraudulent  associations  have  occa- 
sionally appeared  ever  since  the  publication  of  the  "  Fama" 
and  "  Confessio  Fraternitatis." 

It  is  certain  that  a  pseudo-society  existed  in  England 
before  the  year  1836,  for  in  that  year  we  find  Godfrey 
Higgins  saying  that  he  had  joined  neither  the  Templars 
nor  the  Eosicrucians.  "  I  have  abstained  from  becoming  a 
member  of  them,  that  I  might  not  have  my  tongue  tied  or 
my  pen  restrained  by  the  engagements  I  must  have  made 
on  entering  the  chapter  or  encampment.  But  I  have 
reason  to  believe  that  they  have  now  become,  in  a  very 
particular  manner,  what  is  called  exclusively  Christian 
Orders,  and  on  this  account  are  thought,  by  many  persons, 
to  be  only  a  bastard  kind  of  masons.  They  are  real  masons, 
and  they  ought  to  be  of  that  .  .  .  universal  Christianity  or 
Creestianity,  which  included  Jews,  Buddhists,  Brahmins, 
Mohamedans."  He  identifies  the  Templars  and  Eosicru- 
cians with  Manichsean  Buddhists,  and  asserts  the  Rosi- 
crucians  of  Germany  to  be  ignorant  of  their  origin,  "  but, 
by  tradition,  they  suppose  themselves  descendants  of  the 
ancient  Egyptians,  Chaldeans,  Magi,  and  Gymnosophists ; 
and  this  is  probably  true." 

The  present  Eosicrucian  Society  of  England,  on  its  re- 
modelling some  thirty  years  ago,  cut  off  by  mutual  consent 
its  connection  with  the  few  ancient  members  then  existing, 
who  were  probably  representatives  of  the  "  Eosicrucians " 
referred  to  by  Higgins,  and  established  itself  as  a  public 
body,  in  so  far  as  the  fact  of  its  existence  was  not  itself  a 
secret.  A  previous  initiation  into  Masonry  is  an  indispen- 
sable qualification  of  candidates,  as  will  be  seen  in  the 
Ordinances  of  the  Society.  The  reason  for  this  regulation 


416  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


is  that  certain  masonic  secrets  are  revealed  to  the  accepted, 
and  it  would  otherwise  be  unfair  to  Masonry.  Thus,  on 
his  admission  as  a  novice,  the  postulant  is  required  to 
repeat  the  Masonic  arcana. 

I  am  enabled  to  present  to  my  readers,  from  sources 
hitherto  unpublished,  the 

Rules  and  Ordinances  of  the  Rosicrudan  Society  of  England. 

The  Society  of  Brethren  of  the  Eosy  Cross  is  totally 
independent,  being  established  on  its  own  basis,  and  as  a 
body  is  no  otherwise  connected  with  the  Masonic  Order 
than  by  having  its  members  selected  from  that  fraternity. 

I.  That  the  meetings  of  the  Society  shall   be   held  in 
London,  at  such  house  as  the  majority  of  members  shall 
select,  on  the  second  Thursday  in  January,  April,  July,  and 
October  in  each  year.      The  brethren  shall  dine  together 
once  a  year,  at  such  time  and  place  as  the  majority  may 
select.     The  first  meeting  in  the  year  shall  be  considered 
as  the  obligatory  meeting,  and   any  member   unable   to 
attend  on  that  occasion,  or  at  the  banquet  meeting,  shall 
be  required  to  send  a  written  excuse  to  the  Secretary- 
General.     Each  brother  present  at  the  banquet  shall  pay 
his  quota  towards  the  expenses  thereof. 

II.  The  Officers  of  the  Society  shall  consist  of  the  Three 
Magi,  a  Master-general  for  the  first  and  second  orders,  a 
Deputy  Master-general,   a  Treasurer-general,  a   Secretary- 
general,  and  seven  Ancients,  who  shall  form  the  Represen- 
tative Council  of  the  Brotherhood.     The  Assistant  Officers 
shall  be  a  Precentor,  a  Conductor  of  Novices,  an  Organist, 
a  Torch  Bearer,  a  Herald,  a  Guardian  of  the  Temple,  and  a 
Medallist. 

III.  The  Master-general  and  the  Officers  shall  be  elected 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         417 

annually  at  the  obligatory  meeting,  and  shall  be  inducted 
into  their  several  offices  on  the  same  evening.  The  Master- 
general  shall  then  appoint  the  Assistant  Officers  for  the 
year. 

IV.  No   brother  shall  be   eligible  for   election   to   the 
office  of  Master-general  or  Deputy  Master-general  unless 
he  shall  have  served  one  year  as  an  Ancient,  and  have 
attained  the  third  Order ;  and  no  brother  shall  be  eligible 
for  the  offices  of  Treasurer-general,  Secretary-general,  or 
Ancient  unless  he  be  a  member  of  the  second  Order. 

V.  The  Society  shall,  in  conformity  with  ancient  usage, 
be  composed  of  nine  classes  or  grades ;  and  the  number  of 
brethren  in  each  class  shall,  in  conformity  with  ancient 
usage,  be  restricted  as  follows  : — 

1st,  or  grade  of  Zelator      .         .         .  33 

2nd,         ,,  Theoricus ...  27 

3rd,         „  Practicus  .         .         .  21 

4th,          „  Philosophus      .         .  18 

Total     ...  99 
The  above  shall  form  the  First  Order. 

5th,  or  grade  of  Adeptus  Junior         .  15 

6th,          „           Adeptus  Major          .  12 

7th,         „          Adeptus  Exemptus    .  9 

Total     .         ...         36 
These  brethren  shall  compose  the  Second  Order. 
8th,  or  grade  of  Magister  Templi        .  6 

9th,         „          Magus  .  .          3 

Total     ...  9 

These  shall  be  considered  as  the  Third  (or  highest)  Order, 
and  shall  be  entitled  to  seats  in  the  Council  of  the  Society. 

2  D 


418  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

The  senior  member  of  the  ninth  grade  shall  be  designated 
"  Supreme  Magus,"  and  the  other  two  members  Senior  and 
Junior  Substitutes  respectively.  The  grand  total  of  mem- 
bers shall  thus  be  limited  to  144,  or  the  square  of  12.  The 
numbers  of  registered  Novices  or  Aspirants  shall  not  be 
restricted,  but  members  only  shall  be  permitted  to  be  pre- 
sent at  the  ceremonial  meetings  of  the  Society. 

VI.  The  distinction  of  Honorary  Member  may  be  con- 
ferred upon  eminent  brethren,  provided  that  their  election 
to  such  membership  shall  be  unanimous,  and  that  their 
number  be  strictly  limited  to  16,  or  the  square  of  4.  An 
Honorary  President,  who  must  be  a  nobleman,  and  three 
Vice-Presidents,  shall  be  elected  from  the  honorary  mem- 
bers. A  Grand  Patron  may  also  be  elected  in  like  manner. 

VII.  No  aspirant  shall  be  admitted  into  the  Society 
unless  he  be  a  Master  Mason,  and  of  good  moral  character, 
truthful,  faithful,  and  intelligent.     He  must  be  a  man  of 
good  abilities,  so  as  to  be  capable  of  understanding  the 
revelations  of  philosophy  and  science ;  possessing  a  mind  free 
from  prejudice  and  anxious  for  instruction.     He  must  be  a 
believer  in   the   fundamental  principles  of   the  Christian 
doctrine,  a  true  philanthropist,  and  a  loyal  subject,  names 
of   aspirants   may  be   submitted   by  any  member   at   the 
meetings  of  the  Society,  and  if  approved  after  the  usual 
scrutiny,  they  shall  be  placed  on  the  roll  of  Novices,  and 
balloted  for  as  vacancies  occur  in  the  list  of  members. 

VIII.  Every   Novice   on   admission    to   the   grade   of 
Zelator  shall  adopt  a  Latin  motto,  to  be  appended  to  his 
signature  in  all  communications  relating  to  the  Society. 
This   motto   cannot   under    any   pretence    be    afterwards 
changed,  and  no  two  brethren  shall  be  at  liberty  to  adopt 
the  same  motto. 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         419 

IX.  The  fee  for  admission  to  each  Order  shall  be  ten 
shillings,  and  the  annual  subscription  from  every  member 
to  defray  the  contingent  expenses  of  the  society  shall  be 
five  shillings.     The  registry  fee  for  a  novice  or  aspirant 
shall  be  seveu  shillings  and  sixpence. 

X.  As  vacancies  occur  in  each  grade,  by  death,  resigna- 
tion, or  otherwise,  the  members  of  such  grade  shall  elect 
brethren  from  the  next  grade  to  supply  the  vacancies  thus 
created. 

XI.  The  Master-general  shall  have  the  superintendence 
and  regulation  of  the  ordinary  affairs  of  the  Society  j  sub- 
ject, however,  to  the  veto  of  the  Magi  in  matters  relating 
to  the  ritual.     He  shall  be  assisted  in  the  discharge  of  his 
duties  by  the  Council,  and  shall  be  empowered  to  arrange 
for  the  due  performance  of  each  ceremony,  by  appointing 
well-qualified  brethren   to   assist  as  Celebrant,  Suffragan, 
Cantor  and  Guards,  in  the  various  grades  of  the  first  and 
second  Orders.     The  M.  G-.  shall  preside  at  the  general 
meetings  of  the  brotherhood,  and  shall  at  all  times  be  re- 
ceived with  the  honours  due  to  his  important  office. 

XII.  The  Deputy  Master-general  shall,  as  the  represen- 
tative of  the  chief,  preside  at  all  meetings  in  his  absence, 
and  in  the  absence  of  any  Past  Master-general,  and  on  such 
occasions  shall  be  vested  with  equal  authority  for  the  time 
being;  subject,  however,  to  appeal  being  made  from  his 
decisions  to  the  Master-general  and  his  Council. 

XIII.  The  Treasurer-general  shall  receive  from  the 
Secretary-general  all  moneys  belonging  to  the  Society, 
and  shall  keep  an  account  of  his  receipts  and  disburse- 
ments, which  shall  be  audited  before  the  obligatory  meeting 
in  January,  by  the  Ancients,  under  the  supervision  of  the 
Master-general.  No  expenses  shall  be  incurred  without 


420  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROS1CRUCIANS. 

the  knowledge  of  the  chief  or  his  deputy.  The  proceedings 
of  the  Society  shall  be  printed  quarterly,  under  the  title  of 
THE  ROSICRUCIAN,  and  a  copy  shall  be  sent  to  every  sub- 
scribing and  honorary  member  by  the  Secretary-general. 
The  record  shall  be  conducted  under  the  supervision  of  the 
Supreme  Magus. 

XIV.  —  The  Secretary-general  shall  convene  all  meetings 
of  the  Council  and  general  body  ;  record  the  proceedings 
in  the  minute  book,  register  the  names,  residences,  and 
mottoes  of  all  members,  with  dates  of  admission  to  each 
grade;  collect  all  fees  and  subscriptions  when  due,   and 
forthwith  pay  them  over  to  the  Treasurer. 

XV.  The  Council  of  Ancients  shall  attend  the  meetings  of 
the  Society,  and  in  the  absence  of  the  M.  G.,  P.  M.  G.,  and 
D.  M.  G.,  the  Senior  Ancient  present  shall  preside.     They 
shall  generally  assist  the  Chief  in  the  discharge  of  his  duties, 
more  especially  with  reference  to  the  ceremonials  of  the 
several  Orders. 

XVI.  The  Precentor  and  Organist  shall  have  the  direction 
of  all  musical  arrangements  at  the  meetings  of  the  Society. 

XVII.  The  Conductor  of  Novices  shall  examine  all  aspir- 
ants, and  report  to  the  Council  as  to  their  qualifications  for 
admission  to  the  grade  of  Zelator  ;  he  shall  also  perform  all 
the  duties  appertaining  to  his  office  in  the 


XVIII.  The  Torch  Bearer  shall  discharge  the  peculiar 
duties  allotted  to  him,  more  especially  those  which  relate  to 
the  ceremonies  in  the  first  grade. 

XIX.  The  Herald  and  Guardian  shall  defend  the  entrance 
of  the  Temple,  and  permit  no  one  to  enter  without  first 
•acquainting  the  Conductor. 

XX.  The  Jewels  for  the  Magi,  Officers,  and  Brethren,  are 
to  be  worn  at  all  ceremonial  meetings. 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         421 
JEWELS      OF      THE      ROSIE      CROSS. 

Jewel  of  the  Supreme  Magus. 

An  ebony  Cross,  with  golden  roses  at  its  extremities  and 
the  jewel  of  the  Rosie  Cross  in  the  centre.  It  is  surmounted 
by  a  crown  of  gold  for  the  Supreme  Magus  alone,  as  repre- 
sented in  the  engraving  below,  and  the  jewel  is  to  be  worn 
round  the  neck,  suspended  by  a  crimson  velvet  ribbon. 


Jewel  of  the  two  Junior  Magi. 

As  above,  but  without  the  crown,  and  worn  in  the  same 
manner. 

Jewel  of  the  Grand  Officers. 

A  lozenge-shaped  plate  of  gold  enamelled  white,  with  the 
Rosie  Cross  in  the  centre,  surmounted  by  a  golden  mitre,  on 
the  rim  of  which  is  enamelled  in  rose-coloured  characters 
LUX,  and  in  its  centre  a  small  cross  of  the  same  colour. 
This  jewel  is  worn  suspended  from  the  button-hole  by  a 
green  ribbon  an  inch  in  width,  and  with  a  cross  also 


422  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

embroidered  on  it  in  rose-coloured  silk,  as  shown  in  the 
engraving  below,  which  is  as  nearly  as  possible  one-third  of 
the  actual  size  of  the  jewel. 


Jewel  of  the  Fraternity. 

The  lozenge-shaped  jewel  of  the  Rosie  Cross,  as  above, 
without  the  mitre,  suspended  by  a  green  ribbon  an  inch  in 
width,  and  without  the  embroidered  cross. 


This  information  is  transcribed  from  a  secret  record  of 
the  association,  entitled  "  The  Rosicrucian,"  which  was  iirst 
published  in  1868,  appearing  as  an  infinitesimal  quarterly 
of  twelve  small  pages,  and  subsequently  continued  as  a 
monthly  magazine,  which  subsisted  till  the  year  1879,  when 
it  accomplished  another  transformation,  whose  history  I  have 
failed  to  trace.  There  is  much  curious  material  contained 
in  the  two  series.  An  early  number  announces  the  objects 
of  the  society  which  it  represents.  It  is  "calculated  to 
meet  the  requirements  of  those  worthy  Masons  who  wish  to 
study  the  science  and  antiquities  of  the  Craft,  and  trace  it, 
through  its  successive  developments,  to  the  present  time ; 
also  to  cull  information  from  all  the  records  extant,  of 
those  mysterious  societies  which  had  their  existence  in  the 
dark  ages  of  the  world  when  might  meant  right,  when  every 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         423 

man's  hand  was  against  his  brother,  and  when  such  com- 
binations were  necessary  to  protect  the  weak  against  the 
strong." 

These  objects  appear  to  have  been  fulfilled  in  a  very 
desultory  manner,  so  far,  at  least,  as  the  organ  of  the  asso- 
ciation is  concerned.  Eeports  of  Masonic  meetings,  long 
serial  stories  of  an  occult  character,  and  somewhat  feeble 
poetry  by  supreme  magi  and  worthy  fratres,  permanently 
occupied  a  large  proportion  of  an  exceedingly  limited  space 
for  a  period  of  ten  years. 

In  1871  the  society  informed  its  members  that  it  was 
entirely  non-masonic  in  character,  with  the  sole  exception 
that  every  aspirant  was  required  to  belong  to  the  masonic 
Brotherhood.  The  assigned  reason  is  the  numerous  points 
of  resemblance  between  the  secrets  of  Rosicrucians  and 
Freemasons.  The  object  of  the  association  was  then  stated 
to  be  purely  literary  and  antiquarian,  and  the  promulgation 
of  a  new  masonic  rite  was  by  no  means  intended.  "  The 
society  is  at  present  composed  of  144  Fratres,  and  is  ruled 
over  by  three  brethren,  who  have  attained  to  the  ninth 
degree,  or  Supreme  Magus.  Seventy-two  of  these  compose 
the  London  College,  and  thirty-six  is  the  statutory  number 
of  each  of  the  two  subordinate  colleges  "  at  Bristol  and 
Manchester.  Every  College,  excepting  the  Metropolitan, 
was  restricted  in  1877  to  thirty-six  subscribing  members, 
exclusive  of  those  of  the  ninth  grade ;  the  following  numbers 
being  permitted  in  each  grade  : — 

1.  Magister  Templi  .         or  VIII0. 

2.  Adeptus  Exemptus      .         or  VII0. 

3.  Adeptus  Major    .         .         or  VI°. 

4.  Adeptus  Minor    .         .         or  V°. 

5.  Philosophus         .         .         or  IV°. 


424  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

6.  Practicus  .         .         or  III0. 

7.  Thearicus  .         .         or  11°. 

8.  Zelator        ...         or  1°. 

The  numbers  were  doubled  in  the  Metropolitan  College, 
but  these  arrangements  were  practically  abrogated  by  the 
admission  of  supernumerary  members  until  the  occurrence 
of  i(  substantive  vacancies."  A  Yorkshire  College  was  con- 
secrated in  1877 ;  a  college  in  Edinburgh  to  represent  the 
East  of  Scotland  had  been  established  some  time  previously. 

The  prime  mover  in  this  Association  was  Robert  Went- 
worth  Little,  who  died  in  the  year  1878,  at  the  age  of 
thirty-eight ;  he  was  the  Supreme  Magus,  and  the  actual 
revival  of  the  Rosicrucian  Order  in  England  was  owing  to 
his  instrumentality.  The  Honorary  Presidentship  has  been 
conferred  upon  various  noblemen,  the  late  Lord  Lytton 
was  elected  Grand  Patron,  and  among  the  most  important 
members  must  be  reckoned  the  late  Frederick  Hockley, 
Kenneth  Mackenzie,  and  Hargrave  Jennings. 

The  most  notable  circumstance  connected  with  this 
society  is  the  complete  ignorance  which  seems  to  have 
prevailed  amongst  its  members  generally  concerning  every- 
thing connected  with  Rosicrucianism.  This  is  conspicuous 
in  the  magazine  which  they  published.  Frater  William 
Carpenter  complains  that  he  has  not  obtained  much  light 
from  the  work  of  Frater  Jennings,  and  that  he  himself  is 
"  an  untaught  speculator."  Frater  William  Hughan  is 
acknowledged  as  an  adept,  but  he  does  not  seem  to  have 
been  aware  that  the  "Fama"  and  "  Confessio  Fraternitatis " 
originally  appeared  in  Germany.  Frater  Carpenter  inclines 
to  the  opinion  that  the  question  had  better  be  left  to  itself, 
as  "  an  inquiry  into  the  matter  is  destined  to  get  every  one 
who  attempts  it  into  an  entanglement.  He  humbly  con- 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         425 

fesses  that  it  is  too  wonderful  for  him,  too  high,  and  that 
he  cannot  attain  it.  At  the  same  time  he  hazards  a  new 
definition  of  the  much-abused  term  Eosicrucian,  which  he 
believes  to  have  been  assumed  by  the  Brotherhood  not 
because  they  sought  light  by  the  assistance  of  ros,  dew,  but 
in  rus,  solitude,  which  is  conclusive  as  to  the  philological 
abilities  of  this  "untaught  speculator."  By  the  year  1872, 
the  members  seems  to  have  discovered  that  their  organ  and 
indeed  their  society  had  scarcely  borne  out  its  original 
intention,  for  "  the  general  body  of  members  have  done 
little  to  promote  the  elucidation  of  Eosicrucian  lore  ; "  but, 
in  spite  of  resolutions  to  the  contrary,  matters  continued  in 
much  the  same  condition,  though  glowing  expectations 
were  entertained  on  the  initiation  of  one  Frater  Kenneth 
Mackenzie  VI0.,  a  burning  and  a  shining  light  of  occultism, 
somewhat  concealed  beneath  the  bushel  of  secresy.  I 
gather  from  various  casual  statements  that  the  balance  of 
opinion  in  the  camp  of  the  "  Eosicrucian  Brotherhood  in 
Anglia "  is  to  the  following  effect — That  Andreas  was  in 
some  way  connected  with  the  authorship  of  the  u  Fama  " 
and  "  Confessio  Fraternitatis,"  that  the  fraternity  of 
Christian  Eosencreutz  as  described  therein  and  in  the 
"Chymical  Marriage"  had  no  tangible  existence,  but  that 
they  gave  rise  to  the  philosophic  sect  of  Eosicrucianism, 
which  name  became,  in  the  words  of  Thomas  Vaughan,  a 
generic  term,  embracing  every  species  of  mystical  pre- 
tension. 

This  harmless  association  deserves  a  mild  sympathy  at 
the  hands  of  the  students  of  occultism. 

' '  It  has  not  done  much  harm,  nor  yet  much  good  ; 
It  might  have  done  much  better  if  it  would. " 

1  "Hours  with  the  Mystics,"  ii.,  104. 


426  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Its  character  can  hardly  have  deceived  the  most  credulous 
of  its  postulants.  Some  of  its  members  wrap  themselves 
in  darkness  and  mystery,  proclaiming  themselves  Kosi- 
crucians  with  intent  to  deceive.  These  persons  find  a  few- 
very  few — feeble — in  truth  very  feeble — believers  and 
admirers.  Others  assert  that  the  Society  is  a  mask  to 
something  else — the  last  resource  of  cornered  credulity  and 
exposed  imposture.  There  are  similar  associations  in  other 
parts  of  Europe  and  also  in  America,  e.g.,  the  Societas 
Eosicruciana  of  Boston.  In  concluding  this  notice  of 
modern  Eosicrucian  associations,  I  beg  leave  to  warn  my 
readers  that  all  persons,  whether  within  or  without  the 
magic  circles  of  public  libraries,  who  proclaim  themselves  to 
be  Kosicrucians  are  simply  members  of  pseudo-fraternities, 
and  that  there  is  that  difference  between  their  assertion  and 
the  facts  of  the  case  "  in  which  the  essence  of  a  lie  consists." 

Though  the  true  Eosicrucians,  supposing  such  a  society 
to  have  had  at  any  period  a  tangible  and  corporate  exist- 
ence, disappeared  very  suddenly  from  the  historical  plane, 
the  glamour  of  the  mystery  which  surrounded  them  proved 
a  prolific  prima  materia  for  the  alchemical  transfigura- 
tions of  romance  and  poetry,  and  insured  them  a  place  in 
legend.  Two  curious  traditions  are  noticed  by  Hargrave 
Jennings,  but  his  mental  tortuosity  has,  in  both  cases,  in- 
duced him  to  pervert  the  story  which  he  recounts  by  the 
introduction  of  worthless  and  untruthful  details  manufac- 
tured by  his  own  imagination,  and  prudently  ascribed  to 
other,  of  course  unnamed,  sources  of  information.  One  of 
these  is  the  alleged  discovery  of  the  tomb  of  Eosicrucius. 
Mr  Jennings  cites  Plot's  "  History  of  Staffordshire  "  as  his 
authority  for  this  legend  ;  I  have  carefully  looked  through 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.          427 

the  large  folio  volume  of  this  "painstaking  antiquary," 
but  have  failed  to  verify  the  reference ;  the  Spectator 
for  May  15,  1712,  cites  the  story  in  the  words  of  the 
original  narrator,  and  this  version  I  present,  for  compari- 
son, to  the  students  of  the  "  distinguished  esoteric  littera- 
teur's "  pseudo-history.  Mr  Hargrave  Jennings  says  that  it 
is  "  poor  and  ineffective,"  an  opinion  not  uncommon  to 
other  interpreters  of  history  who  manipulate  their  materials 
in  the  interests  of  their  private  opinions. 

"  A  certain  person  having  occasion  to  dig  somewhat  deep 
in  the  ground,  where  this  philosopher  lay  interred,  met 
with  a  small  door,  having  a  wall  on  each  side  of  it.  His 
curiosity,  and  the  hopes  of  finding  some  hidden  treasure, 
soon  prompted  him  to  force  open  the  door.  He  was  imme- 
diately surprised  by  a  sudden  blaze  of  light,  and  discovered 
a  very  fair  vault.  At  the  upper  end  of  it  was  a  statue  of  a 
man  in  armour,  sitting  by  a  table,  and  leaning  on  his  left 
arm.  He  held  a  truncheon  in  his  right  hand,  and  had  a 
lamp  burning  before  him.  The  man  had  no  sooner  set  one 
foot  within  the  vault,  than  the  statue,  erecting  itself  from 
its  leaning  posture,  stood  bolt  upright ;  and,  upon  the 
fellow's  advancing  another  step,  lifted  up  the  truncheon  in 
its  right  hand.  The  man  still  ventured  a  third  step,  when 
the  statue,  with  a  furious  blow,  broke  the  lamp  into  a 
thousand  pieces,  and  left  his  guest  in  a  sudden  darkness. 

"  Upon  the  report  of  this  adventure,  the  country  people 
soon  came  with  lights  to  the  sepulchre,  and  discovered  that 
the  statue,  which  was  made  of  brass,  was  nothing  more 
than  a  piece  of  clock-work  ;  that  the  floor  of  the  vault  was 
all  loose,  and  underlaid  with  several  springs,  which,  upon 
any  man's  entering,  naturally  produced  that  which  had 
happened. 


428  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

"  Rosicrucius,  say  his  disciples,  made  use  of  this  method 
to  show  the  world  that  he  had  re-invented  the  ever-burning 
lamps  of  the  ancients,  though  he  was  resolved  no  one  should 
reap  any  advantage  from  the  discovery." 

The  second  story  has  suffered  still  further  outrage.  Mr 
Hargrave  Jennings  asserts  that  it  is  related  upon  "  excellent 
authority."  This  authority  is  a  work  by  Dr  John  Campbel, 
entitled  "Hermippus  Redivivus;  or,  the  Sage's  Triumph 
over  Old  Age  and  the  Grave,"  and  the  reference  therein  is 
"  Les  Memoires  Historiques "  for  the  year  1 687,  tome  i. 
p.  365,  which  no  one  has  been  able  to  identify,  and  which, 
according  to  William  Godwin,1  had  perhaps  no  other  exist- 
ence than  in  the  fertile  brain  of  the  compiler. 

"There  happened  in  the  year  1687,  an  odd  accident  at 
Venice,  that  made  a  very  great  stir  then,  and  which  I  think 
deserves  to  be  rescued  from  oblivion.  The  great  freedom 
and  ease  with  which  all  persons,  who  make  a  good  appear- 
ance, live  in  that  city,  is  known  sufficiently  to  all  who  are 
acquainted  with  it;  such,  therefore,  will  not  be  surprised 
that  a  stranger  who  went  by  the  name  of  Signer  Gualdi, 
and  who  made  a  considerable  figure  there,  was  admitted  into 
the  best  company,  though  nobody  knew  who  or  what  he  was. 
He  remained  at  Venice  some  months,  and  three  things  were 
remarked  in  his  conduct.  The  first  was,  that  he  had  a  small 
collection  of  fine  pictures,  which  he  readily  showed  to  any- 
body that  desired  it ;  the  next,  that  he  was  perfectly  versed 
in  all  arts  and  sciences,  and  spoke  on  every  subject  with 
such  readiness  and  sagacity,  as  astonished  all  who  heard 
him  -}  and  it  was  in  the  third  place  observed,  that  he  never 
wrote  or  received  any  letter ;  never  desired  any  credit,  or 
made  use  of  bills  of  exchange,  but  paid  for  every  thing  in 
ready-money,  and  lived  decently,  though  not  in  splendour. 
1  Preface  to  "  The  Travels  of  St  Leon." 


MODERN  ROSICRUCIAN  SOCIETIES.         429 

1 '  This  gentleman  met  one  day  at  the  coffee-house  with 
a  Venetian  nobleman,  who  was  an  extraordinary  good  judge 
of  pictures  :  he  had  heard  of  Signor  Gualdi's  collection,  and 
in  a  very  polite  manner  desired  to  see  them,  to  which  the 
other  very  readily  consented.  After  the  Venetian  had 
viewed  Signor  Gualdi's  collection,  and  expressed  his  satisfac- 
tion, by  telling  him  that  he  had  never  seen  a  finer,  con- 
sidering the  number  of  pieces  of  which  it  consisted,  he  cast 
his  eyes  by  chance  over  the  chamber-door,  where  hung  a 
picture  of  this  stranger.  The  Venetian  looked  upon  it,  and 
then  upon  him.  'This  picture  was  drawn  for  you,  sir/ 
says  he  to  Signor  Gualdi ;  to  which  the  other  made  no 
answer  but  by  a  low  bow.  'You  look,'  continued  the 
Venetian,  '  like  a  man  of  fifty,  and  yet  I  know  this  picture 
to  be  of  the  hand  of  Titian,  who  has  been  dead  one  hundred 
and  thirty  years,  how  is  this  possible  1 '  '  It  is  not  easy,' 
said  Signor  Gualdi  gravely,  '  to  know  all  things  that  are 
possible,  but  there  is  certainly  no  crime  in  my  being  like  a 
picture  drawn  by  Titian.'  The  Venetian  easily  perceived, 
by  his  manner  of  speaking,  that  he  had  given  the  stranger 
offence,  and  therefore  took  his  leave. 

"  He  could  not  forbear  speaking  of  this  in  the  evening  to 
some  of  his  friends,  who  resolved  to  satisfy  themselves  by 
looking  upon  the  picture  the  next  day.  In  order  to  have 
an  opportunity  of  doing  so,  they  went  to  the  coffee-house 
about  the  time  that  Signor  Gualdi  was  wont  to  come 
thither -,  and  not  meeting  him,  one  of  them,  who  had  often 
conversed  with  him,  went  to  his  lodgings  to  enquire  after 
him,  where  he  heard  that  he  had  set  out  an  hour  before  for 
Vienna.  This  affair  made  a  great  noise,  and  found  a  place 
in  all  the  newspapers  of  that  time." 

The  mysterious  Signor  Gualdi  was  "'  suspected  to  be  a 


430  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

Rosicrucian."  The  acknowledged  fictions  of  a  later  period 
occasionally  introduce  the  Society  to  the  novel-reading 
public.  Among  these  may  be  mentioned  the  incoherent 
and  worthless  romance,  entitled  "  St  Irvyne ;  or,  The 
Rosicrucian,"  which  was  written  by  Shelley  at  the  age  of 
seventeen;  Lord  Lytton's  "Zanoni;"  "The  Rosicrucian's 
Story,"  by  Paschal  R.  Randolph,  an  American  half-breed  of 
no  inconsiderable  talent,  who  translated  the  "  Divine  Po- 
miander,"  formed  an  ephemeral  Rosicrucian  publishing 
company,  and  crowning  a  chequered  existence  with  a 
sudden  suicide,  is  still  much  respected  among  certain 
spiritual  circles,  occasionally  "  communicating  "  with  quite 
the  average  veracity  of  other  "  controls"  performed  by  the 
"  choir  invisible."  The  official  organ  of  the  English  Societas 
Rosicrudana  has  also  provided  its  select  and  esoteric  circle 
of  "  antiquarian  "  illuminati  with  "  Leaves  from  the  Diary  of 
a  Rosicrucian,"  a  romance  of  considerable  ability  by  Kenneth 
Mackenzie,  F.R.C.,  IX°. 


CONCLUSION. 

"THERE  is  a  point,"  quoth  a  grandiloquent  pseudo- 
Eosicrucian  in  an  impressive  and  tragedy  voice,  ' '  there  is 
a  point,"  he  repeated  in  the  conventional  whisper  of  the 
unexplainable  mystic,  "  beyond  which  we  inevitably  must 
keep  silence.  We  are  driven  to  take  refuge  in  portentous 
darkness  and  in  irretrievable  mystery."  The  godless  and 
incorrigible  scepticism  of  a  coarse,  unsubdued  intelligence, 
surrendered  to  a  reprobate  sense,  and  basely  and  wilfully 
grovelling  in  the  blind  alleys  of  natural  causes,  begs  leave 
to  believe  that  this  is  because  extremes  meet,  that  the 
heights  of  the  inexpressible  are  closely  approximate  to  the 
abysmal  depths  of  bathos.  But  the  unsubdued  intelligence 
is  known  to  have  covered  the  shame  of  its  naked  ignorance 
with  the  "  filthy  rags  "  of  a  posteriori  methods.  Anathema 
maranatha.  Let  it  have  no  part  in  the  life  to  come ! 
Nevertheless,  I  have  found  it  superfluous  to  "keep  guard 
over  "  the  secrets  of  the  Eosicrucians,  or  to  veil  their  mys- 
teries in  inviolable  silence,  and  this  is  for  a  simple  reason, 
namely,  that  they  have  never  revealed  any.  If  the  mani- 
festoes I|have  published  emanated  in  reality  from  a  secret 
society,  it  has  stood  guard  over  its  own  treasures,  and  as 
neither  Mr  Hargrave  Jennings  nor  myself  can  "boast  of 
having  ever — really  and  in  fact — seen  or  known  any  supposed 
(or  suspected)  member  in  the  flesh,"  we  have  nothing  to 
reveal  or  to  withhold.  "  The  recondite  systems  connected 


432  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


with  the  illustrious  Kosicrucians  "  are,  of  course,  enveloped 
in  darkness,  and,  in  common  with  other  students  of  esoteric 
lore,  I  am  inclined  to  consider  that  this  darkness  does  cover 
a  real  and,  possibly,  a  recoverable  knowledge.  But  it  is 
not  of  our  making  and  in  our  age,  which  has  nothing  to 
fear  from  the  rack  or  the  faggot,  and  but  little  from  the 
milder  agonies  of  eternal  Coventry,  it  is  no  longer  worth 
preserving.  Nihil  est  opertum  quod  non  revelabitur,  et  occultum 
quod  won  scietur.  The  time  has  come  when  that  which  was 
muttered  in  darkness  may  be  declared  plainly  in  the  full 
face  of  day,  and  when  that  which  was  whispered  in  the  ear 
can  be  proclaimed  on  the  house-top.  The  tremendous 
secrets  of  spiritual  alchemy  are  about  to  surrender  at  dis- 
cretion to  the  searching  investigations  of  the  sympathetic 
and  impartial  student  at  work  in  the  cause  of  truth.  On 
the  faith  of  a  follower  of  Honnes,  I  can  promise  that  nothing 
shall  be  held  back  from  those  true  Sons  of  the  Doctrine,  the 
sincere  seekers  after  light  who  are  prepared  to  approach  the 
supreme  arcana  of  the  psychic  world  with  a  clean  heart 
and  an  earnest  aim.  True  Rosicrucians  and  true  alchemical 
adepts,  if  there  be  any  in  existence  at  this  day,  will  not 
resent  a  new  procedure  when  circumstances  have  been 
radically  changed.  The  pontiffs  of  darkness  and  mystery 
will  probably  discover  that  it  is  too  late  to  make  use  of 
that  policy  of  assassination  which  is  supposed  to  have  been 
applied  in  the  case  of  the  Abb4  de  Villars.  I  appeal,  there- 
fore, to  those  students  of  occultism  who  are  men  of  method 
as  well  as  of  imagination,  of  reason  as  well  as  of  intuition,  to 
assist  me  in  clearing  away  the  dust  and  rubbish  which 
have  accumulated  during  centuries  of  oblivion,  misrepre- 
sentation, and  calumny  in  the  silent  sanctuaries  of  the  trans- 
cendental sciences,  that  the  traditionary  secrets  of  Nature 


CONCLUSION.  433 

unencumbered  by  evasive  veils,  which  preserved  them  per- 
haps in  the  past  from  the  violence  of  tyrants  and  intellec- 
tual task -masters  in  the  high  places  of  religion  and 
science,  but  which  are  rent  on  every  side,  and  "  execrable 
from  the  moment  that  they  are  useless,"  may  shine  forth  in 
the  darkness  of  doubt  and  uncertainty,  to  illuminate  the 
strait  and  narrow  avenues  which  communicate  between  the 
seen  and  the  unseen. 

While  this  work  was  passing  through  the  press,  Mr 
Hargrave  Jennings  has  issued  the  third  edition  of  "  The 
Eosicrucians,  their  Kites  and  Mysteries."  It  is  spread  over 
the  space  of  two  large  volumes  of  an  imposing  and  hand- 
some appearance.  It  embodies  some  new  but  wholly 
irrelevant  materials,  and  does  not  contain  one  syllable  of 
additional  information  on  its  ostensible  subject.  The 
additional  illustrations  are  quite  beside  the  question, 
having  no  reference,  however  esoteric  and  remote,  to  the 
Eosicrucian  mystery.  This  edition,  in  fact,  justifies  still 
further  the  severe  criticism  which  I  have  been  forced  to 
make  on  the  purposeless  and  rambling  speculations  of  its 
eccentric  author. 


2  E 


ADDITIONAL   NOTES. 


NUMBER  I.  (p.  17). 

ACCORDING  to  the  "  Kabbala  Denudata "  of  the  Baron 
Knorr  de  Eosenroth,  the  Eose  signifies  the  Shecinah.  The 
reason  is  given  in  the  Zohar,  sect,  ^mor.,  "  Quod  sicut 
Rosa  crescit  ad  aquas,  et  emittit  odorem  bonum,  sic  Makhuth 
hoc  gaudet  nomine,  cum  influxum  assugit  a  Binah,  quce  bonum 
elevat  odorem" 

The  definition  of  John  Heydon  concerning  the  letters 
E.  C.  comes  too  late  to  be  of  much  value  on  historical 
grounds.  "  But  some  may  ask  what  I  mean  by  E.  C.  The 
ceremony  is  an  Ebony  Cross,  flourisht  and  decked  with 
Eoses  of  Gold.  The  Cross  typifies  Christ's  sufferings  upon 
the  Cross  for  our  sins  ;  the  Eoses  of  Gold  shew  the  glory 
and  beauty  of  his  resurrection  from  death  to  life.  This  is 
carried  to  Mesque,  Cascle,  Apamia,  Chaulatean,  Virissa 
Caumich,  Mount  Calvery,  Haran,  and  Mount  Sinai,  where 
they  meet  when  they  please  and  make  resolution  of  all 
their  actions,  then  disperse  themselves  abroad,  taking  their 
pleasure  alwayes  in  one  of  these  places,  where  they  resolve 
also  all  questions  of  whatsoever  hath  been  done,  is  done,  or 
shall  be  done  in  the  world,  from  the  beginning  to  the  end 
thereof.  And  these  are  the  men  called  Eosicrucians," 


ADDITIONAL  NOTES.  435 

NUMBER  II.  (p.  18). 

It  is  the  sign  of  Mercury,  but  its  position  in  the  twelfth 
clavis  of  Basil  Valentine  indicates  a  further  and  more 
arcane  importance.  "  The  vivific  gold,  the  vivific  sulphur, 
or  the  true  fire  of  the  philosophers,  is  to  be  sought  in  the 
house  of  Mercury"  says  Eliphas  Levi  ("  Mysteries  of  Magic," 
p.  202).  The  "  sulphur,  mercury,  and  salt  of  the  philo- 
sophers," says  the  same  adept,  "  condensed  and  volatilized 
by  turns,  compose  the  azoth  of  the  philosophers."  The 
alchemical  "  balm  of  sulphur,"  according  to  the  Baron 
Tschoudy's  "  Catechism  for  the  Grade  of  Adept,  or  Sublime 
and  Unknown  apprentice  Philosopher"  (see  "L'Etoile 
Flamboyante "),  is  identical  with  the  "  radical  moisture," 
which  is  also  the  mercury  of  the  philosophers,  the  base  of 
every  species  in  the  three  kingdoms  of  Nature,  but  more 
particularly  the  seed  and  base  of  metals  when  it  is  pre- 
pared philosophically  by  the  extraction  of  what  is  superflu- 
ous and  the  addition  of  what  is  wanting  for  the  performance 
of  the  Hermetic  opus.  On  this  point,  see  Pernetz,  "  Dic- 
tionnaire  Mytho-Hermetique." 

NUMBER  III.  (p.  57). 

This  is  a  common  and  significant  superstition.  Perhaps 
it  originated  in  the  Phoenix  legend ;  it  is  dear  to  mystical 
writers,  at  any  rate,  and  has  prompted  some  curious  and 
abstruse  reasoning.  The  bee  is  especially  a  subject  of  folk- 
lore, and  is  a  symbol  of  the  ungenerating  and  sexless  spirit 
of  man,  which  yet  presents  itself  to  the  mind  under  a  male 
aspect. 


436  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

NUMBER  IV.  (p.  169). 

The  symbolical  representation  of  the  tetrad  under  the 
figure  of  a  four-square  garden,  enclosure,  house,  or  city  is 
very  common  among  mystical  writers.  A  familiar  instance 
is  found  in  the  Apocalypse,  .where  the  New  Jerusalem  is 
represented  as  a  perfect  square  descending  out  of  heaven. 
Compare  the  "  Eoman  de  la  Rose  " — 

' '  Haut  fiit  li  mur  et  tons  quarres 
Si  en  fu  bien  clos  et  bar-re's, 
En  leu  de  haies,  uns  vergiers, 
On  one  n'avoit  entr6  bergiers." 

This  passage  is  rendered  by  Chaucer  in  the  following 
manner  : — 

"  Square  was  the  wall,  and  high  somedele 
Enclosed,  and  ybarred  wele, 
In  stead  of  hedge,  was  that  gardin, 
Come  never  shepherde  therein." 

NUMBER  V.  (p.  223). 

The  appendix  to  a  series  of  epistles,  entitled  "  Selenia 
Augustalia,"  and  written  by  Johann  Valentin  Andreas, 
contains  an  account,  thus  arranged,  of  the  offspring  of  this 
marriage  : — 

JOH.  VALENTINI  ANDREW. 

Propago. 

Johann  Valentin  Andrese,  natus  1586,  17  Aug.,  et  Agnes 
Elisabeth  Griiningeren,  n.  1592,  29  Mart. ;  nuptias  habent 
1614,  2  Augusti. 

Unde  liberi. 

I.  Maria,  nat.  1616,  26  Mart;  nubit  Petro  Waltero, 
1636,  20  Jun.,  Unde. 


ADDITIONAL  NOTES.  437 

1.  Maria  Elisabeth,   nat.   1637,    21    Nov.;  obiit 

1637,  30  Novemb. 

2.  Maria  Barbara,  nat.  1638,  28  Nov. 

3.  Anna  Maria,  nat.   1640,   1  April;  obiit  1640, 

23  Junii. 

4.  Augustus,  nat.  1643,  3   Octob. ;  obiit  1646,  25 

Mart. 

5.  Maria  Margareth,  nat.  1647,  19  Jul. 

II.  Concordia,  nat.   1617,  29  Junii;  obiit.  1617,  27 
Julii. 

III.  Agnes  Elisabeth,  nat.  1618,  10  Sept.;  obiit.  1618, 

10  Sept. 

IV.  Agnes   Elisabeth,   nat.    1620,   4  Decemb. ;  nubit 

Johanni  Eiihlino,  1630,  7  Octob. 
Unde. 

1.  Maria   Elisabeth,    nat.   1640,    25   Maii;  obiit 

1640,  9  Junii. 

2.  Johann  Valentin,  nat.  1641,  4  Aug. 

3.  Anna  Maria,  nat.  1642,  16  Julii. 

4.  Johann  Ludovicus,  nat.  1643,  25  Aug. ;  obiit 

1643,  29  Octob. 

5.  Margaretha,   nat.    1644,    29   Septemb. ;    obiit 

1650,  15  Junii. 

6.  Eudolph  Augustus,  nat.  1645,8  Octob. 

7.  Anna  Catharina,  nat.   1647,  12   April;  obiit 

1647,  20  Junii. 

8.  Joh.  Ludovicus,  nat.  1648,  18  Maii ;  obiit  1649, 

11  Mart. 

9.  Johann  Georgius,  nat.    1649,  25  Maii;  obiit 

1649,  17  Julii. 

10.  Joh.  Eberhardt,  nat.  1650,  23  Junii. 

11.  Anna  Margareth,  nat.  1651,  5  Aug. 


438  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 

12.  Maria  Barbara,  nat.  1652,  11  Aug. 
V.  Gottlieb,    nat.    1622,   19   Sept.;   ducit  Barbaram 
Sanbertinam,  1643,  19  Junii.     Unde. 

1.  Christina  Patientia,  nat.  1644,  24Decem.;  obiit 

1645,  3  Jan. 

2.  Job.  Valentin,  nat.  1646,  17  Mart. 

3.  Gottliebin,  nat.  1647,  3  Nov. 

4.  Augustus  Gottlieb,  natus  1649,  16  Jan. 

5.  Jacob   Erasmus,    nat.   1650,   3  August ;  obiit 

1651,  27  Mart. 

6.  Maria  Barb.  Elisab.,  nat.  1652,  13  Apr. 

VI.  Ehrenreich,  nat.  1624,   10  Julii;  obiit  1634,  21 

Septemb. 
VII.  Wahrermund,  nat.  1627,  27  Nov.  ;  obiit   1629,  6 

Febr. 
VIII.  Johan  Valentin,  nat.  1631,  9  Aug.;  obiit  1632,  5 

Sept. 

IX.  Patientia,  nat.   1632,  25  Octob. ;   obiit   1632;    6 
Decemb. 

NUMBER  VI.  (p.  388). 

In  the  first  volume  of  his  "Philosophical  Dictionary" 
Voltaire,  however,  recounts  what  he  considered  to  be  the 
best  exploit  ever  performed  in  alchemy,  and  which  was 
that  of  a  Rosicrucian,  who,  as  early  as  the  year  1620,  paid 
a  visit  to  Henri  I.,  due  de  Bouillon,  of  the  house  of  Turenne, 
and  the  sovereign  prince  of  Sedan,  with  the  object  of  in- 
forming him  that  his  power  and  dominion  were  in  no  way 
proportioned  to  his  valour,  and  that  he,  the  stranger  in 
question,  was  fired  with  the  disinterested  design  of  making 
him  as  wealthy  as  an  Emperor.  "  I  can  remain  no  longer 


ADDITIONAL  NOTES.  439 

than  two  days  on  your  estate,"  said  the  impostor ;  "  I  must 
then  proceed  to  Venice  and  be  present  at  the  grand  assembly 
of  my  brethren.  In  the  first  place,  you  must  keep  my 
secret  inviolable ;  in  the  second,  send  to  the  first  apothe- 
cary in  the  town  and  purchase  a  quantity  of  litharge ;  cast 
but  one  grain  of  this  red  powder  therein,  and  in  less  than 
a  quarter  of  an  hour  it  will  be  transformed  into  gold." 

The  prince  performed  the  operation,  and  repeated  it 
three  times  in  the  presence  of  the  virtuoso.  This  personage 
had  previously  purchased  all  the  litharge  which  was  to  be 
found  at  the  apothecaries  in  Sedan,  and  had  resold  it  to 
them,  tinctured  with  several  ounces  of  gold.  The  adept  on 
departing  presented  all  his  powder  of  projection  to  the  due 
de  Bouillon,  who  did  not  doubt  for  a  moment  that,  having 
manufactured  three  ounces  of  gold  with  three  grains,  he 
would  make  one  hundred  thousand  ounces  with  a  propor- 
tionate quantity  of  this  priceless  and  mysterious  powder. 
The  philosopher  was  in  haste  to  quit  the  town  ;  he  declared 
that  he  had  given  all  his  powder  to  the  prince,  and  that  he 
needed  some  coin  of  the  realm  to  repair  to  Venice  for  the 
inauguration  of  the  assembly  of  Hermetics.  A  man  of  mode- 
rate tastes,  he  asked  simply  for  twenty  thousand  crowns, 
but  was  forced  by  his  princely  disciple  to  accept  twice  that 
sum ;  but  when  the  unfortunate  duke  had  exhausted  all  the 
litharge  in  Sedan  he  could  no  longer  manufacture  gold,  nor 
could  he  anywhere  discover  his  philosopher. 


APPENDIX  OF  ADDITIONAL  DOCUMENTS. 


By  an  error  of  transcription  the  preface  to  the  "  Fama 
Fraternitatis "  was  omitted  from  the  text  of  the  present 
revised  version.  It  is  addressed  to  "  the  wise  and  under- 
standing reader." 

Wisdome  (sayeth  Solomon)  is  a  treasure  unto  men  that 
never  faileth,  for  she  is  the  breth  of  the  power  of  God  and 
an  inherence  flowing  from  the  glory  of  the  Almighty  ;  she 
is  the  brightness  of  the  everlasting  light,  the  unspotted 
mirror  of  the  power  of  God,  and  the  image  of  His  goodness. 
She  teacheth  civility  with  righteousness  and  strength,  she 
knoweth  things  of  old,  and  conjectureth  aright  what  is  to 
come ;  she  knoweth  the  subtleties  of  speaches  and  can 
expound  darke  sentences ;  she  foreseeth  signes  and  wonders, 
with  the  advent  of  seasons  and  times.  With  this  treasure 
was  our  first  father  Adam  before  his  fall  fully  indued ;  hence 
it  doth  appear  that  after  God  had  brought  before  him  all 
the  creatures  of  the  field  and  the  fowls  under  the  heavens, 
he  gave  to  everyone  of  them  theyr  proper  name,  accordinge 
to  their  Nature. 

Although  now,  through  the  sorrowfull  fall  into  sinn,  this 
excellent  Jewell  wisdome  hath  bene  lost,  and  mere  darkness 
and  ignorance  is  come  into  the  world,  yet,  notwithstanding, 
the  Lord  God  hath  sometimes  hetherto  bestowed  and 
made  manifest  the  same  to  some  of  his  friends ;  the  wise 
Kinge  Solomon  doth  testifie  of  himself  that  he  upon  his 


APPENDIX  OF  ADDITIONAL  DOCUMENTS.    441 

earnest  prayer  and  desire  obtained  such  wisdome  of  God 
that  thereby  he  knew  how  the  world  was  made,  understood 
the  operation  of  the  elements,  the  beginninge,  endinge,  and 
middest  of  the  times,-  the  alterations,  the  dayes  of  the  turn- 
ing of  the  sunne,  the  change  of  seasons,  the  circuits  of  yeres 
and  the  positions  of  stars,  the  natures  of  livinge  creatures  and 
the  furies  of  wild  beasts,  the  violence  of  winds,  the  reason- 
ings of  men,  the  diversities  of  plants,  the  vertues  of  roots, 
and  all  such  things  as  are  either  secret  or  manifest,  them  he 
knewe. 

Now,  I  doe  not  think  that  there  can  be  found  anyone 
whoe  would  not  wish  and  desire  with  all  his  heart  to  be 
partaker  of  this  noble  treasure,  but  seinge  the  same  felicity 
canne  happen  to  none  except  God  Himself  give  wisdome 
and  send  His  Holy  Spirit  from  above,  we  have  sett  forth  in 
print  this  little  treaty,  to  wit,  the  Famam  and  Confessionem 
of  the  Laudable  Fraternity  of  the  Rosy  Cross,  to  be  read 
by  every  one,  because  in  them  is  clearly  shewn  and  dis- 
covered what  concerning  it  the  world  hath  hereafter  to 
expect.  Although  now  these  things  may  seem  somewhat 
strange,  and  many  might  esteme  it  to  be  a  philosophical 
showe  and  no  true  historic  which  is  published  and  spoken 
of  the  Fraternity  of  the  Rosy  Cross,  it  shall  therefore 
sufficiently  appear  by  our  Confession  that  there  is  more  in 
recessu  then  may  be  imagined,  and  it  shall  also  be  easily 
understood  and  observed  by  everyone,  (yf  he  be  not 
altogether  void  of  understandinge)  what  now  adayes  is 
meant  thereby. 

Those  who  are  true  disciples  of  wisdome  and  true  followers 
of  the  spirituall  arte  will  consider  better  of  these  things, 
and  have  them  in  greater  estimation,  as  also  judge  farr 
otherwise  of  them,  as  hath  been  done  of  some  principall 


442  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


persons  but  espetially  of  Adam  Haselmeyer,  Notarius  Publicus 
to  the  Archduke  Maximilian,  whoe  likewise  hath  made  an 
extract  ex  scriptis  Theologids  Theophrasti,  and  written  a 
treatise  under  the  title  Jesuits,  wherein  he  willeth  that 
every  Christian  should  be  a  true  Jesuite,  that  is,  should 
walke,  live,  and  be  in  Jesus.  He  was  but  ill  rewarded  of 
the  Jesuites,  because  in  his  answer  written  upon  the  Famam 
he  did  name  those  of  the  Fraternity  of  the  Eosy  Cross, 
"  the  highly  illuminated  men  and  undeceiving  Jesuites," 
for  they,  not  able  to  brook  this,  layde  hands  on  him  and 
put  him  into  the  gallies,  for  which  they  likewise  are  to 
expect  theyr  reward. 

Blessed  Aurora  will  now  begin  to  appeare,  whoe  (after 
the  passing  away  of  the  darke  night  of  Saturne)  with  her 
brightness  altogether  extinguished  the  shinninge  of  the 
moon,  or  the  small  sparkles  of  the  heavenly  wisdome  which 
yet  remaines  with  men,  and  is  a  fore  runner  of  pleasant 
Phoebus,  whoe,  with  her  cleare  and  fiery  glisteninge  beam.es, 
brings  forth  that  blessed  day,  long  wished  for  of  many  true- 
hearted,  by  which  daylight  then  shall  truely  be  knowne  and 
scene,  all  heavenly  treasures  of  godly  wisdome,  as  also  the 
secrets  of  all  hidden  and  invisible  things  in  the  world, 
according  to  the  doctrine  of  our  forefathers  and  auncient 
wise  men. 

This  will  be  the  right  Kingly  Rubie,  most  excellent 
shining  Carbuncle,  of  the  which  it  is  sayd  that  he  doth  shine 
and  give  light  in  darkenes,  and  is  a  perfect  medecine  of  all 
imperfect  metaline  bodyes,  to  change  them  into  the  best 
gould  and  to  cure  all  diseases  of  men,  easing  them  of  theyr 
paynes  and  miseries. 

Be  therefore  gentle  reader  admonished,  that  with  me  you 
doe  earnestly  pray  to  God,  that  it  may  please  Him  to  open 


APPENDIX  OF  ADDITIONAL  DOCUMENTS.    443 

the  harts  and  eares  of  all  ill-hearing  people,  and  to  grant 
unto  them  His  blessing,  that  they  may  be  able  to  know 
Him  in  His  omnipotency,  with  admiring  contemplation  of 
Nature,  to  His  honor  and  praise,  and  to  the  love,  helpe, 
comfort,  and  strengthening  of  our  neighbours,  and  to  the 
restoring  of  health  of  all  the  diseased.  Amen. 


A   EOSICRUCIAN   ALLEGORY.1 

There  is  a  mountain  situated  in  the  midst  of  the  earth  or 
centre  of  the  world,  which  is  both  small  and  great.  It  is  soft 
also  above  measure,  hard  and  strong.  It  is  far  off  and  near 
at  hand ;  but,  by  the  Providence  of  God,  it  is  invisible. 
In  it  are  hidden  most  ample  treasures,  which  the  world  is 
not  able  to  value.  This  mountain,  by  the  envy  of  the 
devil,  is  compassed  about  with  very  cruel  beasts  and  raven- 
ous birds,  which  make  the  way  thither  both  difficult  and 
dangerous ;  and,  therefore,  hitherto,  because  the  time  is 
not  yet  come,  the  way  thither  could  not  be  sought  after  by 
all,  but  only  by  the  worthy  man's  self-labour  and  investiga- 
tion. 

To  this  mountain  you  shall  go  in  a  certain  night,  when  it 
comes  most  long  and  dark,  and  see  that  you.  prepare  yourself 
by  prayer.  Insist  upon  the  way  that  leads  to  the  mountain, 
but  ask  not  of  any  man  where  it  lies ;  only  follow  your 
guide,  who  will  offer  himself  to  you,  and  will  meet  you  in 
the  way. 

This  guide  will  bring  you  to  the  mountain  at  midnight, 
when  all  things  are  silent  and  dark.  It  is  necessary  that 
you  arm  yourself  with  a  resolute,  heroic  courage,  lest  you 

1  See  the  preface  to  Heydon's  "  Holy  Guide  "  ;  also  "  A  Suggestive 
Inquiry  concerning  the  Rosicrucian  Mystery." 


444  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


fear  those  things  that  will  happen,  and  fall  back.  You  need 
no  sword  or  other  bodily  weapon,  only  call  upon  your  God, 
sincerely  and  heartily  seeking  Him. 

When  you  have  discovered  the  mountain,  the  first 
miracle  that  will  appear  is  this — a  most  vehement  and  very 
great  wind  will  shake  the  whole  mountain  and  shatter 
the  rocks  to  pieces.  You  will  be  encountered  by  lions, 
dragons,  and  other  terrible  wild  beasts ;  but  fear  not 
any  of  these  things.  Be  resolute  and  take  heed  that  you 
return  not,  for  your  guide  who  brought  you  thither  will 
not  suffer  any  evil  to  befall  you.  As  for  the  treasure,  it  is 
not  yet  discovered,  but  it  is  very  near.  After  this  wind 
will  come  an  earthquake,  which  will  overthrow  those  things 
which  the  wind  had  left.  Be  sure  you  fall  not  off.  The 
earthquake  being  passed,  there  shall  follow  a  fire  that  will 
consume  the  earthly  rubbish  and  discover  the  treasure,  but 
as  yet  you  cannot  see  it.  After  all  these  things,  and  near 
daybreak,  there  shall  be  a  great  calm,  and  you  shall  see  the 
day-star  arise,  and  the  darkness  will  disappear.  You  will 
conceive  a  great  treasure ;  the  chiefest  thing  and  the  most 
perfect  is  a  certain  exalted  tincture,  with  which  the  world, 
if  it  served  God  and  were  worthy  of  such  gifts,  might  be 
tinged  and  turned  into  most  pure  gold. 

THE  ROSIE  CRUCIAN  PRAYER  TO  GOD. 

Jesus  Mihi  Omnia. 

Oh  Thou  everywhere  and  good  of  all,  whatsoever  I  do 
remember,  I  beseech  Thee,  that  I  am  but  dust,  but  as  a 
vapour  sprung  from  earth,  which  even  Thy  smallest  breath 
can  scatter.  Thou  hast  given  me  a  soul  and  laws  to  govern 
it ;  let  that  fraternal  rule  which  Thou  didst  first  appoint 


APPENDIX  OF  ADDITIONAL  DOCUMENTS.    445 

to  sway  man  order  me  ;  make  me  careful  to  point  at  Thy 
glory  in  all  my  wayes,  and  where  I  cannot  rightly  know 
Thee,  that  not  only  my  understanding  but  my  ignorance 
may  honour  Thee.  Thou  art  all  that  can  be  perfect ;  Thy 
revelation  hath  made  me  happy.  Be  not  angry,  0  Divine 
One,  O  God  the  most  high  Creator !  If  it  please  Thee, 
suffer  these  revealed  secrets,  Thy  gifts  alone,  not  for  my 
praise  but  to  Thy  glory,  to  manifest  themselves.  I  beseech 
Thee,  most  gracious  God,  they  may  not  fall  into  the  hands 
of  ignorant  envious  persons  that  cloud  these  truths  to  Thy 
disgrace,  saying  they  are  not  lawful  to  be  published  because 
what  God  reveals  is  to  be  kept  secret.  But  Eosie  Crucian 
philosophers  lay  up  this  secret  into  the  bosome  of  God 
which  I  have  presumed  to  manifest  clearly  and  plainly.  I 
beseech  the  Trinity  it  may  be  printed  as  I  have  written  it 
that  the  truth  may  no  more  be  darkened  with  ambiguous 
language.1  Good  God,  besides  Thee  nothing  is  !  0  stream 
Thyself  into  my  soul,  and  flow  it  with  Thy  grace,  illumina- 
tion and  revelation  !  Make  me  to  depend  on  Thee.  Thou 
delightest  that  man  should  account  Thee  as  his  King,  and 
not  hide  what  honey  of  knowledge  he  hath  revealed.  I 
cast  myself  as  an  honourer  of  Thee  at  Thy  feet,  and  because 
I  cannot  be  defended  by  Thee  unless  I  believe  after  Thy 
laws,  keep  me,  0  my. soul's  Soveraign,  in  the  obedience  of 
Thy  will,  and  that  I  wound  not  my  conscience  with  vice 
and  hiding  Thy  gifts  and  graces  bestowed  upon  me,  for 
this,  I  know,  will  destroy  me  within,  and  make  Thy  illum- 
inating Spirit  leave  me.  I  am  afraid  I  have  already 
infinitely  swerved  from  the  revelations  of  that  Divine 
Guide  which  Thou  hast  commanded  to  direct  me  to  the 
truth,  and  for  this  I  am  a  sad  prostrate  and  penitent  at  the 
1  The  speaker  is  John  Hey  don,  in  "  The  Holy  Guide." 


446  HISTORY  OF  THE  ROSICRUCIANS. 


foot  of  Thy  throne.  I  appeal  only  to  the  abundance  of 
Thy  remissions,  0  God,  my  God.  I  know  it  is  a  mysterie 
beyond  the  vast  soul's  apprehension,  and  therefore  deep 
enough  for  man  to  rest  in  safety  in  !  0  Thou  Being  of  all 
beings,  cause  me  to  work  myself  to  Thee,  and  into  the 
receiving  arms  of  Thy  paternal  mercies  throw  myself.  For 
outward  things  I  thank  Thee,  and  such  as  I  have  I  give 
unto  others,  in  the  name  of  the  Trinity,  freely  and  faith- 
fully, without  hiding  anything  of  what  was  revealed  to 
me  and  experienced  to  be  no  diabolical  delusion  or  dream, 
but  the  Adjectamenta  of  Thy  richer  graces — the  mines  and 
deprivation  are  both  in  Thy  hands.  In  what  Thou  hast 
given  me  I  am  content.  Good  God,  ray  Thyself  into  my 
soul !  Give  me  but  a  heart  to  please  Thee,  I  beg  no  more- 
then  Thou  hast  given,  and  that  to  continue  me  uncon- 
temnedly  and  unpittiedly  honest.  Save  me  from  the  devil, 
lusts,  and  men,  and  from  those  fond  dotages  of  mortality 
which  would  weigh  down  my  soul  to  lowness  and  debauch - 
ment.  Let  it  be  my  glory  (planting  myself  in  a  noble 
height  above  them)  to  contemn  them.  Take  me  from 
myself  and  fill  me  but  with  Thee.  Sum  up  Thy  blessings 
in  these  two,  that  I  may  be  rightly  good  and  wise,  and 
these,  for  Thy  eternal  truth's  sake,  grant  and  make  grateful. 


THE  END. 


TURNBUI.L   ASP   SPEAKS,   PRINTERS,  EDINBURGH,